21161 lines
1.2 MiB
21161 lines
1.2 MiB
1781
|
|
|
|
THE CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON
|
|
|
|
by Immanuel Kant
|
|
|
|
translated by J. M. D. Meiklejohn
|
|
|
|
PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION, 1781
|
|
|
|
Human reason, in one sphere of its cognition, is called upon to
|
|
consider questions, which it cannot decline, as they are presented
|
|
by its own nature, but which it cannot answer, as they transcend every
|
|
faculty of the mind.
|
|
|
|
It falls into this difficulty without any fault of its own. It
|
|
begins with principles, which cannot be dispensed with in the field of
|
|
experience, and the truth and sufficiency of which are, at the same
|
|
time, insured by experience. With these principles it rises, in
|
|
obedience to the laws of its own nature, to ever higher and more
|
|
remote conditions. But it quickly discovers that, in this way, its
|
|
labours must remain ever incomplete, because new questions never cease
|
|
to present themselves; and thus it finds itself compelled to have
|
|
recourse to principles which transcend the region of experience, while
|
|
they are regarded by common sense without distrust. It thus falls into
|
|
confusion and contradictions, from which it conjectures the presence
|
|
of latent errors, which, however, it is unable to discover, because
|
|
the principles it employs, transcending the limits of experience,
|
|
cannot be tested by that criterion. The arena of these endless
|
|
contests is called Metaphysic.
|
|
|
|
Time was, when she was the queen of all the sciences; and, if we
|
|
take the will for the deed, she certainly deserves, so far as
|
|
regards the high importance of her object-matter, this title of
|
|
honour. Now, it is the fashion of the time to heap contempt and
|
|
scorn upon her; and the matron mourns, forlorn and forsaken, like
|
|
Hecuba:
|
|
|
|
Modo maxima rerum,
|
|
|
|
Tot generis, natisque potens...
|
|
|
|
Nunc trahor exul, inops.*
|
|
|
|
*Ovid, Metamorphoses. [xiii, "But late on the pinnacle of fame,
|
|
strong in my many sons. now exiled, penniless."]
|
|
|
|
At first, her government, under the administration of the
|
|
dogmatists, was an absolute despotism. But, as the legislative
|
|
continued to show traces of the ancient barbaric rule, her empire
|
|
gradually broke up, and intestine wars introduced the reign of
|
|
anarchy; while the sceptics, like nomadic tribes, who hate a permanent
|
|
habitation and settled mode of living, attacked from time to time
|
|
those who had organized themselves into civil communities. But their
|
|
number was, very happily, small; and thus they could not entirely
|
|
put a stop to the exertions of those who persisted in raising new
|
|
edifices, although on no settled or uniform plan. In recent times
|
|
the hope dawned upon us of seeing those disputes settled, and the
|
|
legitimacy of her claims established by a kind of physiology of the
|
|
human understanding- that of the celebrated Locke. But it was found
|
|
that- although it was affirmed that this so-called queen could not
|
|
refer her descent to any higher source than that of common experience,
|
|
a circumstance which necessarily brought suspicion on her claims- as
|
|
this genealogy was incorrect, she persisted in the advancement of
|
|
her claims to sovereignty. Thus metaphysics necessarily fell back into
|
|
the antiquated and rotten constitution of dogmatism, and again
|
|
became obnoxious to the contempt from which efforts had been made to
|
|
save it. At present, as all methods, according to the general
|
|
persuasion, have been tried in vain, there reigns nought but weariness
|
|
and complete indifferentism- the mother of chaos and night in the
|
|
scientific world, but at the same time the source of, or at least
|
|
the prelude to, the re-creation and reinstallation of a science,
|
|
when it has fallen into confusion, obscurity, and disuse from ill
|
|
directed effort.
|
|
|
|
For it is in reality vain to profess indifference in regard to
|
|
such inquiries, the object of which cannot be indifferent to humanity.
|
|
Besides, these pretended indifferentists, however much they may try to
|
|
disguise themselves by the assumption of a popular style and by
|
|
changes on the language of the schools, unavoidably fall into
|
|
metaphysical declarations and propositions, which they profess to
|
|
regard with so much contempt. At the same time, this indifference,
|
|
which has arisen in the world of science, and which relates to that
|
|
kind of knowledge which we should wish to see destroyed the last, is a
|
|
phenomenon that well deserves our attention and reflection. It is
|
|
plainly not the effect of the levity, but of the matured judgement* of
|
|
the age, which refuses to be any longer entertained with illusory
|
|
knowledge, It is, in fact, a call to reason, again to undertake the
|
|
most laborious of all tasks- that of self-examination- and to
|
|
establish a tribunal, which may secure it in its well-grounded claims,
|
|
while it pronounces against all baseless assumptions and
|
|
pretensions, not in an arbitrary manner, but according to its own
|
|
eternal and unchangeable laws. This tribunal is nothing less than
|
|
the critical investigation of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
*We very often hear complaints of the shallowness of the present
|
|
age, and of the decay of profound science. But I do not think that
|
|
those which rest upon a secure foundation, such as mathematics,
|
|
physical science, etc., in the least deserve this reproach, but that
|
|
they rather maintain their ancient fame, and in the latter case,
|
|
indeed, far surpass it. The same would be the case with the other
|
|
kinds of cognition, if their principles were but firmly established.
|
|
In the absence of this security, indifference, doubt, and finally,
|
|
severe criticism are rather signs of a profound habit of thought.
|
|
Our age is the age of criticism, to which everything must be
|
|
subjected. The sacredness of religion, and the authority of
|
|
legislation, are by many regarded as grounds of exemption from the
|
|
examination of this tribunal. But, if they on they are exempted,
|
|
they become the subjects of just suspicion, and cannot lay claim to
|
|
sincere respect, which reason accords only to that which has stood the
|
|
test of a free and public examination.
|
|
|
|
I do not mean by this a criticism of books and systems, but a
|
|
critical inquiry into the faculty of reason, with reference to the
|
|
cognitions to which it strives to attain without the aid of
|
|
experience; in other words, the solution of the question regarding the
|
|
possibility or impossibility of metaphysics, and the determination
|
|
of the origin, as well as of the extent and limits of this science.
|
|
All this must be done on the basis of principles.
|
|
|
|
This path- the only one now remaining- has been entered upon by
|
|
me; and I flatter myself that I have, in this way, discovered the
|
|
cause of- and consequently the mode of removing- all the errors
|
|
which have hitherto set reason at variance with itself, in the
|
|
sphere of non-empirical thought. I have not returned an evasive answer
|
|
to the questions of reason, by alleging the inability and limitation
|
|
of the faculties of the mind; I have, on the contrary, examined them
|
|
completely in the light of principles, and, after having discovered
|
|
the cause of the doubts and contradictions into which reason fell,
|
|
have solved them to its perfect satisfaction. It is true, these
|
|
questions have not been solved as dogmatism, in its vain fancies and
|
|
desires, had expected; for it can only be satisfied by the exercise of
|
|
magical arts, and of these I have no knowledge. But neither do these
|
|
come within the compass of our mental powers; and it was the duty of
|
|
philosophy to destroy the illusions which had their origin in
|
|
misconceptions, whatever darling hopes and valued expectations may
|
|
be ruined by its explanations. My chief aim in this work has been
|
|
thoroughness; and I make bold to say that there is not a single
|
|
metaphysical problem that does not find its solution, or at least
|
|
the key to its solution, here. Pure reason is a perfect unity; and
|
|
therefore, if the if the principle presented by it prove to be
|
|
insufficient for the solution of even a single one of those
|
|
questions to which the very nature of reason gives birth, we must
|
|
reject it, as we could not be perfectly certain of its sufficiency
|
|
in the case of the others.
|
|
|
|
While I say this, I think I see upon the countenance of the reader
|
|
signs of dissatisfaction mingled with contempt, when he hears
|
|
declarations which sound so boastful and extravagant; and yet they are
|
|
beyond comparison more moderate than those advanced by the commonest
|
|
author of the commonest philosophical programme, in which the
|
|
dogmatist professes to demonstrate the simple nature of the soul, or
|
|
the necessity of a primal being. Such a dogmatist promises to extend
|
|
human knowledge beyond the limits of possible experience; while I
|
|
humbly confess that this is completely beyond my power. Instead of any
|
|
such attempt, I confine myself to the examination of reason alone
|
|
and its pure thought; and I do not need to seek far for the
|
|
sum-total of its cognition, because it has its seat in my own mind.
|
|
Besides, common logic presents me with a complete and systematic
|
|
catalogue of all the simple operations of reason; and it is my task to
|
|
answer the question how far reason can go, without the material
|
|
presented and the aid furnished by experience.
|
|
|
|
So much for the completeness and thoroughness necessary in the
|
|
execution of the present task. The aims set before us are not
|
|
arbitrarily proposed, but are imposed upon us by the nature of
|
|
cognition itself.
|
|
|
|
The above remarks relate to the matter of our critical inquiry. As
|
|
regards the form, there are two indispensable conditions, which any
|
|
one who undertakes so difficult a task as that of a critique of pure
|
|
reason, is bound to fulfil. These conditions are certitude and
|
|
clearness.
|
|
|
|
As regards certitude, I have fully convinced myself that, in this
|
|
sphere of thought, opinion is perfectly inadmissible, and that
|
|
everything which bears the least semblance of an hypothesis must be
|
|
excluded, as of no value in such discussions. For it is a necessary
|
|
condition of every cognition that is to be established upon a priori
|
|
grounds that it shall be held to be absolutely necessary; much more is
|
|
this the case with an attempt to determine all pure a priori
|
|
cognition, and to furnish the standard- and consequently an example-
|
|
of all apodeictic (philosophical) certitude. Whether I have
|
|
succeeded in what I professed to do, it is for the reader to
|
|
determine; it is the author's business merely to adduce grounds and
|
|
reasons, without determining what influence these ought to have on the
|
|
mind of his judges. But, lest anything he may have said may become the
|
|
innocent cause of doubt in their minds, or tend to weaken the effect
|
|
which his arguments might otherwise produce- he may be allowed to
|
|
point out those passages which may occasion mistrust or difficulty,
|
|
although these do not concern the main purpose of the present work. He
|
|
does this solely with the view of removing from the mind of the reader
|
|
any doubts which might affect his judgement of the work as a whole,
|
|
and in regard to its ultimate aim.
|
|
|
|
I know no investigations more necessary for a full insight into
|
|
the nature of the faculty which we call understanding, and at the same
|
|
time for the determination of the rules and limits of its use, than
|
|
those undertaken in the second chapter of the "Transcendental
|
|
Analytic," under the title of "Deduction of the Pure Conceptions of
|
|
the Understanding"; and they have also cost me by far the greatest
|
|
labour- labour which, I hope, will not remain uncompensated. The
|
|
view there taken, which goes somewhat deeply into the subject, has two
|
|
sides, The one relates to the objects of the pure understanding, and
|
|
is intended to demonstrate and to render comprehensible the
|
|
objective validity of its a priori conceptions; and it forms for
|
|
this reason an essential part of the Critique. The other considers the
|
|
pure understanding itself, its possibility and its powers of
|
|
cognition- that is, from a subjective point of view; and, although
|
|
this exposition is of great importance, it does not belong essentially
|
|
to the main purpose of the work, because the grand question is what
|
|
and how much can reason and understanding, apart from experience,
|
|
cognize, and not, how is the faculty of thought itself possible? As
|
|
the latter is an, inquiry into the cause of a given effect, and has
|
|
thus in it some semblance of an hypothesis (although, as I shall
|
|
show on another occasion, this is really not the fact), it would
|
|
seem that, in the present instance, I had allowed myself to enounce
|
|
a mere opinion, and that the reader must therefore be at liberty to
|
|
hold a different opinion. But I beg to remind him that, if my
|
|
subjective deduction does not produce in his mind the conviction of
|
|
its certitude at which I aimed, the objective deduction, with which
|
|
alone the present work is properly concerned, is in every respect
|
|
satisfactory.
|
|
|
|
As regards clearness, the reader has a right to demand, in the first
|
|
place, discursive or logical clearness, that is, on the basis of
|
|
conceptions, and, secondly, intuitive or aesthetic clearness, by means
|
|
of intuitions, that is, by examples or other modes of illustration
|
|
in concreto. I have done what I could for the first kind of
|
|
intelligibility. This was essential to my purpose; and it thus
|
|
became the accidental cause of my inability to do complete justice
|
|
to the second requirement. I have been almost always at a loss, during
|
|
the progress of this work, how to settle this question. Examples and
|
|
illustrations always appeared to me necessary, and, in the first
|
|
sketch of the Critique, naturally fell into their proper places. But I
|
|
very soon became aware of the magnitude of my task, and the numerous
|
|
problems with which I should be engaged; and, as I perceived that this
|
|
critical investigation would, even if delivered in the driest
|
|
scholastic manner, be far from being brief, I found it unadvisable
|
|
to enlarge it still more with examples and explanations, which are
|
|
necessary only from a popular point of view. I was induced to take
|
|
this course from the consideration also that the present work is not
|
|
intended for popular use, that those devoted to science do not require
|
|
such helps, although they are always acceptable, and that they would
|
|
have materially interfered with my present purpose. Abbe Terrasson
|
|
remarks with great justice that, if we estimate the size of a work,
|
|
not from the number of its pages, but from the time which we require
|
|
to make ourselves master of it, it may be said of many a book that
|
|
it would be much shorter, if it were not so short. On the other
|
|
hand, as regards the comprehensibility of a system of speculative
|
|
cognition, connected under a single principle, we may say with equal
|
|
justice: many a book would have been much clearer, if it had not
|
|
been intended to be so very clear. For explanations and examples,
|
|
and other helps to intelligibility, aid us in the comprehension of
|
|
parts, but they distract the attention, dissipate the mental power
|
|
of the reader, and stand in the way of his forming a clear
|
|
conception of the whole; as he cannot attain soon enough to a survey
|
|
of the system, and the colouring and embellishments bestowed upon it
|
|
prevent his observing its articulation or organization- which is the
|
|
most important consideration with him, when he comes to judge of its
|
|
unity and stability.
|
|
|
|
The reader must naturally have a strong inducement to co-operate
|
|
with the present author, if he has formed the intention of erecting
|
|
a complete and solid edifice of metaphysical science, according to the
|
|
plan now laid before him. Metaphysics, as here represented, is the
|
|
only science which admits of completion- and with little labour, if it
|
|
is united, in a short time; so that nothing will be left to future
|
|
generations except the task of illustrating and applying it
|
|
didactically. For this science is nothing more than the inventory of
|
|
all that is given us by pure reason, systematically arranged.
|
|
Nothing can escape our notice; for what reason produces from itself
|
|
cannot lie concealed, but must be brought to the light by reason
|
|
itself, so soon as we have discovered the common principle of the
|
|
ideas we seek. The perfect unity of this kind of cognitions, which are
|
|
based upon pure conceptions, and uninfluenced by any empirical
|
|
element, or any peculiar intuition leading to determinate
|
|
experience, renders this completeness not only practicable, but also
|
|
necessary.
|
|
|
|
Tecum habita, et noris quam sit tibi curta supellex.*
|
|
|
|
*Persius. [Satirae iv. 52. "Dwell with yourself, and you will know
|
|
how short your household stuff is."
|
|
|
|
Such a system of pure speculative reason I hope to be able to
|
|
publish under the title of Metaphysic of Nature. The content of this
|
|
work (which will not be half so long) will be very much richer than
|
|
that of the present Critique, which has to discover the sources of
|
|
this cognition and expose the conditions of its possibility, and at
|
|
the same time to clear and level a fit foundation for the scientific
|
|
edifice. In the present work, I look for the patient hearing and the
|
|
impartiality of a judge; in the other, for the good-will and
|
|
assistance of a co-labourer. For, however complete the list of
|
|
principles for this system may be in the Critique, the correctness
|
|
of the system requires that no deduced conceptions should be absent.
|
|
These cannot be presented a priori, but must be gradually
|
|
discovered; and, while the synthesis of conceptions has been fully
|
|
exhausted in the Critique, it is necessary that, in the proposed work,
|
|
the same should be the case with their analysis. But this will be
|
|
rather an amusement than a labour.
|
|
|
|
PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION, 1787
|
|
|
|
Whether the treatment of that portion of our knowledge which lies
|
|
within the province of pure reason advances with that undeviating
|
|
certainty which characterizes the progress of science, we shall be
|
|
at no loss to determine. If we find those who are engaged in
|
|
metaphysical pursuits, unable to come to an understanding as to the
|
|
method which they ought to follow; if we find them, after the most
|
|
elaborate preparations, invariably brought to a stand before the
|
|
goal is reached, and compelled to retrace their steps and strike
|
|
into fresh paths, we may then feel quite sure that they are far from
|
|
having attained to the certainty of scientific progress and may rather
|
|
be said to be merely groping about in the dark. In these circumstances
|
|
we shall render an important service to reason if we succeed in simply
|
|
indicating the path along which it must travel, in order to arrive
|
|
at any results- even if it should be found necessary to abandon many
|
|
of those aims which, without reflection, have been proposed for its
|
|
attainment.
|
|
|
|
That logic has advanced in this sure course, even from the
|
|
earliest times, is apparent from the fact that, since Aristotle, it
|
|
has been unable to advance a step and, thus, to all appearance has
|
|
reached its completion. For, if some of the moderns have thought to
|
|
enlarge its domain by introducing psychological discussions on the
|
|
mental faculties, such as imagination and wit, metaphysical,
|
|
discussions on the origin of knowledge and the different kinds of
|
|
certitude, according to the difference of the objects (idealism,
|
|
scepticism, and so on), or anthropological discussions on
|
|
prejudices, their causes and remedies: this attempt, on the part of
|
|
these authors, only shows their ignorance of the peculiar nature of
|
|
logical science. We do not enlarge but disfigure the sciences when
|
|
we lose sight of their respective limits and allow them to run into
|
|
one another. Now logic is enclosed within limits which admit of
|
|
perfectly clear definition; it is a science which has for its object
|
|
nothing but the exposition and proof of the formal laws of all
|
|
thought, whether it be a priori or empirical, whatever be its origin
|
|
or its object, and whatever the difficulties- natural or accidental-
|
|
which it encounters in the human mind.
|
|
|
|
The early success of logic must be attributed exclusively to the
|
|
narrowness of its field, in which abstraction may, or rather must,
|
|
be made of all the objects of cognition with their characteristic
|
|
distinctions, and in which the understanding has only to deal with
|
|
itself and with its own forms. It is, obviously, a much more difficult
|
|
task for reason to strike into the sure path of science, where it
|
|
has to deal not simply with itself, but with objects external to
|
|
itself. Hence, logic is properly only a propaedeutic- forms, as it
|
|
were, the vestibule of the sciences; and while it is necessary to
|
|
enable us to form a correct judgement with regard to the various
|
|
branches of knowledge, still the acquisition of real, substantive
|
|
knowledge is to be sought only in the sciences properly so called,
|
|
that is, in the objective sciences.
|
|
|
|
Now these sciences, if they can be termed rational at all, must
|
|
contain elements of a priori cognition, and this cognition may stand
|
|
in a twofold relation to its object. Either it may have to determine
|
|
the conception of the object- which must be supplied extraneously,
|
|
or it may have to establish its reality. The former is theoretical,
|
|
the latter practical, rational cognition. In both, the pure or a
|
|
priori element must be treated first, and must be carefully
|
|
distinguished from that which is supplied from other sources. Any
|
|
other method can only lead to irremediable confusion.
|
|
|
|
Mathematics and physics are the two theoretical sciences which
|
|
have to determine their objects a priori. The former is purely a
|
|
priori, the latter is partially so, but is also dependent on other
|
|
sources of cognition.
|
|
|
|
In the earliest times of which history affords us any record,
|
|
mathematics had already entered on the sure course of science, among
|
|
that wonderful nation, the Greeks. Still it is not to be supposed that
|
|
it was as easy for this science to strike into, or rather to construct
|
|
for itself, that royal road, as it was for logic, in which reason
|
|
has only to deal with itself. On the contrary, I believe that it
|
|
must have remained long- chiefly among the Egyptians- in the stage
|
|
of blind groping after its true aims and destination, and that it
|
|
was revolutionized by the happy idea of one man, who struck out and
|
|
determined for all time the path which this science must follow, and
|
|
which admits of an indefinite advancement. The history of this
|
|
intellectual revolution- much more important in its results than the
|
|
discovery of the passage round the celebrated Cape of Good Hope- and
|
|
of its author, has not been preserved. But Diogenes Laertius, in
|
|
naming the supposed discoverer of some of the simplest elements of
|
|
geometrical demonstration- elements which, according to the ordinary
|
|
opinion, do not even require to be proved- makes it apparent that
|
|
the change introduced by the first indication of this new path, must
|
|
have seemed of the utmost importance to the mathematicians of that
|
|
age, and it has thus been secured against the chance of oblivion. A
|
|
new light must have flashed on the mind of the first man (Thales, or
|
|
whatever may have been his name) who demonstrated the properties of
|
|
the isosceles triangle. For he found that it was not sufficient to
|
|
meditate on the figure, as it lay before his eyes, or the conception
|
|
of it, as it existed in his mind, and thus endeavour to get at the
|
|
knowledge of its properties, but that it was necessary to produce
|
|
these properties, as it were, by a positive a priori construction; and
|
|
that, in order to arrive with certainty at a priori cognition, he must
|
|
not attribute to the object any other properties than those which
|
|
necessarily followed from that which he had himself, in accordance
|
|
with his conception, placed in the object.
|
|
|
|
A much longer period elapsed before physics entered on the highway
|
|
of science. For it is only about a century and a half since the wise
|
|
Bacon gave a new direction to physical studies, or rather- as others
|
|
were already on the right track- imparted fresh vigour to the
|
|
pursuit of this new direction. Here, too, as in the case of
|
|
mathematics, we find evidence of a rapid intellectual revolution. In
|
|
the remarks which follow I shall confine myself to the empirical
|
|
side of natural science.
|
|
|
|
When Galilei experimented with balls of a definite weight on the
|
|
inclined plane, when Torricelli caused the air to sustain a weight
|
|
which he had calculated beforehand to be equal to that of a definite
|
|
column of water, or when Stahl, at a later period, converted metals
|
|
into lime, and reconverted lime into metal, by the addition and
|
|
subtraction of certain elements;* a light broke upon all natural
|
|
philosophers. They learned that reason only perceives that which it
|
|
produces after its own design; that it must not be content to
|
|
follow, as it were, in the leading-strings of nature, but must proceed
|
|
in advance with principles of judgement according to unvarying laws,
|
|
and compel nature to reply its questions. For accidental observations,
|
|
made according to no preconceived plan, cannot be united under a
|
|
necessary law. But it is this that reason seeks for and requires. It
|
|
is only the principles of reason which can give to concordant
|
|
phenomena the validity of laws, and it is only when experiment is
|
|
directed by these rational principles that it can have any real
|
|
utility. Reason must approach nature with the view, indeed, of
|
|
receiving information from it, not, however, in the character of a
|
|
pupil, who listens to all that his master chooses to tell him, but
|
|
in that of a judge, who compels the witnesses to reply to those
|
|
questions which he himself thinks fit to propose. To this single
|
|
idea must the revolution be ascribed, by which, after groping in the
|
|
dark for so many centuries, natural science was at length conducted
|
|
into the path of certain progress.
|
|
|
|
*I do not here follow with exactness the history of the experimental
|
|
method, of which, indeed, the first steps are involved in some
|
|
obscurity.
|
|
|
|
We come now to metaphysics, a purely speculative science, which
|
|
occupies a completely isolated position and is entirely independent of
|
|
the teachings of experience. It deals with mere conceptions- not, like
|
|
mathematics, with conceptions applied to intuition- and in it,
|
|
reason is the pupil of itself alone. It is the oldest of the sciences,
|
|
and would still survive, even if all the rest were swallowed up in the
|
|
abyss of an all-destroying barbarism. But it has not yet had the
|
|
good fortune to attain to the sure scientific method. This will be
|
|
apparent; if we apply the tests which we proposed at the outset. We
|
|
find that reason perpetually comes to a stand, when it attempts to
|
|
gain a priori the perception even of those laws which the most
|
|
common experience confirms. We find it compelled to retrace its
|
|
steps in innumerable instances, and to abandon the path on which it
|
|
had entered, because this does not lead to the desired result. We
|
|
find, too, that those who are engaged in metaphysical pursuits are far
|
|
from being able to agree among themselves, but that, on the
|
|
contrary, this science appears to furnish an arena specially adapted
|
|
for the display of skill or the exercise of strength in mock-contests-
|
|
a field in which no combatant ever yet succeeded in gaining an inch of
|
|
ground, in which, at least, no victory was ever yet crowned with
|
|
permanent possession.
|
|
|
|
This leads us to inquire why it is that, in metaphysics, the sure
|
|
path of science has not hitherto been found. Shall we suppose that
|
|
it is impossible to discover it? Why then should nature have visited
|
|
our reason with restless aspirations after it, as if it were one of
|
|
our weightiest concerns? Nay, more, how little cause should we have to
|
|
place confidence in our reason, if it abandons us in a matter about
|
|
which, most of all, we desire to know the truth- and not only so,
|
|
but even allures us to the pursuit of vain phantoms, only to betray us
|
|
in the end? Or, if the path has only hitherto been missed, what
|
|
indications do we possess to guide us in a renewed investigation,
|
|
and to enable us to hope for greater success than has fallen to the
|
|
lot of our predecessors?
|
|
|
|
It appears to me that the examples of mathematics and natural
|
|
philosophy, which, as we have seen, were brought into their present
|
|
condition by a sudden revolution, are sufficiently remarkable to fix
|
|
our attention on the essential circumstances of the change which has
|
|
proved so advantageous to them, and to induce us to make the
|
|
experiment of imitating them, so far as the analogy which, as rational
|
|
sciences, they bear to metaphysics may permit. It has hitherto been
|
|
assumed that our cognition must conform to the objects; but all
|
|
attempts to ascertain anything about these objects a priori, by
|
|
means of conceptions, and thus to extend the range of our knowledge,
|
|
have been rendered abortive by this assumption. Let us then make the
|
|
experiment whether we may not be more successful in metaphysics, if we
|
|
assume that the objects must conform to our cognition. This appears,
|
|
at all events, to accord better with the possibility of our gaining
|
|
the end we have in view, that is to say, of arriving at the
|
|
cognition of objects a priori, of determining something with respect
|
|
to these objects, before they are given to us. We here propose to do
|
|
just what Copernicus did in attempting to explain the celestial
|
|
movements. When he found that he could make no progress by assuming
|
|
that all the heavenly bodies revolved round the spectator, he reversed
|
|
the process, and tried the experiment of assuming that the spectator
|
|
revolved, while the stars remained at rest. We may make the same
|
|
experiment with regard to the intuition of objects. If the intuition
|
|
must conform to the nature of the objects, I do not see how we can
|
|
know anything of them a priori. If, on the other hand, the object
|
|
conforms to the nature of our faculty of intuition, I can then
|
|
easily conceive the possibility of such an a priori knowledge. Now
|
|
as I cannot rest in the mere intuitions, but- if they are to become
|
|
cognitions- must refer them, as representations, to something, as
|
|
object, and must determine the latter by means of the former, here
|
|
again there are two courses open to me. Either, first, I may assume
|
|
that the conceptions, by which I effect this determination, conform to
|
|
the object- and in this case I am reduced to the same perplexity as
|
|
before; or secondly, I may assume that the objects, or, which is the
|
|
same thing, that experience, in which alone as given objects they
|
|
are cognized, conform to my conceptions- and then I am at no loss
|
|
how to proceed. For experience itself is a mode of cognition which
|
|
requires understanding. Before objects, are given to me, that is, a
|
|
priori, I must presuppose in myself laws of the understanding which
|
|
are expressed in conceptions a priori. To these conceptions, then, all
|
|
the objects of experience must necessarily conform. Now there are
|
|
objects which reason thinks, and that necessarily, but which cannot be
|
|
given in experience, or, at least, cannot be given so as reason thinks
|
|
them. The attempt to think these objects will hereafter furnish an
|
|
excellent test of the new method of thought which we have adopted, and
|
|
which is based on the principle that we only cognize in things a
|
|
priori that which we ourselves place in them.*
|
|
|
|
*This method, accordingly, which we have borrowed from the natural
|
|
philosopher, consists in seeking for the elements of pure reason in
|
|
that which admits of confirmation or refutation by experiment. Now the
|
|
propositions of pure reason, especially when they transcend the limits
|
|
of possible experience, do not admit of our making any experiment with
|
|
their objects, as in natural science. Hence, with regard to those
|
|
conceptions and principles which we assume a priori, our only course
|
|
ill be to view them from two different sides. We must regard one and
|
|
the same conception, on the one hand, in relation to experience as
|
|
an object of the senses and of the understanding, on the other hand,
|
|
in relation to reason, isolated and transcending the limits of
|
|
experience, as an object of mere thought. Now if we find that, when we
|
|
regard things from this double point of view, the result is in harmony
|
|
with the principle of pure reason, but that, when we regard them
|
|
from a single point of view, reason is involved in self-contradiction,
|
|
then the experiment will establish the correctness of this
|
|
distinction.
|
|
|
|
This attempt succeeds as well as we could desire, and promises to
|
|
metaphysics, in its first part- that is, where it is occupied with
|
|
conceptions a priori, of which the corresponding objects may be
|
|
given in experience- the certain course of science. For by this new
|
|
method we are enabled perfectly to explain the possibility of a priori
|
|
cognition, and, what is more, to demonstrate satisfactorily the laws
|
|
which lie a priori at the foundation of nature, as the sum of the
|
|
objects of experience- neither of which was possible according to
|
|
the procedure hitherto followed. But from this deduction of the
|
|
faculty of a priori cognition in the first part of metaphysics, we
|
|
derive a surprising result, and one which, to all appearance,
|
|
militates against the great end of metaphysics, as treated in the
|
|
second part. For we come to the conclusion that our faculty of
|
|
cognition is unable to transcend the limits of possible experience;
|
|
and yet this is precisely the most essential object of this science.
|
|
The estimate of our rational cognition a priori at which we arrive
|
|
is that it has only to do with phenomena, and that things in
|
|
themselves, while possessing a real existence, lie beyond its
|
|
sphere. Here we are enabled to put the justice of this estimate to the
|
|
test. For that which of necessity impels us to transcend the limits of
|
|
experience and of all phenomena is the unconditioned, which reason
|
|
absolutely requires in things as they are in themselves, in order to
|
|
complete the series of conditions. Now, if it appears that when, on
|
|
the one hand, we assume that our cognition conforms to its objects
|
|
as things in themselves, the unconditioned cannot be thought without
|
|
contradiction, and that when, on the other hand, we assume that our
|
|
representation of things as they are given to us, does not conform
|
|
to these things as they are in themselves, but that these objects,
|
|
as phenomena, conform to our mode of representation, the contradiction
|
|
disappears: we shall then be convinced of the truth of that which we
|
|
began by assuming for the sake of experiment; we may look upon it as
|
|
established that the unconditioned does not lie in things as we know
|
|
them, or as they are given to us, but in things as they are in
|
|
themselves, beyond the range of our cognition.*
|
|
|
|
*This experiment of pure reason has a great similarity to that of
|
|
the chemists, which they term the experiment of reduction, or, more
|
|
usually, the synthetic process. The analysis of the metaphysician
|
|
separates pure cognition a priori into two heterogeneous elements,
|
|
viz., the cognition of things as phenomena, and of things in
|
|
themselves. Dialectic combines these again into harmony with the
|
|
necessary rational idea of the unconditioned, and finds that this
|
|
harmony never results except through the above distinction, which
|
|
is, therefore, concluded to be just.
|
|
|
|
But, after we have thus denied the power of speculative reason to
|
|
make any progress in the sphere of the supersensible, it still remains
|
|
for our consideration whether data do not exist in practical cognition
|
|
which may enable us to determine the transcendent conception of the
|
|
unconditioned, to rise beyond the limits of all possible experience
|
|
from a practical point of view, and thus to satisfy the great ends
|
|
of metaphysics. Speculative reason has thus, at least, made room for
|
|
such an extension of our knowledge: and, if it must leave this space
|
|
vacant, still it does not rob us of the liberty to fill it up, if we
|
|
can, by means of practical data- nay, it even challenges us to make
|
|
the attempt.*
|
|
|
|
*So the central laws of the movements of the heavenly bodies
|
|
established the truth of that which Copernicus, first, assumed only as
|
|
a hypothesis, and, at the same time, brought to light that invisible
|
|
force (Newtonian attraction) which holds the universe together. The
|
|
latter would have remained forever undiscovered, if Copernicus had not
|
|
ventured on the experiment- contrary to the senses but still just-
|
|
of looking for the observed movements not in the heavenly bodies,
|
|
but in the spectator. In this Preface I treat the new metaphysical
|
|
method as a hypothesis with the view of rendering apparent the first
|
|
attempts at such a change of method, which are always hypothetical.
|
|
But in the Critique itself it will be demonstrated, not
|
|
hypothetically, but apodeictically, from the nature of our
|
|
representations of space and time. and from the elementary conceptions
|
|
of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
This attempt to introduce a complete revolution in the procedure
|
|
of metaphysics, after the example of the geometricians and natural
|
|
philosophers, constitutes the aim of the Critique of Pure
|
|
Speculative Reason. It is a treatise on the method to be followed, not
|
|
a system of the science itself. But, at the same time, it marks out
|
|
and defines both the external boundaries and the internal structure of
|
|
this science. For pure speculative reason has this peculiarity,
|
|
that, in choosing the various objects of thought, it is able to define
|
|
the limits of its own faculties, and even to give a complete
|
|
enumeration of the possible modes of proposing problems to itself, and
|
|
thus to sketch out the entire system of metaphysics. For, on the one
|
|
hand, in cognition a priori, nothing must be attributed to the objects
|
|
but what the thinking subject derives from itself; and, on the other
|
|
hand, reason is, in regard to the principles of cognition, a perfectly
|
|
distinct, independent unity, in which, as in an organized body,
|
|
every member exists for the sake of the others, and all for the sake
|
|
of each, so that no principle can be viewed, with safety, in one
|
|
relationship, unless it is, at the same time, viewed in relation to
|
|
the total use of pure reason. Hence, too, metaphysics has this
|
|
singular advantage- an advantage which falls to the lot of no other
|
|
science which has to do with objects- that, if once it is conducted
|
|
into the sure path of science, by means of this criticism, it can then
|
|
take in the whole sphere of its cognitions, and can thus complete
|
|
its work, and leave it for the use of posterity, as a capital which
|
|
can never receive fresh accessions. For metaphysics has to deal only
|
|
with principles and with the limitations of its own employment as
|
|
determined by these principles. To this perfection it is, therefore,
|
|
bound, as the fundamental science, to attain, and to it the maxim
|
|
may justly be applied:
|
|
|
|
Nil actum reputans, si quid superesset agendum.*
|
|
|
|
*"He considered nothing done, so long as anything remained to be
|
|
done."
|
|
|
|
But, it will be asked, what kind of a treasure is this that we
|
|
propose to bequeath to posterity? What is the real value of this
|
|
system of metaphysics, purified by criticism, and thereby reduced to a
|
|
permanent condition? A cursory view of the present work will lead to
|
|
the supposition that its use is merely negative, that it only serves
|
|
to warn us against venturing, with speculative reason, beyond the
|
|
limits of experience. This is, in fact, its primary use. But this,
|
|
at once, assumes a positive value, when we observe that the principles
|
|
with which speculative reason endeavours to transcend its limits
|
|
lead inevitably, not to the extension, but to the contraction of the
|
|
use of reason, inasmuch as they threaten to extend the limits of
|
|
sensibility, which is their proper sphere, over the entire realm of
|
|
thought and, thus, to supplant the pure (practical) use of reason.
|
|
So far, then, as this criticism is occupied in confining speculative
|
|
reason within its proper bounds, it is only negative; but, inasmuch as
|
|
it thereby, at the same time, removes an obstacle which impedes and
|
|
even threatens to destroy the use of practical reason, it possesses
|
|
a positive and very important value. In order to admit this, we have
|
|
only to be convinced that there is an absolutely necessary use of pure
|
|
reason- the moral use- in which it inevitably transcends the limits of
|
|
sensibility, without the aid of speculation, requiring only to be
|
|
insured against the effects of a speculation which would involve it in
|
|
contradiction with itself. To deny the positive advantage of the
|
|
service which this criticism renders us would be as absurd as. to
|
|
maintain that the system of police is productive of no positive
|
|
benefit, since its main business is to prevent the violence which
|
|
citizen has to apprehend from citizen, that so each may pursue his
|
|
vocation in peace and security. That space and time are only forms
|
|
of sensible intuition, and hence are only conditions of the
|
|
existence of things as phenomena; that, moreover, we have no
|
|
conceptions of the understanding, and, consequently, no elements for
|
|
the cognition of things, except in so far as a corresponding intuition
|
|
can be given to these conceptions; that, accordingly, we can have no
|
|
cognition of an object, as a thing in itself, but only as an object of
|
|
sensible intuition, that is, as phenomenon- all this is proved in
|
|
the analytical part of the Critique; and from this the limitation of
|
|
all possible speculative cognition to the mere objects of
|
|
experience, follows as a necessary result. At the same time, it must
|
|
be carefully borne in mind that, while we surrender the power of
|
|
cognizing, we still reserve the power of thinking objects, as things
|
|
in themselves.* For, otherwise, we should require to affirm the
|
|
existence of an appearance, without something that appears- which
|
|
would be absurd. Now let us suppose, for a moment, that we had not
|
|
undertaken this criticism and, accordingly, had not drawn the
|
|
necessary distinction between things as objects of experience and
|
|
things as they are in themselves. The principle of causality, and,
|
|
by consequence, the mechanism of nature as determined by causality,
|
|
would then have absolute validity in relation to all things as
|
|
efficient causes. I should then be unable to assert, with regard to
|
|
one and the same being, e.g., the human soul, that its will is free,
|
|
and yet, at the same time, subject to natural necessity, that is,
|
|
not free, without falling into a palpable contradiction, for in both
|
|
propositions I should take the soul in the same signification, as a
|
|
thing in general, as a thing in itself- as, without previous
|
|
criticism, I could not but take it. Suppose now, on the other hand,
|
|
that we have undertaken this criticism, and have learnt that an object
|
|
may be taken in two senses, first, as a phenomenon, secondly, as a
|
|
thing in itself; and that, according to the deduction of the
|
|
conceptions of the understanding, the principle of causality has
|
|
reference only to things in the first sense. We then see how it does
|
|
not involve any contradiction to assert, on the one hand, that the
|
|
will, in the phenomenal sphere- in visible action- is necessarily
|
|
obedient to the law of nature, and, in so far, not free; and, on the
|
|
other hand, that, as belonging to a thing in itself, it is not subject
|
|
to that law, and, accordingly, is free. Now, it is true that I cannot,
|
|
by means of speculative reason, and still less by empirical
|
|
observation, cognize my soul as a thing in itself and consequently,
|
|
cannot cognize liberty as the property of a being to which I ascribe
|
|
effects in the world of sense. For, to do so, I must cognize this
|
|
being as existing, and yet not in time, which- since I cannot
|
|
support my conception by any intuition- is impossible. At the same
|
|
time, while I cannot cognize, I can quite well think freedom, that
|
|
is to say, my representation of it involves at least no contradiction,
|
|
if we bear in mind the critical distinction of the two modes of
|
|
representation (the sensible and the intellectual) and the
|
|
consequent limitation of the conceptions of the pure understanding and
|
|
of the principles which flow from them. Suppose now that morality
|
|
necessarily presupposed liberty, in the strictest sense, as a property
|
|
of our will; suppose that reason contained certain practical, original
|
|
principles a priori, which were absolutely impossible without this
|
|
presupposition; and suppose, at the same time, that speculative reason
|
|
had proved that liberty was incapable of being thought at all. It
|
|
would then follow that the moral presupposition must give way to the
|
|
speculative affirmation, the opposite of which involves an obvious
|
|
contradiction, and that liberty and, with it, morality must yield to
|
|
the mechanism of nature; for the negation of morality involves no
|
|
contradiction, except on the presupposition of liberty. Now morality
|
|
does not require the speculative cognition of liberty; it is enough
|
|
that I can think it, that its conception involves no contradiction,
|
|
that it does not interfere with the mechanism of nature. But even this
|
|
requirement we could not satisfy, if we had not learnt the twofold
|
|
sense in which things may be taken; and it is only in this way that
|
|
the doctrine of morality and the doctrine of nature are confined
|
|
within their proper limits. For this result, then, we are indebted
|
|
to a criticism which warns us of our unavoidable ignorance with regard
|
|
to things in themselves, and establishes the necessary limitation of
|
|
our theoretical cognition to mere phenomena.
|
|
|
|
*In order to cognize an object, I must be able to prove its
|
|
possibility, either from its reality as attested by experience, or a
|
|
priori, by means of reason. But I can think what I please, provided
|
|
only I do not contradict myself; that is, provided my conception is
|
|
a possible thought, though I may be unable to answer for the existence
|
|
of a corresponding object in the sum of possibilities. But something
|
|
more is required before I can attribute to such a conception objective
|
|
validity, that is real possibility- the other possibility being merely
|
|
logical. We are not, however, confined to theoretical sources of
|
|
cognition for the means of satisfying this additional requirement, but
|
|
may derive them from practical sources.
|
|
|
|
The positive value of the critical principles of pure reason in
|
|
relation to the conception of God and of the simple nature of the
|
|
soul, admits of a similar exemplification; but on this point I shall
|
|
not dwell. I cannot even make the assumption- as the practical
|
|
interests of morality require- of God, freedom, and immortality, if
|
|
I do not deprive speculative reason of its pretensions to transcendent
|
|
insight. For to arrive at these, it must make use of principles which,
|
|
in fact, extend only to the objects of possible experience, and
|
|
which cannot be applied to objects beyond this sphere without
|
|
converting them into phenomena, and thus rendering the practical
|
|
extension of pure reason impossible. I must, therefore, abolish
|
|
knowledge, to make room for belief. The dogmatism of metaphysics, that
|
|
is, the presumption that it is possible to advance in metaphysics
|
|
without previous criticism, is the true source of the unbelief (always
|
|
dogmatic) which militates against morality.
|
|
|
|
Thus, while it may be no very difficult task to bequeath a legacy to
|
|
posterity, in the shape of a system of metaphysics constructed in
|
|
accordance with the Critique of Pure Reason, still the value of such a
|
|
bequest is not to be depreciated. It will render an important
|
|
service to reason, by substituting the certainty of scientific
|
|
method for that random groping after results without the guidance of
|
|
principles, which has hitherto characterized the pursuit of
|
|
metaphysical studies. It will render an important service to the
|
|
inquiring mind of youth, by leading the student to apply his powers to
|
|
the cultivation of. genuine science, instead of wasting them, as at
|
|
present, on speculations which can never lead to any result, or on the
|
|
idle attempt to invent new ideas and opinions. But, above all, it will
|
|
confer an inestimable benefit on morality and religion, by showing
|
|
that all the objections urged against them may be silenced for ever by
|
|
the Socratic method, that is to say, by proving the ignorance of the
|
|
objector. For, as the world has never been, and, no doubt, never
|
|
will be without a system of metaphysics of one kind or another, it
|
|
is the highest and weightiest concern of philosophy to render it
|
|
powerless for harm, by closing up the sources of error.
|
|
|
|
This important change in the field of the sciences, this loss of its
|
|
fancied possessions, to which speculative reason must submit, does not
|
|
prove in any way detrimental to the general interests of humanity. The
|
|
advantages which the world has derived from the teachings of pure
|
|
reason are not at all impaired. The loss falls, in its whole extent,
|
|
on the monopoly of the schools, but does not in the slightest degree
|
|
touch the interests of mankind. I appeal to the most obstinate
|
|
dogmatist, whether the proof of the continued existence of the soul
|
|
after death, derived from the simplicity of its substance; of the
|
|
freedom of the will in opposition to the general mechanism of
|
|
nature, drawn from the subtle but impotent distinction of subjective
|
|
and objective practical necessity; or of the existence of God, deduced
|
|
from the conception of an ens realissimum- the contingency of the
|
|
changeable, and the necessity of a prime mover, has ever been able
|
|
to pass beyond the limits of the schools, to penetrate the public
|
|
mind, or to exercise the slightest influence on its convictions. It
|
|
must be admitted that this has not been the case and that, owing to
|
|
the unfitness of the common understanding for such subtle
|
|
speculations, it can never be expected to take place. On the contrary,
|
|
it is plain that the hope of a future life arises from the feeling,
|
|
which exists in the breast of every man, that the temporal is
|
|
inadequate to meet and satisfy the demands of his nature. In like
|
|
manner, it cannot be doubted that the clear exhibition of duties in
|
|
opposition to all the claims of inclination, gives rise to the
|
|
consciousness of freedom, and that the glorious order, beauty, and
|
|
providential care, everywhere displayed in nature, give rise to the
|
|
belief in a wise and great Author of the Universe. Such is the genesis
|
|
of these general convictions of mankind, so far as they depend on
|
|
rational grounds; and this public property not only remains
|
|
undisturbed, but is even raised to greater importance, by the doctrine
|
|
that the schools have no right to arrogate to themselves a more
|
|
profound insight into a matter of general human concernment than
|
|
that to which the great mass of men, ever held by us in the highest
|
|
estimation, can without difficulty attain, and that the schools
|
|
should, therefore, confine themselves to the elaboration of these
|
|
universally comprehensible and, from a moral point of view, amply
|
|
satisfactory proofs. The change, therefore, affects only the
|
|
arrogant pretensions of the schools, which would gladly retain, in
|
|
their own exclusive possession, the key to the truths which they
|
|
impart to the public.
|
|
|
|
Quod mecum nescit, solus vult scire videri.
|
|
|
|
At the same time it does not deprive the speculative philosopher of
|
|
his just title to be the sole depositor of a science which benefits
|
|
the public without its knowledge- I mean, the Critique of Pure Reason.
|
|
This can never become popular and, indeed, has no occasion to be so;
|
|
for finespun arguments in favour of useful truths make just as
|
|
little impression on the public mind as the equally subtle
|
|
objections brought against these truths. On the other hand, since both
|
|
inevitably force themselves on every man who rises to the height of
|
|
speculation, it becomes the manifest duty of the schools to enter upon
|
|
a thorough investigation of the rights of speculative reason and,
|
|
thus, to prevent the scandal which metaphysical controversies are
|
|
sure, sooner or later, to cause even to the masses. It is only by
|
|
criticism that metaphysicians (and, as such, theologians too) can be
|
|
saved from these controversies and from the consequent perversion of
|
|
their doctrines. Criticism alone can strike a blow at the root of
|
|
materialism, fatalism, atheism, free-thinking, fanaticism, and
|
|
superstition, which are universally injurious- as well as of
|
|
idealism and scepticism, which are dangerous to the schools, but can
|
|
scarcely pass over to the public. If governments think proper to
|
|
interfere with the affairs of the learned, it would be more consistent
|
|
with a wise regard for the interests of science, as well as for
|
|
those of society, to favour a criticism of this kind, by which alone
|
|
the labours of reason can be established on a firm basis, than to
|
|
support the ridiculous despotism of the schools, which raise a loud
|
|
cry of danger to the public over the destruction of cobwebs, of
|
|
which the public has never taken any notice, and the loss of which,
|
|
therefore, it can never feel.
|
|
|
|
This critical science is not opposed to the dogmatic procedure of
|
|
reason in pure cognition; for pure cognition must always be
|
|
dogmatic, that is, must rest on strict demonstration from sure
|
|
principles a priori- but to dogmatism, that is, to the presumption
|
|
that it is possible to make any progress with a pure cognition,
|
|
derived from (philosophical) conceptions, according to the
|
|
principles which reason has long been in the habit of employing-
|
|
without first inquiring in what way and by what right reason has
|
|
come into the possession of these principles. Dogmatism is thus the
|
|
dogmatic procedure of pure reason without previous criticism of its
|
|
own powers, and in opposing this procedure, we must not be supposed to
|
|
lend any countenance to that loquacious shallowness which arrogates to
|
|
itself the name of popularity, nor yet to scepticism, which makes
|
|
short work with the whole science of metaphysics. On the contrary, our
|
|
criticism is the necessary preparation for a thoroughly scientific
|
|
system of metaphysics which must perform its task entirely a priori,
|
|
to the complete satisfaction of speculative reason, and must,
|
|
therefore, be treated, not popularly, but scholastically. In
|
|
carrying out the plan which the Critique prescribes, that is, in the
|
|
future system of metaphysics, we must have recourse to the strict
|
|
method of the celebrated Wolf, the greatest of all dogmatic
|
|
philosophers. He was the first to point out the necessity of
|
|
establishing fixed principles, of clearly defining our conceptions,
|
|
and of subjecting our demonstrations to the most severe scrutiny,
|
|
instead of rashly jumping at conclusions. The example which he set
|
|
served to awaken that spirit of profound and thorough investigation
|
|
which is not yet extinct in Germany. He would have been peculiarly
|
|
well fitted to give a truly scientific character to metaphysical
|
|
studies, had it occurred to him to prepare the field by a criticism of
|
|
the organum, that is, of pure reason itself. That be failed to
|
|
perceive the necessity of such a procedure must be ascribed to the
|
|
dogmatic mode of thought which characterized his age, and on this
|
|
point the philosophers of his time, as well as of all previous
|
|
times, have nothing to reproach each other with. Those who reject at
|
|
once the method of Wolf, and of the Critique of Pure Reason, can
|
|
have no other aim but to shake off the fetters of science, to change
|
|
labour into sport, certainty into opinion, and philosophy into
|
|
philodoxy.
|
|
|
|
In this second edition, I have endeavoured, as far as possible, to
|
|
remove the difficulties and obscurity which, without fault of mine
|
|
perhaps, have given rise to many misconceptions even among acute
|
|
thinkers. In the propositions themselves, and in the demonstrations by
|
|
which they are supported, as well as in the form and the entire plan
|
|
of the work, I have found nothing to alter; which must be attributed
|
|
partly to the long examination to which I had subjected the whole
|
|
before offering it to the public and partly to the nature of the case.
|
|
For pure speculative reason is an organic structure in which there
|
|
is nothing isolated or independent, but every Single part is essential
|
|
to all the rest; and hence, the slightest imperfection, whether defect
|
|
or positive error, could not fail to betray itself in use. I
|
|
venture, further, to hope, that this system will maintain the same
|
|
unalterable character for the future. I am led to entertain this
|
|
confidence, not by vanity, but by the evidence which the equality of
|
|
the result affords, when we proceed, first, from the simplest elements
|
|
up to the complete whole of pure reason and, and then, backwards
|
|
from the whole to each part. We find that the attempt to make the
|
|
slightest alteration, in any part, leads inevitably to contradictions,
|
|
not merely in this system, but in human reason itself. At the same
|
|
time, there is still much room for improvement in the exposition of
|
|
the doctrines contained in this work. In the present edition, I have
|
|
endeavoured to remove misapprehensions of the aesthetical part,
|
|
especially with regard to the conception of time; to clear away the
|
|
obscurity which has been found in the deduction of the conceptions
|
|
of the understanding; to supply the supposed want of sufficient
|
|
evidence in the demonstration of the principles of the pure
|
|
understanding; and, lastly, to obviate the misunderstanding of the
|
|
paralogisms which immediately precede the rational psychology.
|
|
Beyond this point- the end of the second main division of the
|
|
"Transcendental Dialectic"- I have not extended my alterations,*
|
|
partly from want of time, and partly because I am not aware that any
|
|
portion of the remainder has given rise to misconceptions among
|
|
intelligent and impartial critics, whom I do not here mention with
|
|
that praise which is their due, but who will find that their
|
|
suggestions have been attended to in the work itself.
|
|
|
|
*The only addition, properly so called- and that only in the
|
|
method of proof- which I have made in the present edition, consists of
|
|
a new refutation of psychological idealism, and a strict
|
|
demonstration- the only one possible, as I believe- of the objective
|
|
reality of external intuition. However harmless idealism may be
|
|
considered- although in reality it is not so- in regard to the
|
|
essential ends of metaphysics, it must still remain a scandal to
|
|
philosophy and to the general human reason to be obliged to assume, as
|
|
an article of mere belief, the existence of things external to
|
|
ourselves (from which, yet, we derive the whole material of
|
|
cognition for the internal sense), and not to be able to oppose a
|
|
satisfactory proof to any one who may call it in question. As there is
|
|
some obscurity of expression in the demonstration as it stands in
|
|
the text, I propose to alter the passage in question as follows:
|
|
"But this permanent cannot be an intuition in me. For all the
|
|
determining grounds of my existence which can be found in me are
|
|
representations and, as such, do themselves require a permanent,
|
|
distinct from them, which may determine my existence in relation to
|
|
their changes, that is, my existence in time, wherein they change." It
|
|
may, probably, be urged in opposition to this proof that, after all, I
|
|
am only conscious immediately of that which is in me, that is, of my
|
|
representation of external things, and that, consequently, it must
|
|
always remain uncertain whether anything corresponding to this
|
|
representation does or does not exist externally to me. But I am
|
|
conscious, through internal experience, of my existence in time
|
|
(consequently, also, of the determinability of the former in the
|
|
latter), and that is more than the simple consciousness of my
|
|
representation. It is, in fact, the same as the empirical
|
|
consciousness of my existence, which can only be determined in
|
|
relation to something, which, while connected with my existence, is
|
|
external to me. This consciousness of my existence in time is,
|
|
therefore, identical with the consciousness of a relation to something
|
|
external to me, and it is, therefore, experience, not fiction,
|
|
sense, not imagination, which inseparably connects the external with
|
|
my internal sense. For the external sense is, in itself, the
|
|
relation of intuition to something real, external to me; and the
|
|
reality of this something, as opposed to the mere imagination of it,
|
|
rests solely on its inseparable connection with internal experience as
|
|
the condition of its possibility. If with the intellectual
|
|
consciousness of my existence, in the representation: I am, which
|
|
accompanies all my judgements, and all the operations of my
|
|
understanding, I could, at the same time, connect a determination of
|
|
my existence by intellectual intuition, then the consciousness of a
|
|
relation to something external to me would not be necessary. But the
|
|
internal intuition in which alone my existence can be determined,
|
|
though preceded by that purely intellectual consciousness, is itself
|
|
sensible and attached to the condition of time. Hence this
|
|
determination of my existence, and consequently my internal experience
|
|
itself, must depend on something permanent which is not in me, which
|
|
can be, therefore, only in something external to me, to which I must
|
|
look upon myself as being related. Thus the reality of the external
|
|
sense is necessarily connected with that of the internal, in order
|
|
to the possibility of experience in general; that is, I am just as
|
|
certainly conscious that there are things external to me related to my
|
|
sense as I am that I myself exist as determined in time. But in
|
|
order to ascertain to what given intuitions objects, external me,
|
|
really correspond, in other words, what intuitions belong to the
|
|
external sense and not to imagination, I must have recourse, in
|
|
every particular case, to those rules according to which experience in
|
|
general (even internal experience) is distinguished from
|
|
imagination, and which are always based on the proposition that
|
|
there really is an external experience. We may add the remark that the
|
|
representation of something permanent in existence, is not the same
|
|
thing as the permanent representation; for a representation may be
|
|
very variable and changing- as all our representations, even that of
|
|
matter, are- and yet refer to something permanent, which must,
|
|
therefore, be distinct from all my representations and external to me,
|
|
the existence of which is necessarily included in the determination of
|
|
my own existence, and with it constitutes one experience- an
|
|
experience which would not even be possible internally, if it were not
|
|
also at the same time, in part, external. To the question How? we
|
|
are no more able to reply, than we are, in general, to think the
|
|
stationary in time, the coexistence of which with the variable,
|
|
produces the conception of change.
|
|
|
|
In attempting to render the exposition of my views as intelligible
|
|
as possible, I have been compelled to leave out or abridge various
|
|
passages which were not essential to the completeness of the work, but
|
|
which many readers might consider useful in other respects, and
|
|
might be unwilling to miss. This trifling loss, which could not be
|
|
avoided without swelling the book beyond due limits, may be
|
|
supplied, at the pleasure of the reader, by a comparison with the
|
|
first edition, and will, I hope, be more than compensated for by the
|
|
greater clearness of the exposition as it now stands.
|
|
|
|
I have observed, with pleasure and thankfulness, in the pages of
|
|
various reviews and treatises, that the spirit of profound and
|
|
thorough investigation is not extinct in Germany, though it may have
|
|
been overborne and silenced for a time by the fashionable tone of a
|
|
licence in thinking, which gives itself the airs of genius, and that
|
|
the difficulties which beset the paths of criticism have not prevented
|
|
energetic and acute thinkers from making themselves masters of the
|
|
science of pure reason to which these paths conduct- a science which
|
|
is not popular, but scholastic in its character, and which alone can
|
|
hope for a lasting existence or possess an abiding value. To these
|
|
deserving men, who so happily combine profundity of view with a talent
|
|
for lucid exposition- a talent which I myself am not conscious of
|
|
possessing- I leave the task of removing any obscurity which may still
|
|
adhere to the statement of my doctrines. For, in this case, the danger
|
|
is not that of being refuted, but of being misunderstood. For my own
|
|
part, I must henceforward abstain from controversy, although I shall
|
|
carefully attend to all suggestions, whether from friends or
|
|
adversaries, which may be of use in the future elaboration of the
|
|
system of this propaedeutic. As, during these labours, I have advanced
|
|
pretty far in years this month I reach my sixty-fourth year- it will
|
|
be necessary for me to economize time, if I am to carry out my plan of
|
|
elaborating the metaphysics of nature as well as of morals, in
|
|
confirmation of the correctness of the principles established in
|
|
this Critique of Pure Reason, both speculative and practical; and I
|
|
must, therefore, leave the task of clearing up the obscurities of
|
|
the present work- inevitable, perhaps, at the outset- as well as,
|
|
the defence of the whole, to those deserving men, who have made my
|
|
system their own. A philosophical system cannot come forward armed
|
|
at all points like a mathematical treatise, and hence it may be
|
|
quite possible to take objection to particular passages, while the
|
|
organic structure of the system, considered as a unity, has no
|
|
danger to apprehend. But few possess the ability, and still fewer
|
|
the inclination, to take a comprehensive view of a new system. By
|
|
confining the view to particular passages, taking these out of their
|
|
connection and comparing them with one another, it is easy to pick out
|
|
apparent contradictions, especially in a work written with any freedom
|
|
of style. These contradictions place the work in an unfavourable light
|
|
in the eyes of those who rely on the judgement of others, but are
|
|
easily reconciled by those who have mastered the idea of the whole. If
|
|
a theory possesses stability in itself, the action and reaction
|
|
which seemed at first to threaten its existence serve only, in the
|
|
course of time, to smooth down any superficial roughness or
|
|
inequality, and- if men of insight, impartiality, and truly popular
|
|
gifts, turn their attention to it- to secure to it, in a short time,
|
|
the requisite elegance also.
|
|
|
|
Konigsberg, April 1787.
|
|
INTRODUCTION
|
|
|
|
INTRODUCTION.
|
|
|
|
I. Of the difference between Pure and Empirical Knowledge
|
|
|
|
That all our knowledge begins with experience there can be no doubt.
|
|
For how is it possible that the faculty of cognition should be
|
|
awakened into exercise otherwise than by means of objects which affect
|
|
our senses, and partly of themselves produce representations, partly
|
|
rouse our powers of understanding into activity, to compare to
|
|
connect, or to separate these, and so to convert the raw material of
|
|
our sensuous impressions into a knowledge of objects, which is
|
|
called experience? In respect of time, therefore, no knowledge of ours
|
|
is antecedent to experience, but begins with it.
|
|
|
|
But, though all our knowledge begins with experience, it by no means
|
|
follows that all arises out of experience. For, on the contrary, it is
|
|
quite possible that our empirical knowledge is a compound of that
|
|
which we receive through impressions, and that which the faculty of
|
|
cognition supplies from itself (sensuous impressions giving merely the
|
|
occasion), an addition which we cannot distinguish from the original
|
|
element given by sense, till long practice has made us attentive to,
|
|
and skilful in separating it. It is, therefore, a question which
|
|
requires close investigation, and not to be answered at first sight,
|
|
whether there exists a knowledge altogether independent of experience,
|
|
and even of all sensuous impressions? Knowledge of this kind is called
|
|
a priori, in contradistinction to empirical knowledge, which has its
|
|
sources a posteriori, that is, in experience.
|
|
|
|
But the expression, "a priori," is not as yet definite enough
|
|
adequately to indicate the whole meaning of the question above
|
|
started. For, in speaking of knowledge which has its sources in
|
|
experience, we are wont to say, that this or that may be known a
|
|
priori, because we do not derive this knowledge immediately from
|
|
experience, but from a general rule, which, however, we have itself
|
|
borrowed from experience. Thus, if a man undermined his house, we say,
|
|
"he might know a priori that it would have fallen;" that is, he needed
|
|
not to have waited for the experience that it did actually fall. But
|
|
still, a priori, he could not know even this much. For, that bodies
|
|
are heavy, and, consequently, that they fall when their supports are
|
|
taken away, must have been known to him previously, by means of
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
By the term "knowledge a priori," therefore, we shall in the
|
|
sequel understand, not such as is independent of this or that kind
|
|
of experience, but such as is absolutely so of all experience. Opposed
|
|
to this is empirical knowledge, or that which is possible only a
|
|
posteriori, that is, through experience. Knowledge a priori is
|
|
either pure or impure. Pure knowledge a priori is that with which no
|
|
empirical element is mixed up. For example, the proposition, "Every
|
|
change has a cause," is a proposition a priori, but impure, because
|
|
change is a conception which can only be derived from experience.
|
|
|
|
II. The Human Intellect, even in an Unphilosophical State,
|
|
|
|
is in Possession of Certain Cognitions "a priori".
|
|
|
|
The question now is as to a criterion, by which we may securely
|
|
distinguish a pure from an empirical cognition. Experience no doubt
|
|
teaches us that this or that object is constituted in such and such
|
|
a manner, but not that it could not possibly exist otherwise. Now,
|
|
in the first place, if we have a proposition which contains the idea
|
|
of necessity in its very conception, it is a if, moreover, it is not
|
|
derived from any other proposition, unless from one equally
|
|
involving the idea of necessity, it is absolutely priori. Secondly, an
|
|
empirical judgement never exhibits strict and absolute, but only
|
|
assumed and comparative universality (by induction); therefore, the
|
|
most we can say is- so far as we have hitherto observed, there is no
|
|
exception to this or that rule. If, on the other hand, a judgement
|
|
carries with it strict and absolute universality, that is, admits of
|
|
no possible exception, it is not derived from experience, but is valid
|
|
absolutely a priori.
|
|
|
|
Empirical universality is, therefore, only an arbitrary extension of
|
|
validity, from that which may be predicated of a proposition valid
|
|
in most cases, to that which is asserted of a proposition which
|
|
holds good in all; as, for example, in the affirmation, "All bodies
|
|
are heavy." When, on the contrary, strict universality characterizes a
|
|
judgement, it necessarily indicates another peculiar source of
|
|
knowledge, namely, a faculty of cognition a priori. Necessity and
|
|
strict universality, therefore, are infallible tests for
|
|
distinguishing pure from empirical knowledge, and are inseparably
|
|
connected with each other. But as in the use of these criteria the
|
|
empirical limitation is sometimes more easily detected than the
|
|
contingency of the judgement, or the unlimited universality which we
|
|
attach to a judgement is often a more convincing proof than its
|
|
necessity, it may be advisable to use the criteria separately, each
|
|
being by itself infallible.
|
|
|
|
Now, that in the sphere of human cognition we have judgements
|
|
which are necessary, and in the strictest sense universal,
|
|
consequently pure a priori, it will be an easy matter to show. If we
|
|
desire an example from the sciences, we need only take any proposition
|
|
in mathematics. If we cast our eyes upon the commonest operations of
|
|
the understanding, the proposition, "Every change must have a
|
|
cause," will amply serve our purpose. In the latter case, indeed,
|
|
the conception of a cause so plainly involves the conception of a
|
|
necessity of connection with an effect, and of a strict universality
|
|
of the law, that the very notion of a cause would entirely
|
|
disappear, were we to derive it, like Hume, from a frequent
|
|
association of what happens with that which precedes; and the habit
|
|
thence originating of connecting representations- the necessity
|
|
inherent in the judgement being therefore merely subjective.
|
|
Besides, without seeking for such examples of principles existing a
|
|
priori in cognition, we might easily show that such principles are the
|
|
indispensable basis of the possibility of experience itself, and
|
|
consequently prove their existence a priori. For whence could our
|
|
experience itself acquire certainty, if all the rules on which it
|
|
depends were themselves empirical, and consequently fortuitous? No
|
|
one, therefore, can admit the validity of the use of such rules as
|
|
first principles. But, for the present, we may content ourselves
|
|
with having established the fact, that we do possess and exercise a
|
|
faculty of pure a priori cognition; and, secondly, with having pointed
|
|
out the proper tests of such cognition, namely, universality and
|
|
necessity.
|
|
|
|
Not only in judgements, however, but even in conceptions, is an a
|
|
priori origin manifest. For example, if we take away by degrees from
|
|
our conceptions of a body all that can be referred to mere sensuous
|
|
experience- colour, hardness or softness, weight, even
|
|
impenetrability- the body will then vanish; but the space which it
|
|
occupied still remains, and this it is utterly impossible to
|
|
annihilate in thought. Again, if we take away, in like manner, from
|
|
our empirical conception of any object, corporeal or incorporeal,
|
|
all properties which mere experience has taught us to connect with it,
|
|
still we cannot think away those through which we cogitate it as
|
|
substance, or adhering to substance, although our conception of
|
|
substance is more determined than that of an object. Compelled,
|
|
therefore, by that necessity with which the conception of substance
|
|
forces itself upon us, we must confess that it has its seat in our
|
|
faculty of cognition a priori.
|
|
|
|
III. Philosophy stands in need of a Science which shall
|
|
|
|
Determine the Possibility, Principles, and Extent of
|
|
|
|
Human Knowledge "a priori"
|
|
|
|
Of far more importance than all that has been above said, is the
|
|
consideration that certain of our cognitions rise completely above the
|
|
sphere of all possible experience, and by means of conceptions, to
|
|
which there exists in the whole extent of experience no
|
|
corresponding object, seem to extend the range of our judgements
|
|
beyond its bounds. And just in this transcendental or supersensible
|
|
sphere, where experience affords us neither instruction nor
|
|
guidance, lie the investigations of reason, which, on account of their
|
|
importance, we consider far preferable to, and as having a far more
|
|
elevated aim than, all that the understanding can achieve within the
|
|
sphere of sensuous phenomena. So high a value do we set upon these
|
|
investigations, that even at the risk of error, we persist in
|
|
following them out, and permit neither doubt nor disregard nor
|
|
indifference to restrain us from the pursuit. These unavoidable
|
|
problems of mere pure reason are God, freedom (of will), and
|
|
immortality. The science which, with all its preliminaries, has for
|
|
its especial object the solution of these problems is named
|
|
metaphysics- a science which is at the very outset dogmatical, that
|
|
is, it confidently takes upon itself the execution of this task
|
|
without any previous investigation of the ability or inability of
|
|
reason for such an undertaking.
|
|
|
|
Now the safe ground of experience being thus abandoned, it seems
|
|
nevertheless natural that we should hesitate to erect a building
|
|
with the cognitions we possess, without knowing whence they come,
|
|
and on the strength of principles, the origin of which is
|
|
undiscovered. Instead of thus trying to build without a foundation, it
|
|
is rather to be expected that we should long ago have put the
|
|
question, how the understanding can arrive at these a priori
|
|
cognitions, and what is the extent, validity, and worth which they may
|
|
possess? We say, "This is natural enough," meaning by the word
|
|
natural, that which is consistent with a just and reasonable way of
|
|
thinking; but if we understand by the term, that. which usually
|
|
happens, nothing indeed could be more natural and more
|
|
comprehensible than that this investigation should be left long
|
|
unattempted. For one part of our pure knowledge, the science of
|
|
mathematics, has been long firmly established, and thus leads us to
|
|
form flattering expectations with regard to others, though these may
|
|
be of quite a different nature. Besides, when we get beyond the bounds
|
|
of experience, we are of course safe from opposition in that
|
|
quarter; and the charm of widening the range of our knowledge is so
|
|
great that, unless we are brought to a standstill by some evident
|
|
contradiction, we hurry on undoubtingly in our course. This,
|
|
however, may be avoided, if we are sufficiently cautious in the
|
|
construction of our fictions, which are not the less fictions on
|
|
that account.
|
|
|
|
Mathematical science affords us a brilliant example, how far,
|
|
independently of all experience, we may carry our a priori
|
|
knowledge. It is true that the mathematician occupies himself with
|
|
objects and cognitions only in so far as they can be represented by
|
|
means of intuition. But this circumstance is easily overlooked,
|
|
because the said intuition can itself be given a priori, and therefore
|
|
is hardly to be distinguished from a mere pure conception. Deceived by
|
|
such a proof of the power of reason, we can perceive no limits to
|
|
the extension of our knowledge. The light dove cleaving in free flight
|
|
the thin air, whose resistance it feels, might imagine that her
|
|
movements would be far more free and rapid in airless space. just in
|
|
the same way did Plato, abandoning the world of sense because of the
|
|
narrow limits it sets to the understanding, venture upon the wings
|
|
of ideas beyond it, into the void space of pure intellect. He did
|
|
not reflect that he made no real progress by all his efforts; for he
|
|
met with no resistance which might serve him for a support, as it
|
|
were, whereon to rest, and on which he might apply his powers, in
|
|
order to let the intellect acquire momentum for its progress. It is,
|
|
indeed, the common fate of human reason in speculation, to finish
|
|
the imposing edifice of thought as rapidly as possible, and then for
|
|
the first time to begin to examine whether the foundation is a solid
|
|
one or no. Arrived at this point, all sorts of excuses are sought
|
|
after, in order to console us for its want of stability, or rather,
|
|
indeed, to enable Us to dispense altogether with so late and dangerous
|
|
an investigation. But what frees us during the process of building
|
|
from all apprehension or suspicion, and flatters us into the belief of
|
|
its solidity, is this. A great part, perhaps the greatest part, of the
|
|
business of our reason consists in the analysation of the
|
|
conceptions which we already possess of objects. By this means we gain
|
|
a multitude of cognitions, which although really nothing more than
|
|
elucidations or explanations of that which (though in a confused
|
|
manner) was already thought in our conceptions, are, at least in
|
|
respect of their form, prized as new introspections; whilst, so far as
|
|
regards their matter or content, we have really made no addition to
|
|
our conceptions, but only disinvolved them. But as this process does
|
|
furnish a real priori knowledge, which has a sure progress and
|
|
useful results, reason, deceived by this, slips in, without being
|
|
itself aware of it, assertions of a quite different kind; in which, to
|
|
given conceptions it adds others, a priori indeed, but entirely
|
|
foreign to them, without our knowing how it arrives at these, and,
|
|
indeed, without such a question ever suggesting itself. I shall
|
|
therefore at once proceed to examine the difference between these
|
|
two modes of knowledge.
|
|
|
|
IV. Of the Difference Between Analytical and Synthetical Judgements.
|
|
|
|
In all judgements wherein the relation of a subject to the predicate
|
|
is cogitated (I mention affirmative judgements only here; the
|
|
application to negative will be very easy), this relation is
|
|
possible in two different ways. Either the predicate B belongs to
|
|
the subject A, as somewhat which is contained (though covertly) in the
|
|
conception A; or the predicate B lies completely out of the conception
|
|
A, although it stands in connection with it. In the first instance,
|
|
I term the judgement analytical, in the second, synthetical.
|
|
Analytical judgements (affirmative) are therefore those in which the
|
|
connection of the predicate with the subject is cogitated through
|
|
identity; those in which this connection is cogitated without
|
|
identity, are called synthetical judgements. The former may be
|
|
called explicative, the latter augmentative judgements; because the
|
|
former add in the predicate nothing to the conception of the
|
|
subject, but only analyse it into its constituent conceptions, which
|
|
were thought already in the subject, although in a confused manner;
|
|
the latter add to our conceptions of the subject a predicate which was
|
|
not contained in it, and which no analysis could ever have
|
|
discovered therein. For example, when I say, "All bodies are
|
|
extended," this is an analytical judgement. For I need not go beyond
|
|
the conception of body in order to find extension connected with it,
|
|
but merely analyse the conception, that is, become conscious of the
|
|
manifold properties which I think in that conception, in order to
|
|
discover this predicate in it: it is therefore an analytical
|
|
judgement. On the other hand, when I say, "All bodies are heavy,"
|
|
the predicate is something totally different from that which I think
|
|
in the mere conception of a body. By the addition of such a predicate,
|
|
therefore, it becomes a synthetical judgement.
|
|
|
|
Judgements of experience, as such, are always synthetical. For it
|
|
would be absurd to think of grounding an analytical judgement on
|
|
experience, because in forming such a judgement I need not go out of
|
|
the sphere of my conceptions, and therefore recourse to the
|
|
testimony of experience is quite unnecessary. That "bodies are
|
|
extended" is not an empirical judgement, but a proposition which
|
|
stands firm a priori. For before addressing myself to experience, I
|
|
already have in my conception all the requisite conditions for the
|
|
judgement, and I have only to extract the predicate from the
|
|
conception, according to the principle of contradiction, and thereby
|
|
at the same time become conscious of the necessity of the judgement, a
|
|
necessity which I could never learn from experience. On the other
|
|
hand, though at first I do not at all include the predicate of
|
|
weight in my conception of body in general, that conception still
|
|
indicates an object of experience, a part of the totality of
|
|
experience, to which I can still add other parts; and this I do when I
|
|
recognize by observation that bodies are heavy. I can cognize
|
|
beforehand by analysis the conception of body through the
|
|
characteristics of extension, impenetrability, shape, etc., all
|
|
which are cogitated in this conception. But now I extend my knowledge,
|
|
and looking back on experience from which I had derived this
|
|
conception of body, I find weight at all times connected with the
|
|
above characteristics, and therefore I synthetically add to my
|
|
conceptions this as a predicate, and say, "All bodies are heavy." Thus
|
|
it is experience upon which rests the possibility of the synthesis
|
|
of the predicate of weight with the conception of body, because both
|
|
conceptions, although the one is not contained in the other, still
|
|
belong to one another (only contingently, however), as parts of a
|
|
whole, namely, of experience, which is itself a synthesis of
|
|
intuitions.
|
|
|
|
But to synthetical judgements a priori, such aid is entirely
|
|
wanting. If I go out of and beyond the conception A, in order to
|
|
recognize another B as connected with it, what foundation have I to
|
|
rest on, whereby to render the synthesis possible? I have here no
|
|
longer the advantage of looking out in the sphere of experience for
|
|
what I want. Let us take, for example, the proposition, "Everything
|
|
that happens has a cause." In the conception of "something that
|
|
happens," I indeed think an existence which a certain time
|
|
antecedes, and from this I can derive analytical judgements. But the
|
|
conception of a cause lies quite out of the above conception, and
|
|
indicates something entirely different from "that which happens,"
|
|
and is consequently not contained in that conception. How then am I
|
|
able to assert concerning the general conception- "that which
|
|
happens"- something entirely different from that conception, and to
|
|
recognize the conception of cause although not contained in it, yet as
|
|
belonging to it, and even necessarily? what is here the unknown = X,
|
|
upon which the understanding rests when it believes it has found,
|
|
out of the conception A a foreign predicate B, which it nevertheless
|
|
considers to be connected with it? It cannot be experience, because
|
|
the principle adduced annexes the two representations, cause and
|
|
effect, to the representation existence, not only with universality,
|
|
which experience cannot give, but also with the expression of
|
|
necessity, therefore completely a priori and from pure conceptions.
|
|
Upon such synthetical, that is augmentative propositions, depends
|
|
the whole aim of our speculative knowledge a priori; for although
|
|
analytical judgements are indeed highly important and necessary,
|
|
they are so, only to arrive at that clearness of conceptions which
|
|
is requisite for a sure and extended synthesis, and this alone is a
|
|
real acquisition.
|
|
|
|
V. In all Theoretical Sciences of Reason, Synthetical Judgements
|
|
|
|
"a priori" are contained as Principles.
|
|
|
|
1. Mathematical judgements are always synthetical. Hitherto this
|
|
fact, though incontestably true and very important in its
|
|
consequences, seems to have escaped the analysts of the human mind,
|
|
nay, to be in complete opposition to all their conjectures. For as
|
|
it was found that mathematical conclusions all proceed according to
|
|
the principle of contradiction (which the nature of every apodeictic
|
|
certainty requires), people became persuaded that the fundamental
|
|
principles of the science also were recognized and admitted in the
|
|
same way. But the notion is fallacious; for although a synthetical
|
|
proposition can certainly be discerned by means of the principle of
|
|
contradiction, this is possible only when another synthetical
|
|
proposition precedes, from which the latter is deduced, but never of
|
|
itself which
|
|
|
|
Before all, be it observed, that proper mathematical propositions
|
|
are always judgements a priori, and not empirical, because they
|
|
carry along with them the conception of necessity, which cannot be
|
|
given by experience. If this be demurred to, it matters not; I will
|
|
then limit my assertion to pure mathematics, the very conception of
|
|
which implies that it consists of knowledge altogether non-empirical
|
|
and a priori.
|
|
|
|
We might, indeed at first suppose that the proposition 7 + 5 = 12 is
|
|
a merely analytical proposition, following (according to the principle
|
|
of contradiction) from the conception of a sum of seven and five.
|
|
But if we regard it more narrowly, we find that our conception of
|
|
the sum of seven and five contains nothing more than the uniting of
|
|
both sums into one, whereby it cannot at all be cogitated what this
|
|
single number is which embraces both. The conception of twelve is by
|
|
no means obtained by merely cogitating the union of seven and five;
|
|
and we may analyse our conception of such a possible sum as long as we
|
|
will, still we shall never discover in it the notion of twelve. We
|
|
must go beyond these conceptions, and have recourse to an intuition
|
|
which corresponds to one of the two- our five fingers, for example, or
|
|
like Segner in his Arithmetic five points, and so by degrees, add
|
|
the units contained in the five given in the intuition, to the
|
|
conception of seven. For I first take the number 7, and, for the
|
|
conception of 5 calling in the aid of the fingers of my hand as
|
|
objects of intuition, I add the units, which I before took together to
|
|
make up the number 5, gradually now by means of the material image
|
|
my hand, to the number 7, and by this process, I at length see the
|
|
number 12 arise. That 7 should be added to 5, I have certainly
|
|
cogitated in my conception of a sum = 7 + 5, but not that this sum was
|
|
equal to 12. Arithmetical propositions are therefore always
|
|
synthetical, of which we may become more clearly convinced by trying
|
|
large numbers. For it will thus become quite evident that, turn and
|
|
twist our conceptions as we may, it is impossible, without having
|
|
recourse to intuition, to arrive at the sum total or product by
|
|
means of the mere analysis of our conceptions. just as little is any
|
|
principle of pure geometry analytical. "A straight line between two
|
|
points is the shortest," is a synthetical proposition. For my
|
|
conception of straight contains no notion of quantity, but is merely
|
|
qualitative. The conception of the shortest is therefore fore wholly
|
|
an addition, and by no analysis can it be extracted from our
|
|
conception of a straight line. Intuition must therefore here lend
|
|
its aid, by means of which, and thus only, our synthesis is possible.
|
|
|
|
Some few principles preposited by geometricians are, indeed,
|
|
really analytical, and depend on the principle of contradiction.
|
|
They serve, however, like identical propositions, as links in the
|
|
chain of method, not as principles- for example, a = a, the whole is
|
|
equal to itself, or (a+b) > a, the whole is greater than its part. And
|
|
yet even these principles themselves, though they derive their
|
|
validity from pure conceptions, are only admitted in mathematics
|
|
because they can be presented in intuition. What causes us here
|
|
commonly to believe that the predicate of such apodeictic judgements
|
|
is already contained in our conception, and that the judgement is
|
|
therefore analytical, is merely the equivocal nature of the
|
|
expression. We must join in thought a certain predicate to a given
|
|
conception, and this necessity cleaves already to the conception.
|
|
But the question is, not what we must join in thought to the given
|
|
conception, but what we really think therein, though only obscurely,
|
|
and then it becomes manifest that the predicate pertains to these
|
|
conceptions, necessarily indeed, yet not as thought in the
|
|
conception itself, but by virtue of an intuition, which must be
|
|
added to the conception.
|
|
|
|
2. The science of natural philosophy (physics) contains in itself
|
|
synthetical judgements a priori, as principles. I shall adduce two
|
|
propositions. For instance, the proposition, "In all changes of the
|
|
material world, the quantity of matter remains unchanged"; or, that,
|
|
"In all communication of motion, action and reaction must always be
|
|
equal." In both of these, not only is the necessity, and therefore
|
|
their origin a priori clear, but also that they are synthetical
|
|
propositions. For in the conception of matter, I do not cogitate its
|
|
permanency, but merely its presence in space, which it fills. I
|
|
therefore really go out of and beyond the conception of matter, in
|
|
order to think on to it something a priori, which I did not think in
|
|
it. The proposition is therefore not analytical, but synthetical,
|
|
and nevertheless conceived a priori; and so it is with regard to the
|
|
other propositions of the pure part of natural philosophy.
|
|
|
|
3. As to metaphysics, even if we look upon it merely as an attempted
|
|
science, yet, from the nature of human reason, an indispensable one,
|
|
we find that it must contain synthetical propositions a priori. It
|
|
is not merely the duty of metaphysics to dissect, and thereby
|
|
analytically to illustrate the conceptions which we form a priori of
|
|
things; but we seek to widen the range of our a priori knowledge.
|
|
For this purpose, we must avail ourselves of such principles as add
|
|
something to the original conception- something not identical with,
|
|
nor contained in it, and by means of synthetical judgements a
|
|
priori, leave far behind us the limits of experience; for example,
|
|
in the proposition, "the world must have a beginning," and such
|
|
like. Thus metaphysics, according to the proper aim of the science,
|
|
consists merely of synthetical propositions a priori.
|
|
|
|
VI. The Universal Problem of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
It is extremely advantageous to be able to bring a number of
|
|
investigations under the formula of a single problem. For in this
|
|
manner, we not only facilitate our own labour, inasmuch as we define
|
|
it clearly to ourselves, but also render it more easy for others to
|
|
decide whether we have done justice to our undertaking. The proper
|
|
problem of pure reason, then, is contained in the question: "How are
|
|
synthetical judgements a priori possible?"
|
|
|
|
That metaphysical science has hitherto remained in so vacillating
|
|
a state of uncertainty and contradiction, is only to be attributed
|
|
to the fact that this great problem, and perhaps even the difference
|
|
between analytical and synthetical judgements, did not sooner
|
|
suggest itself to philosophers. Upon the solution of this problem,
|
|
or upon sufficient proof of the impossibility of synthetical knowledge
|
|
a priori, depends the existence or downfall of the science of
|
|
metaphysics. Among philosophers, David Hume came the nearest of all to
|
|
this problem; yet it never acquired in his mind sufficient
|
|
precision, nor did he regard the question in its universality. On
|
|
the contrary, he stopped short at the synthetical proposition of the
|
|
connection of an effect with its cause (principium causalitatis),
|
|
insisting that such proposition a priori was impossible. According
|
|
to his conclusions, then, all that we term metaphysical science is a
|
|
mere delusion, arising from the fancied insight of reason into that
|
|
which is in truth borrowed from experience, and to which habit has
|
|
given the appearance of necessity. Against this assertion, destructive
|
|
to all pure philosophy, he would have been guarded, had he had our
|
|
problem before his eyes in its universality. For he would then have
|
|
perceived that, according to his own argument, there likewise could
|
|
not be any pure mathematical science, which assuredly cannot exist
|
|
without synthetical propositions a priori- an absurdity from which his
|
|
good understanding must have saved him.
|
|
|
|
In the solution of the above problem is at the same time
|
|
comprehended the possibility of the use of pure reason in the
|
|
foundation and construction of all sciences which contain
|
|
theoretical knowledge a priori of objects, that is to say, the
|
|
answer to the following questions:
|
|
|
|
How is pure mathematical science possible?
|
|
|
|
How is pure natural science possible?
|
|
|
|
Respecting these sciences, as they do certainly exist, it may with
|
|
propriety be asked, how they are possible?- for that they must be
|
|
possible is shown by the fact of their really existing.* But as to
|
|
metaphysics, the miserable progress it has hitherto made, and the fact
|
|
that of no one system yet brought forward, far as regards its true
|
|
aim, can it be said that this science really exists, leaves any one at
|
|
liberty to doubt with reason the very possibility of its existence.
|
|
|
|
*As to the existence of pure natural science, or physics, perhaps
|
|
many may still express doubts. But we have only to look at the
|
|
different propositions which are commonly treated of at the
|
|
commencement of proper (empirical) physical science- those, for
|
|
example, relating to the permanence of the same quantity of matter,
|
|
the vis inertiae, the equality of action and reaction, etc.- to be
|
|
soon convinced that they form a science of pure physics (physica pura,
|
|
or rationalis), which well deserves to be separately exposed as a
|
|
special science, in its whole extent, whether that be great or
|
|
confined.
|
|
|
|
Yet, in a certain sense, this kind of knowledge must
|
|
unquestionably be looked upon as given; in other words, metaphysics
|
|
must be considered as really existing, if not as a science,
|
|
nevertheless as a natural disposition of the human mind (metaphysica
|
|
naturalis). For human reason, without any instigations imputable to
|
|
the mere vanity of great knowledge, unceasingly progresses, urged on
|
|
by its own feeling of need, towards such questions as cannot be
|
|
answered by any empirical application of reason, or principles derived
|
|
therefrom; and so there has ever really existed in every man some
|
|
system of metaphysics. It will always exist, so soon as reason
|
|
awakes to the exercise of its power of speculation. And now the
|
|
question arises: "How is metaphysics, as a natural disposition,
|
|
possible?" In other words, how, from the nature of universal human
|
|
reason, do those questions arise which pure reason proposes to itself,
|
|
and which it is impelled by its own feeling of need to answer as
|
|
well as it can?
|
|
|
|
But as in all the attempts hitherto made to answer the questions
|
|
which reason is prompted by its very nature to propose to itself,
|
|
for example, whether the world had a beginning, or has existed from
|
|
eternity, it has always met with unavoidable contradictions, we must
|
|
not rest satisfied with the mere natural disposition of the mind to
|
|
metaphysics, that is, with the existence of the faculty of pure
|
|
reason, whence, indeed, some sort of metaphysical system always
|
|
arises; but it must be possible to arrive at certainty in regard to
|
|
the question whether we know or do not know the things of which
|
|
metaphysics treats. We must be able to arrive at a decision on the
|
|
subjects of its questions, or on the ability or inability of reason to
|
|
form any judgement respecting them; and therefore either to extend
|
|
with confidence the bounds of our pure reason, or to set strictly
|
|
defined and safe limits to its action. This last question, which
|
|
arises out of the above universal problem, would properly run thus:
|
|
"How is metaphysics possible as a science?"
|
|
|
|
Thus, the critique of reason leads at last, naturally and
|
|
necessarily, to science; and, on the other hand, the dogmatical use of
|
|
reason without criticism leads to groundless assertions, against which
|
|
others equally specious can always be set, thus ending unavoidably
|
|
in scepticism.
|
|
|
|
Besides, this science cannot be of great and formidable prolixity,
|
|
because it has not to do with objects of reason, the variety of
|
|
which is inexhaustible, but merely with Reason herself and her
|
|
problems; problems which arise out of her own bosom, and are not
|
|
proposed to her by the nature of outward things, but by her own
|
|
nature. And when once Reason has previously become able completely
|
|
to understand her own power in regard to objects which she meets
|
|
with in experience, it will be easy to determine securely the extent
|
|
and limits of her attempted application to objects beyond the confines
|
|
of experience.
|
|
|
|
We may and must, therefore, regard the attempts hitherto made to
|
|
establish metaphysical science dogmatically as non-existent. For
|
|
what of analysis, that is, mere dissection of conceptions, is
|
|
contained in one or other, is not the aim of, but only a preparation
|
|
for metaphysics proper, which has for its object the extension, by
|
|
means of synthesis, of our a priori knowledge. And for this purpose,
|
|
mere analysis is of course useless, because it only shows what is
|
|
contained in these conceptions, but not how we arrive, a priori, at
|
|
them; and this it is her duty to show, in order to be able
|
|
afterwards to determine their valid use in regard to all objects of
|
|
experience, to all knowledge in general. But little self-denial,
|
|
indeed, is needed to give up these pretensions, seeing the undeniable,
|
|
and in the dogmatic mode of procedure, inevitable contradictions of
|
|
Reason with herself, have long since ruined the reputation of every
|
|
system of metaphysics that has appeared up to this time. It will
|
|
require more firmness to remain undeterred by difficulty from
|
|
within, and opposition from without, from endeavouring, by a method
|
|
quite opposed to all those hitherto followed, to further the growth
|
|
and fruitfulness of a science indispensable to human reason- a science
|
|
from which every branch it has borne may be cut away, but whose
|
|
roots remain indestructible.
|
|
|
|
VII. Idea and Division of a Particular Science, under the
|
|
|
|
Name of a Critique of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
From all that has been said, there results the idea of a
|
|
particular science, which may be called the Critique of Pure Reason.
|
|
For reason is the faculty which furnishes us with the principles of
|
|
knowledge a priori. Hence, pure reason is the faculty which contains
|
|
the principles of cognizing anything absolutely a priori. An organon
|
|
of pure reason would be a compendium of those principles according
|
|
to which alone all pure cognitions a priori can be obtained. The
|
|
completely extended application of such an organon would afford us a
|
|
system of pure reason. As this, however, is demanding a great deal,
|
|
and it is yet doubtful whether any extension of our knowledge be
|
|
here possible, or, if so, in what cases; we can regard a science of
|
|
the mere criticism of pure reason, its sources and limits, as the
|
|
propaedeutic to a system of pure reason. Such a science must not be
|
|
called a doctrine, but only a critique of pure reason; and its use, in
|
|
regard to speculation, would be only negative, not to enlarge the
|
|
bounds of, but to purify, our reason, and to shield it against
|
|
error- which alone is no little gain. I apply the term
|
|
transcendental to all knowledge which is not so much occupied with
|
|
objects as with the mode of our cognition of these objects, so far
|
|
as this mode of cognition is possible a priori. A system of such
|
|
conceptions would be called transcendental philosophy. But this,
|
|
again, is still beyond the bounds of our present essay. For as such
|
|
a science must contain a complete exposition not only of our
|
|
synthetical a priori, but of our analytical a priori knowledge, it
|
|
is of too wide a range for our present purpose, because we do not
|
|
require to carry our analysis any farther than is necessary to
|
|
understand, in their full extent, the principles of synthesis a
|
|
priori, with which alone we have to do. This investigation, which we
|
|
cannot properly call a doctrine, but only a transcendental critique,
|
|
because it aims not at the enlargement, but at the correction and
|
|
guidance, of our knowledge, and is to serve as a touchstone of the
|
|
worth or worthlessness of all knowledge a priori, is the sole object
|
|
of our present essay. Such a critique is consequently, as far as
|
|
possible, a preparation for an organon; and if this new organon should
|
|
be found to fail, at least for a canon of pure reason, according to
|
|
which the complete system of the philosophy of pure reason, whether it
|
|
extend or limit the bounds of that reason, might one day be set
|
|
forth both analytically and synthetically. For that this is
|
|
possible, nay, that such a system is not of so great extent as to
|
|
preclude the hope of its ever being completed, is evident. For we have
|
|
not here to do with the nature of outward objects, which is
|
|
infinite, but solely with the mind, which judges of the nature of
|
|
objects, and, again, with the mind only in respect of its cognition
|
|
a priori. And the object of our investigations, as it is not to be
|
|
sought without, but, altogether within, ourselves, cannot remain
|
|
concealed, and in all probability is limited enough to be completely
|
|
surveyed and fairly estimated, according to its worth or
|
|
worthlessness. Still less let the reader here expect a critique of
|
|
books and systems of pure reason; our present object is exclusively
|
|
a critique of the faculty of pure reason itself. Only when we make
|
|
this critique our foundation, do we possess a pure touchstone for
|
|
estimating the philosophical value of ancient and modern writings on
|
|
this subject; and without this criterion, the incompetent historian or
|
|
judge decides upon and corrects the groundless assertions of others
|
|
with his own, which have themselves just as little foundation.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental philosophy is the idea of a science, for which the
|
|
Critique of Pure Reason must sketch the whole plan
|
|
architectonically, that is, from principles, with a full guarantee for
|
|
the validity and stability of all the parts which enter into the
|
|
building. It is the system of all the principles of pure reason. If
|
|
this Critique itself does not assume the title of transcendental
|
|
philosophy, it is only because, to be a complete system, it ought to
|
|
contain a full analysis of all human knowledge a priori. Our
|
|
critique must, indeed, lay before us a complete enumeration of all the
|
|
radical conceptions which constitute the said pure knowledge. But from
|
|
the complete analysis of these conceptions themselves, as also from
|
|
a complete investigation of those derived from them, it abstains
|
|
with reason; partly because it would be deviating from the end in view
|
|
to occupy itself with this analysis, since this process is not
|
|
attended with the difficulty and insecurity to be found in the
|
|
synthesis, to which our critique is entirely devoted, and partly
|
|
because it would be inconsistent with the unity of our plan to
|
|
burden this essay with the vindication of the completeness of such
|
|
an analysis and deduction, with which, after all, we have at present
|
|
nothing to do. This completeness of the analysis of these radical
|
|
conceptions, as well as of the deduction from the conceptions a priori
|
|
which may be given by the analysis, we can, however, easily attain,
|
|
provided only that we are in possession of all these radical
|
|
conceptions, which are to serve as principles of the synthesis, and
|
|
that in respect of this main purpose nothing is wanting.
|
|
|
|
To the Critique of Pure Reason, therefore, belongs all that
|
|
constitutes transcendental philosophy; and it is the complete idea
|
|
of transcendental philosophy, but still not the science itself;
|
|
because it only proceeds so far with the analysis as is necessary to
|
|
the power of judging completely of our synthetical knowledge a priori.
|
|
|
|
The principal thing we must attend to, in the division of the
|
|
parts of a science like this, is that no conceptions must enter it
|
|
which contain aught empirical; in other words, that the knowledge a
|
|
priori must be completely pure. Hence, although the highest principles
|
|
and fundamental conceptions of morality are certainly cognitions a
|
|
priori, yet they do not belong to transcendental philosophy;
|
|
because, though they certainly do not lay the conceptions of pain,
|
|
pleasure, desires, inclinations, etc. (which are all of empirical
|
|
origin), at the foundation of its precepts, yet still into the
|
|
conception of duty- as an obstacle to be overcome, or as an incitement
|
|
which should not be made into a motive- these empirical conceptions
|
|
must necessarily enter, in the construction of a system of pure
|
|
morality. Transcendental philosophy is consequently a philosophy of
|
|
the pure and merely speculative reason. For all that is practical,
|
|
so far as it contains motives, relates to feelings, and these belong
|
|
to empirical sources of cognition.
|
|
|
|
If we wish to divide this science from the universal point of view
|
|
of a science in general, it ought to comprehend, first, a Doctrine
|
|
of the Elements, and, secondly, a Doctrine of the Method of pure
|
|
reason. Each of these main divisions will have its subdivisions, the
|
|
separate reasons for which we cannot here particularize. Only so
|
|
much seems necessary, by way of introduction of premonition, that
|
|
there are two sources of human knowledge (which probably spring from a
|
|
common, but to us unknown root), namely, sense and understanding. By
|
|
the former, objects are given to us; by the latter, thought. So far as
|
|
the faculty of sense may contain representations a priori, which
|
|
form the conditions under which objects are given, in so far it
|
|
belongs to transcendental philosophy. The transcendental doctrine of
|
|
sense must form the first part of our science of elements, because the
|
|
conditions under which alone the objects of human knowledge are
|
|
given must precede those under which they are thought.
|
|
|
|
I.
|
|
|
|
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF ELEMENTS.
|
|
|
|
FIRST PART. TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC.
|
|
|
|
SS I. Introductory.
|
|
|
|
In whatsoever mode, or by whatsoever means, our knowledge may relate
|
|
to objects, it is at least quite clear that the only manner in which
|
|
it immediately relates to them is by means of an intuition. To this as
|
|
the indispensable groundwork, all thought points. But an intuition can
|
|
take place only in so far as the object is given to us. This, again,
|
|
is only possible, to man at least, on condition that the object affect
|
|
the mind in a certain manner. The capacity for receiving
|
|
representations (receptivity) through the mode in which we are
|
|
affected by objects, objects, is called sensibility. By means of
|
|
sensibility, therefore, objects are given to us, and it alone
|
|
furnishes us with intuitions; by the understanding they are thought,
|
|
and from it arise conceptions. But an thought must directly, or
|
|
indirectly, by means of certain signs, relate ultimately to
|
|
intuitions; consequently, with us, to sensibility, because in no other
|
|
way can an object be given to us.
|
|
|
|
The effect of an object upon the faculty of representation, so far
|
|
as we are affected by the said object, is sensation. That sort of
|
|
intuition which relates to an object by means of sensation is called
|
|
an empirical intuition. The undetermined object of an empirical
|
|
intuition is called phenomenon. That which in the phenomenon
|
|
corresponds to the sensation, I term its matter; but that which
|
|
effects that the content of the phenomenon can be arranged under
|
|
certain relations, I call its form. But that in which our sensations
|
|
are merely arranged, and by which they are susceptible of assuming a
|
|
certain form, cannot be itself sensation. It is, then, the matter of
|
|
all phenomena that is given to us a posteriori; the form must lie
|
|
ready a priori for them in the mind, and consequently can be
|
|
regarded separately from all sensation.
|
|
|
|
I call all representations pure, in the transcendental meaning of
|
|
the word, wherein nothing is met with that belongs to sensation. And
|
|
accordingly we find existing in the mind a priori, the pure form of
|
|
sensuous intuitions in general, in which all the manifold content of
|
|
the phenomenal world is arranged and viewed under certain relations.
|
|
This pure form of sensibility I shall call pure intuition. Thus, if
|
|
I take away from our representation of a body all that the
|
|
understanding thinks as belonging to it, as substance, force,
|
|
divisibility, etc., and also whatever belongs to sensation, as
|
|
impenetrability, hardness, colour, etc.; yet there is still
|
|
something left us from this empirical intuition, namely, extension and
|
|
shape. These belong to pure intuition, which exists a priori in the
|
|
mind, as a mere form of sensibility, and without any real object of
|
|
the senses or any sensation.
|
|
|
|
The science of all the principles of sensibility a priori, I call
|
|
transcendental aesthetic.* There must, then, be such a science forming
|
|
the first part of the transcendental doctrine of elements, in
|
|
contradistinction to that part which contains the principles of pure
|
|
thought, and which is called transcendental logic.
|
|
|
|
*The Germans are the only people who at present use this word to
|
|
indicate what others call the critique of taste. At the foundation
|
|
of this term lies the disappointed hope, which the eminent analyst,
|
|
Baumgarten, conceived, of subjecting the criticism of the beautiful to
|
|
principles of reason, and so of elevating its rules into a science.
|
|
But his endeavours were vain. For the said rules or criteria are, in
|
|
respect to their chief sources, merely empirical, consequently never
|
|
can serve as determinate laws a priori, by which our judgement in
|
|
matters of taste is to be directed. It is rather our judgement which
|
|
forms the proper test as to the correctness of the principles. On this
|
|
account it is advisable to give up the use of the term as
|
|
designating the critique of taste, and to apply it solely to that
|
|
doctrine, which is true science- the science of the laws of
|
|
sensibility- and thus come nearer to the language and the sense of the
|
|
ancients in their well-known division of the objects of cognition into
|
|
aiotheta kai noeta, or to share it with speculative philosophy, and
|
|
employ it partly in a transcendental, partly in a psychological
|
|
signification.
|
|
|
|
In the science of transcendental aesthetic accordingly, we shall
|
|
first isolate sensibility or the sensuous faculty, by separating
|
|
from it all that is annexed to its perceptions by the conceptions of
|
|
understanding, so that nothing be left but empirical intuition. In the
|
|
next place we shall take away from this intuition all that belongs
|
|
to sensation, so that nothing may remain but pure intuition, and the
|
|
mere form of phenomena, which is all that the sensibility can afford a
|
|
priori. From this investigation it will be found that there are two
|
|
pure forms of sensuous intuition, as principles of knowledge a priori,
|
|
namely, space and time. To the consideration of these we shall now
|
|
proceed.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I. Of Space.
|
|
|
|
SS 2. Metaphysical Exposition of this Conception.
|
|
|
|
By means of the external sense (a property of the mind), we
|
|
represent to ourselves objects as without us, and these all in
|
|
space. Herein alone are their shape, dimensions, and relations to each
|
|
other determined or determinable. The internal sense, by means of
|
|
which the mind contemplates itself or its internal state, gives,
|
|
indeed, no intuition of the soul as an object; yet there is
|
|
nevertheless a determinate form, under which alone the contemplation
|
|
of our internal state is possible, so that all which relates to the
|
|
inward determinations of the mind is represented in relations of time.
|
|
Of time we cannot have any external intuition, any more than we can
|
|
have an internal intuition of space. What then are time and space? Are
|
|
they real existences? Or, are they merely relations or
|
|
determinations of things, such, however, as would equally belong to
|
|
these things in themselves, though they should never become objects of
|
|
intuition; or, are they such as belong only to the form of
|
|
intuition, and consequently to the subjective constitution of the
|
|
mind, without which these predicates of time and space could not be
|
|
attached to any object? In order to become informed on these points,
|
|
we shall first give an exposition of the conception of space. By
|
|
exposition, I mean the clear, though not detailed, representation of
|
|
that which belongs to a conception; and an exposition is
|
|
metaphysical when it contains that which represents the conception
|
|
as given a priori.
|
|
|
|
1. Space is not a conception which has been derived from outward
|
|
experiences. For, in order that certain sensations may relate to
|
|
something without me (that is, to something which occupies a different
|
|
part of space from that in which I am); in like manner, in order
|
|
that I may represent them not merely as without, of, and near to
|
|
each other, but also in separate places, the representation of space
|
|
must already exist as a foundation. Consequently, the representation
|
|
of space cannot be borrowed from the relations of external phenomena
|
|
through experience; but, on the contrary, this external experience
|
|
is itself only possible through the said antecedent representation.
|
|
|
|
2. Space then is a necessary representation a priori, which serves
|
|
for the foundation of all external intuitions. We never can imagine or
|
|
make a representation to ourselves of the non-existence of space,
|
|
though we may easily enough think that no objects are found in it.
|
|
It must, therefore, be considered as the condition of the
|
|
possibility of phenomena, and by no means as a determination dependent
|
|
on them, and is a representation a priori, which necessarily
|
|
supplies the basis for external phenomena.
|
|
|
|
3. Space is no discursive, or as we say, general conception of the
|
|
relations of things, but a pure intuition. For, in the first place, we
|
|
can only represent to ourselves one space, and, when we talk of divers
|
|
spaces, we mean only parts of one and the same space. Moreover,
|
|
these parts cannot antecede this one all-embracing space, as the
|
|
component parts from which the aggregate can be made up, but can be
|
|
cogitated only as existing in it. Space is essentially one, and
|
|
multiplicity in it, consequently the general notion of spaces, of this
|
|
or that space, depends solely upon limitations. Hence it follows
|
|
that an a priori intuition (which is not empirical) lies at the root
|
|
of all our conceptions of space. Thus, moreover, the principles of
|
|
geometry- for example, that "in a triangle, two sides together are
|
|
greater than the third," are never deduced from general conceptions of
|
|
line and triangle, but from intuition, and this a priori, with
|
|
apodeictic certainty.
|
|
|
|
4. Space is represented as an infinite given quantity. Now every
|
|
conception must indeed be considered as a representation which is
|
|
contained in an infinite multitude of different possible
|
|
representations, which, therefore, comprises these under itself; but
|
|
no conception, as such, can be so conceived, as if it contained within
|
|
itself an infinite multitude of representations. Nevertheless, space
|
|
is so conceived of, for all parts of space are equally capable of
|
|
being produced to infinity. Consequently, the original
|
|
representation of space is an intuition a priori, and not a
|
|
conception.
|
|
|
|
SS 3. Transcendental Exposition of the Conception of Space.
|
|
|
|
By a transcendental exposition, I mean the explanation of a
|
|
conception, as a principle, whence can be discerned the possibility of
|
|
other synthetical a priori cognitions. For this purpose, it is
|
|
requisite, firstly, that such cognitions do really flow from the given
|
|
conception; and, secondly, that the said cognitions are only
|
|
possible under the presupposition of a given mode of explaining this
|
|
conception.
|
|
|
|
Geometry is a science which determines the properties of space
|
|
synthetically, and yet a priori. What, then, must be our
|
|
representation of space, in order that such a cognition of it may be
|
|
possible? It must be originally intuition, for from a mere conception,
|
|
no propositions can be deduced which go out beyond the conception, and
|
|
yet this happens in geometry. (Introd. V.) But this intuition must
|
|
be found in the mind a priori, that is, before any perception of
|
|
objects, consequently must be pure, not empirical, intuition. For
|
|
geometrical principles are always apodeictic, that is, united with the
|
|
consciousness of their necessity, as: "Space has only three
|
|
dimensions." But propositions of this kind cannot be empirical
|
|
judgements, nor conclusions from them. (Introd. II.) Now, how can an
|
|
external intuition anterior to objects themselves, and in which our
|
|
conception of objects can be determined a priori, exist in the human
|
|
mind? Obviously not otherwise than in so far as it has its seat in the
|
|
subject only, as the formal capacity of the subject's being affected
|
|
by objects, and thereby of obtaining immediate representation, that
|
|
is, intuition; consequently, only as the form of the external sense in
|
|
general.
|
|
|
|
Thus it is only by means of our explanation that the possibility
|
|
of geometry, as a synthetical science a priori, becomes
|
|
comprehensible. Every mode of explanation which does not show us
|
|
this possibility, although in appearance it may be similar to ours,
|
|
can with the utmost certainty be distinguished from it by these marks.
|
|
|
|
SS 4. Conclusions from the foregoing Conceptions.
|
|
|
|
(a) Space does Space does not represent any property of objects as
|
|
things in themselves, nor does it represent them in their relations to
|
|
each other; in other words, space does not represent to us any
|
|
determination of objects such as attaches to the objects themselves,
|
|
and would remain, even though all subjective conditions of the
|
|
intuition were abstracted. For neither absolute nor relative
|
|
determinations of objects can be intuited prior to the existence of
|
|
the things to which they belong, and therefore not a priori.
|
|
|
|
(b) Space is nothing else than the form of all phenomena of the
|
|
external sense, that is, the subjective condition of the
|
|
sensibility, under which alone external intuition is possible. Now,
|
|
because the receptivity or capacity of the subject to be affected by
|
|
objects necessarily antecedes all intuitions of these objects, it is
|
|
easily understood how the form of all phenomena can be given in the
|
|
mind previous to all actual perceptions, therefore a priori, and how
|
|
it, as a pure intuition, in which all objects must be determined,
|
|
can contain principles of the relations of these objects prior to
|
|
all experience.
|
|
|
|
It is therefore from the human point of view only that we can
|
|
speak of space, extended objects, etc. If we depart from the
|
|
subjective condition, under which alone we can obtain external
|
|
intuition, or, in other words, by means of which we are affected by
|
|
objects, the representation of space has no meaning whatsoever. This
|
|
predicate is only applicable to things in so far as they appear to us,
|
|
that is, are objects of sensibility. The constant form of this
|
|
receptivity, which we call sensibility, is a necessary condition of
|
|
all relations in which objects can be intuited as existing without us,
|
|
and when abstraction of these objects is made, is a pure intuition, to
|
|
which we give the name of space. It is clear that we cannot make the
|
|
special conditions of sensibility into conditions of the possibility
|
|
of things, but only of the possibility of their existence as far as
|
|
they are phenomena. And so we may correctly say that space contains
|
|
all which can appear to us externally, but not all things considered
|
|
as things in themselves, be they intuited or not, or by whatsoever
|
|
subject one will. As to the intuitions of other thinking beings, we
|
|
cannot judge whether they are or are not bound by the same
|
|
conditions which limit our own intuition, and which for us are
|
|
universally valid. If we join the limitation of a judgement to the
|
|
conception of the subject, then the judgement will possess
|
|
unconditioned validity. For example, the proposition, "All objects are
|
|
beside each other in space," is valid only under the limitation that
|
|
these things are taken as objects of our sensuous intuition. But if
|
|
I join the condition to the conception and say, "All things, as
|
|
external phenomena, are beside each other in space," then the rule
|
|
is valid universally, and without any limitation. Our expositions,
|
|
consequently, teach the reality (i.e., the objective validity) of
|
|
space in regard of all which can be presented to us externally as
|
|
object, and at the same time also the ideality of space in regard to
|
|
objects when they are considered by means of reason as things in
|
|
themselves, that is, without reference to the constitution of our
|
|
sensibility. We maintain, therefore, the empirical reality of space in
|
|
regard to all possible external experience, although we must admit its
|
|
transcendental ideality; in other words, that it is nothing, so soon
|
|
as we withdraw the condition upon which the possibility of all
|
|
experience depends and look upon space as something that belongs to
|
|
things in themselves.
|
|
|
|
But, with the exception of space, there is no representation,
|
|
subjective and ref erring to something external to us, which could
|
|
be called objective a priori. For there are no other subjective
|
|
representations from which we can deduce synthetical propositions a
|
|
priori, as we can from the intuition of space. (See SS 3.)
|
|
Therefore, to speak accurately, no ideality whatever belongs to these,
|
|
although they agree in this respect with the representation of
|
|
space, that they belong merely to the subjective nature of the mode of
|
|
sensuous perception; such a mode, for example, as that of sight, of
|
|
hearing, and of feeling, by means of the sensations of colour,
|
|
sound, and heat, but which, because they are only sensations and not
|
|
intuitions, do not of themselves give us the cognition of any
|
|
object, least of all, an a priori cognition. My purpose, in the
|
|
above remark, is merely this: to guard any one against illustrating
|
|
the asserted ideality of space by examples quite insufficient, for
|
|
example, by colour, taste, etc.; for these must be contemplated not as
|
|
properties of things, but only as changes in the subject, changes
|
|
which may be different in different men. For, in such a case, that
|
|
which is originally a mere phenomenon, a rose, for example, is taken
|
|
by the empirical understanding for a thing in itself, though to
|
|
every different eye, in respect of its colour, it may appear
|
|
different. On the contrary, the transcendental conception of phenomena
|
|
in space is a critical admonition, that, in general, nothing which
|
|
is intuited in space is a thing in itself, and that space is not a
|
|
form which belongs as a property to things; but that objects are quite
|
|
unknown to us in themselves, and what we call outward objects, are
|
|
nothing else but mere representations of our sensibility, whose form
|
|
is space, but whose real correlate, the thing in itself, is not
|
|
known by means of these representations, nor ever can be, but
|
|
respecting which, in experience, no inquiry is ever made.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Of Time.
|
|
|
|
SS 5 Metaphysical Exposition of this Conception.
|
|
|
|
1. Time is not an empirical conception. For neither coexistence
|
|
nor succession would be perceived by us, if the representation of time
|
|
did not exist as a foundation a priori. Without this presupposition we
|
|
could not represent to ourselves that things exist together at one and
|
|
the same time, or at different times, that is, contemporaneously, or
|
|
in succession.
|
|
|
|
2. Time is a necessary representation, lying at the foundation of
|
|
all our intuitions. With regard to phenomena in general, we cannot
|
|
think away time from them, and represent them to ourselves as out of
|
|
and unconnected with time, but we can quite well represent to
|
|
ourselves time void of phenomena. Time is therefore given a priori. In
|
|
it alone is all reality of phenomena possible. These may all be
|
|
annihilated in thought, but time itself, as the universal condition of
|
|
their possibility, cannot be so annulled.
|
|
|
|
3. On this necessity a priori is also founded the possibility of
|
|
apodeictic principles of the relations of time, or axioms of time in
|
|
general, such as: "Time has only one dimension," "Different times
|
|
are not coexistent but successive" (as different spaces are not
|
|
successive but coexistent). These principles cannot be derived from
|
|
experience, for it would give neither strict universality, nor
|
|
apodeictic certainty. We should only be able to say, "so common
|
|
experience teaches us," but not "it must be so." They are valid as
|
|
rules, through which, in general, experience is possible; and they
|
|
instruct us respecting experience, and not by means of it.
|
|
|
|
4. Time is not a discursive, or as it is called, general conception,
|
|
but a pure form of the sensuous intuition. Different times are
|
|
merely parts of one and the same time. But the representation which
|
|
can only be given by a single object is an intuition. Besides, the
|
|
proposition that different times cannot be coexistent could not be
|
|
derived from a general conception. For this proposition is
|
|
synthetical, and therefore cannot spring out of conceptions alone.
|
|
It is therefore contained immediately in the intuition and
|
|
representation of time.
|
|
|
|
5. The infinity of time signifies nothing more than that every
|
|
determined quantity of time is possible only through limitations of
|
|
one time lying at the foundation. Consequently, the original
|
|
representation, time, must be given as unlimited. But as the
|
|
determinate representation of the parts of time and of every
|
|
quantity of an object can only be obtained by limitation, the complete
|
|
representation of time must not be furnished by means of
|
|
conceptions, for these contain only partial representations.
|
|
Conceptions, on the contrary, must have immediate intuition for
|
|
their basis.
|
|
|
|
SS 6 Transcendental Exposition of the Conception of Time.
|
|
|
|
I may here refer to what is said above (SS 5, 3), where, for or sake
|
|
of brevity, I have placed under the head of metaphysical exposition,
|
|
that which is properly transcendental. Here I shall add that the
|
|
conception of change, and with it the conception of motion, as
|
|
change of place, is possible only through and in the representation of
|
|
time; that if this representation were not an intuition (internal) a
|
|
priori, no conception, of whatever kind, could render comprehensible
|
|
the possibility of change, in other words, of a conjunction of
|
|
contradictorily opposed predicates in one and the same object, for
|
|
example, the presence of a thing in a place and the non-presence of
|
|
the same thing in the same place. It is only in time that it is
|
|
possible to meet with two contradictorily opposed determinations in
|
|
one thing, that is, after each other. thus our conception of time
|
|
explains the possibility of so much synthetical knowledge a priori, as
|
|
is exhibited in the general doctrine of motion, which is not a
|
|
little fruitful.
|
|
|
|
SS 7 Conclusions from the above Conceptions.
|
|
|
|
(a) Time is not something which subsists of itself, or which inheres
|
|
in things as an objective determination, and therefore remains, when
|
|
abstraction is made of the subjective conditions of the intuition of
|
|
things. For in the former case, it would be something real, yet
|
|
without presenting to any power of perception any real object. In
|
|
the latter case, as an order or determination inherent in things
|
|
themselves, it could not be antecedent to things, as their
|
|
condition, nor discerned or intuited by means of synthetical
|
|
propositions a priori. But all this is quite possible when we regard
|
|
time as merely the subjective condition under which all our intuitions
|
|
take place. For in that case, this form of the inward intuition can be
|
|
represented prior to the objects, and consequently a priori.
|
|
|
|
(b) Time is nothing else than the form of the internal sense, that
|
|
is, of the intuitions of self and of our internal state. For time
|
|
cannot be any determination of outward phenomena. It has to do neither
|
|
with shape nor position; on the contrary, it determines the relation
|
|
of representations in our internal state. And precisely because this
|
|
internal intuition presents to us no shape or form, we endeavour to
|
|
supply this want by analogies, and represent the course of time by a
|
|
line progressing to infinity, the content of which constitutes a
|
|
series which is only of one dimension; and we conclude from the
|
|
properties of this line as to all the properties of time, with this
|
|
single exception, that the parts of the line are coexistent, whilst
|
|
those of time are successive. From this it is clear also that the
|
|
representation of time is itself an intuition, because all its
|
|
relations can be expressed in an external intuition.
|
|
|
|
(c) Time is the formal condition a priori of all phenomena
|
|
whatsoever. Space, as the pure form of external intuition, is
|
|
limited as a condition a priori to external phenomena alone. On the
|
|
other hand, because all representations, whether they have or have not
|
|
external things for their objects, still in themselves, as
|
|
determinations of the mind, belong to our internal state; and
|
|
because this internal state is subject to the formal condition of
|
|
the internal intuition, that is, to time- time is a condition a priori
|
|
of all phenomena whatsoever- the immediate condition of all
|
|
internal, and thereby the mediate condition of all external phenomena.
|
|
If I can say a priori, "All outward phenomena are in space, and
|
|
determined a priori according to the relations of space," I can
|
|
also, from the principle of the internal sense, affirm universally,
|
|
"All phenomena in general, that is, all objects of the senses, are
|
|
in time and stand necessarily in relations of time."
|
|
|
|
If we abstract our internal intuition of ourselves and all
|
|
external intuitions, possible only by virtue of this internal
|
|
intuition and presented to us by our faculty of representation, and
|
|
consequently take objects as they are in themselves, then time is
|
|
nothing. It is only of objective validity in regard to phenomena,
|
|
because these are things which we regard as objects of our senses.
|
|
It no longer objective we, make abstraction of the sensuousness of our
|
|
intuition, in other words, of that mode of representation which is
|
|
peculiar to us, and speak of things in general. Time is therefore
|
|
merely a subjective condition of our (human) intuition (which is
|
|
always sensuous, that is, so far as we are affected by objects), and
|
|
in itself, independently of the mind or subject, is nothing.
|
|
Nevertheless, in respect of all phenomena, consequently of all
|
|
things which come within the sphere of our experience, it is
|
|
necessarily objective. We cannot say, "All things are in time,"
|
|
because in this conception of things in general, we abstract and
|
|
make no mention of any sort of intuition of things. But this is the
|
|
proper condition under which time belongs to our representation of
|
|
objects. If we add the condition to the conception, and say, "All
|
|
things, as phenomena, that is, objects of sensuous intuition, are in
|
|
time," then the proposition has its sound objective validity and
|
|
universality a priori.
|
|
|
|
What we have now set forth teaches, therefore, the empirical reality
|
|
of time; that is, its objective validity in reference to all objects
|
|
which can ever be presented to our senses. And as our intuition is
|
|
always sensuous, no object ever can be presented to us in
|
|
experience, which does not come under the conditions of time. On the
|
|
other hand, we deny to time all claim to absolute reality; that is, we
|
|
deny that it, without having regard to the form of our sensuous
|
|
intuition, absolutely inheres in things as a condition or property.
|
|
Such properties as belong to objects as things in themselves never can
|
|
be presented to us through the medium of the senses. Herein
|
|
consists, therefore, the transcendental ideality of time, according to
|
|
which, if we abstract the subjective conditions of sensuous intuition,
|
|
it is nothing, and cannot be reckoned as subsisting or inhering in
|
|
objects as things in themselves, independently of its relation to
|
|
our intuition. this ideality, like that of space, is not to be
|
|
proved or illustrated by fallacious analogies with sensations, for
|
|
this reason- that in such arguments or illustrations, we make the
|
|
presupposition that the phenomenon, in which such and such
|
|
predicates inhere, has objective reality, while in this case we can
|
|
only find such an objective reality as is itself empirical, that is,
|
|
regards the object as a mere phenomenon. In reference to this subject,
|
|
see the remark in Section I (SS 4)
|
|
|
|
SS 8 Elucidation.
|
|
|
|
Against this theory, which grants empirical reality to time, but
|
|
denies to it absolute and transcendental reality, I have heard from
|
|
intelligent men an objection so unanimously urged that I conclude that
|
|
it must naturally present itself to every reader to whom these
|
|
considerations are novel. It runs thus: "Changes are real" (this the
|
|
continual change in our own representations demonstrates, even
|
|
though the existence of all external phenomena, together with their
|
|
changes, is denied). Now, changes are only possible in time, and
|
|
therefore time must be something real. But there is no difficulty in
|
|
answering this. I grant the whole argument. Time, no doubt, is
|
|
something real, that is, it is the real form of our internal
|
|
intuition. It therefore has subjective reality, in reference to our
|
|
internal experience, that is, I have really the representation of time
|
|
and of my determinations therein. Time, therefore, is not to be
|
|
regarded as an object, but as the mode of representation of myself
|
|
as an object. But if I could intuite myself, or be intuited by another
|
|
being, without this condition of sensibility, then those very
|
|
determinations which we now represent to ourselves as changes, would
|
|
present to us a knowledge in which the representation of time, and
|
|
consequently of change, would not appear. The empirical reality of
|
|
time, therefore, remains, as the condition of all our experience.
|
|
But absolute reality, according to what has been said above, cannot be
|
|
granted it. Time is nothing but the form of our internal intuition.*
|
|
If we take away from it the special condition of our sensibility,
|
|
the conception of time also vanishes; and it inheres not in the
|
|
objects themselves, but solely in the subject (or mind) which intuites
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
*I can indeed say "my representations follow one another, or are
|
|
successive"; but this means only that we are conscious of them as in a
|
|
succession, that is, according to the form of the internal sense.
|
|
Time, therefore, is not a thing in itself, nor is it any objective
|
|
determination pertaining to, or inherent in things.
|
|
|
|
But the reason why this objection is so unanimously brought
|
|
against our doctrine of time, and that too by disputants who cannot
|
|
start any intelligible arguments against the doctrine of the
|
|
ideality of space, is this- they have no hope of demonstrating
|
|
apodeictically the absolute reality of space, because the doctrine
|
|
of idealism is against them, according to which the reality of
|
|
external objects is not capable of any strict proof. On the other
|
|
hand, the reality of the object of our internal sense (that is, myself
|
|
and my internal state) is clear immediately through consciousness. The
|
|
former- external objects in space- might be a mere delusion, but the
|
|
latter- the object of my internal perception- is undeniably real. They
|
|
do not, however, reflect that both, without question of their
|
|
reality as representations, belong only to the genus phenomenon, which
|
|
has always two aspects, the one, the object considered as a thing in
|
|
itself, without regard to the mode of intuiting it, and the nature
|
|
of which remains for this very reason problematical, the other, the
|
|
form of our intuition of the object, which must be sought not in the
|
|
object as a thing in itself, but in the subject to which it appears-
|
|
which form of intuition nevertheless belongs really and necessarily to
|
|
the phenomenal object.
|
|
|
|
Time and space are, therefore, two sources of knowledge, from which,
|
|
a priori, various synthetical cognitions can be drawn. Of this we find
|
|
a striking example in the cognitions of space and its relations, which
|
|
form the foundation of pure mathematics. They are the two pure forms
|
|
of all intuitions, and thereby make synthetical propositions a
|
|
priori possible. But these sources of knowledge being merely
|
|
conditions of our sensibility, do therefore, and as such, strictly
|
|
determine their own range and purpose, in that they do not and
|
|
cannot present objects as things in themselves, but are applicable
|
|
to them solely in so far as they are considered as sensuous phenomena.
|
|
The sphere of phenomena is the only sphere of their validity, and if
|
|
we venture out of this, no further objective use can be made of
|
|
them. For the rest, this formal reality of time and space leaves the
|
|
validity of our empirical knowledge unshaken; for our certainty in
|
|
that respect is equally firm, whether these forms necessarily inhere
|
|
in the things themselves, or only in our intuitions of them. On the
|
|
other hand, those who maintain the absolute reality of time and space,
|
|
whether as essentially subsisting, or only inhering, as modifications,
|
|
in things, must find themselves at utter variance with the
|
|
principles of experience itself. For, if they decide for the first
|
|
view, and make space and time into substances, this being the side
|
|
taken by mathematical natural philosophers, they must admit two
|
|
self-subsisting nonentities, infinite and eternal, which exist (yet
|
|
without there being anything real) for the purpose of containing in
|
|
themselves everything that is real. If they adopt the second view of
|
|
inherence, which is preferred by some metaphysical natural
|
|
philosophers, and regard space and time as relations (contiguity in
|
|
space or succession in time), abstracted from experience, though
|
|
represented confusedly in this state of separation, they find
|
|
themselves in that case necessitated to deny the validity of
|
|
mathematical doctrines a priori in reference to real things (for
|
|
example, in space)- at all events their apodeictic certainty. For such
|
|
certainty cannot be found in an a posteriori proposition; and the
|
|
conceptions a priori of space and time are, according to this opinion,
|
|
mere creations of the imagination, having their source really in
|
|
experience, inasmuch as, out of relations abstracted from
|
|
experience, imagination has made up something which contains,
|
|
indeed, general statements of these relations, yet of which no
|
|
application can be made without the restrictions attached thereto by
|
|
nature. The former of these parties gains this advantage, that they
|
|
keep the sphere of phenomena free for mathematical science. On the
|
|
other hand, these very conditions (space and time) embarrass them
|
|
greatly, when the understanding endeavours to pass the limits of
|
|
that sphere. The latter has, indeed, this advantage, that the
|
|
representations of space and time do not come in their way when they
|
|
wish to judge of objects, not as phenomena, but merely in their
|
|
relation to the understanding. Devoid, however, of a true and
|
|
objectively valid a priori intuition, they can neither furnish any
|
|
basis for the possibility of mathematical cognitions a priori, nor
|
|
bring the propositions of experience into necessary accordance with
|
|
those of mathematics. In our theory of the true nature of these two
|
|
original forms of the sensibility, both difficulties are surmounted.
|
|
|
|
In conclusion, that transcendental aesthetic cannot contain any more
|
|
than these two elements- space and time, is sufficiently obvious
|
|
from the fact that all other conceptions appertaining to
|
|
sensibility, even that of motion, which unites in itself both
|
|
elements, presuppose something empirical. Motion, for example,
|
|
presupposes the perception of something movable. But space
|
|
considered in itself contains nothing movable, consequently motion
|
|
must be something which is found in space only through experience-
|
|
in other words, an empirical datum. In like manner, transcendental
|
|
aesthetic cannot number the conception of change among its data a
|
|
priori; for time itself does not change, but only something which is
|
|
in time. To acquire the conception of change, therefore, the
|
|
perception of some existing object and of the succession of its
|
|
determinations, in one word, experience, is necessary.
|
|
|
|
SS 9 General Remarks on Transcendental Aesthetic.
|
|
|
|
I. In order to prevent any misunderstanding, it will be requisite,
|
|
in the first place, to recapitulate, as clearly as possible, what
|
|
our opinion is with respect to the fundamental nature of our
|
|
sensuous cognition in general. We have intended, then, to say that all
|
|
our intuition is nothing but the representation of phenomena; that the
|
|
things which we intuite, are not in themselves the same as our
|
|
representations of them in intuition, nor are their relations in
|
|
themselves so constituted as they appear to us; and that if we take
|
|
away the subject, or even only the subjective constitution of our
|
|
senses in general, then not only the nature and relations of objects
|
|
in space and time, but even space and time themselves disappear; and
|
|
that these, as phenomena, cannot exist in themselves, but only in
|
|
us. What may be the nature of objects considered as things in
|
|
themselves and without reference to the receptivity of our sensibility
|
|
is quite unknown to us. We know nothing more than our mode of
|
|
perceiving them, which is peculiar to us, and which, though not of
|
|
necessity pertaining to every animated being, is so to the whole human
|
|
race. With this alone we have to do. Space and time are the pure forms
|
|
thereof; sensation the matter. The former alone can we cognize a
|
|
priori, that is, antecedent to all actual perception; and for this
|
|
reason such cognition is called pure intuition. The latter is that
|
|
in our cognition which is called cognition a posteriori, that is,
|
|
empirical intuition. The former appertain absolutely and necessarily
|
|
to our sensibility, of whatsoever kind our sensations may be; the
|
|
latter may be of very diversified character. Supposing that we
|
|
should carry our empirical intuition even to the very highest degree
|
|
of clearness, we should not thereby advance one step nearer to a
|
|
knowledge of the constitution of objects as things in themselves.
|
|
For we could only, at best, arrive at a complete cognition of our
|
|
own mode of intuition, that is of our sensibility, and this always
|
|
under the conditions originally attaching to the subject, namely,
|
|
the conditions of space and time; while the question: "What are
|
|
objects considered as things in themselves?" remains unanswerable even
|
|
after the most thorough examination of the phenomenal world.
|
|
|
|
To say, then, that all our sensibility is nothing but the confused
|
|
representation of things containing exclusively that which belongs
|
|
to them as things in themselves, and this under an accumulation of
|
|
characteristic marks and partial representations which we cannot
|
|
distinguish in consciousness, is a falsification of the conception
|
|
of sensibility and phenomenization, which renders our whole doctrine
|
|
thereof empty and useless. The difference between a confused and a
|
|
clear representation is merely logical and has nothing to do with
|
|
content. No doubt the conception of right, as employed by a sound
|
|
understanding, contains all that the most subtle investigation could
|
|
unfold from it, although, in the ordinary practical use of the word,
|
|
we are not conscious of the manifold representations comprised in
|
|
the conception. But we cannot for this reason assert that the ordinary
|
|
conception is a sensuous one, containing a mere phenomenon, for
|
|
right cannot appear as a phenomenon; but the conception of it lies
|
|
in the understanding, and represents a property (the moral property)
|
|
of actions, which belongs to them in themselves. On the other hand,
|
|
the representation in intuition of a body contains nothing which could
|
|
belong to an object considered as a thing in itself, but merely the
|
|
phenomenon or appearance of something, and the mode in which we are
|
|
affected by that appearance; and this receptivity of our faculty of
|
|
cognition is called sensibility, and remains toto caelo different from
|
|
the cognition of an object in itself, even though we should examine
|
|
the content of the phenomenon to the very bottom.
|
|
|
|
It must be admitted that the Leibnitz-Wolfian philosophy has
|
|
assigned an entirely erroneous point of view to all investigations
|
|
into the nature and origin of our cognitions, inasmuch as it regards
|
|
the distinction between the sensuous and the intellectual as merely
|
|
logical, whereas it is plainly transcendental, and concerns not merely
|
|
the clearness or obscurity, but the content and origin of both. For
|
|
the faculty of sensibility not only does not present us with an
|
|
indistinct and confused cognition of objects as things in
|
|
themselves, but, in fact, gives us no knowledge of these at all. On
|
|
the contrary, so soon as we abstract in thought our own subjective
|
|
nature, the object represented, with the properties ascribed to it
|
|
by sensuous intuition, entirely disappears, because it was only this
|
|
subjective nature that determined the form of the object as a
|
|
phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
In phenomena, we commonly, indeed, distinguish that which
|
|
essentially belongs to the intuition of them, and is valid for the
|
|
sensuous faculty of every human being, from that which belongs to
|
|
the same intuition accidentally, as valid not for the sensuous faculty
|
|
in general, but for a particular state or organization of this or that
|
|
sense. Accordingly, we are accustomed to say that the former is a
|
|
cognition which represents the object itself, whilst the latter
|
|
presents only a particular appearance or phenomenon thereof. This
|
|
distinction, however, is only empirical. If we stop here (as is
|
|
usual), and do not regard the empirical intuition as itself a mere
|
|
phenomenon (as we ought to do), in which nothing that can appertain to
|
|
a thing in itself is to be found, our transcendental distinction is
|
|
lost, and we believe that we cognize objects as things in
|
|
themselves, although in the whole range of the sensuous world,
|
|
investigate the nature of its objects as profoundly as we may, we have
|
|
to do with nothing but phenomena. Thus, we call the rainbow a mere
|
|
appearance of phenomenon in a sunny shower, and the rain, the
|
|
reality or thing in itself; and this is right enough, if we understand
|
|
the latter conception in a merely physical sense, that is, as that
|
|
which in universal experience, and under whatever conditions of
|
|
sensuous perception, is known in intuition to be so and so determined,
|
|
and not otherwise. But if we consider this empirical datum
|
|
generally, and inquire, without reference to its accordance with all
|
|
our senses, whether there can be discovered in it aught which
|
|
represents an object as a thing in itself (the raindrops of course are
|
|
not such, for they are, as phenomena, empirical objects), the question
|
|
of the relation of the representation to the object is transcendental;
|
|
and not only are the raindrops mere phenomena, but even their circular
|
|
form, nay, the space itself through which they fall, is nothing in
|
|
itself, but both are mere modifications or fundamental dispositions of
|
|
our sensuous intuition, whilst the transcendental object remains for
|
|
us utterly unknown.
|
|
|
|
The second important concern of our aesthetic is that it does not
|
|
obtain favour merely as a plausible hypothesis, but possess as
|
|
undoubted a character of certainty as can be demanded of any theory
|
|
which is to serve for an organon. In order fully to convince the
|
|
reader of this certainty, we shall select a case which will serve to
|
|
make its validity apparent, and also to illustrate what has been
|
|
said in SS 3.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, then, that space and time are in themselves objective,
|
|
and conditions of the- possibility of objects as things in themselves.
|
|
In the first place, it is evident that both present us, with very many
|
|
apodeictic and synthetic propositions a priori, but especially
|
|
space- and for this reason we shall prefer it for investigation at
|
|
present. As the propositions of geometry are cognized synthetically
|
|
a priori, and with apodeictic certainty, I inquire: Whence do you
|
|
obtain propositions of this kind, and on what basis does the
|
|
understanding rest, in order to arrive at such absolutely necessary
|
|
and universally valid truths?
|
|
|
|
There is no other way than through intuitions or conceptions, as
|
|
such; and these are given either a priori or a posteriori. The latter,
|
|
namely, empirical conceptions, together with the empirical intuition
|
|
on which they are founded, cannot afford any synthetical
|
|
proposition, except such as is itself also empirical, that is, a
|
|
proposition of experience. But an empirical proposition cannot possess
|
|
the qualities of necessity and absolute universality, which,
|
|
nevertheless, are the characteristics of all geometrical propositions.
|
|
As to the first and only means to arrive at such cognitions, namely,
|
|
through mere conceptions or intuitions a priori, it is quite clear
|
|
that from mere conceptions no synthetical cognitions, but only
|
|
analytical ones, can be obtained. Take, for example, the
|
|
proposition: "Two straight lines cannot enclose a space, and with
|
|
these alone no figure is possible," and try to deduce it from the
|
|
conception of a straight line and the number two; or take the
|
|
proposition: "It is possible to construct a figure with three straight
|
|
lines," and endeavour, in like manner, to deduce it from the mere
|
|
conception of a straight line and the number three. All your
|
|
endeavours are in vain, and you find yourself forced to have
|
|
recourse to intuition, as, in fact, geometry always does. You
|
|
therefore give yourself an object in intuition. But of what kind is
|
|
this intuition? Is it a pure a priori, or is it an empirical
|
|
intuition? If the latter, then neither an universally valid, much less
|
|
an apodeictic proposition can arise from it, for experience never
|
|
can give us any such proposition. You must, therefore, give yourself
|
|
an object a priori in intuition, and upon that ground your synthetical
|
|
proposition. Now if there did not exist within you a faculty of
|
|
intuition a priori; if this subjective condition were not in respect
|
|
to its form also the universal condition a priori under which alone
|
|
the object of this external intuition is itself possible; if the
|
|
object (that is, the triangle) were something in itself, without
|
|
relation to you the subject; how could you affirm that that which lies
|
|
necessarily in your subjective conditions in order to construct a
|
|
triangle, must also necessarily belong to the triangle in itself?
|
|
For to your conceptions of three lines, you could not add anything new
|
|
(that is, the figure); which, therefore, must necessarily be found
|
|
in the object, because the object is given before your cognition,
|
|
and not by means of it. If, therefore, space (and time also) were
|
|
not a mere form of your intuition, which contains conditions a priori,
|
|
under which alone things can become external objects for you, and
|
|
without which subjective conditions the objects are in themselves
|
|
nothing, you could not construct any synthetical proposition
|
|
whatsoever regarding external objects. It is therefore not merely
|
|
possible or probable, but indubitably certain, that space and time, as
|
|
the necessary conditions of all our external and internal
|
|
experience, are merely subjective conditions of all our intuitions, in
|
|
relation to which all objects are therefore mere phenomena, and not
|
|
things in themselves, presented to us in this particular manner. And
|
|
for this reason, in respect to the form of phenomena, much may be said
|
|
a priori, whilst of the thing in itself, which may lie at the
|
|
foundation of these phenomena, it is impossible to say anything.
|
|
|
|
II. In confirmation of this theory of the ideality of the external
|
|
as well as internal sense, consequently of all objects of sense, as
|
|
mere phenomena, we may especially remark that all in our cognition
|
|
that belongs to intuition contains nothing more than mere relations.
|
|
(The feelings of pain and pleasure, and the will, which are not
|
|
cognitions, are excepted.) The relations, to wit, of place in an
|
|
intuition (extension), change of place (motion), and laws according to
|
|
which this change is determined (moving forces). That, however,
|
|
which is present in this or that place, or any operation going on,
|
|
or result taking place in the things themselves, with the exception of
|
|
change of place, is not given to us by intuition. Now by means of mere
|
|
relations, a thing cannot be known in itself; and it may therefore
|
|
be fairly concluded, that, as through the external sense nothing but
|
|
mere representations of relations are given us, the said external
|
|
sense in its representation can contain only the relation of the
|
|
object to the subject, but not the essential nature of the object as a
|
|
thing in itself.
|
|
|
|
The same is the case with the internal intuition, not only
|
|
because, in the internal intuition, the representation of the external
|
|
senses constitutes the material with which the mind is occupied; but
|
|
because time, in which we place, and which itself antecedes the
|
|
consciousness of, these representations in experience, and which, as
|
|
the formal condition of the mode according to which objects are placed
|
|
in the mind, lies at the foundation of them, contains relations of the
|
|
successive, the coexistent, and of that which always must be
|
|
coexistent with succession, the permanent. Now that which, as
|
|
representation, can antecede every exercise of thought (of an object),
|
|
is intuition; and when it contains nothing but relations, it is the
|
|
form of the intuition, which, as it presents us with no
|
|
representation, except in so far as something is placed in the mind,
|
|
can be nothing else than the mode in which the mind is affected by its
|
|
own activity, to wit- its presenting to itself representations,
|
|
consequently the mode in which the mind is affected by itself; that
|
|
is, it can be nothing but an internal sense in respect to its form.
|
|
Everything that is represented through the medium of sense is so far
|
|
phenomenal; consequently, we must either refuse altogether to admit an
|
|
internal sense, or the subject, which is the object of that sense,
|
|
could only be represented by it as phenomenon, and not as it would
|
|
judge of itself, if its intuition were pure spontaneous activity, that
|
|
is, were intellectual. The difficulty here lies wholly in the
|
|
question: How can the subject have an internal intuition of itself?
|
|
But this difficulty is common to every theory. The consciousness of
|
|
self (apperception) is the simple representation of the "ego"; and
|
|
if by means of that representation alone, all the manifold
|
|
representations in the subject were spontaneously given, then our
|
|
internal intuition would be intellectual. This consciousness in man
|
|
requires an internal perception of the manifold representations
|
|
which are previously given in the subject; and the manner in which
|
|
these representations are given in the mind without spontaneity, must,
|
|
on account of this difference (the want of spontaneity), be called
|
|
sensibility. If the faculty of self-consciousness is to apprehend what
|
|
lies in the mind, it must all act that and can in this way alone
|
|
produce an intuition of self. But the form of this intuition, which
|
|
lies in the original constitution of the mind, determines, in the
|
|
representation of time, the manner in which the manifold
|
|
representations are to combine themselves in the mind; since the
|
|
subject intuites itself, not as it would represent itself
|
|
immediately and spontaneously, but according to the manner in which
|
|
the mind is internally affected, consequently, as it appears, and
|
|
not as it is.
|
|
|
|
III. When we say that the intuition of external objects, and also
|
|
the self-intuition of the subject, represent both, objects and
|
|
subject, in space and time, as they affect our senses, that is, as
|
|
they appear- this is by no means equivalent to asserting that these
|
|
objects are mere illusory appearances. For when we speak of things
|
|
as phenomena, the objects, nay, even the properties which we ascribe
|
|
to them, are looked upon as really given; only that, in so far as this
|
|
or that property depends upon the mode of intuition of the subject, in
|
|
the relation of the given object to the subject, the object as
|
|
phenomenon is to be distinguished from the object as a thing in
|
|
itself. Thus I do not say that bodies seem or appear to be external to
|
|
me, or that my soul seems merely to be given in my self-consciousness,
|
|
although I maintain that the properties of space and time, in
|
|
conformity to which I set both, as the condition of their existence,
|
|
abide in my mode of intuition, and not in the objects in themselves.
|
|
It would be my own fault, if out of that which I should reckon as
|
|
phenomenon, I made mere illusory appearance.* But this will not
|
|
happen, because of our principle of the ideality of all sensuous
|
|
intuitions. On the contrary, if we ascribe objective reality to
|
|
these forms of representation, it becomes impossible to avoid changing
|
|
everything into mere appearance. For if we regard space and time as
|
|
properties, which must be found in objects as things in themselves, as
|
|
sine quibus non of the possibility of their existence, and reflect
|
|
on the absurdities in which we then find ourselves involved,
|
|
inasmuch as we are compelled to admit the existence of two infinite
|
|
things, which are nevertheless not substances, nor anything really
|
|
inhering in substances, nay, to admit that they are the necessary
|
|
conditions of the existence of all things, and moreover, that they
|
|
must continue to exist, although all existing things were annihilated-
|
|
we cannot blame the good Berkeley for degrading bodies to mere
|
|
illusory appearances. Nay, even our own existence, which would in this
|
|
case depend upon the self-existent reality of such a mere nonentity as
|
|
time, would necessarily be changed with it into mere appearance- an
|
|
absurdity which no one has as yet been guilty of.
|
|
|
|
*The predicates of the phenomenon can be affixed to the object
|
|
itself in relation to our sensuous faculty; for example, the red
|
|
colour or the perfume to the rose. But (illusory) appearance never can
|
|
be attributed as a predicate to an object, for this very reason,
|
|
that it attributes to this object in itself that which belongs to it
|
|
only in relation to our sensuous faculty, or to the subject in
|
|
general, e.g., the two handles which were formerly ascribed to Saturn.
|
|
That which is never to be found in the object itself, but always in
|
|
the relation of the object to the subject, and which moreover is
|
|
inseparable from our representation of the object, we denominate
|
|
phenomenon. Thus the predicates of space and time are rightly
|
|
attributed to objects of the senses as such, and in this there is no
|
|
illusion. On the contrary, if I ascribe redness of the rose as a thing
|
|
in itself, or to Saturn his handles, or extension to all external
|
|
objects, considered as things in themselves, without regarding the
|
|
determinate relation of these objects to the subject, and without
|
|
limiting my judgement to that relation- then, and then only, arises
|
|
illusion.
|
|
|
|
IV. In natural theology, where we think of an object- God- which
|
|
never can be an object of intuition to us, and even to himself can
|
|
never be an object of sensuous intuition, we carefully avoid
|
|
attributing to his intuition the conditions of space and time- and
|
|
intuition all his cognition must be, and not thought, which always
|
|
includes limitation. But with what right can we do this if we make
|
|
them forms of objects as things in themselves, and such, moreover,
|
|
as would continue to exist as a priori conditions of the existence
|
|
of things, even though the things themselves were annihilated? For
|
|
as conditions of all existence in general, space and time must be
|
|
conditions of the existence of the Supreme Being also. But if we do
|
|
not thus make them objective forms of all things, there is no other
|
|
way left than to make them subjective forms of our mode of
|
|
intuition- external and internal; which is called sensuous, because it
|
|
is not primitive, that is, is not such as gives in itself the
|
|
existence of the object of the intuition (a mode of intuition which,
|
|
so far as we can judge, can belong only to the Creator), but is
|
|
dependent on the existence of the object, is possible, therefore, only
|
|
on condition that the representative faculty of the subject is
|
|
affected by the object.
|
|
|
|
It is, moreover, not necessary that we should limit the mode of
|
|
intuition in space and time to the sensuous faculty of man. It may
|
|
well be that all finite thinking beings must necessarily in this
|
|
respect agree with man (though as to this we cannot decide), but
|
|
sensibility does not on account of this universality cease to be
|
|
sensibility, for this very reason, that it is a deduced (intuitus
|
|
derivativus), and not an original (intuitus originarius), consequently
|
|
not an intellectual intuition, and this intuition, as such, for
|
|
reasons above mentioned, seems to belong solely to the Supreme
|
|
Being, but never to a being dependent, quoad its existence, as well as
|
|
its intuition (which its existence determines and limits relatively to
|
|
given objects). This latter remark, however, must be taken only as
|
|
an illustration, and not as any proof of the truth of our
|
|
aesthetical theory.
|
|
|
|
SS 10 Conclusion of the Transcendental Aesthetic.
|
|
|
|
We have now completely before us one part of the solution of the
|
|
grand general problem of transcendental philosophy, namely, the
|
|
question: "How are synthetical propositions a priori possible?" That
|
|
is to say, we have shown that we are in possession of pure a priori
|
|
intuitions, namely, space and time, in which we find, when in a
|
|
judgement a priori we pass out beyond the given conception,
|
|
something which is not discoverable in that conception, but is
|
|
certainly found a priori in the intuition which corresponds to the
|
|
conception, and can be united synthetically with it. But the
|
|
judgements which these pure intuitions enable us to make, never
|
|
reach farther than to objects of the senses, and are valid only for
|
|
objects of possible experience.
|
|
INTRO
|
|
|
|
SECOND PART. TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC.
|
|
|
|
INTRODUCTION. Idea of a Transcendental Logic.
|
|
|
|
I. Of Logic in General.
|
|
|
|
Our knowledge springs from two main sources in the mind, first of
|
|
which is the faculty or power of receiving representations
|
|
(receptivity for impressions); the second is the power of cognizing by
|
|
means of these representations (spontaneity in the production of
|
|
conceptions). Through the first an object is given to us; through
|
|
the second, it is, in relation to the representation (which is a
|
|
mere determination of the mind), thought. Intuition and conceptions
|
|
constitute, therefore, the elements of all our knowledge, so that
|
|
neither conceptions without an intuition in some way corresponding
|
|
to them, nor intuition without conceptions, can afford us a cognition.
|
|
Both are either pure or empirical. They are. empirical, when sensation
|
|
(which presupposes the actual presence of the object) is contained
|
|
in them; and pure, when no sensation is mixed with the representation.
|
|
Sensations we may call the matter of sensuous cognition. Pure
|
|
intuition consequently contains merely the form under which
|
|
something is intuited, and pure conception only the form of the
|
|
thought of an object. Only pure intuitions and pure conceptions are
|
|
possible a priori; the empirical only a posteriori.
|
|
|
|
We apply the term sensibility to the receptivity of the mind for
|
|
impressions, in so far as it is in some way affected; and, on the
|
|
other hand, we call the faculty of spontaneously producing
|
|
representations, or the spontaneity of cognition, understanding. Our
|
|
nature is so constituted that intuition with us never can be other
|
|
than sensuous, that is, it contains only the mode in which we are
|
|
affected by objects. On the other hand, the faculty of thinking the
|
|
object of sensuous intuition is the understanding. Neither of these
|
|
faculties has a preference over the other. Without the sensuous
|
|
faculty no object would be given to us, and without the
|
|
understanding no object would be thought. Thoughts without content are
|
|
void; intuitions without conceptions, blind. Hence it is as
|
|
necessary for the mind to make its conceptions sensuous (that is, to
|
|
join to them the object in intuition), as to make its intuitions
|
|
intelligible (that is, to bring them under conceptions). Neither of
|
|
these faculties can exchange its proper function. Understanding cannot
|
|
intuite, and the sensuous faculty cannot think. in no other way than
|
|
from the united operation of both, can knowledge arise. But no one
|
|
ought, on this account, to overlook the difference of the elements
|
|
contributed by each; we have rather great reason carefully to separate
|
|
and distinguish them. We therefore distinguish the science of the laws
|
|
of sensibility, that is, aesthetic, from the science of the laws of
|
|
the understanding, that is, logic.
|
|
|
|
Now, logic in its turn may be considered as twofold- namely, as
|
|
logic of the general, or of the particular use of the understanding.
|
|
The first contains the absolutely necessary laws of thought, without
|
|
which no use whatsoever of the understanding is possible, and gives
|
|
laws therefore to the understanding, without regard to the
|
|
difference of objects on which it may be employed. The logic of the
|
|
particular use of the understanding contains the laws of correct
|
|
thinking upon a particular class of objects. The former may be
|
|
called elemental logic- the latter, the organon of this or that
|
|
particular science. The latter is for the most part employed in the
|
|
schools, as a propaedeutic to the sciences, although, indeed,
|
|
according to the course of human reason, it is the last thing we
|
|
arrive at, when the science has been already matured, and needs only
|
|
the finishing touches towards its correction and completion; for our
|
|
knowledge of the objects of our attempted science must be tolerably
|
|
extensive and complete before we can indicate the laws by which a
|
|
science of these objects can be established.
|
|
|
|
General logic is again either pure or applied. In the former, we
|
|
abstract all the empirical conditions under which the understanding is
|
|
exercised; for example, the influence of the senses, the play of the
|
|
fantasy or imagination, the laws of the memory, the force of habit, of
|
|
inclination, etc., consequently also, the sources of prejudice- in a
|
|
word, we abstract all causes from which particular cognitions arise,
|
|
because these causes regard the understanding under certain
|
|
circumstances of its application, and, to the knowledge of them
|
|
experience is required. Pure general logic has to do, therefore,
|
|
merely with pure a priori principles, and is a canon of
|
|
understanding and reason, but only in respect of the formal part of
|
|
their use, be the content what it may, empirical or transcendental.
|
|
General logic is called applied, when it is directed to the laws of
|
|
the use of the understanding, under the subjective empirical
|
|
conditions which psychology teaches us. It has therefore empirical
|
|
principles, although, at the same time, it is in so far general,
|
|
that it applies to the exercise of the understanding, without regard
|
|
to the difference of objects. On this account, moreover, it is neither
|
|
a canon of the understanding in general, nor an organon of a
|
|
particular science, but merely a cathartic of the human understanding.
|
|
|
|
In general logic, therefore, that part which constitutes pure
|
|
logic must be carefully distinguished from that which constitutes
|
|
applied (though still general) logic. The former alone is properly
|
|
science, although short and dry, as the methodical exposition of an
|
|
elemental doctrine of the understanding ought to be. In this,
|
|
therefore, logicians must always bear in mind two rules:
|
|
|
|
1. As general logic, it makes abstraction of all content of the
|
|
cognition of the understanding, and of the difference of objects,
|
|
and has to do with nothing but the mere form of thought.
|
|
|
|
2. As pure logic, it has no empirical principles, and consequently
|
|
draws nothing (contrary to the common persuasion) from psychology,
|
|
which therefore has no influence on the canon of the understanding. It
|
|
is a demonstrated doctrine, and everything in it must be certain
|
|
completely a priori.
|
|
|
|
What I called applied logic (contrary to the common acceptation of
|
|
this term, according to which it should contain certain exercises
|
|
for the scholar, for which pure logic gives the rules), is a
|
|
representation of the understanding, and of the rules of its necessary
|
|
employment in concreto, that is to say, under the accidental
|
|
conditions of the subject, which may either hinder or promote this
|
|
employment, and which are all given only empirically. Thus applied
|
|
logic treats of attention, its impediments and consequences, of the
|
|
origin of error, of the state of doubt, hesitation, conviction,
|
|
etc., and to it is related pure general logic in the same way that
|
|
pure morality, which contains only the necessary moral laws of a
|
|
free will, is related to practical ethics, which considers these
|
|
laws under all the impediments of feelings, inclinations, and passions
|
|
to which men are more or less subjected, and which never can furnish
|
|
us with a true and demonstrated science, because it, as well as
|
|
applied logic, requires empirical and psychological principles.
|
|
|
|
II. Of Transcendental Logic.
|
|
|
|
General logic, as we have seen, makes abstraction of all content
|
|
of cognition, that is, of all relation of cognition to its object, and
|
|
regards only the logical form in the relation of cognitions to each
|
|
other, that is, the form of thought in general. But as we have both
|
|
pure and empirical intuitions (as transcendental aesthetic proves), in
|
|
like manner a distinction might be drawn between pure and empirical
|
|
thought (of objects). In this case, there would exist a kind of logic,
|
|
in which we should not make abstraction of all content of cognition;
|
|
for or logic which should comprise merely the laws of pure thought (of
|
|
an object), would of course exclude all those cognitions which were of
|
|
empirical content. This kind of logic would also examine the origin of
|
|
our cognitions of objects, so far as that origin cannot be ascribed to
|
|
the objects themselves; while, on the contrary, general logic has
|
|
nothing to do with the origin of our cognitions, but contemplates
|
|
our representations, be they given primitively a priori in
|
|
ourselves, or be they only of empirical origin, solely according to
|
|
the laws which the understanding observes in employing them in the
|
|
process of thought, in relation to each other. Consequently, general
|
|
logic treats of the form of the understanding only, which can be
|
|
applied to representations, from whatever source they may have arisen.
|
|
|
|
And here I shall make a remark, which the reader must bear well in
|
|
mind in the course of the following considerations, to wit, that not
|
|
every cognition a priori, but only those through which we cognize that
|
|
and how certain representations (intuitions or conceptions) are
|
|
applied or are possible only a priori; that is to say, the a priori
|
|
possibility of cognition and the a priori use of it are
|
|
transcendental. Therefore neither is space, nor any a priori
|
|
geometrical determination of space, a transcendental Representation,
|
|
but only the knowledge that such a representation is not of
|
|
empirical origin, and the possibility of its relating to objects of
|
|
experience, although itself a priori, can be called transcendental. So
|
|
also, the application of space to objects in general would be
|
|
transcendental; but if it be limited to objects of sense it is
|
|
empirical. Thus, the distinction of the transcendental and empirical
|
|
belongs only to the critique of cognitions, and does not concern the
|
|
relation of these to their object.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, in the expectation that there may perhaps be
|
|
conceptions which relate a priori to objects, not as pure or
|
|
sensuous intuitions, but merely as acts of pure thought (which are
|
|
therefore conceptions, but neither of empirical nor aesthetical
|
|
origin)- in this expectation, I say, we form to ourselves, by
|
|
anticipation, the idea of a science of pure understanding and rational
|
|
cognition, by means of which we may cogitate objects entirely a
|
|
priori. A science of this kind, which should determine the origin, the
|
|
extent, and the objective validity of such cognitions, must be
|
|
called transcendental logic, because it has not, like general logic,
|
|
to do with the laws of understanding and reason in relation to
|
|
empirical as well as pure rational cognitions without distinction, but
|
|
concerns itself with these only in an a priori relation to objects.
|
|
|
|
III. Of the Division of General Logic into Analytic and Dialectic.
|
|
|
|
The old question with which people sought to push logicians into a
|
|
corner, so that they must either have recourse to pitiful sophisms
|
|
or confess their ignorance, and consequently the vanity of their whole
|
|
art, is this: "What is truth?" The definition of the word truth, to
|
|
wit, "the accordance of the cognition with its object," is presupposed
|
|
in the question; but we desire to be told, in the answer to it, what
|
|
is the universal and secure criterion of the truth of every cognition.
|
|
|
|
To know what questions we may reasonably propose is in itself a
|
|
strong evidence of sagacity and intelligence. For if a question be
|
|
in itself absurd and unsusceptible of a rational answer, it is
|
|
attended with the danger- not to mention the shame that falls upon the
|
|
person who proposes it- of seducing the unguarded listener into making
|
|
absurd answers, and we are presented with the ridiculous spectacle
|
|
of one (as the ancients said) "milking the he-goat, and the other
|
|
holding a sieve."
|
|
|
|
If truth consists in the accordance of a cognition with its
|
|
object, this object must be, ipso facto, distinguished from all
|
|
others; for a cognition is false if it does not accord with the object
|
|
to which it relates, although it contains something which may be
|
|
affirmed of other objects. Now an universal criterion of truth would
|
|
be that which is valid for all cognitions, without distinction of
|
|
their objects. But it is evident that since, in the case of such a
|
|
criterion, we make abstraction of all the content of a cognition (that
|
|
is, of all relation to its object), and truth relates precisely to
|
|
this content, it must be utterly absurd to ask for a mark of the truth
|
|
of this content of cognition; and that, accordingly, a sufficient, and
|
|
at the same time universal, test of truth cannot possibly be found. As
|
|
we have already termed the content of a cognition its matter, we shall
|
|
say: "Of the truth of our cognitions in respect of their matter, no
|
|
universal test can be demanded, because such a demand is
|
|
self-contradictory."
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, with regard to our cognition in respect of its
|
|
mere form (excluding all content), it is equally manifest that
|
|
logic, in so far as it exhibits the universal and necessary laws of
|
|
the understanding, must in these very laws present us with criteria of
|
|
truth. Whatever contradicts these rules is false, because thereby
|
|
the understanding is made to contradict its own universal laws of
|
|
thought; that is, to contradict itself. These criteria, however, apply
|
|
solely to the form of truth, that is, of thought in general, and in so
|
|
far they are perfectly accurate, yet not sufficient. For although a
|
|
cognition may be perfectly accurate as to logical form, that is, not
|
|
self-contradictory, it is notwithstanding quite possible that it may
|
|
not stand in agreement with its object. Consequently, the merely
|
|
logical criterion of truth, namely, the accordance of a cognition with
|
|
the universal and formal laws of understanding and reason, is
|
|
nothing more than the conditio sine qua non, or negative condition
|
|
of all truth. Farther than this logic cannot go, and the error which
|
|
depends not on the form, but on the content of the cognition, it has
|
|
no test to discover.
|
|
|
|
General logic, then, resolves the whole formal business of
|
|
understanding and reason into its elements, and exhibits them as
|
|
principles of all logical judging of our cognitions. This part of
|
|
logic may, therefore, be called analytic, and is at least the negative
|
|
test of truth, because all cognitions must first of an be estimated
|
|
and tried according to these laws before we proceed to investigate
|
|
them in respect of their content, in order to discover whether they
|
|
contain positive truth in regard to their object. Because, however,
|
|
the mere form of a cognition, accurately as it may accord with logical
|
|
laws, is insufficient to supply us with material (objective) truth, no
|
|
one, by means of logic alone, can venture to predicate anything of
|
|
or decide concerning objects, unless he has obtained, independently of
|
|
logic, well-grounded information about them, in order afterwards to
|
|
examine, according to logical laws, into the use and connection, in
|
|
a cohering whole, of that information, or, what is still better,
|
|
merely to test it by them. Notwithstanding, there lies so seductive
|
|
a charm in the possession of a specious art like this- an art which
|
|
gives to all our cognitions the form of the understanding, although
|
|
with respect to the content thereof we may be sadly deficient- that
|
|
general logic, which is merely a canon of judgement, has been employed
|
|
as an organon for the actual production, or rather for the semblance
|
|
of production, of objective assertions, and has thus been grossly
|
|
misapplied. Now general logic, in its assumed character of organon, is
|
|
called dialectic.
|
|
|
|
Different as are the significations in which the ancients used
|
|
this term for a science or an art, we may safely infer, from their
|
|
actual employment of it, that with them it was nothing else than a
|
|
logic of illusion- a sophistical art for giving ignorance, nay, even
|
|
intentional sophistries, the colouring of truth, in which the
|
|
thoroughness of procedure which logic requires was imitated, and their
|
|
topic employed to cloak the empty pretensions. Now it may be taken
|
|
as a safe and useful warning, that general logic, considered as an
|
|
organon, must always be a logic of illusion, that is, be
|
|
dialectical, for, as it teaches us nothing whatever respecting the
|
|
content of our cognitions, but merely the formal conditions of their
|
|
accordance with the understanding, which do not relate to and are
|
|
quite indifferent in respect of objects, any attempt to employ it as
|
|
an instrument (organon) in order to extend and enlarge the range of
|
|
our knowledge must end in mere prating; any one being able to maintain
|
|
or oppose, with some appearance of truth, any single assertion
|
|
whatever.
|
|
|
|
Such instruction is quite unbecoming the dignity of philosophy.
|
|
For these reasons we have chosen to denominate this part of logic
|
|
dialectic, in the sense of a critique of dialectical illusion, and
|
|
we wish the term to be so understood in this place.
|
|
|
|
IV. Of the Division of Transcendental Logic into Transcendental
|
|
|
|
Analytic and Dialectic.
|
|
|
|
In transcendental logic we isolate the understanding (as in
|
|
transcendental aesthetic the sensibility) and select from our
|
|
cognition merely that part of thought which has its origin in the
|
|
understanding alone. The exercise of this pure cognition, however,
|
|
depends upon this as its condition, that objects to which it may be
|
|
applied be given to us in intuition, for without intuition the whole
|
|
of our cognition is without objects, and is therefore quite void. That
|
|
part of transcendental logic, then, which treats of the elements of
|
|
pure cognition of the understanding, and of the principles without
|
|
which no object at all can be thought, is transcendental analytic, and
|
|
at the same time a logic of truth. For no cognition can contradict it,
|
|
without losing at the same time all content, that is, losing all
|
|
reference to an object, and therefore all truth. But because we are
|
|
very easily seduced into employing these pure cognitions and
|
|
principles of the understanding by themselves, and that even beyond
|
|
the boundaries of experience, which yet is the only source whence we
|
|
can obtain matter (objects) on which those pure conceptions may be
|
|
employed- understanding runs the risk of making, by means of empty
|
|
sophisms, a material and objective use of the mere formal principles
|
|
of the pure understanding, and of passing judgements on objects
|
|
without distinction- objects which are not given to us, nay, perhaps
|
|
cannot be given to us in any way. Now, as it ought properly to be only
|
|
a canon for judging of the empirical use of the understanding, this
|
|
kind of logic is misused when we seek to employ it as an organon of
|
|
the universal and unlimited exercise of the understanding, and attempt
|
|
with the pure understanding alone to judge synthetically, affirm,
|
|
and determine respecting objects in general. In this case the exercise
|
|
of the pure understanding becomes dialectical. The second part of
|
|
our transcendental logic must therefore be a critique of dialectical
|
|
illusion, and this critique we shall term transcendental dialectic-
|
|
not meaning it as an art of producing dogmatically such illusion (an
|
|
art which is unfortunately too current among the practitioners of
|
|
metaphysical juggling), but as a critique of understanding and
|
|
reason in regard to their hyperphysical use. This critique will expose
|
|
the groundless nature of the pretensions of these two faculties, and
|
|
invalidate their claims to the discovery and enlargement of our
|
|
cognitions merely by means of transcendental principles, and show that
|
|
the proper employment of these faculties is to test the judgements
|
|
made by the pure understanding, and to guard it from sophistical
|
|
delusion.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental Logic. FIRST DIVISION.
|
|
|
|
TRANSCENDENTAL ANALYTIC.
|
|
|
|
SS I.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental analytic is the dissection of the whole of our a
|
|
priori knowledge into the elements of the pure cognition of the
|
|
understanding. In order to effect our purpose, it is necessary: (1)
|
|
That the conceptions be pure and not empirical; (2) That they belong
|
|
not to intuition and sensibility, but to thought and understanding;
|
|
(3) That they be elementary conceptions, and as such, quite
|
|
different from deduced or compound conceptions; (4) That our table
|
|
of these elementary conceptions be complete, and fill up the whole
|
|
sphere of the pure understanding. Now this completeness of a science
|
|
cannot be accepted with confidence on the guarantee of a mere estimate
|
|
of its existence in an aggregate formed only by means of repeated
|
|
experiments and attempts. The completeness which we require is
|
|
possible only by means of an idea of the totality of the a priori
|
|
cognition of the understanding, and through the thereby determined
|
|
division of the conceptions which form the said whole; consequently,
|
|
only by means of their connection in a system. Pure understanding
|
|
distinguishes itself not merely from everything empirical, but also
|
|
completely from all sensibility. It is a unity self-subsistent,
|
|
self-sufficient, and not to be enlarged by any additions from without.
|
|
Hence the sum of its cognition constitutes a system to be determined
|
|
by and comprised under an idea; and the completeness and
|
|
articulation of this system can at the same time serve as a test of
|
|
the correctness and genuineness of all the parts of cognition that
|
|
belong to it. The whole of this part of transcendental logic
|
|
consists of two books, of which the one contains the conceptions,
|
|
and the other the principles of pure understanding.
|
|
|
|
BOOK I.
|
|
|
|
Analytic of Conceptions. SS 2
|
|
|
|
By the term Analytic of Conceptions, I do not understand the
|
|
analysis of these, or the usual process in philosophical
|
|
investigations of dissecting the conceptions which present themselves,
|
|
according to their content, and so making them clear; but I mean the
|
|
hitherto little attempted dissection of the faculty of understanding
|
|
itself, in order to investigate the possibility of conceptions a
|
|
priori, by looking for them in the understanding alone, as their
|
|
birthplace, and analysing the pure use of this faculty. For this is
|
|
the proper duty of a transcendental philosophy; what remains is the
|
|
logical treatment of the conceptions in philosophy in general. We
|
|
shall therefore follow up the pure conceptions even to their germs and
|
|
beginnings in the human understanding, in which they lie, until they
|
|
are developed on occasions presented by experience, and, freed by
|
|
the same understanding from the empirical conditions attaching to
|
|
them, are set forth in their unalloyed purity.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. Of the Transcendental Clue to the Discovery of all Pure
|
|
|
|
Conceptions of the Understanding.
|
|
|
|
Introductory. SS 3
|
|
|
|
When we call into play a faculty of cognition, different conceptions
|
|
manifest themselves according to the different circumstances, and make
|
|
known this faculty, and assemble themselves into a more or less
|
|
extensive collection, according to the time or penetration that has
|
|
been applied to the consideration of them. Where this process,
|
|
conducted as it is mechanically, so to speak, will end, cannot be
|
|
determined with certainty. Besides, the conceptions which we
|
|
discover in this haphazard manner present themselves by no means in
|
|
order and systematic unity, but are at last coupled together only
|
|
according to resemblances to each other, and arranged in series,
|
|
according to the quantity of their content, from the simpler to the
|
|
more complex- series which are anything but systematic, though not
|
|
altogether without a certain kind of method in their construction.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental philosophy has the advantage, and moreover the
|
|
duty, of searching for its conceptions according to a principle;
|
|
because these conceptions spring pure and unmixed out of the
|
|
understanding as an absolute unity, and therefore must be connected
|
|
with each other according to one conception or idea. A connection of
|
|
this kind, however, furnishes us with a ready prepared rule, by
|
|
which its proper place may be assigned to every pure conception of the
|
|
understanding, and the completeness of the system of all be determined
|
|
a priori- both which would otherwise have been dependent on mere
|
|
choice or chance.
|
|
|
|
SECTION 1. Of defined above Use of understanding in General. SS 4
|
|
|
|
The understanding was defined above only negatively, as a
|
|
non-sensuous faculty of cognition. Now, independently of
|
|
sensibility, we cannot possibly have any intuition; consequently,
|
|
the understanding is no faculty of intuition. But besides intuition
|
|
there is no other mode of cognition, except through conceptions;
|
|
consequently, the cognition of every, at least of every human,
|
|
understanding is a cognition through conceptions- not intuitive, but
|
|
discursive. All intuitions, as sensuous, depend on affections;
|
|
conceptions, therefore, upon functions. By the word function I
|
|
understand the unity of the act of arranging diverse representations
|
|
under one common representation. Conceptions, then, are based on the
|
|
spontaneity of thought, as sensuous intuitions are on the
|
|
receptivity of impressions. Now, the understanding cannot make any
|
|
other use of these conceptions than to judge by means of them. As no
|
|
representation, except an intuition, relates immediately to its
|
|
object, a conception never relates immediately to an object, but
|
|
only to some other representation thereof, be that an intuition or
|
|
itself a conception. A judgement, therefore, is the mediate
|
|
cognition of an object, consequently the representation of a
|
|
representation of it. In every judgement there is a conception which
|
|
applies to, and is valid for many other conceptions, and which among
|
|
these comprehends also a given representation, this last being
|
|
immediately connected with an object. For example, in the judgement-
|
|
"All bodies are divisible," our conception of divisible applies to
|
|
various other conceptions; among these, however, it is here
|
|
particularly applied to the conception of body, and this conception of
|
|
body relates to certain phenomena which occur to us. These objects,
|
|
therefore, are mediately represented by the conception of
|
|
divisibility. All judgements, accordingly, are functions of unity in
|
|
our representations, inasmuch as, instead of an immediate, a higher
|
|
representation, which comprises this and various others, is used for
|
|
our cognition of the object, and thereby many possible cognitions
|
|
are collected into one. But we can reduce all acts of the
|
|
understanding to judgements, so that understanding may be
|
|
represented as the faculty of judging. For it is, according to what
|
|
has been said above, a faculty of thought. Now thought is cognition by
|
|
means of conceptions. But conceptions, as predicates of possible
|
|
judgements, relate to some representation of a yet undetermined
|
|
object. Thus the conception of body indicates something- for
|
|
example, metal- which can be cognized by means of that conception.
|
|
It is therefore a conception, for the reason alone that other
|
|
representations are contained under it, by means of which it can
|
|
relate to objects. It is therefore the predicate to a possible
|
|
judgement; for example: "Every metal is a body." All the functions
|
|
of the understanding therefore can be discovered, when we can
|
|
completely exhibit the functions of unity in judgements. And that this
|
|
may be effected very easily, the following section will show.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Of the Logical Function of the Understanding in
|
|
|
|
Judgements. SS 5
|
|
|
|
If we abstract all the content of a judgement, and consider only the
|
|
intellectual form thereof, we find that the function of thought in a
|
|
judgement can be brought under four heads, of which each contains
|
|
three momenta. These may be conveniently represented in the
|
|
following table:
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
Quantity of judgements
|
|
|
|
Universal
|
|
|
|
Particular
|
|
|
|
Singular
|
|
|
|
2 3
|
|
|
|
Quality Relation
|
|
|
|
Affirmative Categorical
|
|
|
|
Negative Hypothetical
|
|
|
|
Infinite Disjunctive
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
Modality
|
|
|
|
Problematical
|
|
|
|
Assertorical
|
|
|
|
Apodeictical
|
|
|
|
As this division appears to differ in some, though not essential
|
|
points, from the usual technique of logicians, the following
|
|
observations, for the prevention of otherwise possible
|
|
misunderstanding, will not be without their use.
|
|
|
|
1. Logicians say, with justice, that in the use of judgements in
|
|
syllogisms, singular judgements may be treated like universal ones.
|
|
For, precisely because a singular judgement has no extent at all,
|
|
its predicate cannot refer to a part of that which is contained in the
|
|
conception of the subject and be excluded from the rest. The predicate
|
|
is valid for the whole conception just as if it were a general
|
|
conception, and had extent, to the whole of which the predicate
|
|
applied. On the other hand, let us compare a singular with a general
|
|
judgement, merely as a cognition, in regard to quantity. The
|
|
singular judgement relates to the general one, as unity to infinity,
|
|
and is therefore in itself essentially different. Thus, if we estimate
|
|
a singular judgement (judicium singulare) not merely according to
|
|
its intrinsic validity as a judgement, but also as a cognition
|
|
generally, according to its quantity in comparison with that of
|
|
other cognitions, it is then entirely different from a general
|
|
judgement (judicium commune), and in a complete table of the momenta
|
|
of thought deserves a separate place- though, indeed, this would not
|
|
be necessary in a logic limited merely to the consideration of the use
|
|
of judgements in reference to each other.
|
|
|
|
2. In like manner, in transcendental logic, infinite must be
|
|
distinguished from affirmative judgements, although in general logic
|
|
they are rightly enough classed under affirmative. General logic
|
|
abstracts all content of the predicate (though it be negative), and
|
|
only considers whether the said predicate be affirmed or denied of the
|
|
subject. But transcendental logic considers also the worth or
|
|
content of this logical affirmation- an affirmation by means of a
|
|
merely negative predicate, and inquires how much the sum total of
|
|
our cognition gains by this affirmation. For example, if I say of
|
|
the soul, "It is not mortal"- by this negative judgement I should at
|
|
least ward off error. Now, by the proposition, "The soul is not
|
|
mortal," I have, in respect of the logical form, really affirmed,
|
|
inasmuch as I thereby place the soul in the unlimited sphere of
|
|
immortal beings. Now, because of the whole sphere of possible
|
|
existences, the mortal occupies one part, and the immortal the
|
|
other, neither more nor less is affirmed by the proposition than
|
|
that the soul is one among the infinite multitude of things which
|
|
remain over, when I take away the whole mortal part. But by this
|
|
proceeding we accomplish only this much, that the infinite sphere of
|
|
all possible existences is in so far limited that the mortal is
|
|
excluded from it, and the soul is placed in the remaining part of
|
|
the extent of this sphere. But this part remains, notwithstanding this
|
|
exception, infinite, and more and more parts may be taken away from
|
|
the whole sphere, without in the slightest degree thereby augmenting
|
|
or affirmatively determining our conception of the soul. These
|
|
judgements, therefore, infinite in respect of their logical extent,
|
|
are, in respect of the content of their cognition, merely
|
|
limitative; and are consequently entitled to a place in our
|
|
transcendental table of all the momenta of thought in judgements,
|
|
because the function of the understanding exercised by them may
|
|
perhaps be of importance in the field of its pure a priori cognition.
|
|
|
|
3. All relations of thought in judgements are those (a) of the
|
|
predicate to the subject; (b) of the principle to its consequence; (c)
|
|
of the divided cognition and all the members of the division to each
|
|
other. In the first of these three classes, we consider only two
|
|
conceptions; in the second, two judgements; in the third, several
|
|
judgements in relation to each other. The hypothetical proposition,
|
|
"If perfect justice exists, the obstinately wicked are punished,"
|
|
contains properly the relation to each other of two propositions,
|
|
namely, "Perfect justice exists," and "The obstinately wicked are
|
|
punished." Whether these propositions are in themselves true is a
|
|
question not here decided. Nothing is cogitated by means of this
|
|
judgement except a certain consequence. Finally, the disjunctive
|
|
judgement contains a relation of two or more propositions to each
|
|
other- a relation not of consequence, but of logical opposition, in so
|
|
far as the sphere of the one proposition excludes that of the other.
|
|
But it contains at the same time a relation of community, in so far as
|
|
all the propositions taken together fill up the sphere of the
|
|
cognition. The disjunctive judgement contains, therefore, the relation
|
|
of the parts of the whole sphere of a cognition, since the sphere of
|
|
each part is a complemental part of the sphere of the other, each
|
|
contributing to form the sum total of the divided cognition. Take, for
|
|
example, the proposition, "The world exists either through blind
|
|
chance, or through internal necessity, or through an external
|
|
cause." Each of these propositions embraces a part of the sphere of
|
|
our possible cognition as to the existence of a world; all of them
|
|
taken together, the whole sphere. To take the cognition out of one
|
|
of these spheres, is equivalent to placing it in one of the others;
|
|
and, on the other hand, to place it in one sphere is equivalent to
|
|
taking it out of the rest. There is, therefore, in a disjunctive
|
|
judgement a certain community of cognitions, which consists in this,
|
|
that they mutually exclude each other, yet thereby determine, as a
|
|
whole, the true cognition, inasmuch as, taken together, they make up
|
|
the complete content of a particular given cognition. And this is
|
|
all that I find necessary, for the sake of what follows, to remark
|
|
in this place.
|
|
|
|
4. The modality of judgements is a quite peculiar function, with
|
|
this distinguishing characteristic, that it contributes nothing to the
|
|
content of a judgement (for besides quantity, quality, and relation,
|
|
there is nothing more that constitutes the content of a judgement),
|
|
but concerns itself only with the value of the copula in relation to
|
|
thought in general. Problematical judgements are those in which the
|
|
affirmation or negation is accepted as merely possible (ad libitum).
|
|
In the assertorical, we regard the proposition as real (true); in
|
|
the apodeictical, we look on it as necessary.* Thus the two judgements
|
|
(antecedens et consequens), the relation of which constitutes a
|
|
hypothetical judgement, likewise those (the members of the division)
|
|
in whose reciprocity the disjunctive consists, are only problematical.
|
|
In the example above given the proposition, "There exists perfect
|
|
justice," is not stated assertorically, but as an ad libitum
|
|
judgement, which someone may choose to adopt, and the consequence
|
|
alone is assertorical. Hence such judgements may be obviously false,
|
|
and yet, taken problematically, be conditions of our cognition of
|
|
the truth. Thus the proposition, "The world exists only by blind
|
|
chance," is in the disjunctive judgement of problematical import only:
|
|
that is to say, one may accept it for the moment, and it helps us
|
|
(like the indication of the wrong road among all the roads that one
|
|
can take) to find out the true proposition. The problematical
|
|
proposition is, therefore, that which expresses only logical
|
|
possibility (which is not objective); that is, it expresses a free
|
|
choice to admit the validity of such a proposition- a merely arbitrary
|
|
reception of it into the understanding. The assertorical speaks of
|
|
logical reality or truth; as, for example, in a hypothetical
|
|
syllogism, the antecedens presents itself in a problematical form in
|
|
the major, in an assertorical form in the minor, and it shows that the
|
|
proposition is in harmony with the laws of the understanding. The
|
|
apodeictical proposition cogitates the assertorical as determined by
|
|
these very laws of the understanding, consequently as affirming a
|
|
priori, and in this manner it expresses logical necessity. Now because
|
|
all is here gradually incorporated with the understanding- inasmuch as
|
|
in the first place we judge problematically; then accept
|
|
assertorically our judgement as true; lastly, affirm it as inseparably
|
|
united with the understanding, that is, as necessary and apodeictical-
|
|
we may safely reckon these three functions of modality as so many
|
|
momenta of thought.
|
|
|
|
*Just as if thought were in the first instance a function of the
|
|
understanding; in the second, of judgement; in the third, of reason. A
|
|
remark which will be explained in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. Of the Pure Conceptions of the Understanding, or
|
|
|
|
Categories. SS 6
|
|
|
|
General logic, as has been repeatedly said, makes abstraction of all
|
|
content of cognition, and expects to receive representations from some
|
|
other quarter, in order, by means of analysis, to convert them into
|
|
conceptions. On the contrary, transcendental logic has lying before it
|
|
the manifold content of a priori sensibility, which transcendental
|
|
aesthetic presents to it in order to give matter to the pure
|
|
conceptions of the understanding, without which transcendental logic
|
|
would have no content, and be therefore utterly void. Now space and
|
|
time contain an infinite diversity of determinations of pure a
|
|
priori intuition, but are nevertheless the condition of the mind's
|
|
receptivity, under which alone it can obtain representations of
|
|
objects, and which, consequently, must always affect the conception of
|
|
these objects. But the spontaneity of thought requires that this
|
|
diversity be examined after a certain manner, received into the
|
|
mind, and connected, in order afterwards to form a cognition out of
|
|
it. This Process I call synthesis.
|
|
|
|
By the word synthesis, in its most general signification, I
|
|
understand the process of joining different representations to each
|
|
other and of comprehending their diversity in one cognition. This
|
|
synthesis is pure when the diversity is not given empirically but a
|
|
priori (as that in space and time). Our representations must be
|
|
given previously to any analysis of them; and no conceptions can
|
|
arise, quoad their content, analytically. But the synthesis of a
|
|
diversity (be it given a priori or empirically) is the first requisite
|
|
for the production of a cognition, which in its beginning, indeed, may
|
|
be crude and confused, and therefore in need of analysis- still,
|
|
synthesis is that by which alone the elements of our cognitions are
|
|
collected and united into a certain content, consequently it is the
|
|
first thing on which we must fix our attention, if we wish to
|
|
investigate the origin of our knowledge.
|
|
|
|
Synthesis, generally speaking, is, as we shall afterwards see, the
|
|
mere operation of the imagination- a blind but indispensable
|
|
function of the soul, without which we should have no cognition
|
|
whatever, but of the working of which we are seldom even conscious.
|
|
But to reduce this synthesis to conceptions is a function of the
|
|
understanding, by means of which we attain to cognition, in the proper
|
|
meaning of the term.
|
|
|
|
Pure synthesis, represented generally, gives us the pure
|
|
conception of the understanding. But by this pure synthesis, I mean
|
|
that which rests upon a basis of a priori synthetical unity. Thus, our
|
|
numeration (and this is more observable in large numbers) is a
|
|
synthesis according to conceptions, because it takes place according
|
|
to a common basis of unity (for example, the decade). By means of this
|
|
conception, therefore, the unity in the synthesis of the manifold
|
|
becomes necessary.
|
|
|
|
By means of analysis different representations are brought under one
|
|
conception- an operation of which general logic treats. On the other
|
|
hand, the duty of transcendental logic is to reduce to conceptions,
|
|
not representations, but the pure synthesis of representations. The
|
|
first thing which must be given to us for the sake of the a priori
|
|
cognition of all objects, is the diversity of the pure intuition;
|
|
the synthesis of this diversity by means of the imagination is the
|
|
second; but this gives, as yet, no cognition. The conceptions which
|
|
give unity to this pure synthesis, and which consist solely in the
|
|
representation of this necessary synthetical unity, furnish the
|
|
third requisite for the cognition of an object, and these
|
|
conceptions are given by the understanding.
|
|
|
|
The same function which gives unity to the different
|
|
representation in a judgement, gives also unity to the mere
|
|
synthesis of different representations in an intuition; and this unity
|
|
we call the pure conception of the understanding. Thus, the same
|
|
understanding, and by the same operations, whereby in conceptions,
|
|
by means of analytical unity, it produced the logical form of a
|
|
judgement, introduces, by means of the synthetical unity of the
|
|
manifold in intuition, a transcendental content into its
|
|
representations, on which account they are called pure conceptions
|
|
of the understanding, and they apply a priori to objects, a result not
|
|
within the power of general logic.
|
|
|
|
In this manner, there arise exactly so many pure conceptions of
|
|
the understanding, applying a priori to objects of intuition in
|
|
general, as there are logical functions in all possible judgements.
|
|
For there is no other function or faculty existing in the
|
|
understanding besides those enumerated in that table. These
|
|
conceptions we shall, with Aristotle, call categories, our purpose
|
|
being originally identical with his, notwithstanding the great
|
|
difference in the execution.
|
|
|
|
TABLE OF THE CATEGORIES
|
|
|
|
1 2
|
|
|
|
Of Quantity Of Quality
|
|
|
|
Unity Reality
|
|
|
|
Plurality Negation
|
|
|
|
Totality Limitation
|
|
|
|
3
|
|
|
|
Of Relation
|
|
|
|
Of Inherence and Subsistence (substantia et accidens)
|
|
|
|
Of Causality and Dependence (cause and effect)
|
|
|
|
Of Community (reciprocity between the agent and patient)
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
Of Modality
|
|
|
|
Possibility - Impossibility
|
|
|
|
Existence - Non-existence
|
|
|
|
Necessity - Contingence
|
|
|
|
This, then, is a catalogue of all the originally pure conceptions of
|
|
the synthesis which the understanding contains a priori, and these
|
|
conceptions alone entitle it to be called a pure understanding;
|
|
inasmuch as only by them it can render the manifold of intuition
|
|
conceivable, in other words, think an object of intuition. This
|
|
division is made systematically from a common principle, namely the
|
|
faculty of judgement (which is just the same as the power of thought),
|
|
and has not arisen rhapsodically from a search at haphazard after pure
|
|
conceptions, respecting the full number of which we never could be
|
|
certain, inasmuch as we employ induction alone in our search,
|
|
without considering that in this way we can never understand wherefore
|
|
precisely these conceptions, and none others, abide in the pure
|
|
understanding. It was a design worthy of an acute thinker like
|
|
Aristotle, to search for these fundamental conceptions. Destitute,
|
|
however, of any guiding principle, he picked them up just as they
|
|
occurred to him, and at first hunted out ten, which he called
|
|
categories (predicaments). Afterwards be believed that he had
|
|
discovered five others, which were added under the name of post
|
|
predicaments. But his catalogue still remained defective. Besides,
|
|
there are to be found among them some of the modes of pure sensibility
|
|
(quando, ubi, situs, also prius, simul), and likewise an empirical
|
|
conception (motus)- which can by no means belong to this
|
|
genealogical register of the pure understanding. Moreover, there are
|
|
deduced conceptions (actio, passio) enumerated among the original
|
|
conceptions, and, of the latter, some are entirely wanting.
|
|
|
|
With regard to these, it is to be remarked, that the categories,
|
|
as the true primitive conceptions of the pure understanding, have also
|
|
their pure deduced conceptions, which, in a complete system of
|
|
transcendental philosophy, must by no means be passed over; though
|
|
in a merely critical essay we must be contented with the simple
|
|
mention of the fact.
|
|
|
|
Let it be allowed me to call these pure, but deduced conceptions
|
|
of the understanding, the predicables of the pure understanding, in
|
|
contradistinction to predicaments. If we are in possession of the
|
|
original and primitive, the deduced and subsidiary conceptions can
|
|
easily be added, and the genealogical tree of the understanding
|
|
completely delineated. As my present aim is not to set forth a
|
|
complete system, but merely the principles of one, I reserve this task
|
|
for another time. It may be easily executed by any one who will
|
|
refer to the ontological manuals, and subordinate to the category of
|
|
causality, for example, the predicables of force, action, passion;
|
|
to that of community, those of presence and resistance; to the
|
|
categories of modality, those of origination, extinction, change;
|
|
and so with the rest. The categories combined with the modes of pure
|
|
sensibility, or with one another, afford a great number of deduced a
|
|
priori conceptions; a complete enumeration of which would be a
|
|
useful and not unpleasant, but in this place a perfectly
|
|
dispensable, occupation.
|
|
|
|
I purposely omit the definitions of the categories in this treatise.
|
|
I shall analyse these conceptions only so far as is necessary for
|
|
the doctrine of method, which is to form a part of this critique. In a
|
|
system of pure reason, definitions of them would be with justice
|
|
demanded of me, but to give them here would only bide from our view
|
|
the main aim of our investigation, at the same time raising doubts and
|
|
objections, the consideration of which, without injustice to our
|
|
main purpose, may be very well postponed till another opportunity.
|
|
Meanwhile, it ought to be sufficiently clear, from the little we
|
|
have already said on this subject, that the formation of a complete
|
|
vocabulary of pure conceptions, accompanied by all the requisite
|
|
explanations, is not only a possible, but an easy undertaking. The
|
|
compartments already exist; it is only necessary to fill them up;
|
|
and a systematic topic like the present, indicates with perfect
|
|
precision the proper place to which each conception belongs, while
|
|
it readily points out any that have not yet been filled up.
|
|
|
|
SS 7
|
|
|
|
Our table of the categories suggests considerations of some
|
|
importance, which may perhaps have significant results in regard to
|
|
the scientific form of all rational cognitions. For, that this table
|
|
is useful in the theoretical part of philosophy, nay, indispensable
|
|
for the sketching of the complete plan of a science, so far as that
|
|
science rests upon conceptions a priori, and for dividing it
|
|
mathematically, according to fixed principles, is most manifest from
|
|
the fact that it contains all the elementary conceptions of the
|
|
understanding, nay, even the form of a system of these in the
|
|
understanding itself, and consequently indicates all the momenta,
|
|
and also the internal arrangement of a projected speculative
|
|
science, as I have elsewhere shown.* Here follow some of these
|
|
observations.
|
|
|
|
*In the Metaphysical Principles of Natural Science.
|
|
|
|
I. This table, which contains four classes of conceptions of the
|
|
understanding, may, in the first instance, be divided into two
|
|
classes, the first of which relates to objects of intuition- pure as
|
|
well as empirical; the second, to the existence of these objects,
|
|
either in relation to one another, or to the understanding.
|
|
|
|
The former of these classes of categories I would entitle the
|
|
mathematical, and the latter the dynamical categories. The former,
|
|
as we see, has no correlates; these are only to be found in the second
|
|
class. This difference must have a ground in the nature of the human
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
II. The number of the categories in each class is always the same,
|
|
namely, three- a fact which also demands some consideration, because
|
|
in all other cases division a priori through conceptions is
|
|
necessarily dichotomy. It is to be added, that the third category in
|
|
each triad always arises from the combination of the second with the
|
|
first.
|
|
|
|
Thus totality is nothing else but plurality contemplated as unity;
|
|
limitation is merely reality conjoined with negation; community is the
|
|
causality of a substance, reciprocally determining, and determined
|
|
by other substances; and finally, necessity is nothing but
|
|
existence, which is given through the possibility itself. Let it not
|
|
be supposed, however, that the third category is merely a deduced, and
|
|
not a primitive conception of the pure understanding. For the
|
|
conjunction of the first and second, in order to produce the third
|
|
conception, requires a particular function of the understanding, which
|
|
is by no means identical with those which are exercised in the first
|
|
and second. Thus, the conception of a number (which belongs to the
|
|
category of totality) is not always possible, where the conceptions of
|
|
multitude and unity exist (for example, in the representation of the
|
|
infinite). Or, if I conjoin the conception of a cause with that of a
|
|
substance, it does not follow that the conception of influence, that
|
|
is, how one substance can be the cause of something in another
|
|
substance, will be understood from that. Thus it is evident that a
|
|
particular act of the understanding is here necessary; and so in the
|
|
other instances.
|
|
|
|
III. With respect to one category, namely, that of community,
|
|
which is found in the third class, it is not so easy as with the
|
|
others to detect its accordance with the form of the disjunctive
|
|
judgement which corresponds to it in the table of the logical
|
|
functions.
|
|
|
|
In order to assure ourselves of this accordance, we must observe
|
|
that in every disjunctive judgement, the sphere of the judgement (that
|
|
is, the complex of all that is contained in it) is represented as a
|
|
whole divided into parts; and, since one part cannot be contained in
|
|
the other, they are cogitated as co-ordinated with, not subordinated
|
|
to each other, so that they do not determine each other
|
|
unilaterally, as in a linear series, but reciprocally, as in an
|
|
aggregate- (if one member of the division is posited, all the rest are
|
|
excluded; and conversely).
|
|
|
|
Now a like connection is cogitated in a whole of things; for one
|
|
thing is not subordinated, as effect, to another as cause of its
|
|
existence, but, on the contrary, is co-ordinated contemporaneously and
|
|
reciprocally, as a cause in relation to the determination of the
|
|
others (for example, in a body- the parts of which mutually attract
|
|
and repel each other). And this is an entirely different kind of
|
|
connection from that which we find in the mere relation of the cause
|
|
to the effect (the principle to the consequence), for in such a
|
|
connection the consequence does not in its turn determine the
|
|
principle, and therefore does not constitute, with the latter, a
|
|
whole- just as the Creator does not with the world make up a whole.
|
|
The process of understanding by which it represents to itself the
|
|
sphere of a divided conception, is employed also when we think of a
|
|
thing as divisible; and in the same manner as the members of the
|
|
division in the former exclude one another, and yet are connected in
|
|
one sphere, so the understanding represents to itself the parts of the
|
|
latter, as having- each of them- an existence (as substances),
|
|
independently of the others, and yet as united in one whole.
|
|
|
|
SS 8
|
|
|
|
In the transcendental philosophy of the ancients there exists one
|
|
more leading division, which contains pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding, and which, although not numbered among the
|
|
categories, ought, according to them, as conceptions a priori, to be
|
|
valid of objects. But in this case they would augment the number of
|
|
the categories; which cannot be. These are set forth in the
|
|
proposition, so renowned among the schoolmen- "Quodlibet ens est UNUM,
|
|
VERUM, BONUM." Now, though the inferences from this principle were
|
|
mere tautological propositions, and though it is allowed only by
|
|
courtesy to retain a place in modern metaphysics, yet a thought
|
|
which maintained itself for such a length of time, however empty it
|
|
seems to be, deserves an investigation of its origin, and justifies
|
|
the conjecture that it must be grounded in some law of the
|
|
understanding, which, as is often the case, has only been
|
|
erroneously interpreted. These pretended transcendental predicates
|
|
are, in fact, nothing but logical requisites and criteria of all
|
|
cognition of objects, and they employ, as the basis for this
|
|
cognition, the categories of quantity, namely, unity, plurality, and
|
|
totality. But these, which must be taken as material conditions,
|
|
that is, as belonging to the possibility of things themselves, they
|
|
employed merely in a formal signification, as belonging to the logical
|
|
requisites of all cognition, and yet most unguardedly changed these
|
|
criteria of thought into properties of objects, as things in
|
|
themselves. Now, in every cognition of an object, there is unity of
|
|
conception, which may be called qualitative unity, so far as by this
|
|
term we understand only the unity in our connection of the manifold;
|
|
for example, unity of the theme in a play, an oration, or a story.
|
|
Secondly, there is truth in respect of the deductions from it. The
|
|
more true deductions we have from a given conception, the more
|
|
criteria of its objective reality. This we might call the
|
|
qualitative plurality of characteristic marks, which belong to a
|
|
conception as to a common foundation, but are not cogitated as a
|
|
quantity in it. Thirdly, there is perfection- which consists in
|
|
this, that the plurality falls back upon the unity of the
|
|
conception, and accords completely with that conception and with no
|
|
other. This we may denominate qualitative completeness. Hence it is
|
|
evident that these logical criteria of the possibility of cognition
|
|
are merely the three categories of quantity modified and transformed
|
|
to suit an unauthorized manner of applying them. That is to say, the
|
|
three categories, in which the unity in the production of the
|
|
quantum must be homogeneous throughout, are transformed solely with
|
|
a view to the connection of heterogeneous parts of cognition in one
|
|
act of consciousness, by means of the quality of the cognition,
|
|
which is the principle of that connection. Thus the criterion of the
|
|
possibility of a conception (not of its object) is the definition of
|
|
it, in which the unity of the conception, the truth of all that may be
|
|
immediately deduced from it, and finally, the completeness of what has
|
|
been thus deduced, constitute the requisites for the reproduction of
|
|
the whole conception. Thus also, the criterion or test of an
|
|
hypothesis is the intelligibility of the received principle of
|
|
explanation, or its unity (without help from any subsidiary
|
|
hypothesis)- the truth of our deductions from it (consistency with
|
|
each other and with experience)- and lastly, the completeness of the
|
|
principle of the explanation of these deductions, which refer to
|
|
neither more nor less than what was admitted in the hypothesis,
|
|
restoring analytically and a posteriori, what was cogitated
|
|
synthetically and a priori. By the conceptions, therefore, of unity,
|
|
truth, and perfection, we have made no addition to the
|
|
transcendental table of the categories, which is complete without
|
|
them. We have, on the contrary, merely employed the three categories
|
|
of quantity, setting aside their application to objects of experience,
|
|
as general logical laws of the consistency of cognition with itself.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II Of the Deduction of the Pure Conceptions of the
|
|
|
|
Understanding.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I Of the Principles of a Transcendental Deduction
|
|
|
|
in general. SS 9
|
|
|
|
Teachers of jurisprudence, when speaking of rights and claims,
|
|
distinguish in a cause the question of right (quid juris) from the
|
|
question of fact (quid facti), and while they demand proof of both,
|
|
they give to the proof of the former, which goes to establish right or
|
|
claim in law, the name of deduction. Now we make use of a great number
|
|
of empirical conceptions, without opposition from any one; and
|
|
consider ourselves, even without any attempt at deduction, justified
|
|
in attaching to them a sense, and a supposititious signification,
|
|
because we have always experience at hand to demonstrate their
|
|
objective reality. There exist also, however, usurped conceptions,
|
|
such as fortune, fate, which circulate with almost universal
|
|
indulgence, and yet are occasionally challenged by the question, "quid
|
|
juris?" In such cases, we have great difficulty in discovering any
|
|
deduction for these terms, inasmuch as we cannot produce any
|
|
manifest ground of right, either from experience or from reason, on
|
|
which the claim to employ them can be founded.
|
|
|
|
Among the many conceptions, which make up the very variegated web of
|
|
human cognition, some are destined for pure use a priori,
|
|
independent of all experience; and their title to be so employed
|
|
always requires a deduction, inasmuch as, to justify such use of them,
|
|
proofs from experience are not sufficient; but it is necessary to know
|
|
how these conceptions can apply to objects without being derived
|
|
from experience. I term, therefore, an examination of the manner in
|
|
which conceptions can apply a priori to objects, the transcendental
|
|
deduction of conceptions, and I distinguish it from the empirical
|
|
deduction, which indicates the mode in which conception is obtained
|
|
through experience and reflection thereon; consequently, does not
|
|
concern itself with the right, but only with the fact of our obtaining
|
|
conceptions in such and such a manner. We have already seen that we
|
|
are in possession of two perfectly different kinds of conceptions,
|
|
which nevertheless agree with each other in this, that they both apply
|
|
to objects completely a priori. These are the conceptions of space and
|
|
time as forms of sensibility, and the categories as pure conceptions
|
|
of the understanding. To attempt an empirical deduction of either of
|
|
these classes would be labour in vain, because the distinguishing
|
|
characteristic of their nature consists in this, that they apply to
|
|
their objects, without having borrowed anything from experience
|
|
towards the representation of them. Consequently, if a deduction of
|
|
these conceptions is necessary, it must always be transcendental.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile, with respect to these conceptions, as with respect to all
|
|
our cognition, we certainly may discover in experience, if not the
|
|
principle of their possibility, yet the occasioning causes of their
|
|
production. It will be found that the impressions of sense give the
|
|
first occasion for bringing into action the whole faculty of
|
|
cognition, and for the production of experience, which contains two
|
|
very dissimilar elements, namely, a matter for cognition, given by the
|
|
senses, and a certain form for the arrangement of this matter, arising
|
|
out of the inner fountain of pure intuition and thought; and these, on
|
|
occasion given by sensuous impressions, are called into exercise and
|
|
produce conceptions. Such an investigation into the first efforts of
|
|
our faculty of cognition to mount from particular perceptions to
|
|
general conceptions is undoubtedly of great utility; and we have to
|
|
thank the celebrated Locke for having first opened the way for this
|
|
inquiry. But a deduction of the pure a priori conceptions of course
|
|
never can be made in this way, seeing that, in regard to their
|
|
future employment, which must be entirely independent of experience,
|
|
they must have a far different certificate of birth to show from
|
|
that of a descent from experience. This attempted physiological
|
|
derivation, which cannot properly be called deduction, because it
|
|
relates merely to a quaestio facti, I shall entitle an explanation
|
|
of the possession of a pure cognition. It is therefore manifest that
|
|
there can only be a transcendental deduction of these conceptions
|
|
and by no means an empirical one; also, that all attempts at an
|
|
empirical deduction, in regard to pure a priori conceptions, are vain,
|
|
and can only be made by one who does not understand the altogether
|
|
peculiar nature of these cognitions.
|
|
|
|
But although it is admitted that the only possible deduction of pure
|
|
a priori cognition is a transcendental deduction, it is not, for
|
|
that reason, perfectly manifest that such a deduction is absolutely
|
|
necessary. We have already traced to their sources the conceptions
|
|
of space and time, by means of a transcendental deduction, and we have
|
|
explained and determined their objective validity a priori.
|
|
Geometry, nevertheless, advances steadily and securely in the province
|
|
of pure a priori cognitions, without needing to ask from philosophy
|
|
any certificate as to the pure and legitimate origin of its
|
|
fundamental conception of space. But the use of the conception in this
|
|
science extends only to the external world of sense, the pure form
|
|
of the intuition of which is space; and in this world, therefore,
|
|
all geometrical cognition, because it is founded upon a priori
|
|
intuition, possesses immediate evidence, and the objects of this
|
|
cognition are given a priori (as regards their form) in intuition by
|
|
and through the cognition itself. With the pure conceptions of
|
|
understanding, on the contrary, commences the absolute necessity of
|
|
seeking a transcendental deduction, not only of these conceptions
|
|
themselves, but likewise of space, because, inasmuch as they make
|
|
affirmations concerning objects not by means of the predicates of
|
|
intuition and sensibility, but of pure thought a priori, they apply to
|
|
objects without any of the conditions of sensibility. Besides, not
|
|
being founded on experience, they are not presented with any object in
|
|
a priori intuition upon which, antecedently to experience, they
|
|
might base their synthesis. Hence results, not only doubt as to the
|
|
objective validity and proper limits of their use, but that even our
|
|
conception of space is rendered equivocal; inasmuch as we are very
|
|
ready with the aid of the categories, to carry the use of this
|
|
conception beyond the conditions of sensuous intuition- and, for
|
|
this reason, we have already found a transcendental deduction of it
|
|
needful. The reader, then, must be quite convinced of the absolute
|
|
necessity of a transcendental deduction, before taking a single step
|
|
in the field of pure reason; because otherwise he goes to work
|
|
blindly, and after he has wondered about in all directions, returns to
|
|
the state of utter ignorance from which he started. He ought,
|
|
moreover, clearly to recognize beforehand the unavoidable difficulties
|
|
in his undertaking, so that he may not afterwards complain of the
|
|
obscurity in which the subject itself is deeply involved, or become
|
|
too soon impatient of the obstacles in his path; because we have a
|
|
choice of only two things- either at once to give up all pretensions
|
|
to knowledge beyond the limits of possible experience, or to bring
|
|
this critical investigation to completion.
|
|
|
|
We have been able, with very little trouble, to make it
|
|
comprehensible how the conceptions of space and time, although a
|
|
priori cognitions, must necessarily apply to external objects, and
|
|
render a synthetical cognition of these possible, independently of all
|
|
experience. For inasmuch as only by means of such pure form of
|
|
sensibility an object can appear to us, that is, be an object of
|
|
empirical intuition, space and time are pure intuitions, which contain
|
|
a priori the condition of the possibility of objects as phenomena, and
|
|
an a priori synthesis in these intuitions possesses objective
|
|
validity.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, the categories of the understanding do not
|
|
represent the conditions under which objects are given to us in
|
|
intuition; objects can consequently appear to us without necessarily
|
|
connecting themselves with these, and consequently without any
|
|
necessity binding on the understanding to contain a priori the
|
|
conditions of these objects. Thus we find ourselves involved in a
|
|
difficulty which did not present itself in the sphere of
|
|
sensibility, that is to say, we cannot discover how the subjective
|
|
conditions of thought can have objective validity, in other words, can
|
|
become conditions of the possibility of all cognition of objects;
|
|
for phenomena may certainly be given to us in intuition without any
|
|
help from the functions of the understanding. Let us take, for
|
|
example, the conception of cause, which indicates a peculiar kind of
|
|
synthesis, namely, that with something, A, something entirely
|
|
different, B, is connected according to a law. It is not a priori
|
|
manifest why phenomena should contain anything of this kind (we are of
|
|
course debarred from appealing for proof to experience, for the
|
|
objective validity of this conception must be demonstrated a
|
|
priori), and it hence remains doubtful a priori, whether such a
|
|
conception be not quite void and without any corresponding object
|
|
among phenomena. For that objects of sensuous intuition must
|
|
correspond to the formal conditions of sensibility existing a priori
|
|
in the mind is quite evident, from the fact that without these they
|
|
could not be objects for us; but that they must also correspond to the
|
|
conditions which understanding requires for the synthetical unity of
|
|
thought is an assertion, the grounds for which are not so easily to be
|
|
discovered. For phenomena might be so constituted as not to correspond
|
|
to the conditions of the unity of thought; and all things might lie in
|
|
such confusion that, for example, nothing could be met with in the
|
|
sphere of phenomena to suggest a law of synthesis, and so correspond
|
|
to the conception of cause and effect; so that this conception would
|
|
be quite void, null, and without significance. Phenomena would
|
|
nevertheless continue to present objects to our intuition; for mere
|
|
intuition does not in any respect stand in need of the functions of
|
|
thought.
|
|
|
|
If we thought to free ourselves from the labour of these
|
|
investigations by saying: "Experience is constantly offering us
|
|
examples of the relation of cause and effect in phenomena, and
|
|
presents us with abundant opportunity of abstracting the conception of
|
|
cause, and so at the same time of corroborating the objective validity
|
|
of this conception"; we should in this case be overlooking the fact,
|
|
that the conception of cause cannot arise in this way at all; that, on
|
|
the contrary, it must either have an a priori basis in the,
|
|
understanding, or be rejected as a mere chimera. For this conception
|
|
demands that something, A, should be of such a nature that something
|
|
else, B, should follow from it necessarily, and according to an
|
|
absolutely universal law. We may certainly collect from phenomena a
|
|
law, according to which this or that usually happens, but the
|
|
element of necessity is not to be found in it. Hence it is evident
|
|
that to the synthesis of cause and effect belongs a dignity, which
|
|
is utterly wanting in any empirical synthesis; for it is no mere
|
|
mechanical synthesis, by means of addition, but a dynamical one;
|
|
that is to say, the effect is not to be cogitated as merely annexed to
|
|
the cause, but as posited by and through the cause, and resulting from
|
|
it. The strict universality of this law never can be a
|
|
characteristic of empirical laws, which obtain through induction
|
|
only a comparative universality, that is, an extended range of
|
|
practical application. But the pure conceptions of the understanding
|
|
would entirely lose all their peculiar character, if we treated them
|
|
merely as the productions of experience.
|
|
|
|
Transition to the Transcendental Deduction of the
|
|
|
|
Categories. SS 10
|
|
|
|
There are only two possible ways in which synthetical representation
|
|
and its objects can coincide with and relate necessarily to each
|
|
other, and, as it were, meet together. Either the object alone makes
|
|
the representation possible, or the representation alone makes the
|
|
object possible. In the former case, the relation between them is only
|
|
empirical, and an a priori representation is impossible. And this is
|
|
the case with phenomena, as regards that in them which is referable to
|
|
mere sensation. In the latter case- although representation alone (for
|
|
of its causality, by means of the will, we do not here speak) does not
|
|
produce the object as to its existence, it must nevertheless be a
|
|
priori determinative in regard to the object, if it is only by means
|
|
of the representation that we can cognize anything as an object. Now
|
|
there are only two conditions of the possibility of a cognition of
|
|
objects; firstly, intuition, by means of which the object, though only
|
|
as phenomenon, is given; secondly, conception, by means of which the
|
|
object which corresponds to this intuition is thought. But it is
|
|
evident from what has been said on aesthetic that the first condition,
|
|
under which alone objects can be intuited, must in fact exist, as a
|
|
formal basis for them, a priori in the mind. With this formal
|
|
condition of sensibility, therefore, all phenomena necessarily
|
|
correspond, because it is only through it that they can be phenomena
|
|
at all; that is, can be empirically intuited and given. Now the
|
|
question is whether there do not exist, a priori in the mind,
|
|
conceptions of understanding also, as conditions under which alone
|
|
something, if not intuited, is yet thought as object. If this question
|
|
be answered in the affirmative, it follows that all empirical
|
|
cognition of objects is necessarily conformable to such conceptions,
|
|
since, if they are not presupposed, it is impossible that anything can
|
|
be an object of experience. Now all experience contains, besides the
|
|
intuition of the senses through which an object is given, a conception
|
|
also of an object that is given in intuition. Accordingly, conceptions
|
|
of objects in general must lie as a priori conditions at the
|
|
foundation of all empirical cognition; and consequently, the objective
|
|
validity of the categories, as a priori conceptions, will rest upon
|
|
this, that experience (as far as regards the form of thought) is
|
|
possible only by their means. For in that case they apply
|
|
necessarily and a priori to objects of experience, because only
|
|
through them can an object of experience be thought.
|
|
|
|
The whole aim of the transcendental deduction of all a priori
|
|
conceptions is to show that these conceptions are a priori
|
|
conditions of the possibility of all experience. Conceptions which
|
|
afford us the objective foundation of the possibility of experience
|
|
are for that very reason necessary. But the analysis of the
|
|
experiences in which they are met with is not deduction, but only an
|
|
illustration of them, because from experience they could never
|
|
derive the attribute of necessity. Without their original
|
|
applicability and relation to all possible experience, in which all
|
|
objects of cognition present themselves, the relation of the
|
|
categories to objects, of whatever nature, would be quite
|
|
incomprehensible.
|
|
|
|
The celebrated Locke, for want of due reflection on these points,
|
|
and because he met with pure conceptions of the understanding in
|
|
experience, sought also to deduce them from experience, and yet
|
|
proceeded so inconsequently as to attempt, with their aid, to arrive
|
|
it cognitions which lie far beyond the limits of all experience. David
|
|
Hume perceived that, to render this possible, it was necessary that
|
|
the conceptions should have an a priori origin. But as he could not
|
|
explain how it was possible that conceptions which are not connected
|
|
with each other in the understanding must nevertheless be thought as
|
|
necessarily connected in the object- and it never occurred to him that
|
|
the understanding itself might, perhaps, by means of these
|
|
conceptions, be the author of the experience in which its objects were
|
|
presented to it- he was forced to drive these conceptions from
|
|
experience, that is, from a subjective necessity arising from repeated
|
|
association of experiences erroneously considered to be objective-
|
|
in one word, from habit. But he proceeded with perfect consequence and
|
|
declared it to be impossible, with such conceptions and the principles
|
|
arising from them, to overstep the limits of experience. The empirical
|
|
derivation, however, which both of these philosophers attributed to
|
|
these conceptions, cannot possibly be reconciled with the fact that we
|
|
do possess scientific a priori cognitions, namely, those of pure
|
|
mathematics and general physics.
|
|
|
|
The former of these two celebrated men opened a wide door to
|
|
extravagance- (for if reason has once undoubted right on its side,
|
|
it will not allow itself to be confined to set limits, by vague
|
|
recommendations of moderation); the latter gave himself up entirely to
|
|
scepticism- a natural consequence, after having discovered, as he
|
|
thought, that the faculty of cognition was not trustworthy. We now
|
|
intend to make a trial whether it be not possible safely to conduct
|
|
reason between these two rocks, to assign her determinate limits,
|
|
and yet leave open for her the entire sphere of her legitimate
|
|
activity.
|
|
|
|
I shall merely premise an explanation of what the categories are.
|
|
They are conceptions of an object in general, by means of which its
|
|
intuition is contemplated as determined in relation to one of the
|
|
logical functions of judgement. The following will make this plain.
|
|
The function of the categorical judgement is that of the relation of
|
|
subject to predicate; for example, in the proposition: "All bodies are
|
|
divisible." But in regard to the merely logical use of the
|
|
understanding, it still remains undetermined to which Of these two
|
|
conceptions belongs the function Of subject and to which that of
|
|
predicate. For we could also say: "Some divisible is a body." But
|
|
the category of substance, when the conception of a body is brought
|
|
under it, determines that; and its empirical intuition in experience
|
|
must be contemplated always as subject and never as mere predicate.
|
|
And so with all the other categories.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II Transcendental Deduction of the pure Conceptions of
|
|
|
|
the Understanding. SS 11
|
|
|
|
Of the Possibility of a Conjunction of the manifold representations
|
|
|
|
given by Sense.
|
|
|
|
The manifold content in our representations can be given in an
|
|
intuition which is merely sensuous- in other words, is nothing but
|
|
susceptibility; and the form of this intuition can exist a priori in
|
|
our faculty of representation, without being anything else but the
|
|
mode in which the subject is affected. But the conjunction
|
|
(conjunctio) of a manifold in intuition never can be given us by the
|
|
senses; it cannot therefore be contained in the pure form of
|
|
sensuous intuition, for it is a spontaneous act of the faculty of
|
|
representation. And as we must, to distinguish it from sensibility,
|
|
entitle this faculty understanding; so all conjunction whether
|
|
conscious or unconscious, be it of the manifold in intuition, sensuous
|
|
or non-sensuous, or of several conceptions- is an act of the
|
|
understanding. To this act we shall give the general appellation of
|
|
synthesis, thereby to indicate, at the same time, that we cannot
|
|
represent anything as conjoined in the object without having
|
|
previously conjoined it ourselves. Of all mental notions, that of
|
|
conjunction is the only one which cannot be given through objects, but
|
|
can be originated only by the subject itself, because it is an act
|
|
of its purely spontaneous activity. The reader will easily enough
|
|
perceive that the possibility of conjunction must be grounded in the
|
|
very nature of this act, and that it must be equally valid for all
|
|
conjunction, and that analysis, which appears to be its contrary,
|
|
must, nevertheless, always presuppose it; for where the
|
|
understanding has not previously conjoined, it cannot dissect or
|
|
analyse, because only as conjoined by it, must that which is to be
|
|
analysed have been given to our faculty of representation.
|
|
|
|
But the conception of conjunction includes, besides the conception
|
|
of the manifold and of the synthesis of it, that of the unity of it
|
|
also. Conjunction is the representation of the synthetical unity of
|
|
the manifold.* This idea of unity, therefore, cannot arise out of that
|
|
of conjunction; much rather does that idea, by combining itself with
|
|
the representation of the manifold, render the conception of
|
|
conjunction possible. This unity, which a priori precedes all
|
|
conceptions of conjunction, is not the category of unity (SS 6); for
|
|
all the categories are based upon logical functions of judgement,
|
|
and in these functions we already have conjunction, and consequently
|
|
unity of given conceptions. It is therefore evident that the
|
|
category of unity presupposes conjunction. We must therefore look
|
|
still higher for this unity (as qualitative, SS 8), in that, namely,
|
|
which contains the ground of the unity of diverse conceptions in
|
|
judgements, the ground, consequently, of the possibility of the
|
|
existence of the understanding, even in regard to its logical use.
|
|
|
|
*Whether the representations are in themselves identical, and
|
|
consequently whether one can be thought analytically by means of and
|
|
through the other, is a question which we need not at present
|
|
consider. Our Consciousness of the one, when we speak of the manifold,
|
|
is always distinguishable from our consciousness of the other; and
|
|
it is only respecting the synthesis of this (possible) consciousness
|
|
that we here treat.
|
|
|
|
Of the Originally Synthetical Unity of Apperception. SS 12
|
|
|
|
The "I think" must accompany all my representations, for otherwise
|
|
something would be represented in me which could not be thought; in
|
|
other words, the representation would either be impossible, or at
|
|
least be, in relation to me, nothing. That representation which can be
|
|
given previously to all thought is called intuition. All the diversity
|
|
or manifold content of intuition, has, therefore, a necessary relation
|
|
to the 'I think," in the subject in which this diversity is found. But
|
|
this representation, "I think," is an act of spontaneity; that is to
|
|
say, it cannot be regarded as belonging to mere sensibility. I call it
|
|
pure apperception, in order to distinguish it from empirical; or
|
|
primitive apperception, because it is self-consciousness which, whilst
|
|
it gives birth to the representation" I think," must necessarily be
|
|
capable of accompanying all our representations. It is in all acts
|
|
of consciousness one and the same, and unaccompanied by it, no
|
|
representation can exist for me. The unity of this apperception I call
|
|
the transcendental unity of self-consciousness, in order to indicate
|
|
the possibility of a priori cognition arising from it. For the
|
|
manifold representations which are given in an intuition would not all
|
|
of them be my representations, if they did not all belong to one
|
|
self-consciousness, that is, as my representations (even although I am
|
|
not conscious of them as such), they must conform to the condition
|
|
under which alone they can exist together in a common
|
|
self-consciousness, because otherwise they would not all without
|
|
exception belong to me. From this primitive conjunction follow many
|
|
important results.
|
|
|
|
For example, this universal identity of the apperception of the
|
|
manifold given in intuition contains a synthesis of representations
|
|
and is possible only by means of the consciousness of this
|
|
synthesis. For the empirical consciousness which accompanies different
|
|
representations is in itself fragmentary and disunited, and without
|
|
relation to the identity of the subject. This relation, then, does not
|
|
exist because I accompany every representation with consciousness, but
|
|
because I join one representation to another, and am conscious of
|
|
the synthesis of them. Consequently, only because I can connect a
|
|
variety of given representations in one consciousness, is it
|
|
possible that I can represent to myself the identity of
|
|
consciousness in these representations; in other words, the analytical
|
|
unity of apperception is possible only under the presupposition of a
|
|
synthetical unity.* The thought, "These representations given in
|
|
intuition belong all of them to me," is accordingly just the same
|
|
as, "I unite them in one self-consciousness, or can at least so
|
|
unite them"; and although this thought is not itself the consciousness
|
|
of the synthesis of representations, it presupposes the possibility of
|
|
it; that is to say, for the reason alone that I can comprehend the
|
|
variety of my representations in one consciousness, do I call them
|
|
my representations, for otherwise I must have as many-coloured and
|
|
various a self as are the representations of which I am conscious.
|
|
Synthetical unity of the manifold in intuitions, as given a priori, is
|
|
therefore the foundation of the identity of apperception itself, which
|
|
antecedes a priori all determinate thought. But the conjunction of
|
|
representations into a conception is not to be found in objects
|
|
themselves, nor can it be, as it were, borrowed from them and taken up
|
|
into the understanding by perception, but it is on the contrary an
|
|
operation of the understanding itself, which is nothing more than
|
|
the faculty of conjoining a priori and of bringing the variety of
|
|
given representations under the unity of apperception. This
|
|
principle is the highest in all human cognition.
|
|
|
|
*All general conceptions- as such- depend, for their existence, on
|
|
the analytical unity of consciousness. For example, when I think of
|
|
red in general, I thereby think to myself a property which (as a
|
|
characteristic mark) can be discovered somewhere, or can be united
|
|
with other representations; consequently, it is only by means of a
|
|
forethought possible synthetical unity that I can think to myself
|
|
the analytical. A representation which is cogitated as common to
|
|
different representations, is regarded as belonging to such as,
|
|
besides this common representation, contain something different;
|
|
consequently it must be previously thought in synthetical unity with
|
|
other although only possible representations, before I can think in it
|
|
the analytical unity of consciousness which makes it a conceptas
|
|
communis. And thus the synthetical unity of apperception is the
|
|
highest point with which we must connect every operation of the
|
|
understanding, even the whole of logic, and after it our
|
|
transcendental philosophy; indeed, this faculty is the understanding
|
|
itself.
|
|
|
|
This fundamental principle of the necessary unity of apperception is
|
|
indeed an identical, and therefore analytical, proposition; but it
|
|
nevertheless explains the necessity for a synthesis of the manifold
|
|
given in an intuition, without which the identity of
|
|
self-consciousness would be incogitable. For the ego, as a simple
|
|
representation, presents us with no manifold content; only in
|
|
intuition, which is quite different from the representation ego, can
|
|
it be given us, and by means of conjunction it is cogitated in one
|
|
self-consciousness. An understanding, in which all the manifold should
|
|
be given by means of consciousness itself, would be intuitive; our
|
|
understanding can only think and must look for its intuition to sense.
|
|
I am, therefore, conscious of my identical self, in relation to all
|
|
the variety of representations given to me in an intuition, because
|
|
I call all of them my representations. In other words, I am
|
|
conscious myself of a necessary a priori synthesis of my
|
|
representations, which is called the original synthetical unity of
|
|
apperception, under which rank all the representations presented to
|
|
me, but that only by means of a synthesis.
|
|
|
|
The Principle of the Synthetical Unity of Apperception
|
|
|
|
is the highest Principle of all exercise of
|
|
|
|
the Understanding. SS 13
|
|
|
|
The supreme principle of the possibility of all intuition in
|
|
relation to sensibility was, according to our transcendental
|
|
aesthetic, that all the manifold in intuition be subject to the formal
|
|
conditions of space and time. The supreme principle of the possibility
|
|
of it in relation to the understanding is that all the manifold in
|
|
it be subject to conditions of the originally synthetical unity or
|
|
apperception.* To the former of these two principles are subject all
|
|
the various representations of intuition, in so far as they are
|
|
given to us; to the latter, in so far as they must be capable of
|
|
conjunction in one consciousness; for without this nothing can be
|
|
thought or cognized, because the given representations would not
|
|
have in common the act Of the apperception "I think" and therefore
|
|
could not be connected in one self-consciousness.
|
|
|
|
*Space and time, and all portions thereof, are intuitions;
|
|
consequently are, with a manifold for their content, single
|
|
representations. (See the Transcendental Aesthetic.) Consequently,
|
|
they are not pure conceptions, by means of which the same
|
|
consciousness is found in a great number of representations; but, on
|
|
the contrary, they are many representations contained in one, the
|
|
consciousness of which is, so to speak, compounded. The unity of
|
|
consciousness is nevertheless synthetical and, therefore, primitive.
|
|
From this peculiar character of consciousness follow many important
|
|
consequences. (See SS 21.)
|
|
|
|
Understanding is, to speak generally, the faculty Of cognitions.
|
|
These consist in the determined relation of given representation to an
|
|
object. But an object is that, in the conception of which the manifold
|
|
in a given intuition is united. Now all union of representations
|
|
requires unity of consciousness in the synthesis of them.
|
|
Consequently, it is the unity of consciousness alone that
|
|
constitutes the possibility of representations relating to an
|
|
object, and therefore of their objective validity, and of their
|
|
becoming cognitions, and consequently, the possibility of the
|
|
existence of the understanding itself.
|
|
|
|
The first pure cognition of understanding, then, upon which is
|
|
founded all its other exercise, and which is at the same time
|
|
perfectly independent of all conditions of mere sensuous intuition, is
|
|
the principle of the original synthetical unity of apperception.
|
|
Thus the mere form of external sensuous intuition, namely, space,
|
|
affords us, per se, no cognition; it merely contributes the manifold
|
|
in a priori intuition to a possible cognition. But, in order to
|
|
cognize something in space (for example, a line), I must draw it,
|
|
and thus produce synthetically a determined conjunction of the given
|
|
manifold, so that the unity of this act is at the same time the
|
|
unity of consciousness (in the conception of a line), and by this
|
|
means alone is an object (a determinate space) cognized. The
|
|
synthetical unity of consciousness is, therefore, an objective
|
|
condition of all cognition, which I do not merely require in order
|
|
to cognize an object, but to which every intuition must necessarily be
|
|
subject, in order to become an object for me; because in any other
|
|
way, and without this synthesis, the manifold in intuition could not
|
|
be united in one consciousness.
|
|
|
|
This proposition is, as already said, itself analytical, although it
|
|
constitutes the synthetical unity, the condition of all thought; for
|
|
it states nothing more than that all my representations in any given
|
|
intuition must be subject to the condition which alone enables me to
|
|
connect them, as my representation with the identical self, and so
|
|
to unite them synthetically in one apperception, by means of the
|
|
general expression, "I think."
|
|
|
|
But this principle is not to be regarded as a principle for every
|
|
possible understanding, but only for the understanding by means of
|
|
whose pure apperception in the thought I am, no manifold content is
|
|
given. The understanding or mind which contained the manifold in
|
|
intuition, in and through the act itself of its own
|
|
self-consciousness, in other words, an understanding by and in the
|
|
representation of which the objects of the representation should at
|
|
the same time exist, would not require a special act of synthesis of
|
|
the manifold as the condition of the unity of its consciousness, an
|
|
act of which the human understanding, which thinks only and cannot
|
|
intuite, has absolute need. But this principle is the first
|
|
principle of all the operations of our understanding, so that we
|
|
cannot form the least conception of any other possible
|
|
understanding, either of one such as should be itself intuition, or
|
|
possess a sensuous intuition, but with forms different from those of
|
|
space and time.
|
|
|
|
What Objective Unity of Self-consciousness is. SS 14
|
|
|
|
It is by means of the transcendental unity of apperception that
|
|
all the manifold, given in an intuition is united into a conception of
|
|
the object. On this account it is called objective, and must be
|
|
distinguished from the subjective unity of consciousness, which is a
|
|
determination of the internal sense, by means of which the said
|
|
manifold in intuition is given empirically to be so united. Whether
|
|
I can be empirically conscious of the manifold as coexistent or as
|
|
successive, depends upon circumstances, or empirical conditions. Hence
|
|
the empirical unity of consciousness by means of association of
|
|
representations, itself relates to a phenomenal world and is wholly
|
|
contingent. On the contrary, the pure form of intuition in time,
|
|
merely as an intuition, which contains a given manifold, is subject to
|
|
the original unity of consciousness, and that solely by means of the
|
|
necessary relation of the manifold in intuition to the "I think,"
|
|
consequently by means of the pure synthesis of the understanding,
|
|
which lies a priori at the foundation of all empirical synthesis.
|
|
The transcendental unity of apperception is alone objectively valid;
|
|
the empirical which we do not consider in this essay, and which is
|
|
merely a unity deduced from the former under given conditions in
|
|
concreto, possesses only subjective validity. One person connects
|
|
the notion conveyed in a word with one thing, another with another
|
|
thing; and the unity of consciousness in that which is empirical,
|
|
is, in relation to that which is given by experience, not
|
|
necessarily and universally valid.
|
|
|
|
The Logical Form of all Judgements consists in the Objective
|
|
|
|
Unity of Apperception of the Conceptions
|
|
|
|
contained therein. SS 15
|
|
|
|
I could never satisfy myself with the definition which logicians
|
|
give of a judgement. It is, according to them, the representation of a
|
|
relation between two conceptions. I shall not dwell here on the
|
|
faultiness of this definition, in that it suits only for categorical
|
|
and not for hypothetical or disjunctive judgements, these latter
|
|
containing a relation not of conceptions but of judgements themselves-
|
|
a blunder from which many evil results have followed.* It is more
|
|
important for our present purpose to observe, that this definition
|
|
does not determine in what the said relation consists.
|
|
|
|
*The tedious doctrine of the four syllogistic figures concerns
|
|
only categorical syllogisms; and although it is nothing more than an
|
|
artifice by surreptitiously introducing immediate conclusions
|
|
(consequentiae immediatae) among the premises of a pure syllogism,
|
|
to give ism' give rise to an appearance of more modes of drawing a
|
|
conclusion than that in the first figure, the artifice would not
|
|
have had much success, had not its authors succeeded in bringing
|
|
categorical judgements into exclusive respect, as those to which all
|
|
others must be referred- a doctrine, however, which, according to SS
|
|
5, is utterly false.
|
|
|
|
But if I investigate more closely the relation of given cognitions
|
|
in every judgement, and distinguish it, as belonging to the
|
|
understanding, from the relation which is produced according to laws
|
|
of the reproductive imagination (which has only subjective
|
|
validity), I find that judgement is nothing but the mode of bringing
|
|
given cognitions under the objective unit of apperception. This is
|
|
plain from our use of the term of relation is in judgements, in
|
|
order to distinguish the objective unity of given representations from
|
|
the subjective unity. For this term indicates the relation of these
|
|
representations to the original apperception, and also their necessary
|
|
unity, even although the judgement is empirical, therefore contingent,
|
|
as in the judgement: "All bodies are heavy." I do not mean by this,
|
|
that these representations do necessarily belong to each other in
|
|
empirical intuition, but that by means of the necessary unity of
|
|
appreciation they belong to each other in the synthesis of intuitions,
|
|
that is to say, they belong to each other according to principles of
|
|
the objective determination of all our representations, in so far as
|
|
cognition can arise from them, these principles being all deduced from
|
|
the main principle of the transcendental unity of apperception. In
|
|
this way alone can there arise from this relation a judgement, that
|
|
is, a relation which has objective validity, and is perfectly distinct
|
|
from that relation of the very same representations which has only
|
|
subjective validity- a relation, to wit, which is produced according
|
|
to laws of association. According to these laws, I could only say:
|
|
"When I hold in my hand or carry a body, I feel an impression of
|
|
weight"; but I could not say: "It, the body, is heavy"; for this is
|
|
tantamount to saying both these representations are conjoined in the
|
|
object, that is, without distinction as to the condition of the
|
|
subject, and do not merely stand together in my perception, however
|
|
frequently the perceptive act may be repeated.
|
|
|
|
All Sensuous Intuitions are subject to the Categories, as
|
|
|
|
Conditions under which alone the manifold Content of
|
|
|
|
them can be united in one Consciousness. SS 16
|
|
|
|
The manifold content given in a sensuous intuition comes necessarily
|
|
under the original synthetical unity of apperception, because
|
|
thereby alone is the unity of intuition possible (SS 13). But that act
|
|
of the understanding, by which the manifold content of given
|
|
representations (whether intuitions or conceptions) is brought under
|
|
one apperception, is the logical function of judgements (SS 15). All
|
|
the manifold, therefore, in so far as it is given in one empirical
|
|
intuition, is determined in relation to one of the logical functions
|
|
of judgement, by means of which it is brought into union in one
|
|
consciousness. Now the categories are nothing else than these
|
|
functions of judgement so far as the manifold in a given intuition
|
|
is determined in relation to them (SS 9). Consequently, the manifold
|
|
in a given intuition is necessarily subject to the categories of the
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
Observation. SS 17
|
|
|
|
The manifold in an intuition, which I call mine, is represented by
|
|
means of the synthesis of the understanding, as belonging to the
|
|
necessary unity of self-consciousness, and this takes place by means
|
|
of the category.* The category indicates accordingly that the
|
|
empirical consciousness of a given manifold in an intuition is subject
|
|
to a pure self-consciousness a priori, in the same manner as an
|
|
empirical intuition is subject to a pure sensuous intuition, which
|
|
is also a priori. In the above proposition, then, lies the beginning
|
|
of a deduction of the pure conceptions of the understanding. Now, as
|
|
the categories have their origin in the understanding alone,
|
|
independently of sensibility, I must in my deduction make
|
|
abstraction of the mode in which the manifold of an empirical
|
|
intuition is given, in order to fix my attention exclusively on the
|
|
unity which is brought by the understanding into the intuition by
|
|
means of the category. In what follows (SS 22), it will be shown, from
|
|
the mode in which the empirical intuition is given in the faculty of
|
|
sensibility, that the unity which belongs to it is no other than
|
|
that which the category (according to SS 16) imposes on the manifold
|
|
in a given intuition, and thus, its a priori validity in regard to all
|
|
objects of sense being established, the purpose of our deduction
|
|
will be fully attained.
|
|
|
|
*The proof of this rests on the represented unity of intuition, by
|
|
means of which an object is given, and which always includes in itself
|
|
a synthesis of the manifold to be intuited, and also the relation of
|
|
this latter to unity of apperception.
|
|
|
|
But there is one thing in the above demonstration of which I could
|
|
not make abstraction, namely, that the manifold to be intuited must be
|
|
given previously to the synthesis of the understanding, and
|
|
independently of it. How this takes place remains here undetermined.
|
|
For if I cogitate an understanding which was itself intuitive (as, for
|
|
example, a divine understanding which should not represent given
|
|
objects, but by whose representation the objects themselves should
|
|
be given or produced), the categories would possess no significance in
|
|
relation to such a faculty of cognition. They are merely rules for
|
|
an understanding, whose whole power consists in thought, that is, in
|
|
the act of submitting the synthesis of the manifold which is presented
|
|
to it in intuition from a very different quarter, to the unity of
|
|
apperception; a faculty, therefore, which cognizes nothing per se, but
|
|
only connects and arranges the material of cognition, the intuition,
|
|
namely, which must be presented to it by means of the object. But to
|
|
show reasons for this peculiar character of our understandings, that
|
|
it produces unity of apperception a priori only by means of
|
|
categories, and a certain kind and number thereof, is as impossible as
|
|
to explain why we are endowed with precisely so many functions of
|
|
judgement and no more, or why time and space are the only forms of our
|
|
intuition.
|
|
|
|
In Cognition, its Application to Objects of Experience is
|
|
|
|
the only legitimate use of the Category. SS 18
|
|
|
|
To think an object and to cognize an object are by no means the same
|
|
thing. In cognition there are two elements: firstly, the conception,
|
|
whereby an object is cogitated (the category); and, secondly, the
|
|
intuition, whereby the object is given. For supposing that to the
|
|
conception a corresponding intuition could not be given, it would
|
|
still be a thought as regards its form, but without any object, and no
|
|
cognition of anything would be possible by means of it, inasmuch as,
|
|
so far as I knew, there existed and could exist nothing to which my
|
|
thought could be applied. Now all intuition possible to us is
|
|
sensuous; consequently, our thought of an object by means of a pure
|
|
conception of the understanding, can become cognition for us only in
|
|
so far as this conception is applied to objects of the senses.
|
|
Sensuous intuition is either pure intuition (space and time) or
|
|
empirical intuition- of that which is immediately represented in space
|
|
and time by means of sensation as real. Through the determination of
|
|
pure intuition we obtain a priori cognitions of objects, as in
|
|
mathematics, but only as regards their form as phenomena; whether
|
|
there can exist things which must be intuited in this form is not
|
|
thereby established. All mathematical conceptions, therefore, are
|
|
not per se cognition, except in so far as we presuppose that there
|
|
exist things which can only be represented conformably to the form
|
|
of our pure sensuous intuition. But things in space and time are given
|
|
only in so far as they are perceptions (representations accompanied
|
|
with sensation), therefore only by empirical representation.
|
|
Consequently the pure conceptions of the understanding, even when they
|
|
are applied to intuitions a priori (as in mathematics), produce
|
|
cognition only in so far as these (and therefore the conceptions of
|
|
the understanding by means of them) can be applied to empirical
|
|
intuitions. Consequently the categories do not, even by means of
|
|
pure intuition afford us any cognition of things; they can only do
|
|
so in so far as they can be applied to empirical intuition. That is to
|
|
say, the, categories serve only to render empirical cognition
|
|
possible. But this is what we call experience. Consequently, in
|
|
cognition, their application to objects of experience is the only
|
|
legitimate use of the categories.
|
|
|
|
SS 19
|
|
|
|
The foregoing proposition is of the utmost importance, for it
|
|
determines the limits of the exercise of the pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding in regard to objects, just as transcendental aesthetic
|
|
determined the limits of the exercise of the pure form of our sensuous
|
|
intuition. Space and time, as conditions of the possibility of the
|
|
presentation of objects to us, are valid no further than for objects
|
|
of sense, consequently, only for experience. Beyond these limits
|
|
they represent to us nothing, for they belong only to sense, and
|
|
have no reality apart from it. The pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding are free from this limitation, and extend to objects
|
|
of intuition in general, be the intuition like or unlike to ours,
|
|
provided only it be sensuous, and not intellectual. But this extension
|
|
of conceptions beyond the range of our intuition is of no advantage;
|
|
for they are then mere empty conceptions of objects, as to the
|
|
possibility or impossibility of the existence of which they furnish us
|
|
with no means of discovery. They are mere forms of thought, without
|
|
objective reality, because we have no intuition to which the
|
|
synthetical unity of apperception, which alone the categories contain,
|
|
could be applied, for the purpose of determining an object. Our
|
|
sensuous and empirical intuition can alone give them significance
|
|
and meaning.
|
|
|
|
If, then, we suppose an object of a non-sensuous intuition to be
|
|
given we can in that case represent it by all those predicates which
|
|
are implied in the presupposition that nothing appertaining to
|
|
sensuous intuition belongs to it; for example, that it is not
|
|
extended, or in space; that its duration is not time; that in it no
|
|
change (the effect of the determinations in time) is to be met with,
|
|
and so on. But it is no proper knowledge if I merely indicate what the
|
|
intuition of the object is not, without being able to say what is
|
|
contained in it, for I have not shown the possibility of an object
|
|
to which my pure conception of understanding could be applicable,
|
|
because I have not been able to furnish any intuition corresponding to
|
|
it, but am only able to say that our intuition is not valid for it.
|
|
But the most important point is this, that to a something of this kind
|
|
not one category can be found applicable. Take, for example, the
|
|
conception of substance, that is, something that can exist as subject,
|
|
but never as mere predicate; in regard to this conception I am quite
|
|
ignorant whether there can really be anything to correspond to such
|
|
a determination of thought, if empirical intuition did not afford me
|
|
the occasion for its application. But of this more in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
Of the Application of the Categories to Objects of the
|
|
|
|
Senses in general. SS 20
|
|
|
|
The pure conceptions of the understanding apply to objects of
|
|
intuition in general, through the understanding alone, whether the
|
|
intuition be our own or some other, provided only it be sensuous,
|
|
but are, for this very reason, mere forms of thought, by means of
|
|
which alone no determined object can be cognized. The synthesis or
|
|
conjunction of the manifold in these conceptions relates, we have
|
|
said, only to the unity of apperception, and is for this reason the
|
|
ground of the possibility of a priori cognition, in so far as this
|
|
cognition is dependent on the understanding. This synthesis is,
|
|
therefore, not merely transcendental, but also purely intellectual.
|
|
But because a certain form of sensuous intuition exists in the mind
|
|
a priori which rests on the receptivity of the representative
|
|
faculty (sensibility), the understanding, as a spontaneity, is able to
|
|
determine the internal sense by means of the diversity of given
|
|
representations, conformably to the synthetical unity of apperception,
|
|
and thus to cogitate the synthetical unity of the apperception of
|
|
the manifold of sensuous intuition a priori, as the condition to which
|
|
must necessarily be submitted all objects of human intuition. And in
|
|
this manner the categories as mere forms of thought receive
|
|
objective reality, that is, application to objects which are given
|
|
to us in intuition, but that only as phenomena, for it is only of
|
|
phenomena that we are capable of a priori intuition.
|
|
|
|
This synthesis of the manifold of sensuous intuition, which is
|
|
possible and necessary a priori, may be called figurative (synthesis
|
|
speciosa), in contradistinction to that which is cogitated in the mere
|
|
category in regard to the manifold of an intuition in general, and
|
|
is called connection or conjunction of the understanding (synthesis
|
|
intellectualis). Both are transcendental, not merely because they
|
|
themselves precede a priori all experience, but also because they form
|
|
the basis for the possibility of other cognition a priori.
|
|
|
|
But the figurative synthesis, when it has relation only to the
|
|
originally synthetical unity of apperception, that is to the
|
|
transcendental unity cogitated in the categories, must, to be
|
|
distinguished from the purely intellectual conjunction, be entitled
|
|
the transcendental synthesis of imagination. Imagination is the
|
|
faculty of representing an object even without its presence in
|
|
intuition. Now, as all our intuition is sensuous, imagination, by
|
|
reason of the subjective condition under which alone it can give a
|
|
corresponding intuition to the conceptions of the understanding,
|
|
belongs to sensibility. But in so far as the synthesis of the
|
|
imagination is an act of spontaneity, which is determinative, and not,
|
|
like sense, merely determinable, and which is consequently able to
|
|
determine sense a priori, according to its form, conformably to the
|
|
unity of apperception, in so far is the imagination a faculty of
|
|
determining sensibility a priori, and its synthesis of intuitions
|
|
according to the categories must be the transcendental synthesis of
|
|
the imagination. It is an operation of the understanding on
|
|
sensibility, and the first application of the understanding to objects
|
|
of possible intuition, and at the same time the basis for the exercise
|
|
of the other functions of that faculty. As figurative, it is
|
|
distinguished from the merely intellectual synthesis, which is
|
|
produced by the understanding alone, without the aid of imagination.
|
|
Now, in so far as imagination is spontaneity, I sometimes call it also
|
|
the productive imagination, and distinguish it from the
|
|
reproductive, the synthesis of which is subject entirely to
|
|
empirical laws, those of association, namely, and which, therefore,
|
|
contributes nothing to the explanation of the possibility of a
|
|
priori cognition, and for this reason belongs not to transcendental
|
|
philosophy, but to psychology.
|
|
|
|
We have now arrived at the proper place for explaining the paradox
|
|
which must have struck every one in our exposition of the internal
|
|
sense (SS 6), namely- how this sense represents us to our own
|
|
consciousness, only as we appear to ourselves, not as we are in
|
|
ourselves, because, to wit, we intuite ourselves only as we are
|
|
inwardly affected. Now this appears to be contradictory, inasmuch as
|
|
we thus stand in a passive relation to ourselves; and therefore in the
|
|
systems of psychology, the internal sense is commonly held to be one
|
|
with the faculty of apperception, while we, on the contrary, carefully
|
|
distinguish them.
|
|
|
|
That which determines the internal sense is the understanding, and
|
|
its original power of conjoining the manifold of intuition, that is,
|
|
of bringing this under an apperception (upon which rests the
|
|
possibility of the understanding itself). Now, as the human
|
|
understanding is not in itself a faculty of intuition, and is unable
|
|
to exercise such a power, in order to conjoin, as it were, the
|
|
manifold of its own intuition, the synthesis of understanding is,
|
|
considered per se, nothing but the unity of action, of which, as such,
|
|
it is self-conscious, even apart from sensibility, by which, moreover,
|
|
it is able to determine our internal sense in respect of the
|
|
manifold which may be presented to it according to the form of
|
|
sensuous intuition. Thus, under the name of a transcendental synthesis
|
|
of imagination, the understanding exercises an activity upon the
|
|
passive subject, whose faculty it is; and so we are right in saying
|
|
that the internal sense is affected thereby. Apperception and its
|
|
synthetical unity are by no means one and the same with the internal
|
|
sense. The former, as the source of all our synthetical conjunction,
|
|
applies, under the name of the categories, to the manifold of
|
|
intuition in general, prior to all sensuous intuition of objects.
|
|
The internal sense, on the contrary, contains merely the form of
|
|
intuition, but without any synthetical conjunction of the manifold
|
|
therein, and consequently does not contain any determined intuition,
|
|
which is possible only through consciousness of the determination of
|
|
the manifold by the transcendental act of the imagination (synthetical
|
|
influence of the understanding on the internal sense), which I have
|
|
named figurative synthesis.
|
|
|
|
This we can indeed always perceive in ourselves. We cannot
|
|
cogitate a geometrical line without drawing it in thought, nor a
|
|
circle without describing it, nor represent the three dimensions of
|
|
space without drawing three lines from the same point perpendicular to
|
|
one another. We cannot even cogitate time, unless, in drawing a
|
|
straight line (which is to serve as the external figurative
|
|
representation of time), we fix our attention on the act of the
|
|
synthesis of the manifold, whereby we determine successively the
|
|
internal sense, and thus attend also to the succession of this
|
|
determination. Motion as an act of the subject (not as a determination
|
|
of an object),* consequently the synthesis of the manifold in space,
|
|
if we make abstraction of space and attend merely to the act by
|
|
which we determine the internal sense according to its form, is that
|
|
which produces the conception of succession. The understanding,
|
|
therefore, does by no means find in the internal sense any such
|
|
synthesis of the manifold, but produces it, in that it affects this
|
|
sense. At the same time, how "I who think" is distinct from the "I"
|
|
which intuites itself (other modes of intuition being cogitable as
|
|
at least possible), and yet one and the same with this latter as the
|
|
same subject; how, therefore, I am able to say: "I, as an intelligence
|
|
and thinking subject, cognize myself as an object thought, so far as I
|
|
am, moreover, given to myself in intuition- only, like other
|
|
phenomena, not as I am in myself, and as considered by the
|
|
understanding, but merely as I appear"- is a question that has in it
|
|
neither more nor less difficulty than the question- "How can I be an
|
|
object to myself?" or this- "How I can be an object of my own
|
|
intuition and internal perceptions?" But that such must be the fact,
|
|
if we admit that space is merely a pure form of the phenomena of
|
|
external sense, can be clearly proved by the consideration that we
|
|
cannot represent time, which is not an object of external intuition,
|
|
in any other way than under the image of a line, which we draw in
|
|
thought, a mode of representation without which we could not cognize
|
|
the unity of its dimension, and also that we are necessitated to
|
|
take our determination of periods of time, or of points of time, for
|
|
all our internal perceptions from the changes which we perceive in
|
|
outward things. It follows that we must arrange the determinations
|
|
of the internal sense, as phenomena in time, exactly in the same
|
|
manner as we arrange those of the external senses in space. And
|
|
consequently, if we grant, respecting this latter, that by means of
|
|
them we know objects only in so far as we are affected externally,
|
|
we must also confess, with regard to the internal sense, that by means
|
|
of it we intuite ourselves only as we are internally affected by
|
|
ourselves; in other words, as regards internal intuition, we cognize
|
|
our own subject only as phenomenon, and not as it is in itself.*[2]
|
|
|
|
*Motion of an object in space does not belong to a pure science,
|
|
consequently not to geometry; because, that a thing is movable
|
|
cannot be known a priori, but only from experience. But motion,
|
|
considered as the description of a space, is a pure act of the
|
|
successive synthesis of the manifold in external intuition by means of
|
|
productive imagination, and belongs not only to geometry, but even
|
|
to transcendental philosophy.
|
|
|
|
*[2] I do not see why so much difficulty should be found in
|
|
admitting that our internal sense is affected by ourselves. Every
|
|
act of attention exemplifies it. In such an act the understanding
|
|
determines the internal sense by the synthetical conjunction which
|
|
it cogitates, conformably to the internal intuition which
|
|
corresponds to the manifold in the synthesis of the understanding. How
|
|
much the mind is usually affected thereby every one will be able to
|
|
perceive in himself.
|
|
|
|
SS 21
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, in the transcendental synthesis of the manifold
|
|
content of representations, consequently in the synthetical unity of
|
|
apperception, I am conscious of myself, not as I appear to myself, nor
|
|
as I am in myself, but only that "I am." This representation is a
|
|
thought, not an intuition. Now, as in order to cognize ourselves, in
|
|
addition to the act of thinking, which subjects the manifold of
|
|
every possible intuition to the unity of apperception, there is
|
|
necessary a determinate mode of intuition, whereby this manifold is
|
|
given; although my own existence is certainly not mere phenomenon
|
|
(much less mere illusion), the determination of my existence* Can only
|
|
take place conformably to the form of the internal sense, according to
|
|
the particular mode in which the manifold which I conjoin is given
|
|
in internal intuition, and I have therefore no knowledge of myself
|
|
as I am, but merely as I appear to myself. The consciousness of self
|
|
is thus very far from a knowledge of self, in which I do not use the
|
|
categories, whereby I cogitate an object, by means of the
|
|
conjunction of the manifold in one apperception. In the same way as
|
|
I require, for the sake of the cognition of an object distinct from
|
|
myself, not only the thought of an object in general (in the
|
|
category), but also an intuition by which to determine that general
|
|
conception, in the same way do I require, in order to the cognition of
|
|
myself, not only the consciousness of myself or the thought that I
|
|
think myself, but in addition an intuition of the manifold in
|
|
myself, by which to determine this thought. It is true that I exist as
|
|
an intelligence which is conscious only of its faculty of
|
|
conjunction or synthesis, but subjected in relation to the manifold
|
|
which this intelligence has to conjoin to a limitative conjunction
|
|
called the internal sense. My intelligence (that is, I) can render
|
|
that conjunction or synthesis perceptible only according to the
|
|
relations of time, which are quite beyond the proper sphere of the
|
|
conceptions of the understanding and consequently cognize itself in
|
|
respect to an intuition (which cannot possibly be intellectual, nor
|
|
given by the understanding), only as it appears to itself, and not
|
|
as it would cognize itself, if its intuition were intellectual.
|
|
|
|
*The "I think" expresses the act of determining my own existence. My
|
|
existence is thus already given by the act of consciousness; but the
|
|
mode in which I must determine my existence, that is, the mode in
|
|
which I must place the manifold belonging to my existence, is not
|
|
thereby given. For this purpose intuition of self is required, and
|
|
this intuition possesses a form given a priori, namely, time, which is
|
|
sensuous, and belongs to our receptivity of the determinable. Now,
|
|
as I do not possess another intuition of self which gives the
|
|
determining in me (of the spontaneity of which I am conscious),
|
|
prior to the act of determination, in the same manner as time gives
|
|
the determinable, it is clear that I am unable to determine my own
|
|
existence as that of a spontaneous being, but I am only able to
|
|
represent to myself the spontaneity of my thought, that is, of my
|
|
determination, and my existence remains ever determinable in a
|
|
purely sensuous manner, that is to say, like the existence of a
|
|
phenomenon. But it is because of this spontaneity that I call myself
|
|
an intelligence.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental Deduction of the universally possible
|
|
|
|
employment in experience of the Pure Conceptions
|
|
|
|
of the Understanding. SS 22
|
|
|
|
In the metaphysical deduction, the a priori origin of categories was
|
|
proved by their complete accordance with the general logical of
|
|
thought; in the transcendental deduction was exhibited the possibility
|
|
of the categories as a priori cognitions of objects of an intuition in
|
|
general (SS 16 and 17).At present we are about to explain the
|
|
possibility of cognizing, a priori, by means of the categories, all
|
|
objects which can possibly be presented to our senses, not, indeed,
|
|
according to the form of their intuition, but according to the laws of
|
|
their conjunction or synthesis, and thus, as it were, of prescribing
|
|
laws to nature and even of rendering nature possible. For if the
|
|
categories were inadequate to this task, it would not be evident to us
|
|
why everything that is presented to our senses must be subject to
|
|
those laws which have an a priori origin in the understanding itself.
|
|
|
|
I premise that by the term synthesis of apprehension I understand
|
|
the combination of the manifold in an empirical intuition, whereby
|
|
perception, that is, empirical consciousness of the intuition (as
|
|
phenomenon), is possible.
|
|
|
|
We have a priori forms of the external and internal sensuous
|
|
intuition in the representations of space and time, and to these
|
|
must the synthesis of apprehension of the manifold in a phenomenon
|
|
be always comformable, because the synthesis itself can only take
|
|
place according to these forms. But space and time are not merely
|
|
forms of sensuous intuition, but intuitions themselves (which
|
|
contain a manifold), and therefore contain a priori the
|
|
determination of the unity of this manifold.* (See the Transcendent
|
|
Aesthetic.) Therefore is unity of the synthesis of the manifold
|
|
without or within us, consequently also a conjunction to which all
|
|
that is to be represented as determined in space or time must
|
|
correspond, given a priori along with (not in) these intuitions, as
|
|
the condition of the synthesis of all apprehension of them. But this
|
|
synthetical unity can be no other than that of the conjunction of
|
|
the manifold of a given intuition in general, in a primitive act of
|
|
consciousness, according to the categories, but applied to our
|
|
sensuous intuition. Consequently all synthesis, whereby alone is
|
|
even perception possible, is subject to the categories. And, as
|
|
experience is cognition by means of conjoined perceptions, the
|
|
categories are conditions of the possibility of experience and are
|
|
therefore valid a priori for all objects of experience.
|
|
|
|
*Space represented as an object (as geometry really requires it to
|
|
be) contains more than the mere form of the intuition; namely, a
|
|
combination of the manifold given according to the form of sensibility
|
|
into a representation that can be intuited; so that the form of the
|
|
intuition gives us merely the manifold, but the formal intuition gives
|
|
unity of representation. In the aesthetic, I regarded this unity as
|
|
belonging entirely to sensibility, for the purpose of indicating
|
|
that it antecedes all conceptions, although it presupposes a synthesis
|
|
which does not belong to sense, through which alone, however, all
|
|
our conceptions of space and time are possible. For as by means of
|
|
this unity alone (the understanding determining the sensibility) space
|
|
and time are given as intuitions, it follows that the unity of this
|
|
intuition a priori belongs to space and time, and not to the
|
|
conception of the understanding (SS 20).
|
|
|
|
When, then, for example, I make the empirical intuition of a house
|
|
by apprehension of the manifold contained therein into a perception,
|
|
the necessary unity of space and of my external sensuous intuition
|
|
lies at the foundation of this act, and I, as it were, draw the form
|
|
of the house conformably to this synthetical unity of the manifold
|
|
in space. But this very synthetical unity remains, even when I
|
|
abstract the form of space, and has its seat in the understanding, and
|
|
is in fact the category of the synthesis of the homogeneous in an
|
|
intuition; that is to say, the category of quantity, to which the
|
|
aforesaid synthesis of apprehension, that is, the perception, must
|
|
be completely conformable.*
|
|
|
|
*In this manner it is proved, that the synthesis of apprehension,
|
|
which is empirical, must necessarily be conformable to the synthesis
|
|
of apperception, which is intellectual, and contained a priori in
|
|
the category. It is one and the same spontaneity which at one time,
|
|
under the name of imagination, at another under that of understanding,
|
|
produces conjunction in the manifold of intuition.
|
|
|
|
To take another example, when I perceive the freezing of water, I
|
|
apprehend two states (fluidity and solidity), which, as such, stand
|
|
toward each other mutually in a relation of time. But in the time,
|
|
which I place as an internal intuition, at the foundation of this
|
|
phenomenon, I represent to myself synthetical unity of the manifold,
|
|
without which the aforesaid relation could not be given in an
|
|
intuition as determined (in regard to the succession of time). Now
|
|
this synthetical unity, as the a priori condition under which I
|
|
conjoin the manifold of an intuition, is, if I make abstraction of the
|
|
permanent form of my internal intuition (that is to say, of time), the
|
|
category of cause, by means of which, when applied to my
|
|
sensibility, I determine everything that occurs according to relations
|
|
of time. Consequently apprehension in such an event, and the event
|
|
itself, as far as regards the possibility of its perception, stands
|
|
under the conception of the relation of cause and effect: and so in
|
|
all other cases.
|
|
|
|
Categories are conceptions which prescribe laws a priori to
|
|
phenomena, consequently to nature as the complex of all phenomena
|
|
(natura materialiter spectata). And now the question arises-
|
|
inasmuch as these categories are not derived from nature, and do not
|
|
regulate themselves according to her as their model (for in that
|
|
case they would be empirical)- how it is conceivable that nature
|
|
must regulate herself according to them, in other words, how the
|
|
categories can determine a priori the synthesis of the manifold of
|
|
nature, and yet not derive their origin from her. The following is the
|
|
solution of this enigma.
|
|
|
|
It is not in the least more difficult to conceive how the laws of
|
|
the phenomena of nature must harmonize with the understanding and with
|
|
its a priori form- that is, its faculty of conjoining the manifold-
|
|
than it is to understand how the phenomena themselves must
|
|
correspond with the a priori form of our sensuous intuition. For
|
|
laws do not exist in the phenomena any more than the phenomena exist
|
|
as things in themselves. Laws do not exist except by relation to the
|
|
subject in which the phenomena inhere, in so far as it possesses
|
|
understanding, just as phenomena have no existence except by
|
|
relation to the same existing subject in so far as it has senses. To
|
|
things as things in themselves, conformability to law must necessarily
|
|
belong independently of an understanding to cognize them. But
|
|
phenomena are only representations of things which are utterly unknown
|
|
in respect to what they are in themselves. But as mere
|
|
representations, they stand under no law of conjunction except that
|
|
which the conjoining faculty prescribes. Now that which conjoins the
|
|
manifold of sensuous intuition is imagination, a mental act to which
|
|
understanding contributes unity of intellectual synthesis, and
|
|
sensibility, manifoldness of apprehension. Now as all possible
|
|
perception depends on the synthesis of apprehension, and this
|
|
empirical synthesis itself on the transcendental, consequently on
|
|
the categories, it is evident that all possible perceptions, and
|
|
therefore everything that can attain to empirical consciousness,
|
|
that is, all phenomena of nature, must, as regards their
|
|
conjunction, be subject to the categories. And nature (considered
|
|
merely as nature in general) is dependent on them. as the original
|
|
ground of her necessary conformability to law (as natura formaliter
|
|
spectata). But the pure faculty (of the understanding) of
|
|
prescribing laws a priori to phenomena by means of mere categories, is
|
|
not competent to enounce other or more laws than those on which a
|
|
nature in general, as a conformability to law of phenomena of space
|
|
and time, depends. Particular laws, inasmuch as they concern
|
|
empirically determined phenomena, cannot be entirely deduced from pure
|
|
laws, although they all stand under them. Experience must be
|
|
superadded in order to know these particular laws; but in regard to
|
|
experience in general, and everything that can be cognized as an
|
|
object thereof, these a priori laws are our only rule and guide.
|
|
|
|
Result of this Deduction of the Conceptions of the
|
|
|
|
Understanding. SS 23
|
|
|
|
We cannot think any object except by means of the categories; we
|
|
cannot cognize any thought except by means of intuitions corresponding
|
|
to these conceptions. Now all our intuitions are sensuous, and our
|
|
cognition, in so far as the object of it is given, is empirical. But
|
|
empirical cognition is experience; consequently no a priori
|
|
cognition is possible for us, except of objects of possible
|
|
experience.*
|
|
|
|
*Lest my readers should stumble at this assertion, and the
|
|
conclusions that may be too rashly drawn from it, I must remind them
|
|
that the categories in the act of thought are by no means limited by
|
|
the conditions of our sensuous intuition, but have an unbounded sphere
|
|
of action. It is only the cognition of the object of thought, the
|
|
determining of the object, which requires intuition. In the absence of
|
|
intuition, our thought of an object may still have true and useful
|
|
consequences in regard to the exercise of reason by the subject. But
|
|
as this exercise of reason is not always directed on the determination
|
|
of the object, in other words, on cognition thereof, but also on the
|
|
determination of the subject and its volition, I do not intend to
|
|
treat of it in this place.
|
|
|
|
But this cognition, which is limited to objects of experience, is
|
|
not for that reason derived entirely, from, experience, but- and
|
|
this is asserted of the pure intuitions and the pure conceptions of
|
|
the understanding- there are, unquestionably, elements of cognition,
|
|
which exist in the mind a priori. Now there are only two ways in which
|
|
a necessary harmony of experience with the conceptions of its
|
|
objects can be cogitated. Either experience makes these conceptions
|
|
possible, or the conceptions make experience possible. The former of
|
|
these statements will not bold good with respect to the categories
|
|
(nor in regard to pure sensuous intuition), for they are a priori
|
|
conceptions, and therefore independent of experience. The assertion of
|
|
an empirical origin would attribute to them a sort of generatio
|
|
aequivoca. Consequently, nothing remains but to adopt the second
|
|
alternative (which presents us with a system, as it were, of the
|
|
epigenesis of pure reason), namely, that on the part of the
|
|
understanding the categories do contain the grounds of the possibility
|
|
of all experience. But with respect to the questions how they make
|
|
experience possible, and what are the principles of the possibility
|
|
thereof with which they present us in their application to
|
|
phenomena, the following section on the transcendental exercise of the
|
|
faculty of judgement will inform the reader.
|
|
|
|
It is quite possible that someone may propose a species of
|
|
preformation-system of pure reason- a middle way between the two- to
|
|
wit, that the categories are neither innate and first a priori
|
|
principles of cognition, nor derived from experience, but are merely
|
|
subjective aptitudes for thought implanted in us contemporaneously
|
|
with our existence, which were so ordered and disposed by our Creator,
|
|
that their exercise perfectly harmonizes with the laws of nature which
|
|
regulate experience. Now, not to mention that with such an
|
|
hypothesis it is impossible to say at what point we must stop in the
|
|
employment of predetermined aptitudes, the fact that the categories
|
|
would in this case entirely lose that character of necessity which
|
|
is essentially involved in the very conception of them, is a
|
|
conclusive objection to it. The conception of cause, for example,
|
|
which expresses the necessity of an effect under a presupposed
|
|
condition, would be false, if it rested only upon such an arbitrary
|
|
subjective necessity of uniting certain empirical representations
|
|
according to such a rule of relation. I could not then say- "The
|
|
effect is connected with its cause in the object (that is,
|
|
necessarily)," but only, "I am so constituted that I can think this
|
|
representation as so connected, and not otherwise." Now this is just
|
|
what the sceptic wants. For in this case, all our knowledge, depending
|
|
on the supposed objective validity of our judgement, is nothing but
|
|
mere illusion; nor would there be wanting people who would deny any
|
|
such subjective necessity in respect to themselves, though they must
|
|
feel it. At all events, we could not dispute with any one on that
|
|
which merely depends on the manner in which his subject is organized.
|
|
|
|
Short view of the above Deduction.
|
|
|
|
The foregoing deduction is an exposition of the pure conceptions
|
|
of the understanding (and with them of all theoretical a priori
|
|
cognition), as principles of the possibility of experience, but of
|
|
experience as the determination of all phenomena in space and time
|
|
in general- of experience, finally, from the principle of the original
|
|
synthetical unity of apperception, as the form of the understanding in
|
|
relation to time and space as original forms of sensibility.
|
|
|
|
I consider the division by paragraphs to be necessary only up to
|
|
this point, because we had to treat of the elementary conceptions.
|
|
As we now proceed to the exposition of the employment of these, I
|
|
shall not designate the chapters in this manner any further.
|
|
|
|
BOOK II.
|
|
|
|
Analytic of Principles.
|
|
|
|
General logic is constructed upon a plan which coincides exactly
|
|
with the division of the higher faculties of cognition. These are,
|
|
understanding, judgement, and reason. This science, accordingly,
|
|
treats in its analytic of conceptions, judgements, and conclusions
|
|
in exact correspondence with the functions and order of those mental
|
|
powers which we include generally under the generic denomination of
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
As this merely formal logic makes abstraction of all content of
|
|
cognition, whether pure or empirical, and occupies itself with the
|
|
mere form of thought (discursive cognition), it must contain in its
|
|
analytic a canon for reason. For the form of reason has its law,
|
|
which, without taking into consideration the particular nature of
|
|
the cognition about which it is employed, can be discovered a
|
|
priori, by the simple analysis of the action of reason into its
|
|
momenta.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental logic, limited as it is to a determinate content,
|
|
that of pure a priori cognitions, to wit, cannot imitate general logic
|
|
in this division. For it is evident that the transcendental employment
|
|
of reason is not objectively valid, and therefore does not belong to
|
|
the logic of truth (that is, to analytic), but as a logic of illusion,
|
|
occupies a particular department in the scholastic system under the
|
|
name of transcendental dialectic.
|
|
|
|
Understanding and judgement accordingly possess in transcendental
|
|
logic a canon of objectively valid, and therefore true exercise, and
|
|
are comprehended in the analytical department of that logic. But
|
|
reason, in her endeavours to arrive by a priori means at some true
|
|
statement concerning objects and to extend cognition beyond the bounds
|
|
of possible experience, is altogether dialectic, and her illusory
|
|
assertions cannot be constructed into a canon such as an analytic
|
|
ought to contain.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, the analytic of principles will be merely a canon for
|
|
the faculty of judgement, for the instruction of this faculty in its
|
|
application to phenomena of the pure conceptions of the understanding,
|
|
which contain the necessary condition for the establishment of a
|
|
priori laws. On this account, although the subject of the following
|
|
chapters is the especial principles of understanding, I shall make use
|
|
of the term Doctrine of the faculty of judgement, in order to define
|
|
more particularly my present purpose.
|
|
|
|
INTRODUCTION. Of the Transcendental Faculty of judgement in General.
|
|
|
|
If understanding in general be defined as the faculty of laws or
|
|
rules, the faculty of judgement may be termed the faculty of
|
|
subsumption under these rules; that is, of distinguishing whether this
|
|
or that does or does not stand under a given rule (casus datae legis).
|
|
General logic contains no directions or precepts for the faculty of
|
|
judgement, nor can it contain any such. For as it makes abstraction of
|
|
all content of cognition, no duty is left for it, except that of
|
|
exposing analytically the mere form of cognition in conceptions,
|
|
judgements, and conclusions, and of thereby establishing formal
|
|
rules for all exercise of the understanding. Now if this logic
|
|
wished to give some general direction how we should subsume under
|
|
these rules, that is, how we should distinguish whether this or that
|
|
did or did not stand under them, this again could not be done
|
|
otherwise than by means of a rule. But this rule, precisely because it
|
|
is a rule, requires for itself direction from the faculty of
|
|
judgement. Thus, it is evident that the understanding is capable of
|
|
being instructed by rules, but that the judgement is a peculiar
|
|
talent, which does not, and cannot require tuition, but only exercise.
|
|
This faculty is therefore the specific quality of the so-called mother
|
|
wit, the want of which no scholastic discipline can compensate.
|
|
|
|
For although education may furnish, and, as it were, engraft upon
|
|
a limited understanding rules borrowed from other minds, yet the power
|
|
of employing these rules correctly must belong to the pupil himself;
|
|
and no rule which we can prescribe to him with this purpose is, in the
|
|
absence or deficiency of this gift of nature, secure from misuse.* A
|
|
physician therefore, a judge or a statesman, may have in his head many
|
|
admirable pathological, juridical, or political rules, in a degree
|
|
that may enable him to be a profound teacher in his particular
|
|
science, and yet in the application of these rules he may very
|
|
possibly blunder- either because he is wanting in natural judgement
|
|
(though not in understanding) and, whilst he can comprehend the
|
|
general in abstracto, cannot distinguish whether a particular case
|
|
in concreto ought to rank under the former; or because his faculty
|
|
of judgement bas not been sufficiently exercised by examples and
|
|
real practice. Indeed, the grand and only use of examples, is to
|
|
sharpen the judgement. For as regards the correctness and precision of
|
|
the insight of the understanding, examples are commonly injurious
|
|
rather than otherwise, because, as casus in terminis they seldom
|
|
adequately fulfil the conditions of the rule. Besides, they often
|
|
weaken the power of our understanding to apprehend rules or laws in
|
|
their universality, independently of particular circumstances of
|
|
experience; and hence, accustom us to employ them more as formulae
|
|
than as principles. Examples are thus the go-cart of the judgement,
|
|
which he who is naturally deficient in that faculty cannot afford to
|
|
dispense with.
|
|
|
|
*Deficiency in judgement is properly that which is called stupidity;
|
|
and for such a failing we know no remedy. A dull or narrow-minded
|
|
person, to whom nothing is wanting but a proper degree of
|
|
understanding, may be improved by tuition, even so far as to deserve
|
|
the epithet of learned. But as such persons frequently labour under
|
|
a deficiency in the faculty of judgement, it is not uncommon to find
|
|
men extremely learned who in the application of their science betray a
|
|
lamentable degree this irremediable want.
|
|
|
|
But although general logic cannot give directions to the faculty
|
|
of judgement, the case is very different as regards transcendental
|
|
logic, insomuch that it appears to be the especial duty of the
|
|
latter to secure and direct, by means of determinate rules, the
|
|
faculty of judgement in the employment of the pure understanding. For,
|
|
as a doctrine, that is, as an endeavour to enlarge the sphere of the
|
|
understanding in regard to pure a priori cognitions, philosophy is
|
|
worse than useless, since from all the attempts hitherto made,
|
|
little or no ground has been gained. But, as a critique, in order to
|
|
guard against the mistakes of the faculty of judgement (lapsus
|
|
judicii) in the employment of the few pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding which we possess, although its use is in this case
|
|
purely negative, philosophy is called upon to apply all its
|
|
acuteness and penetration.
|
|
|
|
But transcendental philosophy has this peculiarity, that besides
|
|
indicating the rule, or rather the general condition for rules,
|
|
which is given in the pure conception of the understanding, it can, at
|
|
the same time, indicate a priori the case to which the rule must be
|
|
applied. The cause of the superiority which, in this respect,
|
|
transcendental philosophy possesses above all other sciences except
|
|
mathematics, lies in this: it treats of conceptions which must
|
|
relate a priori to their objects, whose objective validity
|
|
consequently cannot be demonstrated a posteriori, and is, at the
|
|
same time, under the obligation of presenting in general but
|
|
sufficient tests, the conditions under which objects can be given in
|
|
harmony with those conceptions; otherwise they would be mere logical
|
|
forms, without content, and not pure conceptions of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
Our transcendental doctrine of the faculty of judgement will contain
|
|
two chapters. The first will treat of the sensuous condition under
|
|
which alone pure conceptions of the understanding can be employed-
|
|
that is, of the schematism of the pure understanding. The second
|
|
will treat of those synthetical judgements which are derived a
|
|
priori from pure conceptions of the understanding under those
|
|
conditions, and which lie a priori at the foundation of all other
|
|
cognitions, that is to say, it will treat of the principles of the
|
|
pure understanding.
|
|
|
|
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF THE FACULTY OF JUDGEMENT
|
|
|
|
OR, ANALYTIC OF PRINCIPLES.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. Of the Schematism at of the Pure Conceptions
|
|
|
|
of the Understanding.
|
|
|
|
In all subsumptions of an object under a conception, the
|
|
representation of the object must be homogeneous with the
|
|
conception; in other words, the conception must contain that which
|
|
is represented in the object to be subsumed under it. For this is
|
|
the meaning of the expression: "An object is contained under a
|
|
conception." Thus the empirical conception of a plate is homogeneous
|
|
with the pure geometrical conception of a circle, inasmuch as the
|
|
roundness which is cogitated in the former is intuited in the latter.
|
|
|
|
But pure conceptions of the understanding, when compared with
|
|
empirical intuitions, or even with sensuous intuitions in general, are
|
|
quite heterogeneous, and never can be discovered in any intuition. How
|
|
then is the subsumption of the latter under the former, and
|
|
consequently the application of the categories to phenomena,
|
|
possible?- For it is impossible to say, for example: "Causality can be
|
|
intuited through the senses and is contained in the phenomenon."- This
|
|
natural and important question forms the real cause of the necessity
|
|
of a transcendental doctrine of the faculty of judgement, with the
|
|
purpose, to wit, of showing how pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding can be applied to phenomena. In all other sciences,
|
|
where the conceptions by which the object is thought in the general
|
|
are not so different and heterogeneous from those which represent
|
|
the object in concreto- as it is given, it is quite unnecessary to
|
|
institute any special inquiries concerning the application of the
|
|
former to the latter.
|
|
|
|
Now it is quite clear that there must be some third thing, which
|
|
on the one side is homogeneous with the category, and with the
|
|
phenomenon on the other, and so makes the application of the former to
|
|
the latter possible. This mediating representation must be pure
|
|
(without any empirical content), and yet must on the one side be
|
|
intellectual, on the other sensuous. Such a representation is the
|
|
transcendental schema.
|
|
|
|
The conception of the understanding contains pure synthetical
|
|
unity of the manifold in general. Time, as the formal condition of the
|
|
manifold of the internal sense, consequently of the conjunction of all
|
|
representations, contains a priori a manifold in the pure intuition.
|
|
Now a transcendental determination of time is so far homogeneous
|
|
with the category, which constitutes the unity thereof, that it is
|
|
universal and rests upon a rule a priori. On the other hand, it is
|
|
so far homogeneous with the phenomenon, inasmuch as time is
|
|
contained in every empirical representation of the manifold. Thus an
|
|
application of the category to phenomena becomes possible, by means of
|
|
the transcendental determination of time, which, as the schema of
|
|
the conceptions of the understanding, mediates the subsumption of
|
|
the latter under the former.
|
|
|
|
After what has been proved in our deduction of the categories, no
|
|
one, it is to be hoped, can hesitate as to the proper decision of
|
|
the question, whether the employment of these pure conceptions of
|
|
the understanding ought to be merely empirical or also transcendental;
|
|
in other words, whether the categories, as conditions of a possible
|
|
experience, relate a priori solely to phenomena, or whether, as
|
|
conditions of the possibility of things in general, their
|
|
application can be extended to objects as things in themselves. For we
|
|
have there seen that conceptions are quite impossible, and utterly
|
|
without signification, unless either to them, or at least to the
|
|
elements of which they consist, an object be given; and that,
|
|
consequently, they cannot possibly apply to objects as things in
|
|
themselves without regard to the question whether and how these may be
|
|
given to us; and, further, that the only manner in which objects can
|
|
be given to us is by means of the modification of our sensibility;
|
|
and, finally, that pure a priori conceptions, in addition to the
|
|
function of the understanding in the category, must contain a priori
|
|
formal conditions of sensibility (of the internal sense, namely),
|
|
which again contain the general condition under which alone the
|
|
category can be applied to any object. This formal and pure
|
|
condition of sensibility, to which the conception of the understanding
|
|
is restricted in its employment, we shall name the schema of the
|
|
conception of the understanding, and the procedure of the
|
|
understanding with these schemata we shall call the schematism of
|
|
the pure understanding.
|
|
|
|
The schema is, in itself, always a mere product of the
|
|
imagination. But, as the synthesis of imagination has for its aim no
|
|
single intuition, but merely unity in the determination of
|
|
sensibility, the schema is clearly distinguishable from the image.
|
|
Thus, if I place five points one after another.... this is an image of
|
|
the number five. On the other hand, if I only think a number in
|
|
general, which may be either five or a hundred, this thought is rather
|
|
the representation of a method of representing in an image a sum
|
|
(e.g., a thousand) in conformity with a conception, than the image
|
|
itself, an image which I should find some little difficulty in
|
|
reviewing, and comparing with the conception. Now this
|
|
representation of a general procedure of the imagination to present
|
|
its image to a conception, I call the schema of this conception.
|
|
|
|
In truth, it is not images of objects, but schemata, which lie at
|
|
the foundation of our pure sensuous conceptions. No image could ever
|
|
be adequate to our conception of a triangle in general. For the
|
|
generalness of the conception it never could attain to, as this
|
|
includes under itself all triangles, whether right-angled,
|
|
acute-angled, etc., whilst the image would always be limited to a
|
|
single part of this sphere. The schema of the triangle can exist
|
|
nowhere else than in thought, and it indicates a rule of the synthesis
|
|
of the imagination in regard to pure figures in space. Still less is
|
|
an object of experience, or an image of the object, ever to the
|
|
empirical conception. On the contrary, the conception always relates
|
|
immediately to the schema of the imagination, as a rule for the
|
|
determination of our intuition, in conformity with a certain general
|
|
conception. The conception of a dog indicates a rule, according to
|
|
which my imagination can delineate the figure of a four-footed
|
|
animal in general, without being limited to any particular
|
|
individual form which experience presents to me, or indeed to any
|
|
possible image that I can represent to myself in concreto. This
|
|
schematism of our understanding in regard to phenomena and their
|
|
mere form, is an art, hidden in the depths of the human soul, whose
|
|
true modes of action we shall only with difficulty discover and
|
|
unveil. Thus much only can we say: "The image is a product of the
|
|
empirical faculty of the productive imagination- the schema of
|
|
sensuous conceptions (of figures in space, for example) is a
|
|
product, and, as it were, a monogram of the pure imagination a priori,
|
|
whereby and according to which images first become possible, which,
|
|
however, can be connected with the conception only mediately by
|
|
means of the schema which they indicate, and are in themselves never
|
|
fully adequate to it." On the other hand, the schema of a pure
|
|
conception of the understanding is something that cannot be reduced
|
|
into any image- it is nothing else than the pure synthesis expressed
|
|
by the category, conformably, to a rule of unity according to
|
|
conceptions. It is a transcendental product of the imagination, a
|
|
product which concerns the determination of the internal sense,
|
|
according to conditions of its form (time) in respect to all
|
|
representations, in so far as these representations must be
|
|
conjoined a priori in one conception, conformably to the unity of
|
|
apperception.
|
|
|
|
Without entering upon a dry and tedious analysis of the essential
|
|
requisites of transcendental schemata of the pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding, we shall rather proceed at once to give an
|
|
explanation of them according to the order of the categories, and in
|
|
connection therewith.
|
|
|
|
For the external sense the pure image of all quantities
|
|
(quantorum) is space; the pure image of all objects of sense in
|
|
general, is time. But the pure schema of quantity (quantitatis) as a
|
|
conception of the understanding, is number, a representation which
|
|
comprehends the successive addition of one to one (homogeneous
|
|
quantities). Thus, number is nothing else than the unity of the
|
|
synthesis of the manifold in a homogeneous intuition, by means of my
|
|
generating time itself in my apprehension of the intuition.
|
|
|
|
Reality, in the pure conception of the understanding, is that
|
|
which corresponds to a sensation in general; that, consequently, the
|
|
conception of which indicates a being (in time). Negation is that
|
|
the conception of which represents a not-being (in time). The
|
|
opposition of these two consists therefore in the difference of one
|
|
and the same time, as a time filled or a time empty. Now as time is
|
|
only the form of intuition, consequently of objects as phenomena, that
|
|
which in objects corresponds to sensation is the transcendental matter
|
|
of all objects as things in themselves (Sachheit, reality). Now
|
|
every sensation has a degree or quantity by which it can fill time,
|
|
that is to say, the internal sense in respect of the representation of
|
|
an object, more or less, until it vanishes into nothing (= 0 =
|
|
negatio). Thus there is a relation and connection between reality
|
|
and negation, or rather a transition from the former to the latter,
|
|
which makes every reality representable to us as a quantum; and the
|
|
schema of a reality as the quantity of something in so far as it fills
|
|
time, is exactly this continuous and uniform generation of the reality
|
|
in time, as we descend in time from the sensation which has a
|
|
certain degree, down to the vanishing thereof, or gradually ascend
|
|
from negation to the quantity thereof.
|
|
|
|
The schema of substance is the permanence of the real in time;
|
|
that is, the representation of it as a substratum of the empirical
|
|
determination of time; a substratum which therefore remains, whilst
|
|
all else changes. (Time passes not, but in it passes the existence
|
|
of the changeable. To time, therefore, which is itself unchangeable
|
|
and permanent, corresponds that which in the phenomenon is
|
|
unchangeable in existence, that is, substance, and it is only by it
|
|
that the succession and coexistence of phenomena can be determined
|
|
in regard to time.)
|
|
|
|
The schema of cause and of the causality of a thing is the real
|
|
which, when posited, is always followed by something else. It
|
|
consists, therefore, in the succession of the manifold, in so far as
|
|
that succession is subjected to a rule.
|
|
|
|
The schema of community (reciprocity of action and reaction), or the
|
|
reciprocal causality of substances in respect of their accidents, is
|
|
the coexistence of the determinations of the one with those of the
|
|
other, according to a general rule.
|
|
|
|
The schema of possibility is the accordance of the synthesis of
|
|
different representations with the conditions of time in general
|
|
(as, for example, opposites cannot exist together at the same time
|
|
in the same thing, but only after each other), and is therefore the
|
|
determination of the representation of a thing at any time.
|
|
|
|
The schema of reality is existence in a determined time.
|
|
|
|
The schema of necessity is the existence of an object in all time.
|
|
|
|
It is clear, from all this, that the schema of the category of
|
|
quantity contains and represents the generation (synthesis) of time
|
|
itself, in the successive apprehension of an object; the schema of
|
|
quality the synthesis of sensation with the representation of time, or
|
|
the filling up of time; the schema of relation the relation of
|
|
perceptions to each other in all time (that is, according to a rule of
|
|
the determination of time): and finally, the schema of modality and
|
|
its categories, time itself, as the correlative of the determination
|
|
of an object- whether it does belong to time, and how. The schemata,
|
|
therefore, are nothing but a priori determinations of time according
|
|
to rules, and these, in regard to all possible objects, following
|
|
the arrangement of the categories, relate to the series in time, the
|
|
content in time, the order in time, and finally, to the complex or
|
|
totality in time.
|
|
|
|
Hence it is apparent that the schematism of the understanding, by
|
|
means of the transcendental synthesis of the imagination, amounts to
|
|
nothing else than the unity of the manifold of intuition in the
|
|
internal sense, and thus indirectly to the unity of apperception, as a
|
|
function corresponding to the internal sense (a receptivity). Thus,
|
|
the schemata of the pure conceptions of the understanding are the true
|
|
and only conditions whereby our understanding receives an
|
|
application to objects, and consequently significance. Finally,
|
|
therefore, the categories are only capable of empirical use,
|
|
inasmuch as they serve merely to subject phenomena to the universal
|
|
rules of synthesis, by means of an a priori necessary unity (on
|
|
account of the necessary union of all consciousness in one original
|
|
apperception); and so to render them susceptible of a complete
|
|
connection in one experience. But within this whole of possible
|
|
experience lie all our cognitions, and in the universal relation to
|
|
this experience consists transcendental truth, which antecedes all
|
|
empirical truth, and renders the latter possible.
|
|
|
|
It is, however, evident at first sight, that although the schemata
|
|
of sensibility are the sole agents in realizing the categories, they
|
|
do, nevertheless, also restrict them, that is, they limit the
|
|
categories by conditions which lie beyond the sphere of understanding-
|
|
namely, in sensibility. Hence the schema is properly only the
|
|
phenomenon, or the sensuous conception of an object in harmony with
|
|
the category. (Numerus est quantitas phaenomenon- sensatio realitas
|
|
phaenomenon; constans et perdurabile rerum substantia phaenomenon-
|
|
aeternitas, necessitas, phaenomena, etc.) Now, if we remove a
|
|
restrictive condition, we thereby amplify, it appears, the formerly
|
|
limited conception. In this way, the categories in their pure
|
|
signification, free from all conditions of sensibility, ought to be
|
|
valid of things as they are, and not, as the schemata represent
|
|
them, merely as they appear; and consequently the categories must have
|
|
a significance far more extended, and wholly independent of all
|
|
schemata. In truth, there does always remain to the pure conceptions
|
|
of the understanding, after abstracting every sensuous condition, a
|
|
value and significance, which is, however, merely logical. But in this
|
|
case, no object is given them, and therefore they have no meaning
|
|
sufficient to afford us a conception of an object. The notion of
|
|
substance, for example, if we leave out the sensuous determination
|
|
of permanence, would mean nothing more than a something which can be
|
|
cogitated as subject, without the possibility of becoming a
|
|
predicate to anything else. Of this representation I can make nothing,
|
|
inasmuch as it does not indicate to me what determinations the thing
|
|
possesses which must thus be valid as premier subject. Consequently,
|
|
the categories, without schemata are merely functions of the
|
|
understanding for the production of conceptions, but do not
|
|
represent any object. This significance they derive from
|
|
sensibility, which at the same time realizes the understanding and
|
|
restricts it.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. System of all Principles of the Pure Understanding.
|
|
|
|
In the foregoing chapter we have merely considered the general
|
|
conditions under which alone the transcendental faculty of judgement
|
|
is justified in using the pure conceptions of the understanding for
|
|
synthetical judgements. Our duty at present is to exhibit in
|
|
systematic connection those judgements which the understanding
|
|
really produces a priori. For this purpose, our table of the
|
|
categories will certainly afford us the natural and safe guidance. For
|
|
it is precisely the categories whose application to possible
|
|
experience must constitute all pure a priori cognition of the
|
|
understanding; and the relation of which to sensibility will, on
|
|
that very account, present us with a complete and systematic catalogue
|
|
of all the transcendental principles of the use of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
Principles a priori are so called, not merely because they contain
|
|
in themselves the grounds of other judgements, but also because they
|
|
themselves are not grounded in higher and more general cognitions.
|
|
This peculiarity, however, does not raise them altogether above the
|
|
need of a proof. For although there could be found no higher
|
|
cognition, and therefore no objective proof, and although such a
|
|
principle rather serves as the foundation for all cognition of the
|
|
object, this by no means hinders us from drawing a proof from the
|
|
subjective sources of the possibility of the cognition of an object.
|
|
Such a proof is necessary, moreover, because without it the
|
|
principle might be liable to the imputation of being a mere gratuitous
|
|
assertion.
|
|
|
|
In the second place, we shall limit our investigations to those
|
|
principles which relate to the categories. For as to the principles of
|
|
transcendental aesthetic, according to which space and time are the
|
|
conditions of the possibility of things as phenomena, as also the
|
|
restriction of these principles, namely, that they cannot be applied
|
|
to objects as things in themselves- these, of course, do not fall
|
|
within the scope of our present inquiry. In like manner, the
|
|
principles of mathematical science form no part of this system,
|
|
because they are all drawn from intuition, and not from the pure
|
|
conception of the understanding. The possibility of these
|
|
principles, however, will necessarily be considered here, inasmuch
|
|
as they are synthetical judgements a priori, not indeed for the
|
|
purpose of proving their accuracy and apodeictic certainty, which is
|
|
unnecessary, but merely to render conceivable and deduce the
|
|
possibility of such evident a priori cognitions.
|
|
|
|
But we shall have also to speak of the principle of analytical
|
|
judgements, in opposition to synthetical judgements, which is the
|
|
proper subject of our inquiries, because this very opposition will
|
|
free the theory of the latter from all ambiguity, and place it clearly
|
|
before our eyes in its true nature.
|
|
|
|
SYSTEM OF THE PRINCIPLES OF THE PURE UNDERSTANDING.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I. Of the Supreme Principle of all Analytical Judgements.
|
|
|
|
Whatever may be the content of our cognition, and in whatever manner
|
|
our cognition may be related to its object, the universal, although
|
|
only negative conditions of all our judgements is that they do not
|
|
contradict themselves; otherwise these judgements are in themselves
|
|
(even without respect to the object) nothing. But although there may
|
|
exist no contradiction in our judgement, it may nevertheless connect
|
|
conceptions in such a manner that they do not correspond to the
|
|
object, or without any grounds either a priori or a posteriori for
|
|
arriving at such a judgement, and thus, without being
|
|
self-contradictory, a judgement may nevertheless be either false or
|
|
groundless.
|
|
|
|
Now, the proposition: "No subject can have a predicate that
|
|
contradicts it," is called the principle of contradiction, and is a
|
|
universal but purely negative criterion of all truth. But it belongs
|
|
to logic alone, because it is valid of cognitions, merely as
|
|
cognitions and without respect to their content, and declares that the
|
|
contradiction entirely nullifies them. We can also, however, make a
|
|
positive use of this principle, that is, not merely to banish
|
|
falsehood and error (in so far as it rests upon contradiction), but
|
|
also for the cognition of truth. For if the judgement is analytical,
|
|
be it affirmative or negative, its truth must always be recognizable
|
|
by means of the principle of contradiction. For the contrary of that
|
|
which lies and is cogitated as conception in the cognition of the
|
|
object will be always properly negatived, but the conception itself
|
|
must always be affirmed of the object, inasmuch as the contrary
|
|
thereof would be in contradiction to the object.
|
|
|
|
We must therefore hold the principle of contradiction to be the
|
|
universal and fully sufficient Principle of all analytical
|
|
cognition. But as a sufficient criterion of truth, it has no further
|
|
utility or authority. For the fact that no cognition can be at
|
|
variance with this principle without nullifying itself, constitutes
|
|
this principle the sine qua non, but not the determining ground of the
|
|
truth of our cognition. As our business at present is properly with
|
|
the synthetical part of our knowledge only, we shall always be on
|
|
our guard not to transgress this inviolable principle; but at the same
|
|
time not to expect from it any direct assistance in the
|
|
establishment of the truth of any synthetical proposition.
|
|
|
|
There exists, however, a formula of this celebrated principle- a
|
|
principle merely formal and entirely without content- which contains a
|
|
synthesis that has been inadvertently and quite unnecessarily mixed up
|
|
with it. It is this: "It is impossible for a thing to be and not to be
|
|
at the same time." Not to mention the superfluousness of the
|
|
addition of the word impossible to indicate the apodeictic
|
|
certainty, which ought to be self-evident from the proposition itself,
|
|
the proposition is affected by the condition of time, and as it were
|
|
says: "A thing = A, which is something = B, cannot at the same time be
|
|
non-B." But both, B as well as non-B, may quite well exist in
|
|
succession. For example, a man who is young cannot at the same time be
|
|
old; but the same man can very well be at one time young, and at
|
|
another not young, that is, old. Now the principle of contradiction as
|
|
a merely logical proposition must not by any means limit its
|
|
application merely to relations of time, and consequently a formula
|
|
like the preceding is quite foreign to its true purpose. The
|
|
misunderstanding arises in this way. We first of all separate a
|
|
predicate of a thing from the conception of the thing, and
|
|
afterwards connect with this predicate its opposite, and hence do
|
|
not establish any contradiction with the subject, but only with its
|
|
predicate, which has been conjoined with the subject synthetically-
|
|
a contradiction, moreover, which obtains only when the first and
|
|
second predicate are affirmed in the same time. If I say: "A man who
|
|
is ignorant is not learned," the condition "at the same time" must
|
|
be added, for he who is at one time ignorant, may at another be
|
|
learned. But if I say: "No ignorant man is a learned man," the
|
|
proposition is analytical, because the characteristic ignorance is now
|
|
a constituent part of the conception of the subject; and in this
|
|
case the negative proposition is evident immediately from the
|
|
proposition of contradiction, without the necessity of adding the
|
|
condition "the same time." This is the reason why I have altered the
|
|
formula of this principle- an alteration which shows very clearly
|
|
the nature of an analytical proposition.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Of the Supreme Principle of all Synthetical Judgements.
|
|
|
|
The explanation of the possibility of synthetical judgements is a
|
|
task with which general logic has nothing to do; indeed she needs
|
|
not even be acquainted with its name. But in transcendental logic it
|
|
is the most important matter to be dealt with- indeed the only one, if
|
|
the question is of the possibility of synthetical judgements a priori,
|
|
the conditions and extent of their validity. For when this question is
|
|
fully decided, it can reach its aim with perfect ease, the
|
|
determination, to wit, of the extent and limits of the pure
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
In an analytical judgement I do not go beyond the given
|
|
conception, in order to arrive at some decision respecting it. If
|
|
the judgement is affirmative, I predicate of the conception only
|
|
that which was already cogitated in it; if negative, I merely
|
|
exclude from the conception its contrary. But in synthetical
|
|
judgements, I must go beyond the given conception, in order to
|
|
cogitate, in relation with it, something quite different from that
|
|
which was cogitated in it, a relation which is consequently never
|
|
one either of identity or contradiction, and by means of which the
|
|
truth or error of the judgement cannot be discerned merely from the
|
|
judgement itself.
|
|
|
|
Granted, then, that we must go out beyond a given conception, in
|
|
order to compare it synthetically with another, a third thing is
|
|
necessary, in which alone the synthesis of two conceptions can
|
|
originate. Now what is this tertium quid that is to be the medium of
|
|
all synthetical judgements? It is only a complex in which all our
|
|
representations are contained, the internal sense to wit, and its form
|
|
a priori, time.
|
|
|
|
The synthesis of our representations rests upon the imagination;
|
|
their synthetical unity (which is requisite to a judgement), upon
|
|
the unity of apperception. In this, therefore, is to be sought the
|
|
possibility of synthetical judgements, and as all three contain the
|
|
sources of a priori representations, the possibility of pure
|
|
synthetical judgements also; nay, they are necessary upon these
|
|
grounds, if we are to possess a knowledge of objects, which rests
|
|
solely upon the synthesis of representations.
|
|
|
|
If a cognition is to have objective reality, that is, to relate to
|
|
an object, and possess sense and meaning in respect to it, it is
|
|
necessary that the object be given in some way or another. Without
|
|
this, our conceptions are empty, and we may indeed have thought by
|
|
means of them, but by such thinking we have not, in fact, cognized
|
|
anything, we have merely played with representation. To give an
|
|
object, if this expression be understood in the sense of "to
|
|
present" the object, not mediately but immediately in intuition, means
|
|
nothing else than to apply the representation of it to experience,
|
|
be that experience real or only possible. Space and time themselves,
|
|
pure as these conceptions are from all that is empirical, and
|
|
certain as it is that they are represented fully a priori in the mind,
|
|
would be completely without objective validity, and without sense
|
|
and significance, if their necessary use in the objects of
|
|
experience were not shown. Nay, the representation of them is a mere
|
|
schema, that always relates to the reproductive imagination, which
|
|
calls up the objects of experience, without which they have no
|
|
meaning. And so it is with all conceptions without distinction.
|
|
|
|
The possibility of experience is, then, that which gives objective
|
|
reality to all our a priori cognitions. Now experience depends upon
|
|
the synthetical unity of phenomena, that is, upon a synthesis
|
|
according to conceptions of the object of phenomena in general, a
|
|
synthesis without which experience never could become knowledge, but
|
|
would be merely a rhapsody of perceptions, never fitting together into
|
|
any connected text, according to rules of a thoroughly united
|
|
(possible) consciousness, and therefore never subjected to the
|
|
transcendental and necessary unity of apperception. Experience has
|
|
therefore for a foundation, a priori principles of its form, that is
|
|
to say, general rules of unity in the synthesis of phenomena, the
|
|
objective reality of which rules, as necessary conditions even of
|
|
the possibility of experience can which rules, as necessary
|
|
conditions- even of the possibility of experience- can always be shown
|
|
in experience. But apart from this relation, a priori synthetical
|
|
propositions are absolutely impossible, because they have no third
|
|
term, that is, no pure object, in which the synthetical unity can
|
|
exhibit the objective reality of its conceptions.
|
|
|
|
Although, then, respecting space, or the forms which productive
|
|
imagination describes therein, we do cognize much a priori in
|
|
synthetical judgements, and are really in no need of experience for
|
|
this purpose, such knowledge would nevertheless amount to nothing
|
|
but a busy trifling with a mere chimera, were not space to be
|
|
considered as the condition of the phenomena which constitute the
|
|
material of external experience. Hence those pure synthetical
|
|
judgements do relate, though but mediately, to possible experience, or
|
|
rather to the possibility of experience, and upon that alone is
|
|
founded the objective validity of their synthesis.
|
|
|
|
While then, on the one hand, experience, as empirical synthesis,
|
|
is the only possible mode of cognition which gives reality to all
|
|
other synthesis; on the other hand, this latter synthesis, as
|
|
cognition a priori, possesses truth, that is, accordance with its
|
|
object, only in so far as it contains nothing more than what is
|
|
necessary to the synthetical unity of experience.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, the supreme principle of all synthetical judgements is:
|
|
"Every object is subject to the necessary conditions of the
|
|
synthetical unity of the manifold of intuition in a possible
|
|
experience."
|
|
|
|
A priori synthetical judgements are possible when we apply the
|
|
formal conditions of the a priori intuition, the synthesis of the
|
|
imagination, and the necessary unity of that synthesis in a
|
|
transcendental apperception, to a possible cognition of experience,
|
|
and say: "The conditions of the possibility of experience in general
|
|
are at the same time conditions of the possibility of the objects of
|
|
experience, and have, for that reason, objective validity in an a
|
|
priori synthetical judgement."
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. Systematic Representation of all Synthetical
|
|
|
|
Principles of the Pure Understanding.
|
|
|
|
That principles exist at all is to be ascribed solely to the pure
|
|
understanding, which is not only the faculty of rules in regard to
|
|
that which happens, but is even the source of principles according
|
|
to which everything that can be presented to us as an object is
|
|
necessarily subject to rules, because without such rules we never
|
|
could attain to cognition of an object. Even the laws of nature, if
|
|
they are contemplated as principles of the empirical use of the
|
|
understanding, possess also a characteristic of necessity, and we
|
|
may therefore at least expect them to be determined upon grounds which
|
|
are valid a priori and antecedent to all experience. But all laws of
|
|
nature, without distinction, are subject to higher principles of the
|
|
understanding, inasmuch as the former are merely applications of the
|
|
latter to particular cases of experience. These higher principles
|
|
alone therefore give the conception, which contains the necessary
|
|
condition, and, as it were, the exponent of a rule; experience, on the
|
|
other hand, gives the case which comes under the rule.
|
|
|
|
There is no danger of our mistaking merely empirical principles
|
|
for principles of the pure understanding, or conversely; for the
|
|
character of necessity, according to conceptions which distinguish the
|
|
latter, and the absence of this in every empirical proposition, how
|
|
extensively valid soever it may be, is a perfect safeguard against
|
|
confounding them. There are, however, pure principles a priori,
|
|
which nevertheless I should not ascribe to the pure understanding- for
|
|
this reason, that they are not derived from pure conceptions, but
|
|
(although by the mediation of the understanding) from pure intuitions.
|
|
But understanding is the faculty of conceptions. Such principles
|
|
mathematical science possesses, but their application to experience,
|
|
consequently their objective validity, nay the possibility of such a
|
|
priori synthetical cognitions (the deduction thereof) rests entirely
|
|
upon the pure understanding.
|
|
|
|
On this account, I shall not reckon among my principles those of
|
|
mathematics; though I shall include those upon the possibility and
|
|
objective validity a priori, of principles of the mathematical
|
|
science, which, consequently, are to be looked upon as the principle
|
|
of these, and which proceed from conceptions to intuition, and not
|
|
from intuition to conceptions.
|
|
|
|
In the application of the pure conceptions of the understanding to
|
|
possible experience, the employment of their synthesis is either
|
|
mathematical or dynamical, for it is directed partly on the
|
|
intuition alone, partly on the existence of a phenomenon. But the a
|
|
priori conditions of intuition are in relation to a possible
|
|
experience absolutely necessary, those of the existence of objects
|
|
of a possible empirical intuition are in themselves contingent.
|
|
Hence the principles of the mathematical use of the categories will
|
|
possess a character of absolute necessity, that is, will be
|
|
apodeictic; those, on the other hand, of the dynamical use, the
|
|
character of an a priori necessity indeed, but only under the
|
|
condition of empirical thought in an experience, therefore only
|
|
mediately and indirectly. Consequently they will not possess that
|
|
immediate evidence which is peculiar to the former, although their
|
|
application to experience does not, for that reason, lose its truth
|
|
and certitude. But of this point we shall be better able to judge at
|
|
the conclusion of this system of principles.
|
|
|
|
The table of the categories is naturally our guide to the table of
|
|
principles, because these are nothing else than rules for the
|
|
objective employment of the former. Accordingly, all principles of the
|
|
pure understanding are:
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
Axioms
|
|
|
|
of Intuition
|
|
|
|
2 3
|
|
|
|
Anticipations Analogies
|
|
|
|
of Perception of Experience
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
Postulates of
|
|
|
|
Empirical Thought
|
|
|
|
in general
|
|
|
|
These appellations I have chosen advisedly, in order that we might
|
|
not lose sight of the distinctions in respect of the evidence and
|
|
the employment of these principles. It will, however, soon appear
|
|
that- a fact which concerns both the evidence of these principles, and
|
|
the a priori determination of phenomena- according to the categories
|
|
of quantity and quality (if we attend merely to the form of these),
|
|
the principles of these categories are distinguishable from those of
|
|
the two others, in as much as the former are possessed of an
|
|
intuitive, but the latter of a merely discursive, though in both
|
|
instances a complete, certitude. I shall therefore call the former
|
|
mathematical, and the latter dynamical principles.* It must be
|
|
observed, however, that by these terms I mean just as little in the
|
|
one case the principles of mathematics as those of general
|
|
(physical) dynamics in the other. I have here in view merely the
|
|
principles of the pure understanding, in their application to the
|
|
internal sense (without distinction of the representations given
|
|
therein), by means of which the sciences of mathematics and dynamics
|
|
become possible. Accordingly, I have named these principles rather
|
|
with reference to their application than their content; and I shall
|
|
now proceed to consider them in the order in which they stand in the
|
|
table.
|
|
|
|
*All combination (conjunctio) is either composition (compositio)
|
|
or connection (nexus). The former is the synthesis of a manifold,
|
|
the parts of which do not necessarily belong to each other. For
|
|
example, the two triangles into which a square is divided by a
|
|
diagonal, do not necessarily belong to each other, and of this kind is
|
|
the synthesis of the homogeneous in everything that can be
|
|
mathematically considered. This synthesis can be divided into those of
|
|
aggregation and coalition, the former of which is applied to
|
|
extensive, the latter to intensive quantities. The second sort of
|
|
combination (nexus) is the synthesis of a manifold, in so far as its
|
|
parts do belong necessarily to each other; for example, the accident
|
|
to a substance, or the effect to the cause. Consequently it is a
|
|
synthesis of that which though heterogeneous, is represented as
|
|
connected a priori. This combination- not an arbitrary one- I
|
|
entitle dynamical because it concerns the connection of the
|
|
existence of the manifold. This, again, may be divided into the
|
|
physical synthesis, of the phenomena divided among each other, and the
|
|
metaphysical synthesis, or the connection of phenomena a priori in the
|
|
faculty of cognition.
|
|
|
|
1. AXIOMS OF INTUITION.
|
|
|
|
The principle of these is: All Intuitions are Extensive
|
|
|
|
Quantities.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
All phenomena contain, as regards their form, an intuition in
|
|
space and time, which lies a priori at the foundation of all without
|
|
exception. Phenomena, therefore, cannot be apprehended, that is,
|
|
received into empirical consciousness otherwise than through the
|
|
synthesis of a manifold, through which the representations of a
|
|
determinate space or time are generated; that is to say, through the
|
|
composition of the homogeneous and the consciousness of the
|
|
synthetical unity of this manifold (homogeneous). Now the
|
|
consciousness of a homogeneous manifold in intuition, in so far as
|
|
thereby the representation of an object is rendered possible, is the
|
|
conception of a quantity (quanti). Consequently, even the perception
|
|
of an object as phenomenon is possible only through the same
|
|
synthetical unity of the manifold of the given sensuous intuition,
|
|
through which the unity of the composition of the homogeneous manifold
|
|
in the conception of a quantity is cogitated; that is to say, all
|
|
phenomena are quantities, and extensive quantities, because as
|
|
intuitions in space or time they must be represented by means of the
|
|
same synthesis through which space and time themselves are determined.
|
|
|
|
An extensive quantity I call that wherein the representation of
|
|
the parts renders possible (and therefore necessarily antecedes) the
|
|
representation of the whole. I cannot represent to myself any line,
|
|
however small, without drawing it in thought, that is, without
|
|
generating from a point all its parts one after another, and in this
|
|
way alone producing this intuition. Precisely the same is the case
|
|
with every, even the smallest, portion of time. I cogitate therein
|
|
only the successive progress from one moment to another, and hence, by
|
|
means of the different portions of time and the addition of them, a
|
|
determinate quantity of time is produced. As the pure intuition in all
|
|
phenomena is either time or space, so is every phenomenon in its
|
|
character of intuition an extensive quantity, inasmuch as it can
|
|
only be cognized in our apprehension by successive synthesis (from
|
|
part to part). All phenomena are, accordingly, to be considered as
|
|
aggregates, that is, as a collection of previously given parts;
|
|
which is not the case with every sort of quantities, but only with
|
|
those which are represented and apprehended by us as extensive.
|
|
|
|
On this successive synthesis of the productive imagination, in the
|
|
generation of figures, is founded the mathematics of extension, or
|
|
geometry, with its axioms, which express the conditions of sensuous
|
|
intuition a priori, under which alone the schema of a pure
|
|
conception of external intuition can exist; for example, "be tween two
|
|
points only one straight line is possible," "two straight lines cannot
|
|
enclose a space," etc. These are the axioms which properly relate only
|
|
to quantities (quanta) as such.
|
|
|
|
But, as regards the quantity of a thing (quantitas), that is to say,
|
|
the answer to the question: "How large is this or that object?"
|
|
although, in respect to this question, we have various propositions
|
|
synthetical and immediately certain (indemonstrabilia); we have, in
|
|
the proper sense of the term, no axioms. For example, the
|
|
propositions: "If equals be added to equals, the wholes are equal";
|
|
"If equals be taken from equals, the remainders are equal"; are
|
|
analytical, because I am immediately conscious of the identity of
|
|
the production of the one quantity with the production of the other;
|
|
whereas axioms must be a priori synthetical propositions. On the other
|
|
hand, the self-evident propositions as to the relation of numbers, are
|
|
certainly synthetical but not universal, like those of geometry, and
|
|
for this reason cannot be called axioms, but numerical formulae.
|
|
That 7 + 5 = 12 is not an analytical proposition. For neither in the
|
|
representation of seven, nor of five, nor of the composition of the
|
|
two numbers, do I cogitate the number twelve. (Whether I cogitate
|
|
the number in the addition of both, is not at present the question;
|
|
for in the case of an analytical proposition, the only point is
|
|
whether I really cogitate the predicate in the representation of the
|
|
subject.) But although the proposition is synthetical, it is
|
|
nevertheless only a singular proposition. In so far as regard is
|
|
here had merely to the synthesis of the homogeneous (the units), it
|
|
cannot take place except in one manner, although our use of these
|
|
numbers is afterwards general. If I say: "A triangle can be
|
|
constructed with three lines, any two of which taken together are
|
|
greater than the third," I exercise merely the pure function of the
|
|
productive imagination, which may draw the lines longer or shorter and
|
|
construct the angles at its pleasure. On the contrary, the number
|
|
seven is possible only in one manner, and so is likewise the number
|
|
twelve, which results from the synthesis of seven and five. Such
|
|
propositions, then, cannot be termed axioms (for in that case we
|
|
should have an infinity of these), but numerical formulae.
|
|
|
|
This transcendental principle of the mathematics of phenomena
|
|
greatly enlarges our a priori cognition. For it is by this principle
|
|
alone that pure mathematics is rendered applicable in all its
|
|
precision to objects of experience, and without it the validity of
|
|
this application would not be so self-evident; on the contrary,
|
|
contradictions and confusions have often arisen on this very point.
|
|
Phenomena are not things in themselves. Empirical intuition is
|
|
possible only through pure intuition (of space and time);
|
|
consequently, what geometry affirms of the latter, is indisputably
|
|
valid of the former. All evasions, such as the statement that
|
|
objects of sense do not conform to the rules of construction in
|
|
space (for example, to the rule of the infinite divisibility of
|
|
lines or angles), must fall to the ground. For, if these objections
|
|
hold good, we deny to space, and with it to all mathematics, objective
|
|
validity, and no longer know wherefore, and how far, mathematics can
|
|
be applied to phenomena. The synthesis of spaces and times as the
|
|
essential form of all intuition, is that which renders possible the
|
|
apprehension of a phenomenon, and therefore every external experience,
|
|
consequently all cognition of the objects of experience; and
|
|
whatever mathematics in its pure use proves of the former, must
|
|
necessarily hold good of the latter. All objections are but the
|
|
chicaneries of an ill-instructed reason, which erroneously thinks to
|
|
liberate the objects of sense from the formal conditions of our
|
|
sensibility, and represents these, although mere phenomena, as
|
|
things in themselves, presented as such to our understanding. But in
|
|
this case, no a priori synthetical cognition of them could be
|
|
possible, consequently not through pure conceptions of space and the
|
|
science which determines these conceptions, that is to say,
|
|
geometry, would itself be impossible.
|
|
|
|
2. ANTICIPATIONS OF PERCEPTION.
|
|
|
|
The principle of these is: In all phenomena the Real, that
|
|
|
|
which is an object of sensation, has Intensive Quantity,
|
|
|
|
that is, has a Degree.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Perception is empirical consciousness, that is to say, a
|
|
consciousness which contains an element of sensation. Phenomena as
|
|
objects of perception are not pure, that is, merely formal intuitions,
|
|
like space and time, for they cannot be perceived in themselves.
|
|
They contain, then, over and above the intuition, the materials for an
|
|
object (through which is represented something existing in space or
|
|
time), that is to say, they contain the real of sensation, as a
|
|
representation merely subjective, which gives us merely the
|
|
consciousness that the subject is affected, and which we refer to some
|
|
external object. Now, a gradual transition from empirical
|
|
consciousness to pure consciousness is possible, inasmuch as the
|
|
real in this consciousness entirely vanishes, and there remains a
|
|
merely formal consciousness (a priori) of the manifold in time and
|
|
space; consequently there is possible a synthesis also of the
|
|
production of the quantity of a sensation from its commencement,
|
|
that is, from the pure intuition = 0 onwards up to a certain
|
|
quantity of the sensation. Now as sensation in itself is not an
|
|
objective representation, and in it is to be found neither the
|
|
intuition of space nor of time, it cannot possess any extensive
|
|
quantity, and yet there does belong to it a quantity (and that by
|
|
means of its apprehension, in which empirical consciousness can within
|
|
a certain time rise from nothing = 0 up to its given amount),
|
|
consequently an intensive quantity. And thus we must ascribe intensive
|
|
quantity, that is, a degree of influence on sense to all objects of
|
|
perception, in so far as this perception contains sensation.
|
|
|
|
All cognition, by means of which I am enabled to cognize and
|
|
determine a priori what belongs to empirical cognition, may be
|
|
called an anticipation; and without doubt this is the sense in which
|
|
Epicurus employed his expression prholepsis. But as there is in
|
|
phenomena something which is never cognized a priori, which on this
|
|
account constitutes the proper difference between pure and empirical
|
|
cognition, that is to say, sensation (as the matter of perception), it
|
|
follows, that sensation is just that element in cognition which cannot
|
|
be at all anticipated. On the other hand, we might very well term
|
|
the pure determinations in space and time, as well in regard to figure
|
|
as to quantity, anticipations of phenomena, because they represent a
|
|
priori that which may always be given a posteriori in experience.
|
|
But suppose that in every sensation, as sensation in general,
|
|
without any particular sensation being thought of, there existed
|
|
something which could be cognized a priori, this would deserve to be
|
|
called anticipation in a special sense- special, because it may seem
|
|
surprising to forestall experience, in that which concerns the
|
|
matter of experience, and which we can only derive from itself. Yet
|
|
such really is the case here.
|
|
|
|
Apprehension, by means of sensation alone, fills only one moment,
|
|
that is, if I do not take into consideration a succession of many
|
|
sensations. As that in the phenomenon, the apprehension of which is
|
|
not a successive synthesis advancing from parts to an entire
|
|
representation, sensation has therefore no extensive quantity; the
|
|
want of sensation in a moment of time would represent it as empty,
|
|
consequently = O. That which in the empirical intuition corresponds to
|
|
sensation is reality (realitas phaenomenon); that which corresponds to
|
|
the absence of it, negation = O. Now every sensation is capable of a
|
|
diminution, so that it can decrease, and thus gradually disappear.
|
|
Therefore, between reality in a phenomenon and negation, there
|
|
exists a continuous concatenation of many possible intermediate
|
|
sensations, the difference of which from each other is always
|
|
smaller than that between the given sensation and zero, or complete
|
|
negation. That is to say, the real in a phenomenon has always a
|
|
quantity, which however is not discoverable in apprehension,
|
|
inasmuch as apprehension take place by means of mere sensation in
|
|
one instant, and not by the successive synthesis of many sensations,
|
|
and therefore does not progress from parts to the whole. Consequently,
|
|
it has a quantity, but not an extensive quantity.
|
|
|
|
Now that quantity which is apprehended only as unity, and in which
|
|
plurality can be represented only by approximation to negation = O,
|
|
I term intensive quantity. Consequently, reality in a phenomenon has
|
|
intensive quantity, that is, a degree. if we consider this reality
|
|
as cause (be it of sensation or of another reality in the
|
|
phenomenon, for example, a change), we call the degree of reality in
|
|
its character of cause a momentum, for example, the momentum of
|
|
weight; and for this reason, that the degree only indicates that
|
|
quantity the apprehension of which is not successive, but
|
|
instantaneous. This, however, I touch upon only in passing, for with
|
|
causality I have at present nothing to do.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, every sensation, consequently every reality in
|
|
phenomena, however small it may be, has a degree, that is, an
|
|
intensive quantity, which may always be lessened, and between
|
|
reality and negation there exists a continuous connection of
|
|
possible realities, and possible smaller perceptions. Every colour-
|
|
for example, red- has a degree, which, be it ever so small, is never
|
|
the smallest, and so is it always with heat, the momentum of weight,
|
|
etc.
|
|
|
|
This property of quantities, according to which no part of them is
|
|
the smallest possible (no part simple), is called their continuity.
|
|
Space and time are quanta continua, because no part of them can be
|
|
given, without enclosing it within boundaries (points and moments),
|
|
consequently, this given part is itself a space or a time. Space,
|
|
therefore, consists only of spaces, and time of times. Points and
|
|
moments are only boundaries, that is, the mere places or positions
|
|
of their limitation. But places always presuppose intuitions which are
|
|
to limit or determine them; and we cannot conceive either space or
|
|
time composed of constituent parts which are given before space or
|
|
time. Such quantities may also be called flowing, because synthesis
|
|
(of the productive imagination) in the production of these
|
|
quantities is a progression in time, the continuity of which we are
|
|
accustomed to indicate by the expression flowing.
|
|
|
|
All phenomena, then, are continuous quantities, in respect both to
|
|
intuition and mere perception (sensation, and with it reality). In the
|
|
former case they are extensive quantities; in the latter, intensive.
|
|
When the synthesis of the manifold of a phenomenon is interrupted,
|
|
there results merely an aggregate of several phenomena, and not
|
|
properly a phenomenon as a quantity, which is not produced by the mere
|
|
continuation of the productive synthesis of a certain kind, but by the
|
|
repetition of a synthesis always ceasing. For example, if I call
|
|
thirteen dollars a sum or quantity of money, I employ the term quite
|
|
correctly, inasmuch as I understand by thirteen dollars the value of a
|
|
mark in standard silver, which is, to be sure, a continuous
|
|
quantity, in which no part is the smallest, but every part might
|
|
constitute a piece of money, which would contain material for still
|
|
smaller pieces. If, however, by the words thirteen dollars I
|
|
understand so many coins (be their value in silver what it may), it
|
|
would be quite erroneous to use the expression a quantity of
|
|
dollars; on the contrary, I must call them aggregate, that is, a
|
|
number of coins. And as in every number we must have unity as the
|
|
foundation, so a phenomenon taken as unity is a quantity, and as
|
|
such always a continuous quantity (quantum continuum).
|
|
|
|
Now, seeing all phenomena, whether considered as extensive or
|
|
intensive, are continuous quantities, the proposition: "All change
|
|
(transition of a thing from one state into another) is continuous,"
|
|
might be proved here easily, and with mathematical evidence, were it
|
|
not that the causality of a change lies, entirely beyond the bounds of
|
|
a transcendental philosophy, and presupposes empirical principles. For
|
|
of the possibility of a cause which changes the condition of things,
|
|
that is, which determines them to the contrary to a certain given
|
|
state, the understanding gives us a priori no knowledge; not merely
|
|
because it has no insight into the possibility of it (for such insight
|
|
is absent in several a priori cognitions), but because the notion of
|
|
change concerns only certain determinations of phenomena, which
|
|
experience alone can acquaint us with, while their cause lies in the
|
|
unchangeable. But seeing that we have nothing which we could here
|
|
employ but the pure fundamental conceptions of all possible
|
|
experience, among which of course nothing empirical can be admitted,
|
|
we dare not, without injuring the unity of our system, anticipate
|
|
general physical science, which is built upon certain fundamental
|
|
experiences.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless, we are in no want of proofs of the great influence
|
|
which the principle above developed exercises in the anticipation of
|
|
perceptions, and even in supplying the want of them, so far as to
|
|
shield us against the false conclusions which otherwise we might
|
|
rashly draw.
|
|
|
|
If all reality in perception has a degree, between which and
|
|
negation there is an endless sequence of ever smaller degrees, and if,
|
|
nevertheless, every sense must have a determinate degree of
|
|
receptivity for sensations; no perception, and consequently no
|
|
experience is possible, which can prove, either immediately or
|
|
mediately, an entire absence of all reality in a phenomenon; in
|
|
other words, it is impossible ever to draw from experience a proof
|
|
of the existence of empty space or of empty time. For in the first
|
|
place, an entire absence of reality in a sensuous intuition cannot
|
|
of course be an object of perception; secondly, such absence cannot be
|
|
deduced from the contemplation of any single phenomenon, and the
|
|
difference of the degrees in its reality; nor ought it ever to be
|
|
admitted in explanation of any phenomenon. For if even the complete
|
|
intuition of a determinate space or time is thoroughly real, that
|
|
is, if no part thereof is empty, yet because every reality has its
|
|
degree, which, with the extensive quantity of the phenomenon
|
|
unchanged, can diminish through endless gradations down to nothing
|
|
(the void), there must be infinitely graduated degrees, with which
|
|
space or time is filled, and the intensive quantity in different
|
|
phenomena may be smaller or greater, although the extensive quantity
|
|
of the intuition remains equal and unaltered.
|
|
|
|
We shall give an example of this. Almost all natural philosophers,
|
|
remarking a great difference in the quantity of the matter of
|
|
different kinds in bodies with the same volume (partly on account of
|
|
the momentum of gravity or weight, partly on account of the momentum
|
|
of resistance to other bodies in motion), conclude unanimously that
|
|
this volume (extensive quantity of the phenomenon) must be void in all
|
|
bodies, although in different proportion. But who would suspect that
|
|
these for the most part mathematical and mechanical inquirers into
|
|
nature should ground this conclusion solely on a metaphysical
|
|
hypothesis- a sort of hypothesis which they profess to disparage and
|
|
avoid? Yet this they do, in assuming that the real in space (I must
|
|
not here call it impenetrability or weight, because these are
|
|
empirical conceptions) is always identical, and can only be
|
|
distinguished according to its extensive quantity, that is,
|
|
multiplicity. Now to this presupposition, for which they can have no
|
|
ground in experience, and which consequently is merely metaphysical, I
|
|
oppose a transcendental demonstration, which it is true will not
|
|
explain the difference in the filling up of spaces, but which
|
|
nevertheless completely does away with the supposed necessity of the
|
|
above-mentioned presupposition that we cannot explain the said
|
|
difference otherwise than by the hypothesis of empty spaces. This
|
|
demonstration, moreover, has the merit of setting the understanding at
|
|
liberty to conceive this distinction in a different manner, if the
|
|
explanation of the fact requires any such hypothesis. For we
|
|
perceive that although two equal spaces may be completely filled by
|
|
matters altogether different, so that in neither of them is there left
|
|
a single point wherein matter is not present, nevertheless, every
|
|
reality has its degree (of resistance or of weight), which, without
|
|
diminution of the extensive quantity, can become less and less ad
|
|
infinitum, before it passes into nothingness and disappears. Thus an
|
|
expansion which fills a space- for example, caloric, or any other
|
|
reality in the phenomenal world- can decrease in its degrees to
|
|
infinity, yet without leaving the smallest part of the space empty; on
|
|
the contrary, filling it with those lesser degrees as completely as
|
|
another phenomenon could with greater. My intention here is by no
|
|
means to maintain that this is really the case with the difference
|
|
of matters, in regard to their specific gravity; I wish only to prove,
|
|
from a principle of the pure understanding, that the nature of our
|
|
perceptions makes such a mode of explanation possible, and that it
|
|
is erroneous to regard the real in a phenomenon as equal quoad its
|
|
degree, and different only quoad its aggregation and extensive
|
|
quantity, and this, too, on the pretended authority of an a priori
|
|
principle of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless, this principle of the anticipation of perception
|
|
must somewhat startle an inquirer whom initiation into
|
|
transcendental philosophy has rendered cautious. We must naturally
|
|
entertain some doubt whether or not the understanding can enounce
|
|
any such synthetical proposition as that respecting the degree of
|
|
all reality in phenomena, and consequently the possibility of the
|
|
internal difference of sensation itself- abstraction being made of its
|
|
empirical quality. Thus it is a question not unworthy of solution:
|
|
"How the understanding can pronounce synthetically and a priori
|
|
respecting phenomena, and thus anticipate these, even in that which is
|
|
peculiarly and merely empirical, that, namely, which concerns
|
|
sensation itself?"
|
|
|
|
The quality of sensation is in all cases merely empirical, and
|
|
cannot be represented a priori (for example, colours, taste, etc.).
|
|
But the real- that which corresponds to sensation- in opposition to
|
|
negation = O, only represents something the conception of which in
|
|
itself contains a being (ein seyn), and signifies nothing but the
|
|
synthesis in an empirical consciousness. That is to say, the empirical
|
|
consciousness in the internal sense can be raised from 0 to every
|
|
higher degree, so that the very same extensive quantity of
|
|
intuition, an illuminated surface, for example, excites as great a
|
|
sensation as an aggregate of many other surfaces less illuminated.
|
|
We can therefore make complete abstraction of the extensive quantity
|
|
of a phenomenon, and represent to ourselves in the mere sensation in a
|
|
certain momentum, a synthesis of homogeneous ascension from 0 up to
|
|
the given empirical consciousness, All sensations therefore as such
|
|
are given only a posteriori, but this property thereof, namely, that
|
|
they have a degree, can be known a priori. It is worthy of remark,
|
|
that in respect to quantities in general, we can cognize a priori only
|
|
a single quality, namely, continuity; but in respect to all quality
|
|
(the real in phenomena), we cannot cognize a priori anything more than
|
|
the intensive quantity thereof, namely, that they have a degree. All
|
|
else is left to experience.
|
|
|
|
3. ANALOGIES OF EXPERIENCE.
|
|
|
|
The principle of these is: Experience is possible only
|
|
|
|
through the representation of a necessary connection
|
|
|
|
of Perceptions.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Experience is an empirical cognition; that is to say, a cognition
|
|
which determines an object by means of perceptions. It is therefore
|
|
a synthesis of perceptions, a synthesis which is not itself
|
|
contained in perception, but which contains the synthetical unity of
|
|
the manifold of perception in a consciousness; and this unity
|
|
constitutes the essential of our cognition of objects of the senses,
|
|
that is, of experience (not merely of intuition or sensation). Now
|
|
in experience our perceptions come together contingently, so that no
|
|
character of necessity in their connection appears, or can appear from
|
|
the perceptions themselves, because apprehension is only a placing
|
|
together of the manifold of empirical intuition, and no representation
|
|
of a necessity in the connected existence of the phenomena which
|
|
apprehension brings together, is to be discovered therein. But as
|
|
experience is a cognition of objects by means of perceptions, it
|
|
follows that the relation of the existence of the existence of the
|
|
manifold must be represented in experience not as it is put together
|
|
in time, but as it is objectively in time. And as time itself cannot
|
|
be perceived, the determination of the existence of objects in time
|
|
can only take place by means of their connection in time in general,
|
|
consequently only by means of a priori connecting conceptions. Now
|
|
as these conceptions always possess the character of necessity,
|
|
experience is possible only by means of a representation of the
|
|
necessary connection of perception.
|
|
|
|
The three modi of time are permanence, succession, and
|
|
coexistence. Accordingly, there are three rules of all relations of
|
|
time in phenomena, according to which the existence of every
|
|
phenomenon is determined in respect of the unity of all time, and
|
|
these antecede all experience and render it possible.
|
|
|
|
The general principle of all three analogies rests on the
|
|
necessary unity of apperception in relation to all possible
|
|
empirical consciousness (perception) at every time, consequently, as
|
|
this unity lies a priori at the foundation of all mental operations,
|
|
the principle rests on the synthetical unity of all phenomena
|
|
according to their relation in time. For the original apperception
|
|
relates to our internal sense (the complex of all representations),
|
|
and indeed relates a priori to its form, that is to say, the
|
|
relation of the manifold empirical consciousness in time. Now this
|
|
manifold must be combined in original apperception according to
|
|
relations of time- a necessity imposed by the a priori
|
|
transcendental unity of apperception, to which is subjected all that
|
|
can belong to my (i.e., my own) cognition, and therefore all that
|
|
can become an object for me. This synthetical and a priori
|
|
determined unity in relation of perceptions in time is therefore the
|
|
rule: "All empirical determinations of time must be subject to rules
|
|
of the general determination of time"; and the analogies of
|
|
experience, of which we are now about to treat, must be rules of
|
|
this nature.
|
|
|
|
These principles have this peculiarity, that they do not concern
|
|
phenomena, and the synthesis of the empirical intuition thereof, but
|
|
merely the existence of phenomena and their relation to each other
|
|
in regard to this existence. Now the mode in which we apprehend a
|
|
thing in a phenomenon can be determined a priori in such a manner that
|
|
the rule of its synthesis can give, that is to say, can produce this a
|
|
priori intuition in every empirical example. But the existence of
|
|
phenomena cannot be known a priori, and although we could arrive by
|
|
this path at a conclusion of the fact of some existence, we could
|
|
not cognize that existence determinately, that is to say, we should be
|
|
incapable of anticipating in what respect the empirical intuition of
|
|
it would be distinguishable from that of others.
|
|
|
|
The two principles above mentioned, which I called mathematical,
|
|
in consideration of the fact of their authorizing the application of
|
|
mathematic phenomena, relate to these phenomena only in regard to
|
|
their possibility, and instruct us how phenomena, as far as regards
|
|
their intuition or the real in their perception, can be generated
|
|
according to the rules of a mathematical synthesis. Consequently,
|
|
numerical quantities, and with them the determination of a
|
|
phenomenon as a quantity, can be employed in the one case as well as
|
|
in the other. Thus, for example, out of 200,000 illuminations by the
|
|
moon, I might compose and give a priori, that is construct, the degree
|
|
of our sensations of the sunlight. We may therefore entitle these
|
|
two principles constitutive.
|
|
|
|
The case is very different with those principles whose province it
|
|
is to subject the existence of phenomena to rules a priori. For as
|
|
existence does not admit of being constructed, it is clear that they
|
|
must only concern the relations of existence and be merely
|
|
regulative principles. In this case, therefore, neither axioms nor
|
|
anticipations are to be thought of. Thus, if a perception is given us,
|
|
in a certain relation of time to other (although undetermined)
|
|
perceptions, we cannot then say a priori, what and how great (in
|
|
quantity) the other perception necessarily connected with the former
|
|
is, but only how it is connected, quoad its existence, in this given
|
|
modus of time. Analogies in philosophy mean something very different
|
|
from that which they represent in mathematics. In the latter they
|
|
are formulae, which enounce the equality of two relations of quantity,
|
|
and are always constitutive, so that if two terms of the proportion
|
|
are given, the third is also given, that is, can be constructed by the
|
|
aid of these formulae. But in philosophy, analogy is not the
|
|
equality of two quantitative but of two qualitative relations. In this
|
|
case, from three given terms, I can give a priori and cognize the
|
|
relation to a fourth member, but not this fourth term itself, although
|
|
I certainly possess a rule to guide me in the search for this fourth
|
|
term in experience, and a mark to assist me in discovering it. An
|
|
analogy of experience is therefore only a rule according to which
|
|
unity of experience must arise out of perceptions in respect to
|
|
objects (phenomena) not as a constitutive, but merely as a
|
|
regulative principle. The same holds good also of the postulates of
|
|
empirical thought in general, which relate to the synthesis of mere
|
|
intuition (which concerns the form of phenomena), the synthesis of
|
|
perception (which concerns the matter of phenomena), and the synthesis
|
|
of experience (which concerns the relation of these perceptions).
|
|
For they are only regulative principles, and clearly distinguishable
|
|
from the mathematical, which are constitutive, not indeed in regard to
|
|
the certainty which both possess a priori, but in the mode of evidence
|
|
thereof, consequently also in the manner of demonstration.
|
|
|
|
But what has been observed of all synthetical propositions, and must
|
|
be particularly remarked in this place, is this, that these
|
|
analogies possess significance and validity, not as principles of
|
|
the transcendental, but only as principles of the empirical use of the
|
|
understanding, and their truth can therefore be proved only as such,
|
|
and that consequently the phenomena must not be subjoined directly
|
|
under the categories, but only under their schemata. For if the
|
|
objects to which those principles must be applied were things in
|
|
themselves, it would be quite impossible to cognize aught concerning
|
|
them synthetically a priori. But they are nothing but phenomena; a
|
|
complete knowledge of which- a knowledge to which all principles a
|
|
priori must at last relate- is the only possible experience. It
|
|
follows that these principles can have nothing else for their aim than
|
|
the conditions of the empirical cognition in the unity of synthesis of
|
|
phenomena. But this synthesis is cogitated only in the schema of the
|
|
pure conception of the understanding, of whose unity, as that of a
|
|
synthesis in general, the category contains the function
|
|
unrestricted by any sensuous condition. These principles will
|
|
therefore authorize us to connect phenomena according to an analogy,
|
|
with the logical and universal unity of conceptions, and
|
|
consequently to employ the categories in the principles themselves;
|
|
but in the application of them to experience, we shall use only
|
|
their schemata, as the key to their proper application, instead of the
|
|
categories, or rather the latter as restricting conditions, under
|
|
the title of "formulae" of the former.
|
|
|
|
A. FIRST ANALOGY.
|
|
|
|
Principle of the Permanence of Substance.
|
|
|
|
In all changes of phenomena, substance is permanent, and the
|
|
|
|
quantum thereof in nature is neither increased nor diminished.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
All phenomena exist in time, wherein alone as substratum, that is,
|
|
as the permanent form of the internal intuition, coexistence and
|
|
succession can be represented. Consequently time, in which all changes
|
|
of phenomena must be cogitated, remains and changes not, because it is
|
|
that in which succession and coexistence can be represented only as
|
|
determinations thereof. Now, time in itself cannot be an object of
|
|
perception. It follows that in objects of perception, that is, in
|
|
phenomena, there must be found a substratum which represents time in
|
|
general, and in which all change or coexistence can be perceived by
|
|
means of the relation of phenomena to it. But the substratum of all
|
|
reality, that is, of all that pertains to the existence of things,
|
|
is substance; all that pertains to existence can be cogitated only
|
|
as a determination of substance. Consequently, the permanent, in
|
|
relation to which alone can all relations of time in phenomena be
|
|
determined, is substance in the world of phenomena, that is, the
|
|
real in phenomena, that which, as the substratum of all change,
|
|
remains ever the same. Accordingly, as this cannot change in
|
|
existence, its quantity in nature can neither be increased nor
|
|
diminished.
|
|
|
|
Our apprehension of the manifold in a phenomenon is always
|
|
successive, is Consequently always changing. By it alone we could,
|
|
therefore, never determine whether this manifold, as an object of
|
|
experience, is coexistent or successive, unless it had for a
|
|
foundation something fixed and permanent, of the existence of which
|
|
all succession and coexistence are nothing but so many modes (modi
|
|
of time). Only in the permanent, then, are relations of time
|
|
possible (for simultaneity and succession are the only relations in
|
|
time); that is to say, the permanent is the substratum of our
|
|
empirical representation of time itself, in which alone all
|
|
determination of time is possible. Permanence is, in fact, just
|
|
another expression for time, as the abiding correlate of all existence
|
|
of phenomena, and of all change, and of all coexistence. For change
|
|
does not affect time itself, but only the phenomena in time (just as
|
|
coexistence cannot be regarded as a modus of time itself, seeing
|
|
that in time no parts are coexistent, but all successive). If we
|
|
were to attribute succession to time itself, we should be obliged to
|
|
cogitate another time, in which this succession would be possible.
|
|
It is only by means of the permanent that existence in different parts
|
|
of the successive series of time receives a quantity, which we entitle
|
|
duration. For in mere succession, existence is perpetually vanishing
|
|
and recommencing, and therefore never has even the least quantity.
|
|
Without the permanent, then, no relation in time is possible. Now,
|
|
time in itself is not an object of perception; consequently the
|
|
permanent in phenomena must be regarded as the substratum of all
|
|
determination of time, and consequently also as the condition of the
|
|
possibility of all synthetical unity of perceptions, that is, of
|
|
experience; and all existence and all change in time can only be
|
|
regarded as a mode in the existence of that which abides unchangeably.
|
|
Therefore, in all phenomena, the permanent is the object in itself,
|
|
that is, the substance (phenomenon); but all that changes or can
|
|
change belongs only to the mode of the existence of this substance
|
|
or substances, consequently to its determinations.
|
|
|
|
I find that in all ages not only the philosopher, but even the
|
|
common understanding, has preposited this permanence as a substratum
|
|
of all change in phenomena; indeed, I am compelled to believe that
|
|
they will always accept this as an indubitable fact. Only the
|
|
philosopher expresses himself in a more precise and definite manner,
|
|
when he says: "In all changes in the world, the substance remains, and
|
|
the accidents alone are changeable." But of this decidedly synthetical
|
|
proposition, I nowhere meet with even an attempt at proof; nay, it
|
|
very rarely has the good fortune to stand, as it deserves to do, at
|
|
the head of the pure and entirely a priori laws of nature. In truth,
|
|
the statement that substance is permanent, is tautological. For this
|
|
very permanence is the ground on which we apply the category of
|
|
substance to the phenomenon; and we should have been obliged to
|
|
prove that in all phenomena there is something permanent, of the
|
|
existence of which the changeable is nothing but a determination.
|
|
But because a proof of this nature cannot be dogmatical, that is,
|
|
cannot be drawn from conceptions, inasmuch as it concerns a
|
|
synthetical proposition a priori, and as philosophers never
|
|
reflected that such propositions are valid only in relation to
|
|
possible experience, and therefore cannot be proved except by means of
|
|
a deduction of the possibility of experience, it is no wonder that
|
|
while it has served as the foundation of all experience (for we feel
|
|
the need of it in empirical cognition), it has never been supported by
|
|
proof.
|
|
|
|
A philosopher was asked: "What is the weight of smoke?" He answered:
|
|
"Subtract from the weight of the burnt wood the weight of the
|
|
remaining ashes, and you will have the weight of the smoke." Thus he
|
|
presumed it to be incontrovertible that even in fire the matter
|
|
(substance) does not perish, but that only the form of it undergoes
|
|
a change. In like manner was the saying: "From nothing comes nothing,"
|
|
only another inference from the principle or permanence, or rather
|
|
of the ever-abiding existence of the true subject in phenomena. For if
|
|
that in the phenomenon which we call substance is to be the proper
|
|
substratum of all determination of time, it follows that all existence
|
|
in past as well as in future time, must be determinable by means of it
|
|
alone. Hence we are entitled to apply the term substance to a
|
|
phenomenon, only because we suppose its existence in all time, a
|
|
notion which the word permanence does not fully express, as it seems
|
|
rather to be referable to future time. However, the internal necessity
|
|
perpetually to be, is inseparably connected with the necessity
|
|
always to have been, and so the expression may stand as it is.
|
|
"Gigni de nihilo nihil; in nihilum nil posse reverti,"* are two
|
|
propositions which the ancients never parted, and which people
|
|
nowadays sometimes mistakenly disjoin, because they imagine that the
|
|
propositions apply to objects as things in themselves, and that the
|
|
former might be inimical to the dependence (even in respect of its
|
|
substance also) of the world upon a supreme cause. But this
|
|
apprehension is entirely needless, for the question in this case is
|
|
only of phenomena in the sphere of experience, the unity of which
|
|
never could be possible, if we admitted the possibility that new
|
|
things (in respect of their substance) should arise. For in that case,
|
|
we should lose altogether that which alone can represent the unity
|
|
of time, to wit, the identity of the substratum, as that through which
|
|
alone all change possesses complete and thorough unity. This
|
|
permanence is, however, nothing but the manner in which we represent
|
|
to ourselves the existence of things in the phenomenal world.
|
|
|
|
*[Persius, Satirae, iii.83-84. "Nothing can be produced from
|
|
nothing; nothing can be returned into nothing."]
|
|
|
|
The determinations of a substance, which are only particular modes
|
|
of its existence, are called accidents. They are always real,
|
|
because they concern the existence of substance (negations are only
|
|
determinations, which express the non-existence of something in the
|
|
substance). Now, if to this real in the substance we ascribe a
|
|
particular existence (for example, to motion as an accident of
|
|
matter), this existence is called inherence, in contradistinction to
|
|
the existence of substance, which we call subsistence. But hence arise
|
|
many misconceptions, and it would be a more accurate and just mode
|
|
of expression to designate the accident only as the mode in which
|
|
the existence of a substance is positively determined. Meanwhile, by
|
|
reason of the conditions of the logical exercise of our understanding,
|
|
it is impossible to avoid separating, as it were, that which in the
|
|
existence of a substance is subject to change, whilst the substance
|
|
remains, and regarding it in relation to that which is properly
|
|
permanent and radical. On this account, this category of substance
|
|
stands under the title of relation, rather because it is the condition
|
|
thereof than because it contains in itself any relation.
|
|
|
|
Now, upon this notion of permanence rests the proper notion of the
|
|
conception change. Origin and extinction are not changes of that which
|
|
originates or becomes extinct. Change is but a mode of existence,
|
|
which follows on another mode of existence of the same object; hence
|
|
all that changes is permanent, and only the condition thereof changes.
|
|
Now since this mutation affects only determinations, which can have
|
|
a beginning or an end, we may say, employing an expression which seems
|
|
somewhat paradoxical: "Only the permanent (substance) is subject to
|
|
change; the mutable suffers no change, but rather alternation, that
|
|
is, when certain determinations cease, others begin."
|
|
|
|
Change, when, cannot be perceived by us except in substances, and
|
|
origin or extinction in an absolute sense, that does not concern
|
|
merely a determination of the permanent, cannot be a possible
|
|
perception, for it is this very notion of the permanent which
|
|
renders possible the representation of a transition from one state
|
|
into another, and from non-being to being, which, consequently, can be
|
|
empirically cognized only as alternating determinations of that
|
|
which is permanent. Grant that a thing absolutely begins to be; we
|
|
must then have a point of time in which it was not. But how and by
|
|
what can we fix and determine this point of time, unless by that which
|
|
already exists? For a void time- preceding- is not an object of
|
|
perception; but if we connect this beginning with objects which
|
|
existed previously, and which continue to exist till the object in
|
|
question in question begins to be, then the latter can only be a
|
|
determination of the former as the permanent. The same holds good of
|
|
the notion of extinction, for this presupposes the empirical
|
|
representation of a time, in which a phenomenon no longer exists.
|
|
|
|
Substances (in the world of phenomena) are the substratum of all
|
|
determinations of time. The beginning of some, and the ceasing to be
|
|
of other substances, would utterly do away with the only condition
|
|
of the empirical unity of time; and in that case phenomena would
|
|
relate to two different times, in which, side by side, existence would
|
|
pass; which is absurd. For there is only one time in which all
|
|
different times must be placed, not as coexistent, but as successive.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, permanence is a necessary condition under which alone
|
|
phenomena, as things or objects, are determinable in a possible
|
|
experience. But as regards the empirical criterion of this necessary
|
|
permanence, and with it of the substantiality of phenomena, we shall
|
|
find sufficient opportunity to speak in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
B. SECOND ANALOGY.
|
|
|
|
Principle of the Succession of Time According
|
|
|
|
to the Law of Causality.
|
|
|
|
All changes take place according to the law of the
|
|
|
|
connection of Cause and Effect.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
(That all phenomena in the succession of time are only changes, that
|
|
is, a successive being and non-being of the determinations of
|
|
substance, which is permanent; consequently that a being of
|
|
substance itself which follows on the non-being thereof, or a
|
|
non-being of substance which follows on the being thereof, in other
|
|
words, that the origin or extinction of substance itself, is
|
|
impossible- all this has been fully established in treating of the
|
|
foregoing principle. This principle might have been expressed as
|
|
follows: "All alteration (succession) of phenomena is merely
|
|
change"; for the changes of substance are not origin or extinction,
|
|
because the conception of change presupposes the same subject as
|
|
existing with two opposite determinations, and consequently as
|
|
permanent. After this premonition, we shall proceed to the proof.)
|
|
|
|
I perceive that phenomena succeed one another, that is to say, a
|
|
state of things exists at one time, the opposite of which existed in a
|
|
former state. In this case, then, I really connect together two
|
|
perceptions in time. Now connection is not an operation of mere
|
|
sense and intuition, but is the product of a synthetical faculty of
|
|
imagination, which determines the internal sense in respect of a
|
|
relation of time. But imagination can connect these two states in
|
|
two ways, so that either the one or the other may antecede in time;
|
|
for time in itself cannot be an object of perception, and what in an
|
|
object precedes and what follows cannot be empirically determined in
|
|
relation to it. I am only conscious, then, that my imagination
|
|
places one state before and the other after; not that the one state
|
|
antecedes the other in the object. In other words, the objective
|
|
relation of the successive phenomena remains quite undetermined by
|
|
means of mere perception. Now in order that this relation may be
|
|
cognized as determined, the relation between the two states must be so
|
|
cogitated that it is thereby determined as necessary, which of them
|
|
must be placed before and which after, and not conversely. But the
|
|
conception which carries with it a necessity of synthetical unity, can
|
|
be none other than a pure conception of the understanding which does
|
|
not lie in mere perception; and in this case it is the conception of
|
|
"the relation of cause and effect," the former of which determines the
|
|
latter in time, as its necessary consequence, and not as something
|
|
which might possibly antecede (or which might in some cases not be
|
|
perceived to follow). It follows that it is only because we subject
|
|
the sequence of phenomena, and consequently all change, to the law
|
|
of causality, that experience itself, that is, empirical cognition
|
|
of phenomena, becomes possible; and consequently, that phenomena
|
|
themselves, as objects of experience, are possible only by virtue of
|
|
this law.
|
|
|
|
Our apprehension of the manifold of phenomena is always
|
|
successive. The representations of parts succeed one another.
|
|
Whether they succeed one another in the object also, is a second point
|
|
for reflection, which was not contained in the former. Now we may
|
|
certainly give the name of object to everything, even to every
|
|
representation, so far as we are conscious thereof; but what this word
|
|
may mean in the case of phenomena, not merely in so far as they (as
|
|
representations) are objects, but only in so far as they indicate an
|
|
object, is a question requiring deeper consideration. In so far as
|
|
they, regarded merely as representations, are at the same time objects
|
|
of consciousness, they are not to be distinguished from
|
|
apprehension, that is, reception into the synthesis of imagination,
|
|
and we must therefore say: "The manifold of phenomena is always
|
|
produced successively in the mind." If phenomena were things in
|
|
themselves, no man would be able to conjecture from the succession
|
|
of our representations how this manifold is connected in the object;
|
|
for we have to do only with our representations. How things may be
|
|
in themselves, without regard to the representations through which
|
|
they affect us, is utterly beyond the sphere of our cognition. Now
|
|
although phenomena are not things in themselves, and are
|
|
nevertheless the only thing given to us to be cognized, it is my
|
|
duty to show what sort of connection in time belongs to the manifold
|
|
in phenomena themselves, while the representation of this manifold
|
|
in apprehension is always successive. For example, the apprehension of
|
|
the manifold in the phenomenon of a house which stands before me, is
|
|
successive. Now comes the question whether the manifold of this
|
|
house is in itself successive- which no one will be at all willing
|
|
to grant. But, so soon as I raise my conception of an object to the
|
|
transcendental signification thereof, I find that the house is not a
|
|
thing in itself, but only a phenomenon, that is, a representation, the
|
|
transcendental object of which remains utterly unknown. What then am I
|
|
to understand by the question: "How can the manifold be connected in
|
|
the phenomenon itself- not considered as a thing in itself, but merely
|
|
as a phenomenon?" Here that which lies in my successive apprehension
|
|
is regarded as representation, whilst the phenomenon which is given
|
|
me, notwithstanding that it is nothing more than a complex of these
|
|
representations, is regarded as the object thereof, with which my
|
|
conception, drawn from the representations of apprehension, must
|
|
harmonize. It is very soon seen that, as accordance of the cognition
|
|
with its object constitutes truth, the question now before us can only
|
|
relate to the formal conditions of empirical truth; and that the
|
|
phenomenon, in opposition to the representations of apprehension,
|
|
can only be distinguished therefrom as the object of them, if it is
|
|
subject to a rule which distinguishes it from every other
|
|
apprehension, and which renders necessary a mode of connection of
|
|
the manifold. That in the phenomenon which contains the condition of
|
|
this necessary rule of apprehension, is the object.
|
|
|
|
Let us now proceed to our task. That something happens, that is to
|
|
say, that something or some state exists which before was not,
|
|
cannot be empirically perceived, unless a phenomenon precedes, which
|
|
does not contain in itself this state. For a reality which should
|
|
follow upon a void time, in other words, a beginning, which no state
|
|
of things precedes, can just as little be apprehended as the void time
|
|
itself. Every apprehension of an event is therefore a perception which
|
|
follows upon another perception. But as this is the case with all
|
|
synthesis of apprehension, as I have shown above in the example of a
|
|
house, my apprehension of an event is not yet sufficiently
|
|
distinguished from other apprehensions. But I remark also that if in a
|
|
phenomenon which contains an occurrence, I call the antecedent state
|
|
of my perception, A, and the following state, B, the perception B
|
|
can only follow A in apprehension, and the perception A cannot
|
|
follow B, but only precede it. For example, I see a ship float down
|
|
the stream of a river. My perception of its place lower down follows
|
|
upon my perception of its place higher up the course of the river, and
|
|
it is impossible that, in the apprehension of this phenomenon, the
|
|
vessel should be perceived first below and afterwards higher up the
|
|
stream. Here, therefore, the order in the sequence of perceptions in
|
|
apprehension is determined; and by this order apprehension is
|
|
regulated. In the former example, my perceptions in the apprehension
|
|
of a house might begin at the roof and end at the foundation, or
|
|
vice versa; or I might apprehend the manifold in this empirical
|
|
intuition, by going from left to right, and from right to left.
|
|
Accordingly, in the series of these perceptions, there was no
|
|
determined order, which necessitated my beginning at a certain
|
|
point, in order empirically to connect the manifold. But this rule
|
|
is always to be met with in the perception of that which happens,
|
|
and it makes the order of the successive perceptions in the
|
|
apprehension of such a phenomenon necessary.
|
|
|
|
I must, therefore, in the present case, deduce the subjective
|
|
sequence of apprehension from the objective sequence of phenomena, for
|
|
otherwise the former is quite undetermined, and one phenomenon is
|
|
not distinguishable from another. The former alone proves nothing as
|
|
to the connection of the manifold in an object, for it is quite
|
|
arbitrary. The latter must consist in the order of the manifold in a
|
|
phenomenon, according to which order the apprehension of one thing
|
|
(that which happens) follows that of another thing (which precedes),
|
|
in conformity with a rule. In this way alone can I be authorized to
|
|
say of the phenomenon itself, and not merely of my own apprehension,
|
|
that a certain order or sequence is to be found therein. That is, in
|
|
other words, I cannot arrange my apprehension otherwise than in this
|
|
order.
|
|
|
|
In conformity with this rule, then, it is necessary that in that
|
|
which antecedes an event there be found the condition of a rule,
|
|
according to which in this event follows always and necessarily; but I
|
|
cannot reverse this and go back from the event, and determine (by
|
|
apprehension) that which antecedes it. For no phenomenon goes back
|
|
from the succeeding point of time to the preceding point, although
|
|
it does certainly relate to a preceding point of time; from a given
|
|
time, on the other hand, there is always a necessary progression to
|
|
the determined succeeding time. Therefore, because there certainly
|
|
is something that follows, I must of necessity connect it with
|
|
something else, which antecedes, and upon which it follows, in
|
|
conformity with a rule, that is necessarily, so that the event, as
|
|
conditioned, affords certain indication of a condition, and this
|
|
condition determines the event.
|
|
|
|
Let us suppose that nothing precedes an event, upon which this event
|
|
must follow in conformity with a rule. All sequence of perception
|
|
would then exist only in apprehension, that is to say, would be merely
|
|
subjective, and it could not thereby be objectively determined what
|
|
thing ought to precede, and what ought to follow in perception. In
|
|
such a case, we should have nothing but a play of representations,
|
|
which would possess no application to any object. That is to say, it
|
|
would not be possible through perception to distinguish one phenomenon
|
|
from another, as regards relations of time; because the succession
|
|
in the act of apprehension would always be of the same sort, and
|
|
therefore there would be nothing in the phenomenon to determine the
|
|
succession, and to render a certain sequence objectively necessary.
|
|
And, in this case, I cannot say that two states in a phenomenon follow
|
|
one upon the other, but only that one apprehension follows upon
|
|
another. But this is merely subjective, and does not determine an
|
|
object, and consequently cannot be held to be cognition of an
|
|
object- not even in the phenomenal world.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, when we know in experience that something happens, we
|
|
always presuppose that something precedes, whereupon it follows in
|
|
conformity with a rule. For otherwise I could not say of the object
|
|
that it follows; because the mere succession in my apprehension, if it
|
|
be not determined by a rule in relation to something preceding, does
|
|
not authorize succession in the object. Only, therefore, in
|
|
reference to a rule, according to which phenomena are determined in
|
|
their sequence, that is, as they happen, by the preceding state, can I
|
|
make my subjective synthesis (of apprehension) objective, and it is
|
|
only under this presupposition that even the experience of an event is
|
|
possible.
|
|
|
|
No doubt it appears as if this were in thorough contradiction to all
|
|
the notions which people have hitherto entertained in regard to the
|
|
procedure of the human understanding. According to these opinions,
|
|
it is by means of the perception and comparison of similar
|
|
consequences following upon certain antecedent phenomena that the
|
|
understanding is led to the discovery of a rule, according to which
|
|
certain events always follow certain phenomena, and it is only by this
|
|
process that we attain to the conception of cause. Upon such a
|
|
basis, it is clear that this conception must be merely empirical,
|
|
and the rule which it furnishes us with- "Everything that happens must
|
|
have a cause"- would be just as contingent as experience itself. The
|
|
universality and necessity of the rule or law would be perfectly
|
|
spurious attributes of it. Indeed, it could not possess universal
|
|
validity, inasmuch as it would not in this case be a priori, but
|
|
founded on deduction. But the same is the case with this law as with
|
|
other pure a priori representations (e.g., space and time), which we
|
|
can draw in perfect clearness and completeness from experience, only
|
|
because we had already placed them therein, and by that means, and
|
|
by that alone, had rendered experience possible. Indeed, the logical
|
|
clearness of this representation of a rule, determining the series
|
|
of events, is possible only when we have made use thereof in
|
|
experience. Nevertheless, the recognition of this rule, as a condition
|
|
of the synthetical unity of phenomena in time, was the ground of
|
|
experience itself and consequently preceded it a priori.
|
|
|
|
It is now our duty to show by an example that we never, even in
|
|
experience, attribute to an object the notion of succession or
|
|
effect (of an event- that is, the happening of something that did
|
|
not exist before), and distinguish it from the subjective succession
|
|
of apprehension, unless when a rule lies at the foundation, which
|
|
compels us to observe this order of perception in preference to any
|
|
other, and that, indeed, it is this necessity which first renders
|
|
possible the representation of a succession in the object.
|
|
|
|
We have representations within us, of which also we can be
|
|
conscious. But, however widely extended, however accurate and
|
|
thoroughgoing this consciousness may be, these representations are
|
|
still nothing more than representations, that is, internal
|
|
determinations of the mind in this or that relation of time. Now how
|
|
happens it that to these representations we should set an object, or
|
|
that, in addition to their subjective reality, as modifications, we
|
|
should still further attribute to them a certain unknown objective
|
|
reality? It is clear that objective significancy cannot consist in a
|
|
relation to another representation (of that which we desire to term
|
|
object), for in that case the question again arises: "How does this
|
|
other representation go out of itself, and obtain objective
|
|
significancy over and above the subjective, which is proper to it,
|
|
as a determination of a state of mind?" If we try to discover what
|
|
sort of new property the relation to an object gives to our subjective
|
|
representations, and what new importance they thereby receive, we
|
|
shall find that this relation has no other effect than that of
|
|
rendering necessary the connection of our representations in a certain
|
|
manner, and of subjecting them to a rule; and that conversely, it is
|
|
only because a certain order is necessary in the relations of time
|
|
of our representations, that objective significancy is ascribed to
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
In the synthesis of phenomena, the manifold of our representations
|
|
is always successive. Now hereby is not represented an object, for
|
|
by means of this succession, which is common to all apprehension, no
|
|
one thing is distinguished from another. But so soon as I perceive
|
|
or assume that in this succession there is a relation to a state
|
|
antecedent, from which the representation follows in accordance with a
|
|
rule, so soon do I represent something as an event, or as a thing that
|
|
happens; in other words, I cognize an object to which I must assign
|
|
a certain determinate position in time, which cannot be altered,
|
|
because of the preceding state in the object. When, therefore, I
|
|
perceive that something happens, there is contained in this
|
|
representation, in the first place, the fact, that something
|
|
antecedes; because, it. is only in relation to this that the
|
|
phenomenon obtains its proper relation of time, in other words, exists
|
|
after an antecedent time, in which it did not exist. But it can
|
|
receive its determined place in time only by the presupposition that
|
|
something existed in the foregoing state, upon which it follows
|
|
inevitably and always, that is, in conformity with a rule. From all
|
|
this it is evident that, in the first place, I cannot reverse the
|
|
order of succession, and make that which happens precede that upon
|
|
which it follows; and that, in the second place, if the antecedent
|
|
state be posited, a certain determinate event inevitably and
|
|
necessarily follows. Hence it follows that there exists a certain
|
|
order in our representations, whereby the present gives a sure
|
|
indication of some previously existing state, as a correlate, though
|
|
still undetermined, of the existing event which is given- a
|
|
correlate which itself relates to the event as its consequence,
|
|
conditions it, and connects it necessarily with itself in the series
|
|
of time.
|
|
|
|
If then it be admitted as a necessary law of sensibility, and
|
|
consequently a formal condition of all perception, that the
|
|
preceding necessarily determines the succeeding time (inasmuch as I
|
|
cannot arrive at the succeeding except through the preceding), it must
|
|
likewise be an indispensable law of empirical representation of the
|
|
series of time that the phenomena of the past determine all
|
|
phenomena in the succeeding time, and that the latter, as events,
|
|
cannot take place, except in so far as the former determine their
|
|
existence in time, that is to say, establish it according to a rule.
|
|
For it is of course only in phenomena that we can empirically
|
|
cognize this continuity in the connection of times.
|
|
|
|
For all experience and for the possibility of experience,
|
|
understanding is indispensable, and the first step which it takes in
|
|
this sphere is not to render the representation of objects clear,
|
|
but to render the representation of an object in general, possible. It
|
|
does this by applying the order of time to phenomena, and their
|
|
existence. In other words, it assigns to each phenomenon, as a
|
|
consequence, a place in relation to preceding phenomena, determined
|
|
a priori in time, without which it could not harmonize with time
|
|
itself, which determines a place a priori to all its parts. This
|
|
determination of place cannot be derived from the relation of
|
|
phenomena to absolute time (for it is not an object of perception);
|
|
but, on the contrary, phenomena must reciprocally determine the places
|
|
in time of one another, and render these necessary in the order of
|
|
time. In other words, whatever follows or happens, must follow in
|
|
conformity with a universal rule upon that which was contained in
|
|
the foregoing state. Hence arises a series of phenomena, which, by
|
|
means of the understanding, produces and renders necessary exactly the
|
|
same order and continuous connection in the series of our possible
|
|
perceptions, as is found a priori in the form of internal intuition
|
|
(time), in which all our perceptions must have place.
|
|
|
|
That something happens, then, is a perception which belongs to a
|
|
possible experience, which becomes real only because I look upon the
|
|
phenomenon as determined in regard to its place in time,
|
|
consequently as an object, which can always be found by means of a
|
|
rule in the connected series of my perceptions. But this rule of the
|
|
determination of a thing according to succession in time is as
|
|
follows: "In what precedes may be found the condition, under which
|
|
an event always (that is, necessarily) follows." From all this it is
|
|
obvious that the principle of cause and effect is the principle of
|
|
possible experience, that is, of objective cognition of phenomena,
|
|
in regard to their relations in the succession of time.
|
|
|
|
The proof of this fundamental proposition rests entirely on the
|
|
following momenta of argument. To all empirical cognition belongs
|
|
the synthesis of the manifold by the imagination, a synthesis which is
|
|
always successive, that is, in which the representations therein
|
|
always follow one another. But the order of succession in
|
|
imagination is not determined, and the series of successive
|
|
representations may be taken retrogressively as well as progressively.
|
|
But if this synthesis is a synthesis of apprehension (of the
|
|
manifold of a given phenomenon),then the order is determined in the
|
|
object, or to speak more accurately, there is therein an order of
|
|
successive synthesis which determines an object, and according to
|
|
which something necessarily precedes, and when this is posited,
|
|
something else necessarily follows. If, then, my perception is to
|
|
contain the cognition of an event, that is, of something which
|
|
really happens, it must be an empirical judgement, wherein we think
|
|
that the succession is determined; that is, it presupposes another
|
|
phenomenon, upon which this event follows necessarily, or in
|
|
conformity with a rule. If, on the contrary, when I posited the
|
|
antecedent, the event did not necessarily follow, I should be
|
|
obliged to consider it merely as a subjective play of my
|
|
imagination, and if in this I represented to myself anything as
|
|
objective, I must look upon it as a mere dream. Thus, the relation
|
|
of phenomena (as possible perceptions), according to which that
|
|
which happens is, as to its existence, necessarily determined in
|
|
time by something which antecedes, in conformity with a rule- in other
|
|
words, the relation of cause and effect- is the condition of the
|
|
objective validity of our empirical judgements in regard to the
|
|
sequence of perceptions, consequently of their empirical truth, and
|
|
therefore of experience. The principle of the relation of causality in
|
|
the succession of phenomena is therefore valid for all objects of
|
|
experience, because it is itself the ground of the possibility of
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
Here, however, a difficulty arises, which must be resolved. The
|
|
principle of the connection of causality among phenomena is limited in
|
|
our formula to the succession thereof, although in practice we find
|
|
that the principle applies also when the phenomena exist together in
|
|
the same time, and that cause and effect may be simultaneous. For
|
|
example, there is heat in a room, which does not exist in the open
|
|
air. I look about for the cause, and find it to be the fire, Now the
|
|
fire as the cause is simultaneous with its effect, the heat of the
|
|
room. In this case, then, there is no succession as regards time,
|
|
between cause and effect, but they are simultaneous; and still the law
|
|
holds good. The greater part of operating causes in nature are
|
|
simultaneous with their effects, and the succession in time of the
|
|
latter is produced only because the cause cannot achieve the total
|
|
of its effect in one moment. But at the moment when the effect first
|
|
arises, it is always simultaneous with the causality of its cause,
|
|
because, if the cause had but a moment before ceased to be, the effect
|
|
could not have arisen. Here it must be specially remembered that we
|
|
must consider the order of time and not the lapse thereof. The
|
|
relation remains, even though no time has elapsed. The time between
|
|
the causality of the cause and its immediate effect may entirely
|
|
vanish, and the cause and effect be thus simultaneous, but the
|
|
relation of the one to the other remains always determinable according
|
|
to time. If, for example, I consider a leaden ball, which lies upon
|
|
a cushion and makes a hollow in it, as a cause, then it is
|
|
simultaneous with the effect. But I distinguish the two through the
|
|
relation of time of the dynamical connection of both. For if I lay the
|
|
ball upon the cushion, then the hollow follows upon the before
|
|
smooth surface; but supposing the cushion has, from some cause or
|
|
another, a hollow, there does not thereupon follow a leaden ball.
|
|
|
|
Thus, the law of succession of time is in all instances the only
|
|
empirical criterion of effect in relation to the causality of the
|
|
antecedent cause. The glass is the cause of the rising of the water
|
|
above its horizontal surface, although the two phenomena are
|
|
contemporaneous. For, as soon as I draw some water with the glass from
|
|
a larger vessel, an effect follows thereupon, namely, the change of
|
|
the horizontal state which the water had in the large vessel into a
|
|
concave, which it assumes in the glass.
|
|
|
|
This conception of causality leads us to the conception of action;
|
|
that of action, to the conception of force; and through it, to the
|
|
conception of substance. As I do not wish this critical essay, the
|
|
sole purpose of which is to treat of the sources of our synthetical
|
|
cognition a priori, to be crowded with analyses which merely
|
|
explain, but do not enlarge the sphere of our conceptions, I reserve
|
|
the detailed explanation of the above conceptions for a future
|
|
system of pure reason. Such an analysis, indeed, executed with great
|
|
particularity, may already be found in well-known works on this
|
|
subject. But I cannot at present refrain from making a few remarks
|
|
on the empirical criterion of a substance, in so far as it seems to be
|
|
more evident and more easily recognized through the conception of
|
|
action than through that of the permanence of a phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
Where action (consequently activity and force) exists, substance
|
|
also must exist, and in it alone must be sought the seat of that
|
|
fruitful source of phenomena. Very well. But if we are called upon
|
|
to explain what we mean by substance, and wish to avoid the vice of
|
|
reasoning in a circle, the answer is by no means so easy. How shall we
|
|
conclude immediately from the action to the permanence of that which
|
|
acts, this being nevertheless an essential and peculiar criterion of
|
|
substance (phenomenon)? But after what has been said above, the
|
|
solution of this question becomes easy enough, although by the
|
|
common mode of procedure- merely analysing our conceptions- it would
|
|
be quite impossible. The conception of action indicates the relation
|
|
of the subject of causality to the effect. Now because all effect
|
|
consists in that which happens, therefore in the changeable, the
|
|
last subject thereof is the permanent, as the substratum of all that
|
|
changes, that is, substance. For according to the principle of
|
|
causality, actions are always the first ground of all change in
|
|
phenomena and, consequently, cannot be a property of a subject which
|
|
itself changes, because if this were the case, other actions and
|
|
another subject would be necessary to determine this change. From
|
|
all this it results that action alone, as an empirical criterion, is a
|
|
sufficient proof of the presence of substantiality, without any
|
|
necessity on my part of endeavouring to discover the permanence of
|
|
substance by a comparison. Besides, by this mode of induction we could
|
|
not attain to the completeness which the magnitude and strict
|
|
universality of the conception requires. For that the primary
|
|
subject of the causality of all arising and passing away, all origin
|
|
and extinction, cannot itself (in the sphere of phenomena) arise and
|
|
pass away, is a sound and safe conclusion, a conclusion which leads us
|
|
to the conception of empirical necessity and permanence in
|
|
existence, and consequently to the conception of a substance as
|
|
phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
When something happens, the mere fact of the occurrence, without
|
|
regard to that which occurs, is an object requiring investigation. The
|
|
transition from the non-being of a state into the existence of it,
|
|
supposing that this state contains no quality which previously existed
|
|
in the phenomenon, is a fact of itself demanding inquiry. Such an
|
|
event, as has been shown in No. A, does not concern substance (for
|
|
substance does not thus originate), but its condition or state. It
|
|
is therefore only change, and not origin from nothing. If this
|
|
origin be regarded as the effect of a foreign cause, it is termed
|
|
creation, which cannot be admitted as an event among phenomena,
|
|
because the very possibility of it would annihilate the unity of
|
|
experience. If, however, I regard all things not as phenomena, but
|
|
as things in themselves and objects of understanding alone, they,
|
|
although substances, may be considered as dependent, in respect of
|
|
their existence, on a foreign cause. But this would require a very
|
|
different meaning in the words, a meaning which could not apply to
|
|
phenomena as objects of possible experience.
|
|
|
|
How a thing can be changed, how it is possible that upon one state
|
|
existing in one point of time, an opposite state should follow in
|
|
another point of time- of this we have not the smallest conception a
|
|
priori. There is requisite for this the knowledge of real powers,
|
|
which can only be given empirically; for example, knowledge of
|
|
moving forces, or, in other words, of certain successive phenomena (as
|
|
movements) which indicate the presence of such forces. But the form of
|
|
every change, the condition under which alone it can take place as the
|
|
coming into existence of another state (be the content of the
|
|
change, that is, the state which is changed, what it may), and
|
|
consequently the succession of the states themselves can very well
|
|
be considered a priori, in relation to the law of causality and the
|
|
conditions of time.*
|
|
|
|
*It must be remarked that I do not speak of the change of certain
|
|
relations, but of the change of the state. Thus, when a body moves
|
|
in a uniform manner, it does not change its state (of motion); but
|
|
only when all motion increases or decreases.
|
|
|
|
When a substance passes from one state, a, into another state, b,
|
|
the point of time in which the latter exists is different from, and
|
|
subsequent to that in which the former existed. In like manner, the
|
|
second state, as reality (in the phenomenon), differs from the
|
|
first, in which the reality of the second did not exist, as b from
|
|
zero. That is to say, if the state, b, differs from the state, a, only
|
|
in respect to quantity, the change is a coming into existence of b -
|
|
a, which in the former state did not exist, and in relation to which
|
|
that state is = O.
|
|
|
|
Now the question arises how a thing passes from one state = a,
|
|
into another state = b. Between two moments there is always a
|
|
certain time, and between two states existing in these moments there
|
|
is always a difference having a certain quantity (for all parts of
|
|
phenomena are in their turn quantities). Consequently, every
|
|
transition from one state into another is always effected in a time
|
|
contained between two moments, of which the first determines the state
|
|
which leaves, and the second determines the state into the thing
|
|
passes. the thing leaves, and the second determines the state into
|
|
which the thing Both moments, then, are limitations of the time of a
|
|
change, consequently of the intermediate state between both, and as
|
|
such they belong to the total of the change. Now every change has a
|
|
cause, which evidences its causality in the whole time during which
|
|
the charge takes place. The cause, therefore, does not produce the
|
|
change all at once or in one moment, but in a time, so that, as the
|
|
time gradually increases from the commencing instant, a, to its
|
|
completion at b, in like manner also, the quantity of the reality
|
|
(b - a) is generated through the lesser degrees which are contained
|
|
between the first and last. All change is therefore possible only
|
|
through a continuous action of the causality, which, in so far as it
|
|
is uniform, we call a momentum. The change does not consist of these
|
|
momenta, but is generated or produced by them as their effect.
|
|
|
|
Such is the law of the continuity of all change, the ground of which
|
|
is that neither time itself nor any phenomenon in time consists of
|
|
parts which are the smallest possible, but that, notwithstanding,
|
|
the state of a thing passes in the process of a change through all
|
|
these parts, as elements, to its second state. There is no smallest
|
|
degree of reality in a phenomenon, just as there is no smallest degree
|
|
in the quantity of time; and so the new state of reality grows up
|
|
out of the former state, through all the infinite degrees thereof, the
|
|
differences of which one from another, taken all together, are less
|
|
than the difference between o and a.
|
|
|
|
It is not our business to inquire here into the utility of this
|
|
principle in the investigation of nature. But how such a
|
|
proposition, which appears so greatly to extend our knowledge of
|
|
nature, is possible completely a priori, is indeed a question which
|
|
deserves investigation, although the first view seems to demonstrate
|
|
the truth and reality of the principle, and the question, how it is
|
|
possible, may be considered superfluous. For there are so many
|
|
groundless pretensions to the enlargement of our knowledge by pure
|
|
reason that we must take it as a general rule to be mistrustful of all
|
|
such, and without a thoroughgoing and radical deduction, to believe
|
|
nothing of the sort even on the clearest dogmatical evidence.
|
|
|
|
Every addition to our empirical knowledge, and every advance made in
|
|
the exercise of our perception, is nothing more than an extension of
|
|
the determination of the internal sense, that is to say, a progression
|
|
in time, be objects themselves what they may, phenomena, or pure
|
|
intuitions. This progression in time determines everything, and is
|
|
itself determined by nothing else. That is to say, the parts of the
|
|
progression exist only in time, and by means of the synthesis thereof,
|
|
and are not given antecedently to it. For this reason, every
|
|
transition in perception to anything which follows upon another in
|
|
time, is a determination of time by means of the production of this
|
|
perception. And as this determination of time is, always and in all
|
|
its parts, a quantity, the perception produced is to be considered
|
|
as a quantity which proceeds through all its degrees- no one of
|
|
which is the smallest possible- from zero up to its determined degree.
|
|
From this we perceive the possibility of cognizing a priori a law of
|
|
changes- a law, however, which concerns their form merely. We merely
|
|
anticipate our own apprehension, the formal condition of which,
|
|
inasmuch as it is itself to be found in the mind antecedently to all
|
|
given phenomena, must certainly be capable of being cognized a priori.
|
|
|
|
Thus, as time contains the sensuous condition a priori of the
|
|
possibility of a continuous progression of that which exists to that
|
|
which follows it, the understanding, by virtue of the unity of
|
|
apperception, contains the condition a priori of the possibility of
|
|
a continuous determination of the position in time of all phenomena,
|
|
and this by means of the series of causes and effects, the former of
|
|
which necessitate the sequence of the latter, and thereby render
|
|
universally and for all time, and by consequence, objectively, valid
|
|
the empirical cognition of the relations of time.
|
|
|
|
C. THIRD ANALOGY.
|
|
|
|
Principle of Coexistence, According to the Law
|
|
|
|
of Reciprocity or Community.
|
|
|
|
All substances, in so far as they can be perceived in space
|
|
|
|
at the same time, exist in a state of complete reciprocity
|
|
|
|
of action.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Things are coexistent, when in empirical intuition the perception of
|
|
the one can follow upon the perception of the other, and vice versa-
|
|
which cannot occur in the succession of phenomena, as we have shown in
|
|
the explanation of the second principle. Thus I can perceive the
|
|
moon and then the earth, or conversely, first the earth and then the
|
|
moon; and for the reason that my perceptions of these objects can
|
|
reciprocally follow each other, I say, they exist contemporaneously.
|
|
Now coexistence is the existence of the manifold in the same time. But
|
|
time itself is not an object of perception; and therefore we cannot
|
|
conclude from the fact that things are placed in the same time, the
|
|
other fact, that the perception of these things can follow each
|
|
other reciprocally. The synthesis of the imagination in apprehension
|
|
would only present to us each of these perceptions as present in the
|
|
subject when the other is not present, and contrariwise; but would not
|
|
show that the objects are coexistent, that is to say, that, if the one
|
|
exists, the other also exists in the same time, and that this is
|
|
necessarily so, in order that the perceptions may be capable of
|
|
following each other reciprocally. It follows that a conception of the
|
|
understanding or category of the reciprocal sequence of the
|
|
determinations of phenomena (existing, as they do, apart from each
|
|
other, and yet contemporaneously), is requisite to justify us in
|
|
saying that the reciprocal succession of perceptions has its
|
|
foundation in the object, and to enable us to represent coexistence as
|
|
objective. But that relation of substances in which the one contains
|
|
determinations the ground of which is in the other substance, is the
|
|
relation of influence. And, when this influence is reciprocal, it is
|
|
the relation of community or reciprocity. Consequently the coexistence
|
|
of substances in space cannot be cognized in experience otherwise than
|
|
under the precondition of their reciprocal action. This is therefore
|
|
the condition of the possibility of things themselves as objects of
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
Things are coexistent, in so far as they exist in one and the same
|
|
time. But how can we know that they exist in one and the same time?
|
|
Only by observing that the order in the synthesis of apprehension of
|
|
the manifold is arbitrary and a matter of indifference, that is to
|
|
say, that it can proceed from A, through B, C, D, to E, or
|
|
contrariwise from E to A. For if they were successive in time (and
|
|
in the order, let us suppose, which begins with A), it is quite
|
|
impossible for the apprehension in perception to begin with E and go
|
|
backwards to A, inasmuch as A belongs to past time and, therefore,
|
|
cannot be an object of apprehension.
|
|
|
|
Let us assume that in a number of substances considered as phenomena
|
|
each is completely isolated, that is, that no one acts upon another.
|
|
Then I say that the coexistence of these cannot be an object of
|
|
possible perception and that the existence of one cannot, by any
|
|
mode of empirical synthesis, lead us to the existence of another.
|
|
For we imagine them in this case to be separated by a completely
|
|
void space, and thus perception, which proceeds from the one to the
|
|
other in time, would indeed determine their existence by means of a
|
|
following perception, but would be quite unable to distinguish whether
|
|
the one phenomenon follows objectively upon the first, or is
|
|
coexistent with it.
|
|
|
|
Besides the mere fact of existence, then, there must be something by
|
|
means of which A determines the position of B in time and, conversely,
|
|
B the position of A; because only under this condition can
|
|
substances be empirically represented as existing contemporaneously.
|
|
Now that alone determines the position of another thing in time
|
|
which is the cause of it or of its determinations. Consequently
|
|
every substance (inasmuch as it can have succession predicated of it
|
|
only in respect of its determinations) must contain the causality of
|
|
certain determinations in another substance, and at the same time
|
|
the effects of the causality of the other in itself. That is to say,
|
|
substances must stand (mediately or immediately) in dynamical
|
|
community with each other, if coexistence is to be cognized in any
|
|
possible experience. But, in regard to objects of experience, that
|
|
is absolutely necessary without which the experience of these
|
|
objects would itself be impossible. Consequently it is absolutely
|
|
necessary that all substances in the world of phenomena, in so far
|
|
as they are coexistent, stand in a relation of complete community of
|
|
reciprocal action to each other.
|
|
|
|
The word community has in our language* two meanings, and contains
|
|
the two notions conveyed in the Latin communio and commercium. We
|
|
employ it in this place in the latter sense- that of a dynamical
|
|
community, without which even the community of place (communio spatii)
|
|
could not be empirically cognized. In our experiences it is easy to
|
|
observe that it is only the continuous influences in all parts of
|
|
space that can conduct our senses from one object to another; that the
|
|
light which plays between our eyes and the heavenly bodies produces
|
|
a mediating community between them and us, and thereby evidences their
|
|
coexistence with us; that we cannot empirically change our position
|
|
(perceive this change), unless the existence of matter throughout
|
|
the whole of space rendered possible the perception of the positions
|
|
we occupy; and that this perception can prove the contemporaneous
|
|
existence of these places only through their reciprocal influence, and
|
|
thereby also the coexistence of even the most remote objects- although
|
|
in this case the proof is only mediate. Without community, every
|
|
perception (of a phenomenon in space) is separated from every other
|
|
and isolated, and the chain of empirical representations, that is,
|
|
of experience, must, with the appearance of a new object, begin
|
|
entirely de novo, without the least connection with preceding
|
|
representations, and without standing towards these even in the
|
|
relation of time. My intention here is by no means to combat the
|
|
notion of empty space; for it may exist where our perceptions cannot
|
|
exist, inasmuch as they cannot reach thereto, and where, therefore, no
|
|
empirical perception of coexistence takes place. But in this case it
|
|
is not an object of possible experience.
|
|
|
|
*German.
|
|
|
|
The following remarks may be useful in the way of explanation. In
|
|
the mind, all phenomena, as contents of a possible experience, must
|
|
exist in community (communio) of apperception or consciousness, and in
|
|
so far as it is requisite that objects be represented as coexistent
|
|
and connected, in so far must they reciprocally determine the position
|
|
in time of each other and thereby constitute a whole. If this
|
|
subjective community is to rest upon an objective basis, or to be
|
|
applied to substances as phenomena, the perception of one substance
|
|
must render possible the perception of another, and conversely. For
|
|
otherwise succession, which is always found in perceptions as
|
|
apprehensions, would be predicated of external objects, and their
|
|
representation of their coexistence be thus impossible. But this is
|
|
a reciprocal influence, that is to say, a real community
|
|
(commercium) of substances, without which therefore the empirical
|
|
relation of coexistence would be a notion beyond the reach of our
|
|
minds. By virtue of this commercium, phenomena, in so far as they
|
|
are apart from, and nevertheless in connection with each other,
|
|
constitute a compositum reale. Such composita are possible in many
|
|
different ways. The three dynamical relations then, from which all
|
|
others spring, are those of inherence, consequence, and composition.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the three analogies of experience. They are nothing
|
|
more than principles of the determination of the existence of
|
|
phenomena in time, according to the three modi of this
|
|
determination; to wit, the relation to time itself as a quantity
|
|
(the quantity of existence, that is, duration), the relation in time
|
|
as a series or succession, finally, the relation in time as the
|
|
complex of all existence (simultaneity). This unity of determination
|
|
in regard to time is thoroughly dynamical; that is to say, time is not
|
|
considered as that in which experience determines immediately to every
|
|
existence its position; for this is impossible, inasmuch as absolute
|
|
time is not an object of perception, by means of which phenomena can
|
|
be connected with each other. On the contrary, the rule of the
|
|
understanding, through which alone the existence of phenomena can
|
|
receive synthetical unity as regards relations of time, determines for
|
|
every phenomenon its position in time, and consequently a priori,
|
|
and with validity for all and every time.
|
|
|
|
By nature, in the empirical sense of the word, we understand the
|
|
totality of phenomena connected, in respect of their existence,
|
|
according to necessary rules, that is, laws. There are therefore
|
|
certain laws (which are moreover a priori) which make nature possible;
|
|
and all empirical laws can exist only by means of experience, and by
|
|
virtue of those primitive laws through which experience itself becomes
|
|
possible. The purpose of the analogies is therefore to represent to us
|
|
the unity of nature in the connection of all phenomena under certain
|
|
exponents, the only business of which is to express the relation of
|
|
time (in so far as it contains all existence in itself) to the unity
|
|
of apperception, which can exist in synthesis only according to rules.
|
|
The combined expression of all is this: "All phenomena exist in one
|
|
nature, and must so exist, inasmuch as without this a priori unity, no
|
|
unity of experience, and consequently no determination of objects in
|
|
experience, is possible."
|
|
|
|
As regards the mode of proof which we have employed in treating of
|
|
these transcendental laws of nature, and the peculiar character of
|
|
we must make one remark, which will at the same time be important as a
|
|
guide in every other attempt to demonstrate the truth of
|
|
intellectual and likewise synthetical propositions a priori. Had we
|
|
endeavoured to prove these analogies dogmatically, that is, from
|
|
conceptions; that is to say, had we employed this method in attempting
|
|
to show that everything which exists, exists only in that which is
|
|
permanent- that every thing or event presupposes the existence of
|
|
something in a preceding state, upon which it follows in conformity
|
|
with a rule- lastly, that in the manifold, which is coexistent, the
|
|
states coexist in connection with each other according to a rule-
|
|
all our labour would have been utterly in vain. For more conceptions
|
|
of things, analyse them as we may, cannot enable us to conclude from
|
|
the existence of one object to the existence of another. What other
|
|
course was left for us to pursue? This only, to demonstrate the
|
|
possibility of experience as a cognition in which at last all
|
|
objects must be capable of being presented to us, if the
|
|
representation of them is to possess any objective reality. Now in
|
|
this third, this mediating term, the essential form of which
|
|
consists in the synthetical unity of the apperception of all
|
|
phenomena, we found a priori conditions of the universal and necessary
|
|
determination as to time of all existences in the world of
|
|
phenomena, without which the empirical determination thereof as to
|
|
time would itself be impossible, and we also discovered rules of
|
|
synthetical unity a priori, by means of which we could anticipate
|
|
experience. For want of this method, and from the fancy that it was
|
|
possible to discover a dogmatical proof of the synthetical
|
|
propositions which are requisite in the empirical employment of the
|
|
understanding, has it happened that a proof of the principle of
|
|
sufficient reason has been so often attempted, and always in vain. The
|
|
other two analogies nobody has ever thought of, although they have
|
|
always been silently employed by the mind,* because the guiding thread
|
|
furnished by the categories was wanting, the guide which alone can
|
|
enable us to discover every hiatus, both in the system of
|
|
conceptions and of principles.
|
|
|
|
*The unity of the universe, in which all phenomena to be
|
|
connected, is evidently a mere consequence of the admitted principle
|
|
of the community of all substances which are coexistent. For were
|
|
substances isolated, they could not as parts constitute a whole, and
|
|
were their connection (reciprocal action of the manifold) not
|
|
necessary from the very fact of coexistence, we could not conclude
|
|
from the fact of the latter as a merely ideal relation to the former
|
|
as a real one. We have, however, shown in its place that community
|
|
is the proper ground of the possibility of an empirical cognition of
|
|
coexistence, and that we may therefore properly reason from the latter
|
|
to the former as its condition.
|
|
|
|
4. THE POSTULATES OF EMPIRICAL THOUGHT.
|
|
|
|
1. That which agrees with the formal conditions (intuition and
|
|
conception) of experience, is possible.
|
|
|
|
2. That which coheres with the material conditions of experience
|
|
(sensation), is real.
|
|
|
|
3. That whose coherence with the real is determined according to
|
|
universal conditions of experience is (exists) necessary.
|
|
|
|
Explanation.
|
|
|
|
The categories of modality possess this peculiarity, that they do
|
|
not in the least determine the object, or enlarge the conception to
|
|
which they are annexed as predicates, but only express its relation to
|
|
the faculty of cognition. Though my conception of a thing is in itself
|
|
complete, I am still entitled to ask whether the object of it is
|
|
merely possible, or whether it is also real, or, if the latter,
|
|
whether it is also necessary. But hereby the object itself is not more
|
|
definitely determined in thought, but the question is only in what
|
|
relation it, including all its determinations, stands to the
|
|
understanding and its employment in experience, to the empirical
|
|
faculty of judgement, and to the reason of its application to
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
For this very reason, too, the categories of modality are nothing
|
|
more than explanations of the conceptions of possibility, reality, and
|
|
necessity, as employed in experience, and at the same time,
|
|
restrictions of all the categories to empirical use alone, not
|
|
authorizing the transcendental employment of them. For if they are
|
|
to have something more than a merely logical significance, and to be
|
|
something more than a mere analytical expression of the form of
|
|
thought, and to have a relation to things and their possibility,
|
|
reality, or necessity, they must concern possible experience and its
|
|
synthetical unity, in which alone objects of cognition can be given.
|
|
|
|
The postulate of the possibility of things requires also, that the
|
|
conception of the things agree with the formal conditions of our
|
|
experience in general. But this, that is to say, the objective form of
|
|
experience, contains all the kinds of synthesis which are requisite
|
|
for the cognition of objects. A conception which contains a
|
|
synthesis must be regarded as empty and, without reference to an
|
|
object, if its synthesis does not belong to experience- either as
|
|
borrowed from it, and in this case it is called an empirical
|
|
conception, or such as is the ground and a priori condition of
|
|
experience (its form), and in this case it is a pure conception, a
|
|
conception which nevertheless belongs to experience, inasmuch as its
|
|
object can be found in this alone. For where shall we find the
|
|
criterion or character of the possibility of an object which is
|
|
cogitated by means of an a priori synthetical conception, if not in
|
|
the synthesis which constitutes the form of empirical cognition of
|
|
objects? That in such a conception no contradiction exists is indeed a
|
|
necessary logical condition, but very far from being sufficient to
|
|
establish the objective reality of the conception, that is, the
|
|
possibility of such an object as is thought in the conception. Thus,
|
|
in the conception of a figure which is contained within two straight
|
|
lines, there is no contradiction, for the conceptions of two
|
|
straight lines and of their junction contain no negation of a
|
|
figure. The impossibility in such a case does not rest upon the
|
|
conception in itself, but upon the construction of it in space, that
|
|
is to say, upon the conditions of space and its determinations. But
|
|
these have themselves objective reality, that is, they apply to
|
|
possible things, because they contain a priori the form of
|
|
experience in general.
|
|
|
|
And now we shall proceed to point out the extensive utility and
|
|
influence of this postulate of possibility. When I represent to myself
|
|
a thing that is permanent, so that everything in it which changes
|
|
belongs merely to its state or condition, from such a conception alone
|
|
I never can cognize that such a thing is possible. Or, if I
|
|
represent to myself something which is so constituted that, when it is
|
|
posited, something else follows always and infallibly, my thought
|
|
contains no self-contradiction; but whether such a property as
|
|
causality is to be found in any possible thing, my thought alone
|
|
affords no means of judging. Finally, I can represent to myself
|
|
different things (substances) which are so constituted that the
|
|
state or condition of one causes a change in the state of the other,
|
|
and reciprocally; but whether such a relation is a property of
|
|
things cannot be perceived from these conceptions, which contain a
|
|
merely arbitrary synthesis. Only from the fact, therefore, that
|
|
these conceptions express a priori the relations of perceptions in
|
|
every experience, do we know that they possess objective reality, that
|
|
is, transcendental truth; and that independent of experience, though
|
|
not independent of all relation to form of an experience in general
|
|
and its synthetical unity, in which alone objects can be empirically
|
|
cognized.
|
|
|
|
But when we fashion to ourselves new conceptions of substances,
|
|
forces, action, and reaction, from the material presented to us by
|
|
perception, without following the example of experience in their
|
|
connection, we create mere chimeras, of the possibility of which we
|
|
cannot discover any criterion, because we have not taken experience
|
|
for our instructress, though we have borrowed the conceptions from
|
|
her. Such fictitious conceptions derive their character of possibility
|
|
not, like the categories, a priori, as conceptions on which all
|
|
experience depends, but only, a posteriori, as conceptions given by
|
|
means of experience itself, and their possibility must either be
|
|
cognized a posteriori and empirically, or it cannot be cognized at
|
|
all. A substance which is permanently present in space, yet without
|
|
filling it (like that tertium quid between matter and the thinking
|
|
subject which some have tried to introduce into metaphysics), or a
|
|
peculiar fundamental power of the mind of intuiting the future by
|
|
anticipation (instead of merely inferring from past and present
|
|
events), or, finally, a power of the mind to place itself in community
|
|
of thought with other men, however distant they may be- these are
|
|
conceptions the possibility of which has no ground to rest upon. For
|
|
they are not based upon experience and its known laws; and, without
|
|
experience, they are a merely arbitrary conjunction of thoughts,
|
|
which, though containing no internal contradiction, has no claim to
|
|
objective reality, neither, consequently, to the possibility of such
|
|
an object as is thought in these conceptions. As far as concerns
|
|
reality, it is self-evident that we cannot cogitate such a possibility
|
|
in concreto without the aid of experience; because reality is
|
|
concerned only with sensation, as the matter of experience, and not
|
|
with the form of thought, with which we can no doubt indulge in
|
|
shaping fancies.
|
|
|
|
But I pass by everything which derives its possibility from
|
|
reality in experience, and I purpose treating here merely of the
|
|
possibility of things by means of a priori conceptions. I maintain,
|
|
then, that the possibility of things is not derived from such
|
|
conceptions per se, but only when considered as formal and objective
|
|
conditions of an experience in general.
|
|
|
|
It seems, indeed, as if the possibility of a triangle could be
|
|
cognized from the conception of it alone (which is certainly
|
|
independent of experience); for we can certainly give to the
|
|
conception a corresponding object completely a priori, that is to say,
|
|
we can construct it. But as a triangle is only the form of an
|
|
object, it must remain a mere product of the imagination, and the
|
|
possibility of the existence of an object corresponding to it must
|
|
remain doubtful, unless we can discover some other ground, unless we
|
|
know that the figure can be cogitated under the conditions upon
|
|
which all objects of experience rest. Now, the facts that space is a
|
|
formal condition a priori of external experience, that the formative
|
|
synthesis, by which we construct a triangle in imagination, is the
|
|
very same as that we employ in the apprehension of a phenomenon for
|
|
the purpose of making an empirical conception of it, are what alone
|
|
connect the notion of the possibility of such a thing, with the
|
|
conception of it. In the same manner, the possibility of continuous
|
|
quantities, indeed of quantities in general, for the conceptions of
|
|
them are without exception synthetical, is never evident from the
|
|
conceptions in themselves, but only when they are considered as the
|
|
formal conditions of the determination of objects in experience. And
|
|
where, indeed, should we look for objects to correspond to our
|
|
conceptions, if not in experience, by which alone objects are
|
|
presented to us? It is, however, true that without antecedent
|
|
experience we can cognize and characterize the possibility of
|
|
things, relatively to the formal conditions, under which something
|
|
is determined in experience as an object, consequently, completely a
|
|
priori. But still this is possible only in relation to experience
|
|
and within its limits.
|
|
|
|
The postulate concerning the cognition of the reality of things
|
|
requires perception, consequently conscious sensation, not indeed
|
|
immediately, that is, of the object itself, whose existence is to be
|
|
cognized, but still that the object have some connection with a real
|
|
perception, in accordance with the analogies of experience, which
|
|
exhibit all kinds of real connection in experience.
|
|
|
|
From the mere conception of a thing it is impossible to conclude its
|
|
existence. For, let the conception be ever so complete, and containing
|
|
a statement of all the determinations of the thing, the existence of
|
|
it has nothing to do with all this, but only with thew question
|
|
whether such a thing is given, so that the perception of it can in
|
|
every case precede the conception. For the fact that the conception of
|
|
it precedes the perception, merely indicates the possibility of its
|
|
existence; it is perception which presents matter to the conception,
|
|
that is the sole criterion of reality. Prior to the perception of
|
|
the thing, however, and therefore comparatively a priori, we are
|
|
able to cognize its existence, provided it stands in connection with
|
|
some perceptions according to the principles of the empirical
|
|
conjunction of these, that is, in conformity with the analogies of
|
|
perception. For, in this case, the existence of the supposed thing
|
|
is connected with our perception in a possible experience, and we
|
|
are able, with the guidance of these analogies, to reason in the
|
|
series of possible perceptions from a thing which we do really
|
|
perceive to the thing we do not perceive. Thus, we cognize the
|
|
existence of a magnetic matter penetrating all bodies from the
|
|
perception of the attraction of the steel-filings by the magnet,
|
|
although the constitution of our organs renders an immediate
|
|
perception of this matter impossible for us. For, according to the
|
|
laws of sensibility and the connected context of our perceptions, we
|
|
should in an experience come also on an immediate empirical
|
|
intuition of this matter, if our senses were more acute- but this
|
|
obtuseness has no influence upon and cannot alter the form of possible
|
|
experience in general. Our knowledge of the existence of things
|
|
reaches as far as our perceptions, and what may be inferred from
|
|
them according to empirical laws, extend. If we do not set out from
|
|
experience, or do not proceed according to the laws of the empirical
|
|
connection of phenomena, our pretensions to discover the existence
|
|
of a thing which we do not immediately perceive are vain. Idealism,
|
|
however, brings forward powerful objections to these rules for proving
|
|
existence mediately. This is, therefore, the proper place for its
|
|
refutation.
|
|
|
|
REFUTATION OF IDEALISM.
|
|
|
|
Idealism- I mean material idealism- is the theory which declares the
|
|
existence of objects in space without us to be either () doubtful
|
|
and indemonstrable, or (2) false and impossible. The first is the
|
|
problematical idealism of Descartes, who admits the undoubted
|
|
certainty of only one empirical assertion (assertio), to wit, "I
|
|
am." The second is the dogmatical idealism of Berkeley, who
|
|
maintains that space, together with all the objects of which it is the
|
|
inseparable condition, is a thing which is in itself impossible, and
|
|
that consequently the objects in space are mere products of the
|
|
imagination. The dogmatical theory of idealism is unavoidable, if we
|
|
regard space as a property of things in themselves; for in that case
|
|
it is, with all to which it serves as condition, a nonentity. But
|
|
the foundation for this kind of idealism we have already destroyed
|
|
in the transcendental aesthetic. Problematical idealism, which makes
|
|
no such assertion, but only alleges our incapacity to prove the
|
|
existence of anything besides ourselves by means of immediate
|
|
experience, is a theory rational and evidencing a thorough and
|
|
philosophical mode of thinking, for it observes the rule not to form a
|
|
decisive judgement before sufficient proof be shown. The desired proof
|
|
must therefore demonstrate that we have experience of external things,
|
|
and not mere fancies. For this purpose, we must prove, that our
|
|
internal and, to Descartes, indubitable experience is itself
|
|
possible only under the previous assumption of external experience.
|
|
|
|
THEOREM.
|
|
|
|
The simple but empirically determined consciousness of
|
|
|
|
my own existence proves the existence of external
|
|
|
|
objects in space.
|
|
|
|
PROOF
|
|
|
|
I am conscious of my own existence as determined in time. All
|
|
determination in regard to time presupposes the existence of something
|
|
permanent in perception. But this permanent something cannot be
|
|
something in me, for the very reason that my existence in time is
|
|
itself determined by this permanent something. It follows that the
|
|
perception of this permanent existence is possible only through a
|
|
thing without me and not through the mere representation of a thing
|
|
without me. Consequently, the determination of my existence in time is
|
|
possible only through the existence of real things external to me.
|
|
Now, consciousness in time is necessarily connected with the
|
|
consciousness of the possibility of this determination in time.
|
|
Hence it follows that consciousness in time is necessarily connected
|
|
also with the existence of things without me, inasmuch as the
|
|
existence of these things is the condition of determination in time.
|
|
That is to say, the consciousness of my own existence is at the same
|
|
time an immediate consciousness of the existence of other things
|
|
without me.
|
|
|
|
Remark I. The reader will observe, that in the foregoing proof the
|
|
game which idealism plays is retorted upon itself, and with more
|
|
justice. It assumed that the only immediate experience is internal and
|
|
that from this we can only infer the existence of external things.
|
|
But, as always happens, when we reason from given effects to
|
|
determined causes, idealism bas reasoned with too much haste and
|
|
uncertainty, for it is quite possible that the cause of our
|
|
representations may lie in ourselves, and that we ascribe it falsely
|
|
to external things. But our proof shows that external experience is
|
|
properly immediate,* that only by virtue of it- not, indeed, the
|
|
consciousness of our own existence, but certainly the determination of
|
|
our existence in time, that is, internal experience- is possible. It
|
|
is true, that the representation "I am," which is the expression of
|
|
the consciousness which can accompany all my thoughts, is that which
|
|
immediately includes the existence of a subject. But in this
|
|
representation we cannot find any knowledge of the subject, and
|
|
therefore also no empirical knowledge, that is, experience. For
|
|
experience contains, in addition to the thought of something existing,
|
|
intuition, and in this case it must be internal intuition, that is,
|
|
time, in relation to which the subject must be determined. But the
|
|
existence of external things is absolutely requisite for this purpose,
|
|
so that it follows that internal experience is itself possible only
|
|
mediately and through external experience.
|
|
|
|
*The immediate consciousness of the existence of external things is,
|
|
in the preceding theorem, not presupposed, but proved, by the
|
|
possibility of this consciousness understood by us or not. The
|
|
question as to the possibility of it would stand thus: "Have we an
|
|
internal sense, but no external sense, and is our belief in external
|
|
perception a mere delusion?" But it is evident that, in order merely
|
|
to fancy to ourselves anything as external, that is, to present it
|
|
to the sense in intuition we must already possess an external sense,
|
|
and must thereby distinguish immediately the mere receptivity of an
|
|
external intuition from the spontaneity which characterizes every
|
|
act of imagination. For merely to imagine also an external sense,
|
|
would annihilate the faculty of intuition itself which is to be
|
|
determined by the imagination.
|
|
|
|
Remark II. Now with this view all empirical use of our faculty of
|
|
cognition in the determination of time is in perfect accordance. Its
|
|
truth is supported by the fact that it is possible to perceive a
|
|
determination of time only by means of a change in external
|
|
relations (motion) to the permanent in space (for example, we become
|
|
aware of the sun's motion by observing the changes of his relation
|
|
to the objects of this earth). But this is not all. We find that we
|
|
possess nothing permanent that can correspond and be submitted to
|
|
the conception of a substance as intuition, except matter. This idea
|
|
of permanence is not itself derived from external experience, but is
|
|
an a priori necessary condition of all determination of time,
|
|
consequently also of the internal sense in reference to our own
|
|
existence, and that through the existence of external things. In the
|
|
representation "I," the consciousness of myself is not an intuition,
|
|
but a merely intellectual representation produced by the spontaneous
|
|
activity of a thinking subject. It follows, that this "I" has not
|
|
any predicate of intuition, which, in its character of permanence,
|
|
could serve as correlate to the determination of time in the
|
|
internal sense- in the same way as impenetrability is the correlate of
|
|
matter as an empirical intuition.
|
|
|
|
Remark III. From the fact that the existence of external things is a
|
|
necessary condition of the possibility of a determined consciousness
|
|
of ourselves, it does not follow that every intuitive representation
|
|
of external things involves the existence of these things, for their
|
|
representations may very well be the mere products of the
|
|
imagination (in dreams as well as in madness); though, indeed, these
|
|
are themselves created by the reproduction of previous external
|
|
perceptions, which, as has been shown, are possible only through the
|
|
reality of external objects. The sole aim of our remarks has, however,
|
|
been to prove that internal experience in general is possible only
|
|
through external experience in general. Whether this or that
|
|
supposed experience be purely imaginary must be discovered from its
|
|
particular determinations and by comparing these with the criteria
|
|
of all real experience.
|
|
|
|
Finally, as regards the third postulate, it applies to material
|
|
necessity in existence, and not to merely formal and logical necessity
|
|
in the connection of conceptions. Now as we cannot cognize
|
|
completely a priori the existence of any object of sense, though we
|
|
can do so comparatively a priori, that is, relatively to some other
|
|
previously given existence- a cognition, however, which can only be of
|
|
such an existence as must be contained in the complex of experience,
|
|
of which the previously given perception is a part- the necessity of
|
|
existence can never be cognized from conceptions, but always, on the
|
|
contrary, from its connection with that which is an object of
|
|
perception. But the only existence cognized, under the condition of
|
|
other given phenomena, as necessary, is the existence of effects
|
|
from given causes in conformity with the laws of causality. It is
|
|
consequently not the necessity of the existence of things (as
|
|
substances), but the necessity of the state of things that we cognize,
|
|
and that not immediately, but by means of the existence of other
|
|
states given in perception, according to empirical laws of
|
|
causality. Hence it follows that the criterion of necessity is to be
|
|
found only in the law of possible experience- that everything which
|
|
happens is determined a priori in the phenomenon by its cause. Thus we
|
|
cognize only the necessity of effects in nature, the causes of which
|
|
are given us. Moreover, the criterion of necessity in existence
|
|
possesses no application beyond the field of possible experience,
|
|
and even in this it is not valid of the existence of things as
|
|
substances, because these can never be considered as empirical
|
|
effects, or as something that happens and has a beginning.
|
|
Necessity, therefore, regards only the relations of phenomena
|
|
according to the dynamical law of causality, and the possibility
|
|
grounded thereon, of reasoning from some given existence (of a
|
|
cause) a priori to another existence (of an effect). "Everything
|
|
that happens is hypothetically necessary," is a principle which
|
|
subjects the changes that take place in the world to a law, that is,
|
|
to a rule of necessary existence, without which nature herself could
|
|
not possibly exist. Hence the proposition, "Nothing happens by blind
|
|
chance (in mundo non datur casus)," is an a priori law of nature.
|
|
The case is the same with the proposition, "Necessity in nature is not
|
|
blind," that is, it is conditioned, consequently intelligible
|
|
necessity (non datur fatum). Both laws subject the play of change to
|
|
"a nature of things (as phenomena)," or, which is the same thing, to
|
|
the unity of the understanding, and through the understanding alone
|
|
can changes belong to an experience, as the synthetical unity of
|
|
phenomena. Both belong to the class of dynamical principles. The
|
|
former is properly a consequence of the principle of causality- one of
|
|
the analogies of experience. The latter belongs to the principles of
|
|
modality, which to the determination of causality adds the
|
|
conception of necessity, which is itself, however, subject to a rule
|
|
of the understanding. The principle of continuity forbids any leap
|
|
in the series of phenomena regarded as changes (in mundo non datur
|
|
saltus); and likewise, in the complex of all empirical intuitions in
|
|
space, any break or hiatus between two phenomena (non datur hiatus)-
|
|
for we can so express the principle, that experience can admit nothing
|
|
which proves the existence of a vacuum, or which even admits it as a
|
|
part of an empirical synthesis. For, as regards a vacuum or void,
|
|
which we may cogitate as out and beyond the field of possible
|
|
experience (the world), such a question cannot come before the
|
|
tribunal of mere understanding, which decides only upon questions that
|
|
concern the employment of given phenomena for the construction of
|
|
empirical cognition. It is rather a problem for ideal reason, which
|
|
passes beyond the sphere of a possible experience and aims at
|
|
forming a judgement of that which surrounds and circumscribes it,
|
|
and the proper place for the consideration of it is the transcendental
|
|
dialectic. These four propositions, "In mundo non datur hiatus, non
|
|
datur saltus, non datur casus, non datur fatum," as well as all
|
|
principles of transcendental origin, we could very easily exhibit in
|
|
their proper order, that is, in conformity with the order of the
|
|
categories, and assign to each its proper place. But the already
|
|
practised reader will do this for himself, or discover the clue to
|
|
such an arrangement. But the combined result of all is simply this, to
|
|
admit into the empirical synthesis nothing which might cause a break
|
|
in or be foreign to the understanding and the continuous connection of
|
|
all phenomena, that is, the unity of the conceptions of the
|
|
understanding. For in the understanding alone is the unity of
|
|
experience, in which all perceptions must have their assigned place,
|
|
possible.
|
|
|
|
Whether the field of possibility be greater than that of reality,
|
|
and whether the field of the latter be itself greater than that of
|
|
necessity, are interesting enough questions, and quite capable of
|
|
synthetic solution, questions, however, which come under the
|
|
jurisdiction of reason alone. For they are tantamount to asking
|
|
whether all things as phenomena do without exception belong to the
|
|
complex and connected whole of a single experience, of which every
|
|
given perception is a part which therefore cannot be conjoined with
|
|
any other phenomena- or, whether my perceptions can belong to more
|
|
than one possible experience? The understanding gives to experience,
|
|
according to the subjective and formal conditions, of sensibility as
|
|
well as of apperception, the rules which alone make this experience
|
|
possible. Other forms of intuition besides those of space and time,
|
|
other forms of understanding besides the discursive forms of
|
|
thought, or of cognition by means of conceptions, we can neither
|
|
imagine nor make intelligible to ourselves; and even if we could, they
|
|
would still not belong to experience, which is the only mode of
|
|
cognition by which objects are presented to us. Whether other
|
|
perceptions besides those which belong to the total of our possible
|
|
experience, and consequently whether some other sphere of matter
|
|
exists, the understanding has no power to decide, its proper
|
|
occupation being with the synthesis of that which is given.
|
|
Moreover, the poverty of the usual arguments which go to prove the
|
|
existence of a vast sphere of possibility, of which all that is real
|
|
(every object of experience) is but a small part, is very
|
|
remarkable. "All real is possible"; from this follows naturally,
|
|
according to the logical laws of conversion, the particular
|
|
proposition: "Some possible is real." Now this seems to be
|
|
equivalent to: "Much is possible that is not real." No doubt it does
|
|
seem as if we ought to consider the sum of the possible to be
|
|
greater than that of the real, from the fact that something must be
|
|
added to the former to constitute the latter. But this notion of
|
|
adding to the possible is absurd. For that which is not in the sum
|
|
of the possible, and consequently requires to be added to it, is
|
|
manifestly impossible. In addition to accordance with the formal
|
|
conditions of experience, the understanding requires a connection with
|
|
some perception; but that which is connected with this perception is
|
|
real, even although it is not immediately perceived. But that
|
|
another series of phenomena, in complete coherence with that which
|
|
is given in perception, consequently more than one all-embracing
|
|
experience is possible, is an inference which cannot be concluded from
|
|
the data given us by experience, and still less without any data at
|
|
all. That which is possible only under conditions which are themselves
|
|
merely possible, is not possible in any respect. And yet we can find
|
|
no more certain ground on which to base the discussion of the question
|
|
whether the sphere of possibility is wider than that of experience.
|
|
|
|
I have merely mentioned these questions, that in treating of the
|
|
conception of the understanding, there might be no omission of
|
|
anything that, in the common opinion, belongs to them. In reality,
|
|
however, the notion of absolute possibility (possibility which is
|
|
valid in every respect) is not a mere conception of the understanding,
|
|
which can be employed empirically, but belongs to reason alone,
|
|
which passes the bounds of all empirical use of the understanding.
|
|
We have, therefore, contented ourselves with a merely critical remark,
|
|
leaving the subject to be explained in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
Before concluding this fourth section, and at the same time the
|
|
system of all principles of the pure understanding, it seems proper to
|
|
mention the reasons which induced me to term the principles of
|
|
modality postulates. This expression I do not here use in the sense
|
|
which some more recent philosophers, contrary to its meaning with
|
|
mathematicians, to whom the word properly belongs, attach to it-
|
|
that of a proposition, namely, immediately certain, requiring
|
|
neither deduction nor proof. For if, in the case of synthetical
|
|
propositions, however evident they may be, we accord to them without
|
|
deduction, and merely on the strength of their own pretensions,
|
|
unqualified belief, all critique of the understanding is entirely
|
|
lost; and, as there is no want of bold pretensions, which the common
|
|
belief (though for the philosopher this is no credential) does not
|
|
reject, the understanding lies exposed to every delusion and
|
|
conceit, without the power of refusing its assent to those assertions,
|
|
which, though illegitimate, demand acceptance as veritable axioms.
|
|
When, therefore, to the conception of a thing an a priori
|
|
determination is synthetically added, such a proposition must
|
|
obtain, if not a proof, at least a deduction of the legitimacy of
|
|
its assertion.
|
|
|
|
The principles of modality are, however, not objectively
|
|
synthetical, for the predicates of possibility, reality, and necessity
|
|
do not in the least augment the conception of that of which they are
|
|
affirmed, inasmuch as they contribute nothing to the representation of
|
|
the object. But as they are, nevertheless, always synthetical, they
|
|
are so merely subjectively. That is to say, they have a reflective
|
|
power, and apply to the conception of a thing, of which, in other
|
|
respects, they affirm nothing, the faculty of cognition in which the
|
|
conception originates and has its seat. So that if the conception
|
|
merely agree with the formal conditions of experience, its object is
|
|
called possible; if it is in connection with perception, and
|
|
determined thereby, the object is real; if it is determined
|
|
according to conceptions by means of the connection of perceptions,
|
|
the object is called necessary. The principles of modality therefore
|
|
predicate of a conception nothing more than the procedure of the
|
|
faculty of cognition which generated it. Now a postulate in
|
|
mathematics is a practical proposition which contains nothing but
|
|
the synthesis by which we present an object to ourselves, and
|
|
produce the conception of it, for example- "With a given line, to
|
|
describe a circle upon a plane, from a given point"; and such a
|
|
proposition does not admit of proof, because the procedure, which it
|
|
requires, is exactly that by which alone it is possible to generate
|
|
the conception of such a figure. With the same right, accordingly, can
|
|
we postulate the principles of modality, because they do not
|
|
augment* the conception of a thing but merely indicate the manner in
|
|
which it is connected with the faculty of cognition.
|
|
|
|
*When I think the reality of a thing, I do really think more than
|
|
the possibility, but not in the thing; for that can never contain more
|
|
in reality than was contained in its complete possibility. But while
|
|
the notion of possibility is merely the notion of a position of
|
|
thing in relation to the understanding (its empirical use), reality is
|
|
the conjunction of the thing with perception.
|
|
|
|
GENERAL REMARK ON THE SYSTEM OF PRINCIPLES.
|
|
|
|
It is very remarkable that we cannot perceive the possibility of a
|
|
thing from the category alone, but must always have an intuition, by
|
|
which to make evident the objective reality of the pure conception
|
|
of the understanding. Take, for example, the categories of relation.
|
|
How (1) a thing can exist only as a subject, and not as a mere
|
|
determination of other things, that is, can be substance; or how
|
|
(2), because something exists, some other thing must exist,
|
|
consequently how a thing can be a cause; or how (3), when several
|
|
things exist, from the fact that one of these things exists, some
|
|
consequence to the others follows, and reciprocally, and in this way a
|
|
community of substances can be possible- are questions whose
|
|
solution cannot be obtained from mere conceptions. The very same is
|
|
the case with the other categories; for example, how a thing can be of
|
|
the same sort with many others, that is, can be a quantity, and so on.
|
|
So long as we have not intuition we cannot know whether we do really
|
|
think an object by the categories, and where an object can anywhere be
|
|
found to cohere with them, and thus the truth is established, that the
|
|
categories are not in themselves cognitions, but mere forms of thought
|
|
for the construction of cognitions from given intuitions. For the same
|
|
reason is it true that from categories alone no synthetical
|
|
proposition can be made. For example: "In every existence there is
|
|
substance," that is, something that can exist only as a subject and
|
|
not as mere predicate; or, "Everything is a quantity"- to construct
|
|
propositions such as these, we require something to enable us to go
|
|
out beyond the given conception and connect another with it. For the
|
|
same reason the attempt to prove a synthetical proposition by means of
|
|
mere conceptions, for example: "Everything that exists contingently
|
|
has a cause," has never succeeded. We could never get further than
|
|
proving that, without this relation to conceptions, we could not
|
|
conceive the existence of the contingent, that is, could not a
|
|
priori through the understanding cognize the existence of such a
|
|
thing; but it does not hence follow that this is also the condition of
|
|
the possibility of the thing itself that is said to be contingent. If,
|
|
accordingly; we look back to our proof of the principle of
|
|
causality, we shall find that we were able to prove it as valid only
|
|
of objects of possible experience, and, indeed, only as itself the
|
|
principle of the possibility of experience, Consequently of the
|
|
cognition of an object given in empirical intuition, and not from mere
|
|
conceptions. That, however, the proposition: "Everything that is
|
|
contingent must have a cause," is evident to every one merely from
|
|
conceptions, is not to be denied. But in this case the conception of
|
|
the contingent is cogitated as involving not the category of
|
|
modality (as that the non-existence of which can be conceive but
|
|
that of relation (as that which can exist only as the consequence of
|
|
something else), and so it is really an identical proposition: "That
|
|
which can exist only as a consequence, has a cause." In fact, when
|
|
we have to give examples of contingent existence, we always refer to
|
|
changes, and not merely to the possibility of conceiving the
|
|
opposite.* But change is an event, which, as such, is possible only
|
|
through a cause, and considered per se its non-existence is
|
|
therefore possible, and we become cognizant of its contingency from
|
|
the fact that it can exist only as the effect of a cause. Hence, if
|
|
a thing is assumed to be contingent, it is an analytical proposition
|
|
to say, it has a cause.
|
|
|
|
*We can easily conceive the non-existence of matter; but the
|
|
ancients did not thence infer its contingency. But even the
|
|
alternation of the existence and non-existence of a given state in a
|
|
thing, in which all change consists, by no means proves the
|
|
contingency of that state- the ground of proof being the reality of
|
|
its opposite. For example, a body is in a state of rest after
|
|
motion, but we cannot infer the contingency of the motion from the
|
|
fact that the former is the opposite of the latter. For this
|
|
opposite is merely a logical and not a real opposite to the other.
|
|
If we wish to demonstrate the contingency of the motion, what we ought
|
|
to prove is that, instead of the motion which took place in the
|
|
preceding point of time, it was possible for the body to have been
|
|
then in rest, not, that it is afterwards in rest; for in this case,
|
|
both opposites are perfectly consistent with each other.
|
|
|
|
But it is still more remarkable that, to understand the
|
|
possibility of things according to the categories and thus to
|
|
demonstrate the objective reality of the latter, we require not merely
|
|
intuitions, but external intuitions. If, for example, we take the pure
|
|
conceptions of relation, we find that (1) for the purpose of
|
|
presenting to the conception of substance something permanent in
|
|
intuition corresponding thereto and thus of demonstrating the
|
|
objective reality of this conception, we require an intuition (of
|
|
matter) in space, because space alone is permanent and determines
|
|
things as such, while time, and with it all that is in the internal
|
|
sense, is in a state of continual flow; (2) in order to represent
|
|
change as the intuition corresponding to the conception of
|
|
causality, we require the representation of motion as change in space;
|
|
in fact, it is through it alone that changes, the possibility of which
|
|
no pure understanding can perceive, are capable of being intuited.
|
|
Change is the connection of determinations contradictorily opposed
|
|
to each other in the existence of one and the same thing. Now, how
|
|
it is possible that out of a given state one quite opposite to it in
|
|
the same thing should follow, reason without an example can not only
|
|
not conceive, but cannot even make intelligible without intuition; and
|
|
this intuition is the motion of a point in space; the existence of
|
|
which in different spaces (as a consequence of opposite
|
|
determinations) alone makes the intuition of change possible. For,
|
|
in order to make even internal change cognitable, we require to
|
|
represent time, as the form of the internal sense, figuratively by a
|
|
line, and the internal change by the drawing of that line (motion),
|
|
and consequently are obliged to employ external intuition to be able
|
|
to represent the successive existence of ourselves in different
|
|
states. The proper ground of this fact is that all change to be
|
|
perceived as change presupposes something permanent in intuition,
|
|
while in the internal sense no permanent intuition is to be found.
|
|
Lastly, the objective possibility of the category of community
|
|
cannot be conceived by mere reason, and consequently its objective
|
|
reality cannot be demonstrated without an intuition, and that external
|
|
in space. For how can we conceive the possibility of community, that
|
|
is, when several substances exist, that some effect on the existence
|
|
of the one follows from the existence of the other, and
|
|
reciprocally, and therefore that, because something exists in the
|
|
latter, something else must exist in the former, which could not be
|
|
understood from its own existence alone? For this is the very
|
|
essence of community- which is inconceivable as a property of things
|
|
which are perfectly isolated. Hence, Leibnitz, in attributing to the
|
|
substances of the world- as cogitated by the understanding alone- a
|
|
community, required the mediating aid of a divinity; for, from their
|
|
existence, such a property seemed to him with justice inconceivable.
|
|
But we can very easily conceive the possibility of community (of
|
|
substances as phenomena) if we represent them to ourselves as in
|
|
space, consequently in external intuition. For external intuition
|
|
contains in itself a priori formal external relations, as the
|
|
conditions of the possibility of the real relations of action and
|
|
reaction, and therefore of the possibility of community. With the same
|
|
ease can it be demonstrated, that the possibility of things as
|
|
quantities, and consequently the objective reality of the category
|
|
of quantity, can be grounded only in external intuition, and that by
|
|
its means alone is the notion of quantity appropriated by the internal
|
|
sense. But I must avoid prolixity, and leave the task of
|
|
illustrating this by examples to the reader's own reflection.
|
|
|
|
The above remarks are of the greatest importance, not only for the
|
|
confirmation of our previous confutation of idealism, but still more
|
|
when the subject of self-cognition by mere internal consciousness
|
|
and the determination of our own nature without the aid of external
|
|
empirical intuitions is under discussion, for the indication of the
|
|
grounds of the possibility of such a cognition.
|
|
|
|
The result of the whole of this part of the analytic of principles
|
|
is, therefore: "All principles of the pure understanding are nothing
|
|
more than a priori principles of the possibility of experience, and to
|
|
experience alone do all a priori synthetical propositions apply and
|
|
relate"; indeed, their possibility itself rests entirely on this
|
|
relation.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III Of the Ground of the Division of all Objects
|
|
|
|
into Phenomena and Noumena.
|
|
|
|
We have now not only traversed the region of the pure
|
|
understanding and carefully surveyed every part of it, but we have
|
|
also measured it, and assigned to everything therein its proper place.
|
|
But this land is an island, and enclosed by nature herself within
|
|
unchangeable limits. It is the land of truth (an attractive word),
|
|
surrounded by a wide and stormy ocean, the region of illusion, where
|
|
many a fog-bank, many an iceberg, seems to the mariner, on his
|
|
voyage of discovery, a new country, and, while constantly deluding him
|
|
with vain hopes, engages him in dangerous adventures, from which he
|
|
never can desist, and which yet he never can bring to a termination.
|
|
But before venturing upon this sea, in order to explore it in its
|
|
whole extent, and to arrive at a certainty whether anything is to be
|
|
discovered there, it will not be without advantage if we cast our eyes
|
|
upon the chart of the land that we are about to leave, and to ask
|
|
ourselves, firstly, whether we cannot rest perfectly contented with
|
|
what it contains, or whether we must not of necessity be contented
|
|
with it, if we can find nowhere else a solid foundation to build upon;
|
|
and, secondly, by what title we possess this land itself, and how we
|
|
hold it secure against all hostile claims? Although, in the course
|
|
of our analytic, we have already given sufficient answers to these
|
|
questions, yet a summary recapitulation of these solutions may be
|
|
useful in strengthening our conviction, by uniting in one point the
|
|
momenta of the arguments.
|
|
|
|
We have seen that everything which the understanding draws from
|
|
itself, without borrowing from experience, it nevertheless possesses
|
|
only for the behoof and use of experience. The principles of the
|
|
pure understanding, whether constitutive a priori (as the mathematical
|
|
principles), or merely regulative (as the dynamical), contain
|
|
nothing but the pure schema, as it were, of possible experience. For
|
|
experience possesses its unity from the synthetical unity which the
|
|
understanding, originally and from itself, imparts to the synthesis of
|
|
the imagination in relation to apperception, and in a priori
|
|
relation to and agreement with which phenomena, as data for a possible
|
|
cognition, must stand. But although these rules of the understanding
|
|
are not only a priori true, but the very source of all truth, that is,
|
|
of the accordance of our cognition with objects, and on this ground,
|
|
that they contain the basis of the possibility of experience, as the
|
|
ensemble of all cognition, it seems to us not enough to propound
|
|
what is true- we desire also to be told what we want to know. If,
|
|
then, we learn nothing more by this critical examination than what
|
|
we should have practised in the merely empirical use of the
|
|
understanding, without any such subtle inquiry, the presumption is
|
|
that the advantage we reap from it is not worth the labour bestowed
|
|
upon it. It may certainly be answered that no rash curiosity is more
|
|
prejudicial to the enlargement of our knowledge than that which must
|
|
know beforehand the utility of this or that piece of information which
|
|
we seek, before we have entered on the needful investigations, and
|
|
before one could form the least conception of its utility, even though
|
|
it were placed before our eyes. But there is one advantage in such
|
|
transcendental inquiries which can be made comprehensible to the
|
|
dullest and most reluctant learner- this, namely, that the
|
|
understanding which is occupied merely with empirical exercise, and
|
|
does not reflect on the sources of its own cognition, may exercise its
|
|
functions very well and very successfully, but is quite unable to do
|
|
one thing, and that of very great importance, to determine, namely,
|
|
the bounds that limit its employment, and to know what lies within
|
|
or without its own sphere. This purpose can be obtained only by such
|
|
profound investigations as we have instituted. But if it cannot
|
|
distinguish whether certain questions lie within its horizon or not,
|
|
it can never be sure either as to its claims or possessions, but
|
|
must lay its account with many humiliating corrections, when it
|
|
transgresses, as it unavoidably will, the limits of its own territory,
|
|
and loses itself in fanciful opinions and blinding illusions.
|
|
|
|
That the understanding, therefore, cannot make of its a priori
|
|
principles, or even of its conceptions, other than an empirical use,
|
|
is a proposition which leads to the most important results. A
|
|
transcendental use is made of a conception in a fundamental
|
|
proposition or principle, when it is referred to things in general and
|
|
considered as things in themselves; an empirical use, when it is
|
|
referred merely to phenomena, that is, to objects of a possible
|
|
experience. That the latter use of a conception is the only admissible
|
|
one is evident from the reasons following. For every conception are
|
|
requisite, firstly, the logical form of a conception (of thought)
|
|
general; and, secondly, the possibility of presenting to this an
|
|
object to which it may apply. Failing this latter, it has no sense,
|
|
and utterly void of content, although it may contain the logical
|
|
function for constructing a conception from certain data. Now,
|
|
object cannot be given to a conception otherwise than by intuition,
|
|
and, even if a pure intuition antecedent to the object is a priori
|
|
possible, this pure intuition can itself obtain objective validity
|
|
only from empirical intuition, of which it is itself but the form. All
|
|
conceptions, therefore, and with them all principles, however high the
|
|
degree of their a priori possibility, relate to empirical
|
|
intuitions, that is, to data towards a possible experience. Without
|
|
this they possess no objective validity, but are mere play of
|
|
imagination or of understanding with images or notions. Let us take,
|
|
for example, the conceptions of mathematics, and first in its pure
|
|
intuitions. "Space has three dimensions"- "Between two points there
|
|
can be only one straight line," etc. Although all these principles,
|
|
and the representation of the object with which this science
|
|
occupies itself, are generated in the mind entirely a priori, they
|
|
would nevertheless have no significance if we were not always able
|
|
to exhibit their significance in and by means of phenomena
|
|
(empirical objects). Hence it is requisite that an abstract conception
|
|
be made sensuous, that is, that an object corresponding to it in
|
|
intuition be forthcoming, otherwise the conception remains, as we say,
|
|
without sense, that is, without meaning. Mathematics fulfils this
|
|
requirement by the construction of the figure, which is a phenomenon
|
|
evident to the senses. The same science finds support and significance
|
|
in number; this in its turn finds it in the fingers, or in counters,
|
|
or in lines and points. The conception itself is always produced a
|
|
priori, together with the synthetical principles or formulas from such
|
|
conceptions; but the proper employment of them, and their
|
|
application to objects, can exist nowhere but in experience, the
|
|
possibility of which, as regards its form, they contain a priori.
|
|
|
|
That this is also the case with all of the categories and the
|
|
principles based upon them is evident from the fact that we cannot
|
|
render intelligible the possibility of an object corresponding to them
|
|
without having recourse to the conditions of sensibility,
|
|
consequently, to the form of phenomena, to which, as their only proper
|
|
objects, their use must therefore be confined, inasmuch as, if this
|
|
condition is removed, all significance, that is, all relation to an
|
|
object, disappears, and no example can be found to make it
|
|
comprehensible what sort of things we ought to think under such
|
|
conceptions.
|
|
|
|
The conception of quantity cannot be explained except by saying that
|
|
it is the determination of a thing whereby it can be cogitated how
|
|
many times one is placed in it. But this "how many times" is based
|
|
upon successive repetition, consequently upon time and the synthesis
|
|
of the homogeneous therein. Reality, in contradistinction to negation,
|
|
can be explained only by cogitating a time which is either filled
|
|
therewith or is void. If I leave out the notion of permanence (which
|
|
is existence in all time), there remains in the conception of
|
|
substance nothing but the logical notion of subject, a notion of which
|
|
I endeavour to realize by representing to myself something that can
|
|
exist only as a subject. But not only am I perfectly ignorant of any
|
|
conditions under which this logical prerogative can belong to a thing,
|
|
I can make nothing out of the notion, and draw no inference from it,
|
|
because no object to which to apply the conception is determined,
|
|
and we consequently do not know whether it has any meaning at all.
|
|
In like manner, if I leave out the notion of time, in which
|
|
something follows upon some other thing in conformity with a rule, I
|
|
can find nothing in the pure category, except that there is a
|
|
something of such a sort that from it a conclusion may be drawn as
|
|
to the existence of some other thing. But in this case it would not
|
|
only be impossible to distinguish between a cause and an effect,
|
|
but, as this power to draw conclusions requires conditions of which
|
|
I am quite ignorant, the conception is not determined as to the mode
|
|
in which it ought to apply to an object. The so-called principle:
|
|
"Everything that is contingent has a cause," comes with a gravity
|
|
and self-assumed authority that seems to require no support from
|
|
without. But, I ask, what is meant by contingent? The answer is that
|
|
the non-existence of which is possible. But I should like very well to
|
|
know by what means this possibility of non-existence is to be
|
|
cognized, if we do not represent to ourselves a succession in the
|
|
series of phenomena, and in this succession an existence which follows
|
|
a non-existence, or conversely, consequently, change. For to say, that
|
|
the non-existence of a thing is not self-contradictory is a lame
|
|
appeal to a logical condition, which is no doubt a necessary condition
|
|
of the existence of the conception, but is far from being sufficient
|
|
for the real objective possibility of non-existence. I can
|
|
annihilate in thought every existing substance without
|
|
self-contradiction, but I cannot infer from this their objective
|
|
contingency in existence, that is to say, the possibility of their
|
|
non-existence in itself. As regards the category of community, it
|
|
may easily be inferred that, as the pure categories of substance and
|
|
causality are incapable of a definition and explanation sufficient
|
|
to determine their object without the aid of intuition, the category
|
|
of reciprocal causality in the relation of substances to each other
|
|
(commercium) is just as little susceptible thereof. Possibility,
|
|
existence, and necessity nobody has ever yet been able to explain
|
|
without being guilty of manifest tautology, when the definition has
|
|
been drawn entirely from the pure understanding. For the
|
|
substitution of the logical possibility of the conception- the
|
|
condition of which is that it be not self-contradictory, for the
|
|
transcendental possibility of things- the condition of which is that
|
|
there be an object corresponding to the conception, is a trick which
|
|
can only deceive the inexperienced.*
|
|
|
|
*In one word, to none of these conceptions belongs a corresponding
|
|
object, and consequently their real possibility cannot be
|
|
demonstrated, if we take away sensuous intuition- the only intuition
|
|
which we possess- and there then remains nothing but the logical
|
|
possibility, that is, the fact that the conception or thought is
|
|
possible- which, however, is not the question; what we want to know
|
|
being, whether it relates to an object and thus possesses any meaning.
|
|
|
|
It follows incontestably, that the pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding are incapable of transcendental, and must always be of
|
|
empirical use alone, and that the principles of the pure understanding
|
|
relate only to the general conditions of a possible experience, to
|
|
objects of the senses, and never to things in general, apart from
|
|
the mode in which we intuite them.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental analytic has accordingly this important result, to
|
|
wit, that the understanding is competent' effect nothing a priori,
|
|
except the anticipation of the form of a possible experience in
|
|
general, and that, as that which is not phenomenon cannot be an object
|
|
of experience, it can never overstep the limits of sensibility, within
|
|
which alone objects are presented to us. Its principles are merely
|
|
principles of the exposition of phenomena, and the proud name of an
|
|
ontology, which professes to present synthetical cognitions a priori
|
|
of things in general in a systematic doctrine, must give place to
|
|
the modest title of analytic of the pure understanding.
|
|
|
|
Thought is the act of referring a given intuition to an object. If
|
|
the mode of this intuition is unknown to us, the object is merely
|
|
transcendental, and the conception of the understanding is employed
|
|
only transcendentally, that is, to produce unity in the thought of a
|
|
manifold in general. Now a pure category, in which all conditions of
|
|
sensuous intuition- as the only intuition we possess- are
|
|
abstracted, does not determine an object, but merely expresses the
|
|
thought of an object in general, according to different modes. Now, to
|
|
employ a conception, the function of judgement is required, by which
|
|
an object is subsumed under the conception, consequently the at
|
|
least formal condition, under which something can be given in
|
|
intuition. Failing this condition of judgement (schema), subsumption
|
|
is impossible; for there is in such a case nothing given, which may be
|
|
subsumed under the conception. The merely transcendental use of the
|
|
categories is therefore, in fact, no use at all and has no determined,
|
|
or even, as regards its form, determinable object. Hence it follows
|
|
that the pure category is incompetent to establish a synthetical a
|
|
priori principle, and that the principles of the pure understanding
|
|
are only of empirical and never of transcendental use, and that beyond
|
|
the sphere of possible experience no synthetical a priori principles
|
|
are possible.
|
|
|
|
It may be advisable, therefore, to express ourselves thus. The
|
|
pure categories, apart from the formal conditions of sensibility, have
|
|
a merely transcendental meaning, but are nevertheless not of
|
|
transcendental use, because this is in itself impossible, inasmuch
|
|
as all the conditions of any employment or use of them (in judgements)
|
|
are absent, to wit, the formal conditions of the subsumption of an
|
|
object under these conceptions. As, therefore, in the character of
|
|
pure categories, they must be employed empirically, and cannot be
|
|
employed transcendentally, they are of no use at all, when separated
|
|
from sensibility, that is, they cannot be applied to an object. They
|
|
are merely the pure form of the employment of the understanding in
|
|
respect of objects in general and of thought, without its being at the
|
|
same time possible to think or to determine any object by their means.
|
|
|
|
But there lurks at the foundation of this subject an illusion
|
|
which it is very difficult to avoid. The categories are not based,
|
|
as regards their origin, upon sensibility, like the forms of
|
|
intuition, space, and time; they seem, therefore, to be capable of
|
|
an application beyond the sphere of sensuous objects. But this is
|
|
not the case. They are nothing but mere forms of thought, which
|
|
contain only the logical faculty of uniting a priori in
|
|
consciousness the manifold given in intuition. Apart, then, from the
|
|
only intuition possible for us, they have still less meaning than
|
|
the pure sensuous forms, space and time, for through them an object is
|
|
at least given, while a mode of connection of the manifold, when the
|
|
intuition which alone gives the manifold is wanting, has no meaning at
|
|
all. At the same time, when we designate certain objects as
|
|
phenomena or sensuous existences, thus distinguishing our mode of
|
|
intuiting them from their own nature as things in themselves, it is
|
|
evident that by this very distinction we as it were place the
|
|
latter, considered in this their own nature, although we do not so
|
|
intuite them, in opposition to the former, or, on the other hand, we
|
|
do so place other possible things, which are not objects of our
|
|
senses, but are cogitated by the understanding alone, and call them
|
|
intelligible existences (noumena). Now the question arises whether the
|
|
pure conceptions of our understanding do possess significance in
|
|
respect of these latter, and may possibly be a mode of cognizing them.
|
|
|
|
But we are met at the very commencement with an ambiguity, which may
|
|
easily occasion great misapprehension. The understanding, when it
|
|
terms an object in a certain relation phenomenon, at the same time
|
|
forms out of this relation a representation or notion of an object
|
|
in itself, and hence believes that it can form also conceptions of
|
|
such objects. Now as the understanding possesses no other
|
|
fundamental conceptions besides the categories, it takes for granted
|
|
that an object considered as a thing in itself must be capable of
|
|
being thought by means of these pure conceptions, and is thereby led
|
|
to hold the perfectly undetermined conception of an intelligible
|
|
existence, a something out of the sphere of our sensibility, for a
|
|
determinate conception of an existence which we can cognize in some
|
|
way or other by means of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
If, by the term noumenon, we understand a thing so far as it is
|
|
not an object of our sensuous intuition, thus making abstraction of
|
|
our mode of intuiting it, this is a noumenon in the negative sense
|
|
of the word. But if we understand by it an object of a non-sensuous
|
|
intuition, we in this case assume a peculiar mode of intuition, an
|
|
intellectual intuition, to wit, which does not, however, belong to us,
|
|
of the very possibility of which we have no notion- and this is a
|
|
noumenon in the positive sense.
|
|
|
|
The doctrine of sensibility is also the doctrine of noumena in the
|
|
negative sense, that is, of things which the understanding is
|
|
obliged to cogitate apart from any relation to our mode of
|
|
intuition, consequently not as mere phenomena, but as things in
|
|
themselves. But the understanding at the same time comprehends that it
|
|
cannot employ its categories for the consideration of things in
|
|
themselves, because these possess significance only in relation to the
|
|
unity of intuitions in space and time, and that they are competent
|
|
to determine this unity by means of general a priori connecting
|
|
conceptions only on account of the pure ideality of space and time.
|
|
Where this unity of time is not to be met with, as is the case with
|
|
noumena, the whole use, indeed the whole meaning of the categories
|
|
is entirely lost, for even the possibility of things to correspond
|
|
to the categories is in this case incomprehensible. On this point, I
|
|
need only refer the reader to what I have said at the commencement
|
|
of the General Remark appended to the foregoing chapter. Now, the
|
|
possibility of a thing can never be proved from the fact that the
|
|
conception of it is not self-contradictory, but only by means of an
|
|
intuition corresponding to the conception. If, therefore, we wish to
|
|
apply the categories to objects which cannot be regarded as phenomena,
|
|
we must have an intuition different from the sensuous, and in this
|
|
case the objects would be a noumena in the positive sense of the word.
|
|
Now, as such an intuition, that is, an intellectual intuition, is no
|
|
part of our faculty of cognition, it is absolutely impossible for
|
|
the categories to possess any application beyond the limits of
|
|
experience. It may be true that there are intelligible existences to
|
|
which our faculty of sensuous intuition has no relation, and cannot be
|
|
applied, but our conceptions of the understanding, as mere forms of
|
|
thought for our sensuous intuition, do not extend to these. What,
|
|
therefore, we call noumenon must be understood by us as such in a
|
|
negative sense.
|
|
|
|
If I take away from an empirial intuition all thought (by means of
|
|
the categories), there remains no cognition of any object; for by
|
|
means of mere intuition nothing is cogitated, and, from the
|
|
existence of such or such an affection of sensibility in me, it does
|
|
not follow that this affection or representation has any relation to
|
|
an object without me. But if I take away all intuition, there still
|
|
remains the form of thought, that is, the mode of determining an
|
|
object for the manifold of a possible intuition. Thus the categories
|
|
do in some measure really extend further than sensuous intuition,
|
|
inasmuch as they think objects in general, without regard to the
|
|
mode (of sensibility) in which these objects are given. But they do
|
|
not for this reason apply to and determine a wider sphere of
|
|
objects, because we cannot assume that such can be given, without
|
|
presupposing the possibility of another than the sensuous mode of
|
|
intuition, a supposition we are not justified in making.
|
|
|
|
I call a conception problematical which contains in itself no
|
|
contradiction, and which is connected with other cognitions as a
|
|
limitation of given conceptions, but whose objective reality cannot be
|
|
cognized in any manner. The conception of a noumenon, that is, of a
|
|
thing which must be cogitated not as an object of sense, but as a
|
|
thing in itself (solely through the pure understanding), is not
|
|
self-contradictory, for we are not entitled to maintain that
|
|
sensibility is the only possible mode of intuition. Nay, further, this
|
|
conception is necessary to restrain sensuous intuition within the
|
|
bounds of phenomena, and thus to limit the objective validity of
|
|
sensuous cognition; for things in themselves, which lie beyond its
|
|
province, are called noumena for the very purpose of indicating that
|
|
this cognition does not extend its application to all that the
|
|
understanding thinks. But, after all, the possibility of such
|
|
noumena is quite incomprehensible, and beyond the sphere of phenomena,
|
|
all is for us a mere void; that is to say, we possess an understanding
|
|
whose province does problematically extend beyond this sphere, but
|
|
we do not possess an intuition, indeed, not even the conception of a
|
|
possible intuition, by means of which objects beyond the region of
|
|
sensibility could be given us, and in reference to which the
|
|
understanding might be employed assertorically. The conception of a
|
|
noumenon is therefore merely a limitative conception and therefore
|
|
only of negative use. But it is not an arbitrary or fictitious notion,
|
|
but is connected with the limitation of sensibility, without, however,
|
|
being capable of presenting us with any positive datum beyond this
|
|
sphere.
|
|
|
|
The division of objects into phenomena and noumena, and of the world
|
|
into a mundus sensibilis and intelligibilis is therefore quite
|
|
inadmissible in a positive sense, although conceptions do certainly
|
|
admit of such a division; for the class of noumena have no determinate
|
|
object corresponding to them, and cannot therefore possess objective
|
|
validity. If we abandon the senses, how can it be made conceivable
|
|
that the categories (which are the only conceptions that could serve
|
|
as conceptions for noumena) have any sense or meaning at all, inasmuch
|
|
as something more than the mere unity of thought, namely, a possible
|
|
intuition, is requisite for their application to an object? The
|
|
conception of a noumenon, considered as merely problematical, is,
|
|
however, not only admissible, but, as a limitative conception of
|
|
sensibility, absolutely necessary. But, in this case, a noumenon is
|
|
not a particular intelligible object for our understanding; on the
|
|
contrary, the kind of understanding to which it could belong is itself
|
|
a problem, for we cannot form the most distant conception of the
|
|
possibility of an understanding which should cognize an object, not
|
|
discursively by means of categories, but intuitively in a non-sensuous
|
|
intuition. Our understanding attains in this way a sort of negative
|
|
extension. That is to say, it is not limited by, but rather limits,
|
|
sensibility, by giving the name of noumena to things, not considered
|
|
as phenomena, but as things in themselves. But it at the same time
|
|
prescribes limits to itself, for it confesses itself unable to cognize
|
|
these by means of the categories, and hence is compelled to cogitate
|
|
them merely as an unknown something.
|
|
|
|
I find, however, in the writings of modern authors, an entirely
|
|
different use of the expressions, mundus sensibilis and
|
|
intelligibilis, which quite departs from the meaning of the
|
|
ancients- an acceptation in which, indeed, there is to be found no
|
|
difficulty, but which at the same time depends on mere verbal
|
|
quibbling. According to this meaning, some have chosen to call the
|
|
complex of phenomena, in so far as it is intuited, mundus
|
|
sensibilis, but in so far as the connection thereof is cogitated
|
|
according to general laws of thought, mundus intelligibilis.
|
|
Astronomy, in so far as we mean by the word the mere observation of
|
|
the starry heaven, may represent the former; a system of astronomy,
|
|
such as the Copernican or Newtonian, the latter. But such twisting
|
|
of words is a mere sophistical subterfuge, to avoid a difficult
|
|
question, by modifying its meaning to suit our own convenience. To
|
|
be sure, understanding and reason are employed in the cognition of
|
|
phenomena; but the question is, whether these can be applied when
|
|
the object is not a phenomenon and in this sense we regard it if it is
|
|
cogitated as given to the understanding alone, and not to the
|
|
senses. The question therefore is whether, over and above the
|
|
empirical use of the understanding, a transcendental use is
|
|
possible, which applies to the noumenon as an object. This question we
|
|
have answered in the negative.
|
|
|
|
When therefore we say, the senses represent objects as they
|
|
appear, the understanding as they are, the latter statement must not
|
|
be understood in a transcendental, but only in an empirical
|
|
signification, that is, as they must be represented in the complete
|
|
connection of phenomena, and not according to what they may be,
|
|
apart from their relation to possible experience, consequently not
|
|
as objects of the pure understanding. For this must ever remain
|
|
unknown to us. Nay, it is also quite unknown to us whether any such
|
|
transcendental or extraordinary cognition is possible under any
|
|
circumstances, at least, whether it is possible by means of our
|
|
categories. Understanding and sensibility, with us, can determine
|
|
objects only in conjunction. If we separate them, we have intuitions
|
|
without conceptions, or conceptions without intuitions; in both cases,
|
|
representations, which we cannot apply to any determinate object.
|
|
|
|
If, after all our inquiries and explanations, any one still
|
|
hesitates to abandon the mere transcendental use of the categories,
|
|
let him attempt to construct with them a synthetical proposition. It
|
|
would, of course, be unnecessary for this purpose to construct an
|
|
analytical proposition, for that does not extend the sphere of the
|
|
understanding, but, being concerned only about what is cogitated in
|
|
the conception itself, it leaves it quite undecided whether the
|
|
conception has any relation to objects, or merely indicates the
|
|
unity of thought- complete abstraction being made of the modi in which
|
|
an object may be given: in such a proposition, it is sufficient for
|
|
the understanding to know what lies in the conception- to what it
|
|
applies is to it indifferent. The attempt must therefore be made
|
|
with a synthetical and so-called transcendental principle, for
|
|
example: "Everything that exists, exists as substance," or,
|
|
"Everything that is contingent exists as an effect of some other
|
|
thing, viz., of its cause." Now I ask, whence can the understanding
|
|
draw these synthetical propositions, when the conceptions contained
|
|
therein do not relate to possible experience but to things in
|
|
themselves (noumena)? Where is to be found the third term, which is
|
|
always requisite PURE site in a synthetical proposition, which may
|
|
connect in the same proposition conceptions which have no logical
|
|
(analytical) connection with each other? The proposition never will be
|
|
demonstrated, nay, more, the possibility of any such pure assertion
|
|
never can be shown, without making reference to the empirical use of
|
|
the understanding, and thus, ipso facto, completely renouncing pure
|
|
and non-sensuous judgement. Thus the conception of pure and merely
|
|
intelligible objects is completely void of all principles of its
|
|
application, because we cannot imagine any mode in which they might be
|
|
given, and the problematical thought which leaves a place open for
|
|
them serves only, like a void space, to limit the use of empirical
|
|
principles, without containing at the same time any other object of
|
|
cognition beyond their sphere.
|
|
APPENDIX
|
|
|
|
APPENDIX.
|
|
|
|
Of the Equivocal Nature or Amphiboly of the Conceptions of
|
|
|
|
Reflection from the Confusion of the Transcendental with
|
|
|
|
the Empirical use of the Understanding.
|
|
|
|
Reflection (reflexio) is not occupied about objects themselves,
|
|
for the purpose of directly obtaining conceptions of them, but is that
|
|
state of the mind in which we set ourselves to discover the subjective
|
|
conditions under which we obtain conceptions. It is the
|
|
consciousness of the relation of given representations to the
|
|
different sources or faculties of cognition, by which alone their
|
|
relation to each other can be rightly determined. The first question
|
|
which occurs in considering our representations is to what faculty
|
|
of cognition do they belong? To the understanding or to the senses?
|
|
Many judgements are admitted to be true from mere habit or
|
|
inclination; but, because reflection neither precedes nor follows,
|
|
it is held to be a judgement that has its origin in the understanding.
|
|
All judgements do not require examination, that is, investigation into
|
|
the grounds of their truth. For, when they are immediately certain
|
|
(for example: "Between two points there can be only one straight
|
|
line"), no better or less mediate test of their truth can be found
|
|
than that which they themselves contain and express. But all
|
|
judgement, nay, all comparisons require reflection, that is, a
|
|
distinction of the faculty of cognition to which the given conceptions
|
|
belong. The act whereby I compare my representations with the
|
|
faculty of cognition which originates them, and whereby I
|
|
distinguish whether they are compared with each other as belonging
|
|
to the pure understanding or to sensuous intuition, I term
|
|
transcendental reflection. Now, the relations in which conceptions can
|
|
stand to each other are those of identity and difference, agreement
|
|
and opposition, of the internal and external, finally, of the
|
|
determinable and the determining (matter and form). The proper
|
|
determination of these relations rests on the question, to what
|
|
faculty of cognition they subjectively belong, whether to
|
|
sensibility or understanding? For, on the manner in which we solve
|
|
this question depends the manner in which we must cogitate these
|
|
relations.
|
|
|
|
Before constructing any objective judgement, we compare the
|
|
conceptions that are to be placed in the judgement, and observe
|
|
whether there exists identity (of many representations in one
|
|
conception), if a general judgement is to be constructed, or
|
|
difference, if a particular; whether there is agreement when
|
|
affirmative; and opposition when negative judgements are to be
|
|
constructed, and so on. For this reason we ought to call these
|
|
conceptions, conceptions of comparison (conceptus comparationis).
|
|
But as, when the question is not as to the logical form, but as to the
|
|
content of conceptions, that is to say, whether the things
|
|
themselves are identical or different, in agreement or opposition, and
|
|
so on, the things can have a twofold relation to our faculty of
|
|
cognition, to wit, a relation either to sensibility or to the
|
|
understanding, and as on this relation depends their relation to
|
|
each other, transcendental reflection, that is, the relation of
|
|
given representations to one or the other faculty of cognition, can
|
|
alone determine this latter relation. Thus we shall not be able to
|
|
discover whether the things are identical or different, in agreement
|
|
or opposition, etc., from the mere conception of the things by means
|
|
of comparison (comparatio), but only by distinguishing the mode of
|
|
cognition to which they belong, in other words, by means of
|
|
transcendental reflection. We may, therefore, with justice say, that
|
|
logical reflection is mere comparison, for in it no account is taken
|
|
of the faculty of cognition to which the given conceptions belong, and
|
|
they are consequently, as far as regards their origin, to be treated
|
|
as homogeneous; while transcendental reflection (which applies to
|
|
the objects themselves) contains the ground of the possibility of
|
|
objective comparison of representations with each other, and is
|
|
therefore very different from the former, because the faculties of
|
|
cognition to which they belong are not even the same. Transcendental
|
|
reflection is a duty which no one can neglect who wishes to
|
|
establish an a priori judgement upon things. We shall now proceed to
|
|
fulfil this duty, and thereby throw not a little light on the question
|
|
as to the determination of the proper business of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
1. Identity and Difference. When an object is presented to us
|
|
several times, but always with the same internal determinations
|
|
(qualitas et quantitas), it, if an object of pure understanding, is
|
|
always the same, not several things, but only one thing (numerica
|
|
identitas); but if a phenomenon, we do not concern ourselves with
|
|
comparing the conception of the thing with the conception of some
|
|
other, but, although they may be in this respect perfectly the same,
|
|
the difference of place at the same time is a sufficient ground for
|
|
asserting the numerical difference of these objects (of sense).
|
|
Thus, in the case of two drops of water, we may make complete
|
|
abstraction of all internal difference (quality and quantity), and,
|
|
the fact that they are intuited at the same time in different
|
|
places, is sufficient to justify us in holding them to be
|
|
numerically different. Leibnitz regarded phenomena as things in
|
|
themselves, consequently as intelligibilia, that is, objects of pure
|
|
understanding (although, on account of the confused nature of their
|
|
representations, he gave them the name of phenomena), and in this case
|
|
his principle of the indiscernible (principium identatis
|
|
indiscernibilium) is not to be impugned. But, as phenomena are objects
|
|
of sensibility, and, as the understanding, in respect of them, must be
|
|
employed empirically and not purely or transcendentally, plurality and
|
|
numerical difference are given by space itself as the condition of
|
|
external phenomena. For one part of space, although it may be
|
|
perfectly similar and equal to another part, is still without it,
|
|
and for this reason alone is different from the latter, which is added
|
|
to it in order to make up a greater space. It follows that this must
|
|
hold good of all things that are in the different parts of space at
|
|
the same time, however similar and equal one may be to another.
|
|
|
|
2. Agreement and Opposition. When reality is represented by the pure
|
|
understanding (realitas noumenon), opposition between realities is
|
|
incogitable- such a relation, that is, that when these realities are
|
|
connected in one subject, they annihilate the effects of each other
|
|
and may be represented in the formula 3 - 3 = 0. On the other hand,
|
|
the real in a phenomenon (realitas phaenomenon) may very well be in
|
|
mutual opposition, and, when united in the same subject, the one may
|
|
completely or in part annihilate the effect or consequence of the
|
|
other; as in the case of two moving forces in the same straight line
|
|
drawing or impelling a point in opposite directions, or in the case of
|
|
a pleasure counterbalancing a certain amount of pain.
|
|
|
|
3. The Internal and External. In an object of the pure
|
|
understanding, only that is internal which has no relation (as regards
|
|
its existence) to anything different from itself. On the other hand,
|
|
the internal determinations of a substantia phaenomenon in space are
|
|
nothing but relations, and it is itself nothing more than a complex of
|
|
mere relations. Substance in space we are cognizant of only through
|
|
forces operative in it, either drawing others towards itself
|
|
(attraction), or preventing others from forcing into itself (repulsion
|
|
and impenetrability). We know no other properties that make up the
|
|
conception of substance phenomenal in space, and which we term matter.
|
|
On the other hand, as an object of the pure understanding, every
|
|
substance must have internal determination and forces. But what
|
|
other internal attributes of such an object can I think than those
|
|
which my internal sense presents to me? That, to wit, which in
|
|
either itself thought, or something analogous to it. Hence Leibnitz,
|
|
who looked upon things as noumena, after denying them everything
|
|
like external relation, and therefore also composition or combination,
|
|
declared that all substances, even the component parts of matter, were
|
|
simple substances with powers of representation, in one word, monads.
|
|
|
|
4. Matter and Form. These two conceptions lie at the foundation of
|
|
all other reflection, so inseparably are they connected with every
|
|
mode of exercising the understanding. The former denotes the
|
|
determinable in general, the second its determination, both in a
|
|
transcendental sense, abstraction being made of every difference in
|
|
that which is given, and of the mode in which it is determined.
|
|
Logicians formerly termed the universal, matter, the specific
|
|
difference of this or that part of the universal, form. In a judgement
|
|
one may call the given conceptions logical matter (for the judgement),
|
|
the relation of these to each other (by means of the copula), the form
|
|
of the judgement. In an object, the composite parts thereof
|
|
(essentialia) are the matter; the mode in which they are connected
|
|
in the object, the form. In respect to things in general, unlimited
|
|
reality was regarded as the matter of all possibility, the
|
|
limitation thereof (negation) as the form, by which one thing is
|
|
distinguished from another according to transcendental conceptions.
|
|
The understanding demands that something be given (at least in the
|
|
conception), in order to be able to determine it in a certain
|
|
manner. Hence, in a conception of the pure understanding, the matter
|
|
precedes the form, and for this reason Leibnitz first assumed the
|
|
existence of things (monads) and of an internal power of
|
|
representation in them, in order to found upon this their external
|
|
relation and the community their state (that is, of their
|
|
representations). Hence, with him, space and time were possible- the
|
|
former through the relation of substances, the latter through the
|
|
connection of their determinations with each other, as causes and
|
|
effects. And so would it really be, if the pure understanding were
|
|
capable of an immediate application to objects, and if space and
|
|
time were determinations of things in themselves. But being merely
|
|
sensuous intuitions, in which we determine all objects solely as
|
|
phenomena, the form of intuition (as a subjective property of
|
|
sensibility) must antecede all matter (sensations), consequently space
|
|
and time must antecede all phenomena and all data of experience, and
|
|
rather make experience itself possible. But the intellectual
|
|
philosopher could not endure that the form should precede the things
|
|
themselves and determine their possibility; an objection perfectly
|
|
correct, if we assume that we intuite things as they are, although
|
|
with confused representation. But as sensuous intuition is a
|
|
peculiar subjective condition, which is a priori at the foundation
|
|
of all perception, and the form of which is primitive, the form must
|
|
be given per se, and so far from matter (or the things themselves
|
|
which appear) lying at the foundation of experience (as we must
|
|
conclude, if we judge by mere conceptions), the very possibility of
|
|
itself presupposes, on the contrary, a given formal intuition (space
|
|
and time).
|
|
|
|
REMARK ON THE AMPHIBOLY OF THE CONCEPTIONS OF REFLECTION.
|
|
|
|
Let me be allowed to term the position which we assign to a
|
|
conception either in the sensibility or in the pure understanding, the
|
|
transcendental place. In this manner, the appointment of the
|
|
position which must be taken by each conception according to the
|
|
difference in its use, and the directions for determining this place
|
|
to all conceptions according to rules, would be a transcendental
|
|
topic, a doctrine which would thoroughly shield us from the
|
|
surreptitious devices of the pure understanding and the delusions
|
|
which thence arise, as it would always distinguish to what faculty
|
|
of cognition each conception properly belonged. Every conception,
|
|
every title, under which many cognitions rank together, may be
|
|
called a logical place. Upon this is based the logical topic of
|
|
Aristotle, of which teachers and rhetoricians could avail
|
|
themselves, in order, under certain titles of thought, to observe what
|
|
would best suit the matter they had to treat, and thus enable
|
|
themselves to quibble and talk with fluency and an appearance of
|
|
profundity.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental topic, on the contrary, contains nothing more than
|
|
the above-mentioned four titles of all comparison and distinction,
|
|
which differ from categories in this respect, that they do not
|
|
represent the object according to that which constitutes its
|
|
conception (quantity, reality), but set forth merely the comparison of
|
|
representations, which precedes our conceptions of things. But this
|
|
comparison requires a previous reflection, that is, a determination of
|
|
the place to which the representations of the things which are
|
|
compared belong, whether, to wit, they are cogitated by the pure
|
|
understanding, or given by sensibility.
|
|
|
|
Conceptions may be logically compared without the trouble of
|
|
inquiring to what faculty their objects belong, whether as noumena, to
|
|
the understanding, or as phenomena, to sensibility. If, however, we
|
|
wish to employ these conceptions in respect of objects, previous
|
|
transcendental reflection is necessary. Without this reflection I
|
|
should make a very unsafe use of these conceptions, and construct
|
|
pretended synthetical propositions which critical reason cannot
|
|
acknowledge and which are based solely upon a transcendental
|
|
amphiboly, that is, upon a substitution of an object of pure
|
|
understanding for a phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
For want of this doctrine of transcendental topic, and
|
|
consequently deceived by the amphiboly of the conceptions of
|
|
reflection, the celebrated Leibnitz constructed an intellectual system
|
|
of the world, or rather, believed himself competent to cognize the
|
|
internal nature of things, by comparing all objects merely with the
|
|
understanding and the abstract formal conceptions of thought. Our
|
|
table of the conceptions of reflection gives us the unexpected
|
|
advantage of being able to exhibit the distinctive peculiarities of
|
|
his system in all its parts, and at the same time of exposing the
|
|
fundamental principle of this peculiar mode of thought, which rested
|
|
upon naught but a misconception. He compared all things with each
|
|
other merely by means of conceptions, and naturally found no other
|
|
differences than those by which the understanding distinguishes its
|
|
pure conceptions one from another. The conditions of sensuous
|
|
intuition, which contain in themselves their own means of distinction,
|
|
he did not look upon as primitive, because sensibility was to him
|
|
but a confused mode of representation and not any particular source of
|
|
representations. A phenomenon was for him the representation of the
|
|
thing in itself, although distinguished from cognition by the
|
|
understanding only in respect of the logical form- the former with its
|
|
usual want of analysis containing, according to him, a certain mixture
|
|
of collateral representations in its conception of a thing, which it
|
|
is the duty of the understanding to separate and distinguish. In one
|
|
word, Leibnitz intellectualized phenomena, just as Locke, in his
|
|
system of noogony (if I may be allowed to make use of such
|
|
expressions), sensualized the conceptions of the understanding, that
|
|
is to say, declared them to be nothing more than empirical or abstract
|
|
conceptions of reflection. Instead of seeking in the understanding and
|
|
sensibility two different sources of representations, which,
|
|
however, can present us with objective judgements of things only in
|
|
conjunction, each of these great men recognized but one of these
|
|
faculties, which, in their opinion, applied immediately to things in
|
|
themselves, the other having no duty but that of confusing or
|
|
arranging the representations of the former.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly, the objects of sense were compared by Leibnitz as
|
|
things in general merely in the understanding.
|
|
|
|
1st. He compares them in regard to their identity or difference-
|
|
as judged by the understanding. As, therefore, he considered merely
|
|
the conceptions of objects, and not their position in intuition, in
|
|
which alone objects can be given, and left quite out of sight the
|
|
transcendental locale of these conceptions- whether, that is, their
|
|
object ought to be classed among phenomena, or among things in
|
|
themselves, it was to be expected that he should extend the
|
|
application of the principle of indiscernibles, which is valid
|
|
solely of conceptions of things in general, to objects of sense
|
|
(mundus phaenomenon), and that he should believe that he had thereby
|
|
contributed in no small degree to extend our knowledge of nature. In
|
|
truth, if I cognize in all its inner determinations a drop of water as
|
|
a thing in itself, I cannot look upon one drop as different from
|
|
another, if the conception of the one is completely identical with
|
|
that of the other. But if it is a phenomenon in space, it has a
|
|
place not merely in the understanding (among conceptions), but also in
|
|
sensuous external intuition (in space), and in this case, the physical
|
|
locale is a matter of indifference in regard to the internal
|
|
determinations of things, and one place, B, may contain a thing
|
|
which is perfectly similar and equal to another in a place, A, just as
|
|
well as if the two things were in every respect different from each
|
|
other. Difference of place without any other conditions, makes the
|
|
plurality and distinction of objects as phenomena, not only possible
|
|
in itself, but even necessary. Consequently, the above so-called law
|
|
is not a law of nature. It is merely an analytical rule for the
|
|
comparison of things by means of mere conceptions.
|
|
|
|
2nd. The principle: "Realities (as simple affirmations) never
|
|
logically contradict each other," is a proposition perfectly true
|
|
respecting the relation of conceptions, but, whether as regards
|
|
nature, or things in themselves (of which we have not the slightest
|
|
conception), is without any the least meaning. For real opposition, in
|
|
which A - B is = 0, exists everywhere, an opposition, that is, in
|
|
which one reality united with another in the same subject
|
|
annihilates the effects of the other- a fact which is constantly
|
|
brought before our eyes by the different antagonistic actions and
|
|
operations in nature, which, nevertheless, as depending on real
|
|
forces, must be called realitates phaenomena. General mechanics can
|
|
even present us with the empirical condition of this opposition in
|
|
an a priori rule, as it directs its attention to the opposition in the
|
|
direction of forces- a condition of which the transcendental
|
|
conception of reality can tell us nothing. Although M. Leibnitz did
|
|
not announce this proposition with precisely the pomp of a new
|
|
principle, he yet employed it for the establishment of new
|
|
propositions, and his followers introduced it into their
|
|
Leibnitzio-Wolfian system of philosophy. According to this
|
|
principle, for example, all evils are but consequences of the
|
|
limited nature of created beings, that is, negations, because these
|
|
are the only opposite of reality. (In the mere conception of a thing
|
|
in general this is really the case, but not in things as phenomena.)
|
|
In like manner, the upholders of this system deem it not only
|
|
possible, but natural also, to connect and unite all reality in one
|
|
being, because they acknowledge no other sort of opposition than
|
|
that of contradiction (by which the conception itself of a thing is
|
|
annihilated), and find themselves unable to conceive an opposition
|
|
of reciprocal destruction, so to speak, in which one real cause
|
|
destroys the effect of another, and the conditions of whose
|
|
representation we meet with only in sensibility.
|
|
|
|
3rd. The Leibnitzian monadology has really no better foundation than
|
|
on this philosopher's mode of falsely representing the difference of
|
|
the internal and external solely in relation to the understanding.
|
|
Substances, in general, must have something inward, which is therefore
|
|
free from external relations, consequently from that of composition
|
|
also. The simple- that which can be represented by a unit- is
|
|
therefore the foundation of that which is internal in things in
|
|
themselves. The internal state of substances cannot therefore
|
|
consist in place, shape, contact, or motion, determinations which
|
|
are all external relations, and we can ascribe to them no other than
|
|
that whereby we internally determine our faculty of sense itself, that
|
|
is to say, the state of representation. Thus, then, were constructed
|
|
the monads, which were to form the elements of the universe, the
|
|
active force of which consists in representation, the effects of
|
|
this force being thus entirely confined to themselves.
|
|
|
|
For the same reason, his view of the possible community of
|
|
substances could not represent it but as a predetermined harmony,
|
|
and by no means as a physical influence. For inasmuch as everything is
|
|
occupied only internally, that is, with its own representations, the
|
|
state of the representations of one substance could not stand in
|
|
active and living connection with that of another, but some third
|
|
cause operating on all without exception was necessary to make the
|
|
different states correspond with one another. And this did not
|
|
happen by means of assistance applied in each particular case (systema
|
|
assistentiae), but through the unity of the idea of a cause occupied
|
|
and connected with all substances, in which they necessarily
|
|
receive, according to the Leibnitzian school, their existence and
|
|
permanence, consequently also reciprocal correspondence, according
|
|
to universal laws.
|
|
|
|
4th. This philosopher's celebrated doctrine of space and time, in
|
|
which he intellectualized these forms of sensibility, originated in
|
|
the same delusion of transcendental reflection. If I attempt to
|
|
represent by the mere understanding, the external relations of things,
|
|
I can do so only by employing the conception of their reciprocal
|
|
action, and if I wish to connect one state of the same thing with
|
|
another state, I must avail myself of the notion of the order of cause
|
|
and effect. And thus Leibnitz regarded space as a certain order in the
|
|
community of substances, and time as the dynamical sequence of their
|
|
states. That which space and time possess proper to themselves and
|
|
independent of things, he ascribed to a necessary confusion in our
|
|
conceptions of them, whereby that which is a mere form of dynamical
|
|
relations is held to be a self-existent intuition, antecedent even
|
|
to things themselves. Thus space and time were the intelligible form
|
|
of the connection of things (substances and their states) in
|
|
themselves. But things were intelligible substances (substantiae
|
|
noumena). At the same time, he made these conceptions valid of
|
|
phenomena, because he did not allow to sensibility a peculiar mode
|
|
of intuition, but sought all, even the empirical representation of
|
|
objects, in the understanding, and left to sense naught but the
|
|
despicable task of confusing and disarranging the representations of
|
|
the former.
|
|
|
|
But even if we could frame any synthetical proposition concerning
|
|
things in themselves by means of the pure understanding (which is
|
|
impossible), it could not apply to phenomena, which do not represent
|
|
things in themselves. In such a case I should be obliged in
|
|
transcendental reflection to compare my conceptions only under the
|
|
conditions of sensibility, and so space and time would not be
|
|
determinations of things in themselves, but of phenomena. What
|
|
things may be in themselves, I know not and need not know, because a
|
|
thing is never presented to me otherwise than as a phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
I must adopt the same mode of procedure with the other conceptions
|
|
of reflection. Matter is substantia phaenomenon. That in it which is
|
|
internal I seek to discover in all parts of space which it occupies,
|
|
and in all the functions and operations it performs, and which are
|
|
indeed never anything but phenomena of the external sense. I cannot
|
|
therefore find anything that is absolutely, but only what is
|
|
comparatively internal, and which itself consists of external
|
|
relations. The absolutely internal in matter, and as it should be
|
|
according to the pure understanding, is a mere chimera, for matter
|
|
is not an object for the pure understanding. But the transcendental
|
|
object, which is the foundation of the phenomenon which we call
|
|
matter, is a mere nescio quid, the nature of which we could not
|
|
understand, even though someone were found able to tell us. For we can
|
|
understand nothing that does not bring with it something in
|
|
intuition corresponding to the expressions employed. If, by the
|
|
complaint of being unable to perceive the internal nature of things,
|
|
it is meant that we do not comprehend by the pure understanding what
|
|
the things which appear to us may be in themselves, it is a silly
|
|
and unreasonable complaint; for those who talk thus really desire that
|
|
we should be able to cognize, consequently to intuite, things
|
|
without senses, and therefore wish that we possessed a faculty of
|
|
cognition perfectly different from the human faculty, not merely in
|
|
degree, but even as regards intuition and the mode thereof, so that
|
|
thus we should not be men, but belong to a class of beings, the
|
|
possibility of whose existence, much less their nature and
|
|
constitution, we have no means of cognizing. By observation and
|
|
analysis of phenomena we penetrate into the interior of nature, and no
|
|
one can say what progress this knowledge may make in time. But those
|
|
transcendental questions which pass beyond the limits of nature, we
|
|
could never answer, even although all nature were laid open to us,
|
|
because we have not the power of observing our own mind with any other
|
|
intuition than that of our internal sense. For herein lies the mystery
|
|
of the origin and source of our faculty of sensibility. Its
|
|
application to an object, and the transcendental ground of this
|
|
unity of subjective and objective, lie too deeply concealed for us,
|
|
who cognize ourselves only through the internal sense, consequently as
|
|
phenomena, to be able to discover in our existence anything but
|
|
phenomena, the non-sensuous cause of which we at the same time
|
|
earnestly desire to penetrate to.
|
|
|
|
The great utility of this critique of conclusions arrived at by
|
|
the processes of mere reflection consists in its clear demonstration
|
|
of the nullity of all conclusions respecting objects which are
|
|
compared with each other in the understanding alone, while it at the
|
|
same time confirms what we particularly insisted on, namely, that,
|
|
although phenomena are not included as things in themselves among
|
|
the objects of the pure understanding, they are nevertheless the
|
|
only things by which our cognition can possess objective reality, that
|
|
is to say, which give us intuitions to correspond with our
|
|
conceptions.
|
|
|
|
When we reflect in a purely logical manner, we do nothing more
|
|
than compare conceptions in our understanding, to discover whether
|
|
both have the same content, whether they are self-contradictory or
|
|
not, whether anything is contained in either conception, which of
|
|
the two is given, and which is merely a mode of thinking that given.
|
|
But if I apply these conceptions to an object in general (in the
|
|
transcendental sense), without first determining whether it is an
|
|
object of sensuous or intellectual intuition, certain limitations
|
|
present themselves, which forbid us to pass beyond the conceptions and
|
|
render all empirical use of them impossible. And thus these
|
|
limitations prove that the representation of an object as a thing in
|
|
general is not only insufficient, but, without sensuous
|
|
determination and independently of empirical conditions,
|
|
self-contradictory; that we must therefore make abstraction of all
|
|
objects, as in logic, or, admitting them, must think them under
|
|
conditions of sensuous intuition; that, consequently, the intelligible
|
|
requires an altogether peculiar intuition, which we do not possess,
|
|
and in the absence of which it is for us nothing; while, on the
|
|
other hand phenomena cannot be objects in themselves. For, when I
|
|
merely think things in general, the difference in their external
|
|
relations cannot constitute a difference in the things themselves;
|
|
on the contrary, the former presupposes the latter, and if the
|
|
conception of one of two things is not internally different from
|
|
that of the other, I am merely thinking the same thing in different
|
|
relations. Further, by the addition of one affirmation (reality) to
|
|
the other, the positive therein is really augmented, and nothing is
|
|
abstracted or withdrawn from it; hence the real in things cannot be in
|
|
contradiction with or opposition to itself- and so on.
|
|
|
|
The true use of the conceptions of reflection in the employment of
|
|
the understanding has, as we have shown, been so misconceived by
|
|
Leibnitz, one of the most acute philosophers of either ancient or
|
|
modern times, that he has been misled into the construction of a
|
|
baseless system of intellectual cognition, which professes to
|
|
determine its objects without the intervention of the senses. For this
|
|
reason, the exposition of the cause of the amphiboly of these
|
|
conceptions, as the origin of these false principles, is of great
|
|
utility in determining with certainty the proper limits of the
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
It is right to say whatever is affirmed or denied of the whole of
|
|
a conception can be affirmed or denied of any part of it (dictum de
|
|
omni et nullo); but it would be absurd so to alter this logical
|
|
proposition as to say whatever is not contained in a general
|
|
conception is likewise not contained in the particular conceptions
|
|
which rank under it; for the latter are particular conceptions, for
|
|
the very reason that their content is greater than that which is
|
|
cogitated in the general conception. And yet the whole intellectual
|
|
system of Leibnitz is based upon this false principle, and with it
|
|
must necessarily fall to the ground, together with all the ambiguous
|
|
principles in reference to the employment of the understanding which
|
|
have thence originated.
|
|
|
|
Leibnitz's principle of the identity of indiscernibles or
|
|
indistinguishables is really based on the presupposition that, if in
|
|
the conception of a thing a certain distinction is not to be found, it
|
|
is also not to be met with in things themselves; that, consequently,
|
|
all things are completely identical (numero eadem) which are not
|
|
distinguishable from each other (as to quality or quantity) in our
|
|
conceptions of them. But, as in the mere conception of anything
|
|
abstraction has been made of many necessary conditions of intuition,
|
|
that of which abstraction has been made is rashly held to be
|
|
non-existent, and nothing is attributed to the thing but what is
|
|
contained in its conception.
|
|
|
|
The conception of a cubic foot of space, however I may think it,
|
|
is in itself completely identical. But two cubic feet in space are
|
|
nevertheless distinct from each other from the sole fact of their
|
|
being in different places (they are numero diversa); and these
|
|
places are conditions of intuition, wherein the object of this
|
|
conception is given, and which do not belong to the conception, but to
|
|
the faculty of sensibility. In like manner, there is in the conception
|
|
of a thing no contradiction when a negative is not connected with an
|
|
affirmative; and merely affirmative conceptions cannot, in
|
|
conjunction, produce any negation. But in sensuous intuition,
|
|
wherein reality (take for example, motion) is given, we find
|
|
conditions (opposite directions)- of which abstraction has been made
|
|
in the conception of motion in general- which render possible a
|
|
contradiction or opposition (not indeed of a logical kind)- and
|
|
which from pure positives produce zero = 0. We are therefore not
|
|
justified in saying that all reality is in perfect agreement and
|
|
harmony, because no contradiction is discoverable among its
|
|
conceptions.* According to mere conceptions, that which is internal is
|
|
the substratum of all relations or external determinations. When,
|
|
therefore, I abstract all conditions of intuition, and confine
|
|
myself solely to the conception of a thing in general, I can make
|
|
abstraction of all external relations, and there must nevertheless
|
|
remain a conception of that which indicates no relation, but merely
|
|
internal determinations. Now it seems to follow that in everything
|
|
(substance) there is something which is absolutely internal and
|
|
which antecedes all external determinations, inasmuch as it renders
|
|
them possible; and that therefore this substratum is something which
|
|
does not contain any external relations and is consequently simple
|
|
(for corporeal things are never anything but relations, at least of
|
|
their parts external to each other); and, inasmuch as we know of no
|
|
other absolutely internal determinations than those of the internal
|
|
sense, this substratum is not only simple, but also, analogously
|
|
with our internal sense, determined through representations, that is
|
|
to say, all things are properly monads, or simple beings endowed
|
|
with the power of representation. Now all this would be perfectly
|
|
correct, if the conception of a thing were the only necessary
|
|
condition of the presentation of objects of external intuition. It is,
|
|
on the contrary, manifest that a permanent phenomenon in space
|
|
(impenetrable extension) can contain mere relations, and nothing
|
|
that is absolutely internal, and yet be the primary substratum of
|
|
all external perception. By mere conceptions I cannot think anything
|
|
external, without, at the same time, thinking something internal,
|
|
for the reason that conceptions of relations presuppose given
|
|
things, and without these are impossible. But, as an intuition there
|
|
is something (that is, space, which, with all it contains, consists of
|
|
purely formal, or, indeed, real relations) which is not found in the
|
|
mere conception of a thing in general, and this presents to us the
|
|
substratum which could not be cognized through conceptions alone, I
|
|
cannot say: because a thing cannot be represented by mere
|
|
conceptions without something absolutely internal, there is also, in
|
|
the things themselves which are contained under these conceptions, and
|
|
in their intuition nothing external to which something absolutely
|
|
internal does not serve as the foundation. For, when we have made
|
|
abstraction of all the conditions of intuition, there certainly
|
|
remains in the mere conception nothing but the internal in general,
|
|
through which alone the external is possible. But this necessity,
|
|
which is grounded upon abstraction alone, does not obtain in the
|
|
case of things themselves, in so far as they are given in intuition
|
|
with such determinations as express mere relations, without having
|
|
anything internal as their foundation; for they are not things of a
|
|
thing of which we can neither for they are not things in themselves,
|
|
but only phenomena. What we cognize in matter is nothing but relations
|
|
(what we call its internal determinations are but comparatively
|
|
internal). But there are some self-subsistent and permanent, through
|
|
which a determined object is given. That I, when abstraction is made
|
|
of these relations, have nothing more to think, does not destroy the
|
|
conception of a thing as phenomenon, nor the conception of an object
|
|
in abstracto, but it does away with the possibility of an object
|
|
that is determinable according to mere conceptions, that is, of a
|
|
noumenon. It is certainly startling to hear that a thing consists
|
|
solely of relations; but this thing is simply a phenomenon, and cannot
|
|
be cogitated by means of the mere categories: it does itself consist
|
|
in the mere relation of something in general to the senses. In the
|
|
same way, we cannot cogitate relations of things in abstracto, if we
|
|
commence with conceptions alone, in any other manner than that one
|
|
is the cause of determinations in the other; for that is itself the
|
|
conception of the understanding or category of relation. But, as in
|
|
this case we make abstraction of all intuition, we lose altogether the
|
|
mode in which the manifold determines to each of its parts its
|
|
place, that is, the form of sensibility (space); and yet this mode
|
|
antecedes all empirical causality.
|
|
|
|
*If any one wishes here to have recourse to the usual subterfuge,
|
|
and to say, that at least realitates noumena cannot be in opposition
|
|
to each other, it will be requisite for him to adduce an example of
|
|
this pure and non-sensuous reality, that it may be understood
|
|
whether the notion represents something or nothing. But an example
|
|
cannot be found except in experience, which never presents to us
|
|
anything more than phenomena; and thus the proposition means nothing
|
|
more than that the conception which contains only affirmatives does
|
|
not contain anything negative- a proposition nobody ever doubted.
|
|
|
|
If by intelligible objects we understand things which can be thought
|
|
by means of the pure categories, without the need of the schemata of
|
|
sensibility, such objects are impossible. For the condition of the
|
|
objective use of all our conceptions of understanding is the mode of
|
|
our sensuous intuition, whereby objects are given; and, if we make
|
|
abstraction of the latter, the former can have no relation to an
|
|
object. And even if we should suppose a different kind of intuition
|
|
from our own, still our functions of thought would have no use or
|
|
signification in respect thereof. But if we understand by the term,
|
|
objects of a non-sensuous intuition, in respect of which our
|
|
categories are not valid, and of which we can accordingly have no
|
|
knowledge (neither intuition nor conception), in this merely
|
|
negative sense noumena must be admitted. For this is no more than
|
|
saying that our mode of intuition is not applicable to all things, but
|
|
only to objects of our senses, that consequently its objective
|
|
validity is limited, and that room is therefore left for another
|
|
kind of intuition, and thus also for things that may be objects of it.
|
|
But in this sense the conception of a noumenon is problematical,
|
|
that is to say, it is the notion of that it that it is possible, nor
|
|
that it is impossible, inasmuch as we do not know of any mode of
|
|
intuition besides the sensuous, or of any other sort of conceptions
|
|
than the categories- a mode of intuition and a kind of conception
|
|
neither of which is applicable to a non-sensuous object. We are on
|
|
this account incompetent to extend the sphere of our objects of
|
|
thought beyond the conditions of our sensibility, and to assume the
|
|
existence of objects of pure thought, that is, of noumena, inasmuch as
|
|
these have no true positive signification. For it must be confessed of
|
|
the categories that they are not of themselves sufficient for the
|
|
cognition of things in themselves and, without the data of
|
|
sensibility, are mere subjective forms of the unity of the
|
|
understanding. Thought is certainly not a product of the senses, and
|
|
in so far is not limited by them, but it does not therefore follow
|
|
that it may be employed purely and without the intervention of
|
|
sensibility, for it would then be without reference to an object.
|
|
And we cannot call a noumenon an object of pure thought; for the
|
|
representation thereof is but the problematical conception of an
|
|
object for a perfectly different intuition and a perfectly different
|
|
understanding from ours, both of which are consequently themselves
|
|
problematical. The conception of a noumenon is therefore not the
|
|
conception of an object, but merely a problematical conception
|
|
inseparably connected with the limitation of our sensibility. That
|
|
is to say, this conception contains the answer to the question: "Are
|
|
there objects quite unconnected with, and independent of, our
|
|
intuition?"- a question to which only an indeterminate answer can be
|
|
given. That answer is: "Inasmuch as sensuous intuition does not
|
|
apply to all things without distinction, there remains room for
|
|
other and different objects." The existence of these problematical
|
|
objects is therefore not absolutely denied, in the absence of a
|
|
determinate conception of them, but, as no category is valid in
|
|
respect of them, neither must they be admitted as objects for our
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
Understanding accordingly limits sensibility, without at the same
|
|
time enlarging its own field. While, moreover, it forbids
|
|
sensibility to apply its forms and modes to things in themselves and
|
|
restricts it to the sphere of phenomena, it cogitates an object in
|
|
itself, only, however, as a transcendental object, which is the
|
|
cause of a phenomenon (consequently not itself a phenomenon), and
|
|
which cannot be thought either as a quantity or as reality, or as
|
|
substance (because these conceptions always require sensuous forms
|
|
in which to determine an object)- an object, therefore, of which we
|
|
are quite unable to say whether it can be met with in ourselves or out
|
|
of us, whether it would be annihilated together with sensibility,
|
|
or, if this were taken away, would continue to exist. If we wish to
|
|
call this object a noumenon, because the representation of it is
|
|
non-sensuous, we are at liberty to do so. But as we can apply to it
|
|
none of the conceptions of our understanding, the representation is
|
|
for us quite void, and is available only for the indication of the
|
|
limits of our sensuous intuition, thereby leaving at the same time
|
|
an empty space, which we are competent to fill by the aid neither of
|
|
possible experience, nor of the pure understanding.
|
|
|
|
The critique of the pure understanding, accordingly, does not permit
|
|
us to create for ourselves a new field of objects beyond those which
|
|
are presented to us as phenomena, and to stray into intelligible
|
|
worlds; nay, it does not even allow us to endeavour to form so much as
|
|
a conception of them. The specious error which leads to this- and
|
|
which is a perfectly excusable one- lies in the fact that the
|
|
employment of the understanding, contrary to its proper purpose and
|
|
destination, is made transcendental, and objects, that is, possible
|
|
intuitions, are made to regulate themselves according to
|
|
conceptions, instead of the conceptions arranging themselves according
|
|
to the intuitions, on which alone their own objective validity
|
|
rests. Now the reason of this again is that apperception, and with
|
|
it thought, antecedes all possible determinate arrangement of
|
|
representations. Accordingly we think something in general and
|
|
determine it on the one hand sensuously, but, on the other,
|
|
distinguish the general and in abstracto represented object from
|
|
this particular mode of intuiting it. In this case there remains a
|
|
mode of determining the object by mere thought, which is really but
|
|
a logical form without content, which, however, seems to us to be a
|
|
mode of the existence of the object in itself (noumenon), without
|
|
regard to intuition which is limited to our senses.
|
|
|
|
Before ending this transcendental analytic, we must make an
|
|
addition, which, although in itself of no particular importance, seems
|
|
to be necessary to the completeness of the system. The highest
|
|
conception, with which a transcendental philosophy commonly begins, is
|
|
the division into possible and impossible. But as all division
|
|
presupposes a divided conception, a still higher one must exist, and
|
|
this is the conception of an object in general- problematically
|
|
understood and without its being decided whether it is something or
|
|
nothing. As the categories are the only conceptions which apply to
|
|
objects in general, the distinguishing of an object, whether it is
|
|
something or nothing, must proceed according to the order and
|
|
direction of the categories.
|
|
|
|
1. To the categories of quantity, that is, the conceptions of all,
|
|
many, and one, the conception which annihilates all, that is, the
|
|
conception of none, is opposed. And thus the object of a conception,
|
|
to which no intuition can be found to correspond, is = nothing. That
|
|
is, it is a conception without an object (ens rationis), like noumena,
|
|
which cannot be considered possible in the sphere of reality, though
|
|
they must not therefore be held to be impossible- or like certain
|
|
new fundamental forces in matter, the existence of which is
|
|
cogitable without contradiction, though, as examples from experience
|
|
are not forthcoming, they must not be regarded as possible.
|
|
|
|
2. Reality is something; negation is nothing, that is, a
|
|
conception of the absence of an object, as cold, a shadow (nihil
|
|
privativum).
|
|
|
|
3. The mere form of intuition, without substance, is in itself no
|
|
object, but the merely formal condition of an object (as
|
|
phenomenon), as pure space and pure time. These are certainly
|
|
something, as forms of intuition, but are not themselves objects which
|
|
are intuited (ens imaginarium).
|
|
|
|
4. The object of a conception which is self-contradictory, is
|
|
nothing, because the conception is nothing- is impossible, as a figure
|
|
composed of two straight lines (nihil negativum).
|
|
|
|
The table of this division of the conception of nothing (the
|
|
corresponding division of the conception of something does not require
|
|
special description) must therefore be arranged as follows:
|
|
|
|
NOTHING
|
|
|
|
AS
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
As Empty Conception
|
|
|
|
without object,
|
|
|
|
ens rationis
|
|
|
|
2 3
|
|
|
|
Empty object of Empty intuition
|
|
|
|
a conception, without object,
|
|
|
|
nihil privativum ens imaginarium
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
Empty object
|
|
|
|
without conception,
|
|
|
|
nihil negativum
|
|
|
|
We see that the ens rationis is distinguished from the nihil
|
|
negativum or pure nothing by the consideration that the former must
|
|
not be reckoned among possibilities, because it is a mere fiction-
|
|
though not self-contradictory, while the latter is completely
|
|
opposed to all possibility, inasmuch as the conception annihilates
|
|
itself. Both, however, are empty conceptions. On the other hand,
|
|
the nihil privativum and ens imaginarium are empty data for
|
|
conceptions. If light be not given to the senses, we cannot
|
|
represent to ourselves darkness, and if extended objects are not
|
|
perceived, we cannot represent space. Neither the negation, nor the
|
|
mere form of intuition can, without something real, be an object.
|
|
INTRO
|
|
|
|
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC. SECOND DIVISION.
|
|
|
|
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC. INTRODUCTION.
|
|
|
|
I. Of Transcendental Illusory Appearance.
|
|
|
|
We termed dialectic in general a logic of appearance. This does
|
|
not signify a doctrine of probability; for probability is truth,
|
|
only cognized upon insufficient grounds, and though the information it
|
|
gives us is imperfect, it is not therefore deceitful. Hence it must
|
|
not be separated from the analytical part of logic. Still less must
|
|
phenomenon and appearance be held to be identical. For truth or
|
|
illusory appearance does not reside in the object, in so far as it
|
|
is intuited, but in the judgement upon the object, in so far as it
|
|
is thought. It is, therefore, quite correct to say that the senses
|
|
do not err, not because they always judge correctly, but because
|
|
they do not judge at all. Hence truth and error, consequently also,
|
|
illusory appearance as the cause of error, are only to be found in a
|
|
judgement, that is, in the relation of an object to our understanding.
|
|
In a cognition which completely harmonizes with the laws of the
|
|
understanding, no error can exist. In a representation of the
|
|
senses- as not containing any judgement- there is also no error. But
|
|
no power of nature can of itself deviate from its own laws. Hence
|
|
neither the understanding per se (without the influence of another
|
|
cause), nor the senses per se, would fall into error; the former could
|
|
not, because, if it acts only according to its own laws, the effect
|
|
(the judgement) must necessarily accord with these laws. But in
|
|
accordance with the laws of the understanding consists the formal
|
|
element in all truth. In the senses there is no judgement- neither a
|
|
true nor a false one. But, as we have no source of cognition besides
|
|
these two, it follows that error is caused solely by the unobserved
|
|
influence of the sensibility upon the understanding. And thus it
|
|
happens that the subjective grounds of a judgement and are
|
|
confounded with the objective, and cause them to deviate from their
|
|
proper determination,* just as a body in motion would always of itself
|
|
proceed in a straight line, but if another impetus gives to it a
|
|
different direction, it will then start off into a curvilinear line of
|
|
motion. To distinguish the peculiar action of the understanding from
|
|
the power which mingles with it, it is necessary to consider an
|
|
erroneous judgement as the diagonal between two forces, that determine
|
|
the judgement in two different directions, which, as it were, form
|
|
an angle, and to resolve this composite operation into the simple ones
|
|
of the understanding and the sensibility. In pure a priori
|
|
judgements this must be done by means of transcendental reflection,
|
|
whereby, as has been already shown, each representation has its
|
|
place appointed in the corresponding faculty of cognition, and
|
|
consequently the influence of the one faculty upon the other is made
|
|
apparent.
|
|
|
|
*Sensibility, subjected to the understanding, as the object upon
|
|
which the understanding employs its functions, is the source of real
|
|
cognitions. But, in so far as it exercises an influence upon the
|
|
action of the understanding and determines it to judgement,
|
|
sensibility is itself the cause of error.
|
|
|
|
It is not at present our business to treat of empirical illusory
|
|
appearance (for example, optical illusion), which occurs in the
|
|
empirical application of otherwise correct rules of the understanding,
|
|
and in which the judgement is misled by the influence of
|
|
imagination. Our purpose is to speak of transcendental illusory
|
|
appearance, which influences principles- that are not even applied
|
|
to experience, for in this case we should possess a sure test of their
|
|
correctness- but which leads us, in disregard of all the warnings of
|
|
criticism, completely beyond the empirical employment of the
|
|
categories and deludes us with the chimera of an extension of the
|
|
sphere of the pure understanding. We shall term those principles the
|
|
application of which is confined entirely within the limits of
|
|
possible experience, immanent; those, on the other hand, which
|
|
transgress these limits, we shall call transcendent principles. But by
|
|
these latter I do not understand principles of the transcendental
|
|
use or misuse of the categories, which is in reality a mere fault of
|
|
the judgement when not under due restraint from criticism, and
|
|
therefore not paying sufficient attention to the limits of the
|
|
sphere in which the pure understanding is allowed to exercise its
|
|
functions; but real principles which exhort us to break down all those
|
|
barriers, and to lay claim to a perfectly new field of cognition,
|
|
which recognizes no line of demarcation. Thus transcendental and
|
|
transcendent are not identical terms. The principles of the pure
|
|
understanding, which we have already propounded, ought to be of
|
|
empirical and not of transcendental use, that is, they are not
|
|
applicable to any object beyond the sphere of experience. A
|
|
principle which removes these limits, nay, which authorizes us to
|
|
overstep them, is called transcendent. If our criticism can succeed in
|
|
exposing the illusion in these pretended principles, those which are
|
|
limited in their employment to the sphere of experience may be called,
|
|
in opposition to the others, immanent principles of the pure
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
Logical illusion, which consists merely in the imitation of the form
|
|
of reason (the illusion in sophistical syllogisms), arises entirely
|
|
from a want of due attention to logical rules. So soon as the
|
|
attention is awakened to the case before us, this illusion totally
|
|
disappears. Transcendental illusion, on the contrary, does not cease
|
|
to exist, even after it has been exposed, and its nothingness
|
|
clearly perceived by means of transcendental criticism. Take, for
|
|
example, the illusion in the proposition: "The world must have a
|
|
beginning in time." The cause of this is as follows. In our reason,
|
|
subjectively considered as a faculty of human cognition, there exist
|
|
fundamental rules and maxims of its exercise, which have completely
|
|
the appearance of objective principles. Now from this cause it happens
|
|
that the subjective necessity of a certain connection of our
|
|
conceptions, is regarded as an objective necessity of the
|
|
determination of things in themselves. This illusion it is
|
|
impossible to avoid, just as we cannot avoid perceiving that the sea
|
|
appears to be higher at a distance than it is near the shore,
|
|
because we see the former by means of higher rays than the latter, or,
|
|
which is a still stronger case, as even the astronomer cannot
|
|
prevent himself from seeing the moon larger at its rising than some
|
|
time afterwards, although he is not deceived by this illusion.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental dialectic will therefore content itself with exposing
|
|
the illusory appearance in transcendental judgements, and guarding
|
|
us against it; but to make it, as in the case of logical illusion,
|
|
entirely disappear and cease to be illusion is utterly beyond its
|
|
power. For we have here to do with a natural and unavoidable illusion,
|
|
which rests upon subjective principles and imposes these upon us as
|
|
objective, while logical dialectic, in the detection of sophisms,
|
|
has to do merely with an error in the logical consequence of the
|
|
propositions, or with an artificially constructed illusion, in
|
|
imitation of the natural error. There is, therefore, a natural and
|
|
unavoidable dialectic of pure reason- not that in which the bungler,
|
|
from want of the requisite knowledge, involves himself, nor that which
|
|
the sophist devises for the purpose of misleading, but that which is
|
|
an inseparable adjunct of human reason, and which, even after its
|
|
illusions have been exposed, does not cease to deceive, and
|
|
continually to lead reason into momentary errors, which it becomes
|
|
necessary continually to remove.
|
|
|
|
II. Of Pure Reason as the Seat of Transcendental Illusory
|
|
|
|
Appearance.
|
|
|
|
A. OF REASON IN GENERAL.
|
|
|
|
All our knowledge begins with sense, proceeds thence to
|
|
understanding, and ends with reason, beyond which nothing higher can
|
|
be discovered in the human mind for elaborating the matter of
|
|
intuition and subjecting it to the highest unity of thought. At this
|
|
stage of our inquiry it is my duty to give an explanation of this, the
|
|
highest faculty of cognition, and I confess I find myself here in some
|
|
difficulty. Of reason, as of the understanding, there is a merely
|
|
formal, that is, logical use, in which it makes abstraction of all
|
|
content of cognition; but there is also a real use, inasmuch as it
|
|
contains in itself the source of certain conceptions and principles,
|
|
which it does not borrow either from the senses or the
|
|
understanding. The former faculty has been long defined by logicians
|
|
as the faculty of mediate conclusion in contradistinction to immediate
|
|
conclusions (consequentiae immediatae); but the nature of the
|
|
latter, which itself generates conceptions, is not to be understood
|
|
from this definition. Now as a division of reason into a logical and a
|
|
transcendental faculty presents itself here, it becomes necessary to
|
|
seek for a higher conception of this source of cognition which shall
|
|
comprehend both conceptions. In this we may expect, according to the
|
|
analogy of the conceptions of the understanding, that the logical
|
|
conception will give us the key to the transcendental, and that the
|
|
table of the functions of the former will present us with the clue
|
|
to the conceptions of reason.
|
|
|
|
In the former part of our transcendental logic, we defined the
|
|
understanding to be the faculty of rules; reason may be
|
|
distinguished from understanding as the faculty of principles.
|
|
|
|
The term principle is ambiguous, and commonly signifies merely a
|
|
cognition that may be employed as a principle, although it is not in
|
|
itself, and as regards its proper origin, entitled to the distinction.
|
|
Every general proposition, even if derived from experience by the
|
|
process of induction, may serve as the major in a syllogism; but it is
|
|
not for that reason a principle. Mathematical axioms (for example,
|
|
there can be only one straight line between two points) are general
|
|
a priori cognitions, and are therefore rightly denominated principles,
|
|
relatively to the cases which can be subsumed under them. But I cannot
|
|
for this reason say that I cognize this property of a straight line
|
|
from principles- I cognize it only in pure intuition.
|
|
|
|
Cognition from principles, then, is that cognition in which I
|
|
cognize the particular in the general by means of conceptions. Thus
|
|
every syllogism is a form of the deduction of a cognition from a
|
|
principle. For the major always gives a conception, through which
|
|
everything that is subsumed under the condition thereof is cognized
|
|
according to a principle. Now as every general cognition may serve
|
|
as the major in a syllogism, and the understanding presents us with
|
|
such general a priori propositions, they may be termed principles,
|
|
in respect of their possible use.
|
|
|
|
But if we consider these principles of the pure understanding in
|
|
relation to their origin, we shall find them to be anything rather
|
|
than cognitions from conceptions. For they would not even be
|
|
possible a priori, if we could not rely on the assistance of pure
|
|
intuition (in mathematics), or on that of the conditions of a possible
|
|
experience. That everything that happens has a cause, cannot be
|
|
concluded from the general conception of that which happens; on the
|
|
contrary the principle of causality instructs us as to the mode of
|
|
obtaining from that which happens a determinate empirical conception.
|
|
|
|
Synthetical cognitions from conceptions the understanding cannot
|
|
supply, and they alone are entitled to be called principles. At the
|
|
same time, all general propositions may be termed comparative
|
|
principles.
|
|
|
|
It has been a long-cherished wish- that (who knows how late), may
|
|
one day, be happily accomplished- that the principles of the endless
|
|
variety of civil laws should be investigated and exposed; for in
|
|
this way alone can we find the secret of simplifying legislation.
|
|
But in this case, laws are nothing more than limitations of our
|
|
freedom upon conditions under which it subsists in perfect harmony
|
|
with itself; they consequently have for their object that which is
|
|
completely our own work, and of which we ourselves may be the cause by
|
|
means of these conceptions. But how objects as things in themselves-
|
|
how the nature of things is subordinated to principles and is to be
|
|
determined. according to conceptions, is a question which it seems
|
|
well nigh impossible to answer. Be this, however, as it may- for on
|
|
this point our investigation is yet to be made- it is at least
|
|
manifest from what we have said that cognition from principles is
|
|
something very different from cognition by means of the understanding,
|
|
which may indeed precede other cognitions in the form of a
|
|
principle, but in itself- in so far as it is synthetical- is neither
|
|
based upon mere thought, nor contains a general proposition drawn from
|
|
conceptions alone shall comprehend
|
|
|
|
The understanding may be a faculty for the production of unity of
|
|
phenomena by virtue of rules; the reason is a faculty for the
|
|
production of unity of rules (of the understanding) under
|
|
principles. Reason, therefore, never applies directly to experience,
|
|
or to any sensuous object; its object is, on the contrary, the
|
|
understanding, to the manifold cognition of which it gives a unity a
|
|
priori by means of conceptions- a unity which may be called rational
|
|
unity, and which is of a nature very different from that of the
|
|
unity produced by the understanding.
|
|
|
|
The above is the general conception of the faculty of reason, in
|
|
so far as it has been possible to make it comprehensible in the
|
|
absence of examples. These will be given in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
B. OF THE LOGICAL USE OF REASON.
|
|
|
|
A distinction is commonly made between that which is immediately
|
|
cognized and that which is inferred or concluded. That in a figure
|
|
which is bounded by three straight lines there are three angles, is an
|
|
immediate cognition; but that these angles are together equal to two
|
|
right angles, is an inference or conclusion. Now, as we are constantly
|
|
employing this mode of thought and have thus become quite accustomed
|
|
to it, we no longer remark the above distinction, and, as in the
|
|
case of the so-called deceptions of sense, consider as immediately
|
|
perceived, what has really been inferred. In every reasoning or
|
|
syllogism, there is a fundamental proposition, afterwards a second
|
|
drawn from it, and finally the conclusion, which connects the truth in
|
|
the first with the truth in the second- and that infallibly. If the
|
|
judgement concluded is so contained in the first proposition that it
|
|
can be deduced from it without the meditation of a third notion, the
|
|
conclusion is called immediate (consequentia immediata); I prefer
|
|
the term conclusion of the understanding. But if, in addition to the
|
|
fundamental cognition, a second judgement is necessary for the
|
|
production of the conclusion, it is called a conclusion of the reason.
|
|
In the proposition: All men are mortal, are contained the
|
|
propositions: Some men are mortal, Nothing that is not mortal is a
|
|
man, and these are therefore immediate conclusions from the first.
|
|
On the other hand, the proposition: all the learned are mortal, is not
|
|
contained in the main proposition (for the conception of a learned man
|
|
does not occur in it), and it can be deduced from the main proposition
|
|
only by means of a mediating judgement.
|
|
|
|
In every syllogism I first cogitate a rule (the major) by means of
|
|
the understanding. In the next place I subsume a cognition under the
|
|
condition of the rule (and this is the minor) by means of the
|
|
judgement. And finally I determine my cognition by means of the
|
|
predicate of the rule (this is the conclusio), consequently, I
|
|
determine it a priori by means of the reason. The relations,
|
|
therefore, which the major proposition, as the rule, represents
|
|
between a cognition and its condition, constitute the different
|
|
kinds of syllogisms. These are just threefold- analogously with all
|
|
judgements, in so far as they differ in the mode of expressing the
|
|
relation of a cognition in the understanding- namely, categorical,
|
|
hypothetical, and disjunctive.
|
|
|
|
When as often happens, the conclusion is a judgement which may
|
|
follow from other given judgements, through which a perfectly
|
|
different object is cogitated, I endeavour to discover in the
|
|
understanding whether the assertion in this conclusion does not
|
|
stand under certain conditions according to a general rule. If I
|
|
find such a condition, and if the object mentioned in the conclusion
|
|
can be subsumed under the given condition, then this conclusion
|
|
follows from a rule which is also valid for other objects of
|
|
cognition. From this we see that reason endeavours to subject the
|
|
great variety of the cognitions of the understanding to the smallest
|
|
possible number of principles (general conditions), and thus to
|
|
produce in it the highest unity.
|
|
|
|
C. OF THE PURE USE OF REASON.
|
|
|
|
Can we isolate reason, and, if so, is it in this case a peculiar
|
|
source of conceptions and judgements which spring from it alone, and
|
|
through which it can be applied to objects; or is it merely a
|
|
subordinate faculty, whose duty it is to give a certain form to
|
|
given cognitions- a form which is called logical, and through which
|
|
the cognitions of the understanding are subordinated to each other,
|
|
and lower rules to higher (those, to wit, whose condition comprises in
|
|
its sphere the condition of the others), in so far as this can be done
|
|
by comparison? This is the question which we have at present to
|
|
answer. Manifold variety of rules and unity of principles is a
|
|
requirement of reason, for the purpose of bringing the understanding
|
|
into complete accordance with itself, just as understanding subjects
|
|
the manifold content of intuition to conceptions, and thereby
|
|
introduces connection into it. But this principle prescribes no law to
|
|
objects, and does not contain any ground of the possibility of
|
|
cognizing or of determining them as such, but is merely a subjective
|
|
law for the proper arrangement of the content of the understanding.
|
|
The purpose of this law is, by a comparison of the conceptions of
|
|
the understanding, to reduce them to the smallest possible number,
|
|
although, at the same time, it does not justify us in demanding from
|
|
objects themselves such a uniformity as might contribute to the
|
|
convenience and the enlargement of the sphere of the understanding, or
|
|
in expecting that it will itself thus receive from them objective
|
|
validity. In one word, the question is: "does reason in itself, that
|
|
is, does pure reason contain a priori synthetical principles and
|
|
rules, and what are those principles?"
|
|
|
|
The formal and logical procedure of reason in syllogisms gives us
|
|
sufficient information in regard to the ground on which the
|
|
transcendental principle of reason in its pure synthetical cognition
|
|
will rest.
|
|
|
|
1. Reason, as observed in the syllogistic process, is not applicable
|
|
to intuitions, for the purpose of subjecting them to rules- for this
|
|
is the province of the understanding with its categories- but to
|
|
conceptions and judgements. If pure reason does apply to objects and
|
|
the intuition of them, it does so not immediately, but mediately-
|
|
through the understanding and its judgements, which have a direct
|
|
relation to the senses and their intuition, for the purpose of
|
|
determining their objects. The unity of reason is therefore not the
|
|
unity of a possible experience, but is essentially different from this
|
|
unity, which is that of the understanding. That everything which
|
|
happens has a cause, is not a principle cognized and prescribed by
|
|
reason. This principle makes the unity of experience possible and
|
|
borrows nothing from reason, which, without a reference to possible
|
|
experience, could never have produced by means of mere conceptions any
|
|
such synthetical unity.
|
|
|
|
2. Reason, in its logical use, endeavours to discover the general
|
|
condition of its judgement (the conclusion), and a syllogism is itself
|
|
nothing but a judgement by means of the subsumption of its condition
|
|
under a general rule (the major). Now as this rule may itself be
|
|
subjected to the same process of reason, and thus the condition of the
|
|
condition be sought (by means of a prosyllogism) as long as the
|
|
process can be continued, it is very manifest that the peculiar
|
|
principle of reason in its logical use is to find for the
|
|
conditioned cognition of the understanding the unconditioned whereby
|
|
the unity of the former is completed.
|
|
|
|
But this logical maxim cannot be a principle of pure reason,
|
|
unless we admit that, if the conditioned is given, the whole series of
|
|
conditions subordinated to one another- a series which is consequently
|
|
itself unconditioned- is also given, that is, contained in the
|
|
object and its connection.
|
|
|
|
But this principle of pure reason is evidently synthetical; for,
|
|
analytically, the conditioned certainly relates to some condition, but
|
|
not to the unconditioned. From this principle also there must
|
|
originate different synthetical propositions, of which the pure
|
|
understanding is perfectly ignorant, for it has to do only with
|
|
objects of a possible experience, the cognition and synthesis of which
|
|
is always conditioned. The unconditioned, if it does really exist,
|
|
must be especially considered in regard to the determinations which
|
|
distinguish it from whatever is conditioned, and will thus afford us
|
|
material for many a priori synthetical propositions.
|
|
|
|
The principles resulting from this highest principle of pure
|
|
reason will, however, be transcendent in relation to phenomena, that
|
|
is to say, it will be impossible to make any adequate empirical use of
|
|
this principle. It is therefore completely different from all
|
|
principles of the understanding, the use made of which is entirely
|
|
immanent, their object and purpose being merely the possibility of
|
|
experience. Now our duty in the transcendental dialectic is as
|
|
follows. To discover whether the principle that the series of
|
|
conditions (in the synthesis of phenomena, or of thought in general)
|
|
extends to the unconditioned is objectively true, or not; what
|
|
consequences result therefrom affecting the empirical use of the
|
|
understanding, or rather whether there exists any such objectively
|
|
valid proposition of reason, and whether it is not, on the contrary, a
|
|
merely logical precept which directs us to ascend perpetually to still
|
|
higher conditions, to approach completeness in the series of them, and
|
|
thus to introduce into our cognition the highest possible unity of
|
|
reason. We must ascertain, I say, whether this requirement of reason
|
|
has not been regarded, by a misunderstanding, as a transcendental
|
|
principle of pure reason, which postulates a thorough completeness
|
|
in the series of conditions in objects themselves. We must show,
|
|
moreover, the misconceptions and illusions that intrude into
|
|
syllogisms, the major proposition of which pure reason has supplied- a
|
|
proposition which has perhaps more of the character of a petitio
|
|
than of a postulatum- and that proceed from experience upwards to
|
|
its conditions. The solution of these problems is our task in
|
|
transcendental dialectic, which we are about to expose even at its
|
|
source, that lies deep in human reason. We shall divide it into two
|
|
parts, the first of which will treat of the transcendent conceptions
|
|
of pure reason, the second of transcendent and dialectical syllogisms.
|
|
|
|
BOOK I.
|
|
|
|
OF THE CONCEPTIONS OF PURE REASON.
|
|
|
|
The conceptions of pure reason- we do not here speak of the
|
|
possibility of them- are not obtained by reflection, but by
|
|
inference or conclusion. The conceptions of understanding are also
|
|
cogitated a priori antecedently to experience, and render it possible;
|
|
but they contain nothing but the unity of reflection upon phenomena,
|
|
in so far as these must necessarily belong to a possible empirical
|
|
consciousness. Through them alone are cognition and the
|
|
determination of an object possible. It is from them, accordingly,
|
|
that we receive material for reasoning, and antecedently to them we
|
|
possess no a priori conceptions of objects from which they might be
|
|
deduced, On the other hand, the sole basis of their objective
|
|
reality consists in the necessity imposed on them, as containing the
|
|
intellectual form of all experience, of restricting their
|
|
application and influence to the sphere of experience.
|
|
|
|
But the term, conception of reason, or rational conception, itself
|
|
indicates that it does not confine itself within the limits of
|
|
experience, because its object-matter is a cognition, of which every
|
|
empirical cognition is but a part- nay, the whole of possible
|
|
experience may be itself but a part of it- a cognition to which no
|
|
actual experience ever fully attains, although it does always
|
|
pertain to it. The aim of rational conceptions is the comprehension,
|
|
as that of the conceptions of understanding is the understanding of
|
|
perceptions. If they contain the unconditioned, they relate to that to
|
|
which all experience is subordinate, but which is never itself an
|
|
object of experience- that towards which reason tends in all its
|
|
conclusions from experience, and by the standard of which it estimates
|
|
the degree of their empirical use, but which is never itself an
|
|
element in an empirical synthesis. If, notwithstanding, such
|
|
conceptions possess objective validity, they may be called conceptus
|
|
ratiocinati (conceptions legitimately concluded); in cases where
|
|
they do not, they have been admitted on account of having the
|
|
appearance of being correctly concluded, and may be called conceptus
|
|
ratiocinantes (sophistical conceptions). But as this can only be
|
|
sufficiently demonstrated in that part of our treatise which relates
|
|
to the dialectical conclusions of reason, we shall omit any
|
|
consideration of it in this place. As we called the pure conceptions
|
|
of the understanding categories, we shall also distinguish those of
|
|
pure reason by a new name and call them transcendental ideas. These
|
|
terms, however, we must in the first place explain and justify.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I - Of Ideas in General.
|
|
|
|
Despite the great wealth of words which European languages
|
|
possess, the thinker finds himself often at a loss for an expression
|
|
exactly suited to his conception, for want of which he is unable to
|
|
make himself intelligible either to others or to himself. To coin
|
|
new words is a pretension to legislation in language which is seldom
|
|
successful; and, before recourse is taken to so desperate an
|
|
expedient, it is advisable to examine the dead and learned
|
|
languages, with the hope and the probability that we may there meet
|
|
with some adequate expression of the notion we have in our minds. In
|
|
this case, even if the original meaning of the word has become
|
|
somewhat uncertain, from carelessness or want of caution on the part
|
|
of the authors of it, it is always better to adhere to and confirm its
|
|
proper meaning- even although it may be doubtful whether it was
|
|
formerly used in exactly this sense- than to make our labour vain by
|
|
want of sufficient care to render ourselves intelligible.
|
|
|
|
For this reason, when it happens that there exists only a single
|
|
word to express a certain conception, and this word, in its usual
|
|
acceptation, is thoroughly adequate to the conception, the accurate
|
|
distinction of which from related conceptions is of great
|
|
importance, we ought not to employ the expression improvidently, or,
|
|
for the sake of variety and elegance of style, use it as a synonym for
|
|
other cognate words. It is our duty, on the contrary, carefully to
|
|
preserve its peculiar signification, as otherwise it easily happens
|
|
that when the attention of the reader is no longer particularly
|
|
attracted to the expression, and it is lost amid the multitude of
|
|
other words of very different import, the thought which it conveyed,
|
|
and which it alone conveyed, is lost with it.
|
|
|
|
Plato employed the expression idea in a way that plainly showed he
|
|
meant by it something which is never derived from the senses, but
|
|
which far transcends even the conceptions of the understanding (with
|
|
which Aristotle occupied himself), inasmuch as in experience nothing
|
|
perfectly corresponding to them could be found. Ideas are, according
|
|
to him, archetypes of things themselves, and not merely keys to
|
|
possible experiences, like the categories. In his view they flow
|
|
from the highest reason, by which they have been imparted to human
|
|
reason, which, however, exists no longer in its original state, but is
|
|
obliged with great labour to recall by reminiscence- which is called
|
|
philosophy- the old but now sadly obscured ideas. I will not here
|
|
enter upon any literary investigation of the sense which this
|
|
sublime philosopher attached to this expression. I shall content
|
|
myself with remarking that it is nothing unusual, in common
|
|
conversation as well as in written works, by comparing the thoughts
|
|
which an author has delivered upon a subject, to understand him better
|
|
than he understood himself inasmuch as he may not have sufficiently
|
|
determined his conception, and thus have sometimes spoken, nay even
|
|
thought, in opposition to his own opinions.
|
|
|
|
Plato perceived very clearly that our faculty of cognition has the
|
|
feeling of a much higher vocation than that of merely spelling out
|
|
phenomena according to synthetical unity, for the purpose of being
|
|
able to read them as experience, and that our reason naturally
|
|
raises itself to cognitions far too elevated to admit of the
|
|
possibility of an object given by experience corresponding to them-
|
|
cognitions which are nevertheless real, and are not mere phantoms of
|
|
the brain.
|
|
|
|
This philosopher found his ideas especially in all that is
|
|
practical,* that is, which rests upon freedom, which in its turn ranks
|
|
under cognitions that are the peculiar product of reason. He who would
|
|
derive from experience the conceptions of virtue, who would make (as
|
|
many have really done) that, which at best can but serve as an
|
|
imperfectly illustrative example, a model for or the formation of a
|
|
perfectly adequate idea on the subject, would in fact transform virtue
|
|
into a nonentity changeable according to time and circumstance and
|
|
utterly incapable of being employed as a rule. On the contrary,
|
|
every one is conscious that, when any one is held up to him as a model
|
|
of virtue, he compares this so-called model with the true original
|
|
which he possesses in his own mind and values him according to this
|
|
standard. But this standard is the idea of virtue, in relation to
|
|
which all possible objects of experience are indeed serviceable as
|
|
examples- proofs of the practicability in a certain degree of that
|
|
which the conception of virtue demands- but certainly not as
|
|
archetypes. That the actions of man will never be in perfect
|
|
accordance with all the requirements of the pure ideas of reason, does
|
|
not prove the thought to be chimerical. For only through this idea are
|
|
all judgements as to moral merit or demerit possible; it
|
|
consequently lies at the foundation of every approach to moral
|
|
perfection, however far removed from it the obstacles in human nature-
|
|
indeterminable as to degree- may keep us.
|
|
|
|
*He certainly extended the application of his conception to
|
|
speculative cognitions also, provided they were given pure and
|
|
completely a priori, nay, even to mathematics, although this science
|
|
cannot possess an object otherwhere than in Possible experience. I
|
|
cannot follow him in this, and as little can I follow him in his
|
|
mystical deduction of these ideas, or in his hypostatization of
|
|
them; although, in truth, the elevated and exaggerated language
|
|
which he employed in describing them is quite capable of an
|
|
interpretation more subdued and more in accordance with fact and the
|
|
nature of things.
|
|
|
|
The Platonic Republic has become proverbial as an example- and a
|
|
striking one- of imaginary perfection, such as can exist only in the
|
|
brain of the idle thinker; and Brucker ridicules the philosopher for
|
|
maintaining that a prince can never govern well, unless he is
|
|
participant in the ideas. But we should do better to follow up this
|
|
thought and, where this admirable thinker leaves us without
|
|
assistance, employ new efforts to place it in clearer light, rather
|
|
than carelessly fling it aside as useless, under the very miserable
|
|
and pernicious pretext of impracticability. A constitution of the
|
|
greatest possible human freedom according to laws, by which the
|
|
liberty of every individual can consist with the liberty of every
|
|
other (not of the greatest possible happiness, for this follows
|
|
necessarily from the former), is, to say the least, a necessary
|
|
idea, which must be placed at the foundation not only of the first
|
|
plan of the constitution of a state, but of all its laws. And, in
|
|
this, it not necessary at the outset to take account of the
|
|
obstacles which lie in our way- obstacles which perhaps do not
|
|
necessarily arise from the character of human nature, but rather
|
|
from the previous neglect of true ideas in legislation. For there is
|
|
nothing more pernicious and more unworthy of a philosopher, than the
|
|
vulgar appeal to a so-called adverse experience, which indeed would
|
|
not have existed, if those institutions had been established at the
|
|
proper time and in accordance with ideas; while, instead of this,
|
|
conceptions, crude for the very reason that they have been drawn
|
|
from experience, have marred and frustrated all our better views and
|
|
intentions. The more legislation and government are in harmony with
|
|
this idea, the more rare do punishments become and thus it is quite
|
|
reasonable to maintain, as Plato did, that in a perfect state no
|
|
punishments at all would be necessary. Now although a perfect state
|
|
may never exist, the idea is not on that account the less just,
|
|
which holds up this maximum as the archetype or standard of a
|
|
constitution, in order to bring legislative government always nearer
|
|
and nearer to the greatest possible perfection. For at what precise
|
|
degree human nature must stop in its progress, and how wide must be
|
|
the chasm which must necessarily exist between the idea and its
|
|
realization, are problems which no one can or ought to determine-
|
|
and for this reason, that it is the destination of freedom to overstep
|
|
all assigned limits between itself and the idea.
|
|
|
|
But not only in that wherein human reason is a real causal agent and
|
|
where ideas are operative causes (of actions and their objects),
|
|
that is to say, in the region of ethics, but also in regard to
|
|
nature herself, Plato saw clear proofs of an origin from ideas. A
|
|
plant, and animal, the regular order of nature- probably also the
|
|
disposition of the whole universe- give manifest evidence that they
|
|
are possible only by means of and according to ideas; that, indeed, no
|
|
one creature, under the individual conditions of its existence,
|
|
perfectly harmonizes with the idea of the most perfect of its kind-
|
|
just as little as man with the idea of humanity, which nevertheless he
|
|
bears in his soul as the archetypal standard of his actions; that,
|
|
notwithstanding, these ideas are in the highest sense individually,
|
|
unchangeably, and completely determined, and are the original causes
|
|
of things; and that the totality of connected objects in the
|
|
universe is alone fully adequate to that idea. Setting aside the
|
|
exaggerations of expression in the writings of this philosopher, the
|
|
mental power exhibited in this ascent from the ectypal mode of
|
|
regarding the physical world to the architectonic connection thereof
|
|
according to ends, that is, ideas, is an effort which deserves
|
|
imitation and claims respect. But as regards the principles of ethics,
|
|
of legislation, and of religion, spheres in which ideas alone render
|
|
experience possible, although they never attain to full expression
|
|
therein, he has vindicated for himself a position of peculiar merit,
|
|
which is not appreciated only because it is judged by the very
|
|
empirical rules, the validity of which as principles is destroyed by
|
|
ideas. For as regards nature, experience presents us with rules and is
|
|
the source of truth, but in relation to ethical laws experience is the
|
|
parent of illusion, and it is in the highest degree reprehensible to
|
|
limit or to deduce the laws which dictate what I ought to do, from
|
|
what is done.
|
|
|
|
We must, however, omit the consideration of these important
|
|
subjects, the development of which is in reality the peculiar duty and
|
|
dignity of philosophy, and confine ourselves for the present to the
|
|
more humble but not less useful task of preparing a firm foundation
|
|
for those majestic edifices of moral science. For this foundation
|
|
has been hitherto insecure from the many subterranean passages which
|
|
reason in its confident but vain search for treasures has made in
|
|
all directions. Our present duty is to make ourselves perfectly
|
|
acquainted with the transcendental use made of pure reason, its
|
|
principles and ideas, that we may be able properly to determine and
|
|
value its influence and real worth. But before bringing these
|
|
introductory remarks to a close, I beg those who really have
|
|
philosophy at heart- and their number is but small- if they shall find
|
|
themselves convinced by the considerations following as well as by
|
|
those above, to exert themselves to preserve to the expression idea
|
|
its original signification, and to take care that it be not lost among
|
|
those other expressions by which all sorts of representations are
|
|
loosely designated- that the interests of science may not thereby
|
|
suffer. We are in no want of words to denominate adequately every mode
|
|
of representation, without the necessity of encroaching upon terms
|
|
which are proper to others. The following is a graduated list of them.
|
|
The genus is representation in general (representation. Under it
|
|
stands representation with consciousness (perceptio). A perception
|
|
which relates solely to the subject as a modification of its state, is
|
|
a sensation (sensatio), an objective perception is a cognition
|
|
(cognitio). A cognition is either an intuition or a conception
|
|
(intuitus vel conceptus). The former has an immediate relation to
|
|
the object and is singular and individual; the latter has but a
|
|
mediate relation, by means of a characteristic mark which may be
|
|
common to several things. A conception is either empirical or pure.
|
|
A pure conception, in so far as it has its origin in the understanding
|
|
alone, and is not the conception of a pure sensuous image, is called
|
|
notio. A conception formed from notions, which transcends the
|
|
possibility of experience, is an idea, or a conception of reason. To
|
|
one who has accustomed himself to these distinctions, it must be quite
|
|
intolerable to hear the representation of the colour red called an
|
|
idea. It ought not even to be called a notion or conception of
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Of Transcendental Ideas.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental analytic showed us how the mere logical form of our
|
|
cognition can contain the origin of pure conceptions a priori,
|
|
conceptions which represent objects antecedently to all experience, or
|
|
rather, indicate the synthetical unity which alone renders possible an
|
|
empirical cognition of objects. The form of judgements- converted into
|
|
a conception of the synthesis of intuitions- produced the categories
|
|
which direct the employment of the understanding in experience. This
|
|
consideration warrants us to expect that the form of syllogisms,
|
|
when applied to synthetical unity of intuitions, following the rule of
|
|
the categories, will contain the origin of particular a priori
|
|
conceptions, which we may call pure conceptions of reason or
|
|
transcendental ideas, and which will determine the use of the
|
|
understanding in the totality of experience according to principles.
|
|
|
|
The function of reason in arguments consists in the universality
|
|
of a cognition according to conceptions, and the syllogism itself is a
|
|
judgement which is determined a priori in the whole extent of its
|
|
condition. The proposition: "Caius is mortal," is one which may be
|
|
obtained from experience by the aid of the understanding alone; but my
|
|
wish is to find a conception which contains the condition under
|
|
which the predicate of this judgement is given- in this case, the
|
|
conception of man- and after subsuming under this condition, taken
|
|
in its whole extent (all men are mortal), I determine according to
|
|
it the cognition of the object thought, and say: "Caius is mortal."
|
|
|
|
Hence, in the conclusion of a syllogism we restrict a predicate to a
|
|
certain object, after having thought it in the major in its whole
|
|
extent under a certain condition. This complete quantity of the extent
|
|
in relation to such a condition is called universality
|
|
(universalitas). To this corresponds totality (universitas) of
|
|
conditions in the synthesis of intuitions. The transcendental
|
|
conception of reason is therefore nothing else than the conception
|
|
of the totality of the conditions of a given conditioned. Now as the
|
|
unconditioned alone renders possible totality of conditions, and,
|
|
conversely, the totality of conditions is itself always unconditioned;
|
|
a pure rational conception in general can be defined and explained
|
|
by means of the conception of the unconditioned, in so far as it
|
|
contains a basis for the synthesis of the conditioned.
|
|
|
|
To the number of modes of relation which the understanding cogitates
|
|
by means of the categories, the number of pure rational conceptions
|
|
will correspond. We must therefore seek for, first, an unconditioned
|
|
of the categorical synthesis in a subject; secondly, of the
|
|
hypothetical synthesis of the members of a series; thirdly, of the
|
|
disjunctive synthesis of parts in a system.
|
|
|
|
There are exactly the same number of modes of syllogisms, each of
|
|
which proceeds through prosyllogisms to the unconditioned- one to
|
|
the subject which cannot be employed as predicate, another to the
|
|
presupposition which supposes nothing higher than itself, and the
|
|
third to an aggregate of the members of the complete division of a
|
|
conception. Hence the pure rational conceptions of totality in the
|
|
synthesis of conditions have a necessary foundation in the nature of
|
|
human reason- at least as modes of elevating the unity of the
|
|
understanding to the unconditioned. They may have no valid
|
|
application, corresponding to their transcendental employment, in
|
|
concreto, and be thus of no greater utility than to direct the
|
|
understanding how, while extending them as widely as possible, to
|
|
maintain its exercise and application in perfect consistence and
|
|
harmony.
|
|
|
|
But, while speaking here of the totality of conditions and of the
|
|
unconditioned as the common title of all conceptions of reason, we
|
|
again light upon an expression which we find it impossible to dispense
|
|
with, and which nevertheless, owing to the ambiguity attaching to it
|
|
from long abuse, we cannot employ with safety. The word absolute is
|
|
one of the few words which, in its original signification, was
|
|
perfectly adequate to the conception it was intended to convey- a
|
|
conception which no other word in the same language exactly suits, and
|
|
the loss- or, which is the same thing, the incautious and loose
|
|
employment- of which must be followed by the loss of the conception
|
|
itself. And, as it is a conception which occupies much of the
|
|
attention of reason, its loss would be greatly to the detriment of all
|
|
transcendental philosophy. The word absolute is at present
|
|
frequently used to denote that something can be predicated of a
|
|
thing considered in itself and intrinsically. In this sense absolutely
|
|
possible would signify that which is possible in itself (interne)-
|
|
which is, in fact, the least that one can predicate of an object. On
|
|
the other hand, it is sometimes employed to indicate that a thing is
|
|
valid in all respects- for example, absolute sovereignty. Absolutely
|
|
possible would in this sense signify that which is possible in all
|
|
relations and in every respect; and this is the most that can be
|
|
predicated of the possibility of a thing. Now these significations
|
|
do in truth frequently coincide. Thus, for example, that which is
|
|
intrinsically impossible, is also impossible in all relations, that
|
|
is, absolutely impossible. But in most cases they differ from each
|
|
other toto caelo, and I can by no means conclude that, because a thing
|
|
is in itself possible, it is also possible in all relations, and
|
|
therefore absolutely. Nay, more, I shall in the sequel show that
|
|
absolute necessity does not by any means depend on internal necessity,
|
|
and that, therefore, it must not be considered as synonymous with
|
|
it. Of an opposite which is intrinsically impossible, we may affirm
|
|
that it is in all respects impossible, and that, consequently, the
|
|
thing itself, of which this is the opposite, is absolutely
|
|
necessary; but I cannot reason conversely and say, the opposite of
|
|
that which is absolutely necessary is intrinsically impossible, that
|
|
is, that the absolute necessity of things is an internal necessity.
|
|
For this internal necessity is in certain cases a mere empty word with
|
|
which the least conception cannot be connected, while the conception
|
|
of the necessity of a thing in all relations possesses very peculiar
|
|
determinations. Now as the loss of a conception of great utility in
|
|
speculative science cannot be a matter of indifference to the
|
|
philosopher, I trust that the proper determination and careful
|
|
preservation of the expression on which the conception depends will
|
|
likewise be not indifferent to him.
|
|
|
|
In this enlarged signification, then, shall I employ the word
|
|
absolute, in opposition to that which is valid only in some particular
|
|
respect; for the latter is restricted by conditions, the former is
|
|
valid without any restriction whatever.
|
|
|
|
Now the transcendental conception of reason has for its object
|
|
nothing else than absolute totality in the synthesis of conditions and
|
|
does not rest satisfied till it has attained to the absolutely, that
|
|
is, in all respects and relations, unconditioned. For pure reason
|
|
leaves to the understanding everything that immediately relates to the
|
|
object of intuition or rather to their synthesis in imagination. The
|
|
former restricts itself to the absolute totality in the employment
|
|
of the conceptions of the understanding and aims at carrying out the
|
|
synthetical unity which is cogitated in the category, even to the
|
|
unconditioned. This unity may hence be called the rational unity of
|
|
phenomena, as the other, which the category expresses, may be termed
|
|
the unity of the understanding. Reason, therefore, has an immediate
|
|
relation to the use of the understanding, not indeed in so far as
|
|
the latter contains the ground of possible experience (for the
|
|
conception of the absolute totality of conditions is not a
|
|
conception that can be employed in experience, because no experience
|
|
is unconditioned), but solely for the purpose of directing it to a
|
|
certain unity, of which the understanding has no conception, and the
|
|
aim of which is to collect into an absolute whole all acts of the
|
|
understanding. Hence the objective employment of the pure
|
|
conceptions of reason is always transcendent, while that of the pure
|
|
conceptions of the understanding must, according to their nature, be
|
|
always immanent, inasmuch as they are limited to possible experience.
|
|
|
|
I understand by idea a necessary conception of reason, to which no
|
|
corresponding object can be discovered in the world of sense.
|
|
Accordingly, the pure conceptions of reason at present under
|
|
consideration are transcendental ideas. They are conceptions of pure
|
|
reason, for they regard all empirical cognition as determined by means
|
|
of an absolute totality of conditions. They are not mere fictions, but
|
|
natural and necessary products of reason, and have hence a necessary
|
|
relation to the whole sphere of the exercise of the understanding.
|
|
And, finally, they are transcendent, and overstep the limits of all
|
|
experiences, in which, consequently, no object can ever be presented
|
|
that would be perfectly adequate to a transcendental idea. When we use
|
|
the word idea, we say, as regards its object (an object of the pure
|
|
understanding), a great deal, but as regards its subject (that is,
|
|
in respect of its reality under conditions of experience), exceedingly
|
|
little, because the idea, as the conception of a maximum, can never be
|
|
completely and adequately presented in concreto. Now, as in the merely
|
|
speculative employment of reason the latter is properly the sole
|
|
aim, and as in this case the approximation to a conception, which is
|
|
never attained in practice, is the same thing as if the conception
|
|
were non-existent- it is commonly said of the conception of this kind,
|
|
"it is only an idea." So we might very well say, "the absolute
|
|
totality of all phenomena is only an idea," for, as we never can
|
|
present an adequate representation of it, it remains for us a
|
|
problem incapable of solution. On the other hand, as in the
|
|
practical use of the understanding we have only to do with action
|
|
and practice according to rules, an idea of pure reason can always
|
|
be given really in concreto, although only partially, nay, it is the
|
|
indispensable condition of all practical employment of reason. The
|
|
practice or execution of the idea is always limited and defective, but
|
|
nevertheless within indeterminable boundaries, consequently always
|
|
under the influence of the conception of an absolute perfection. And
|
|
thus the practical idea is always in the highest degree fruitful,
|
|
and in relation to real actions indispensably necessary. In the
|
|
idea, pure reason possesses even causality and the power of
|
|
producing that which its conception contains. Hence we cannot say of
|
|
wisdom, in a disparaging way, "it is only an idea." For, for the
|
|
very reason that it is the idea of the necessary unity of all possible
|
|
aims, it must be for all practical exertions and endeavours the
|
|
primitive condition and rule- a rule which, if not constitutive, is at
|
|
least limitative.
|
|
|
|
Now, although we must say of the transcendental conceptions of
|
|
reason, "they are only ideas," we must not, on this account, look upon
|
|
them as superfluous and nugatory. For, although no object can be
|
|
determined by them, they can be of great utility, unobserved and at
|
|
the basis of the edifice of the understanding, as the canon for its
|
|
extended and self-consistent exercise- a canon which, indeed, does not
|
|
enable it to cognize more in an object than it would cognize by the
|
|
help of its own conceptions, but which guides it more securely in
|
|
its cognition. Not to mention that they perhaps render possible a
|
|
transition from our conceptions of nature and the non-ego to the
|
|
practical conceptions, and thus produce for even ethical ideas
|
|
keeping, so to speak, and connection with the speculative cognitions
|
|
of reason. The explication of all this must be looked for in the
|
|
sequel.
|
|
|
|
But setting aside, in conformity with our original purpose, the
|
|
consideration of the practical ideas, we proceed to contemplate reason
|
|
in its speculative use alone, nay, in a still more restricted
|
|
sphere, to wit, in the transcendental use; and here must strike into
|
|
the same path which we followed in our deduction of the categories.
|
|
That is to say, we shall consider the logical form of the cognition of
|
|
reason, that we may see whether reason may not be thereby a source
|
|
of conceptions which enables us to regard objects in themselves as
|
|
determined synthetically a priori, in relation to one or other of
|
|
the functions of reason.
|
|
|
|
Reason, considered as the faculty of a certain logical form of
|
|
cognition, is the faculty of conclusion, that is, of mediate
|
|
judgement- by means of the subsumption of the condition of a
|
|
possible judgement under the condition of a given judgement. The given
|
|
judgement is the general rule (major). The subsumption of the
|
|
condition of another possible judgement under the condition of the
|
|
rule is the minor. The actual judgement, which enounces the
|
|
assertion of the rule in the subsumed case, is the conclusion
|
|
(conclusio). The rule predicates something generally under a certain
|
|
condition. The condition of the rule is satisfied in some particular
|
|
case. It follows that what was valid in general under that condition
|
|
must also be considered as valid in the particular case which
|
|
satisfies this condition. It is very plain that reason attains to a
|
|
cognition, by means of acts of the understanding which constitute a
|
|
series of conditions. When I arrive at the proposition, "All bodies
|
|
are changeable," by beginning with the more remote cognition (in which
|
|
the conception of body does not appear, but which nevertheless
|
|
contains the condition of that conception), "All compound is
|
|
changeable," by proceeding from this to a less remote cognition, which
|
|
stands under the condition of the former, "Bodies are compound," and
|
|
hence to a third, which at length connects for me the remote cognition
|
|
(changeable) with the one before me, "Consequently, bodies are
|
|
changeable"- I have arrived at a cognition (conclusion) through a
|
|
series of conditions (premisses). Now every series, whose exponent (of
|
|
the categorical or hypothetical judgement) is given, can be continued;
|
|
consequently the same procedure of reason conducts us to the
|
|
ratiocinatio polysyllogistica, which is a series of syllogisms, that
|
|
can be continued either on the side of the conditions (per
|
|
prosyllogismos) or of the conditioned (per episyllogismos) to an
|
|
indefinite extent.
|
|
|
|
But we very soon perceive that the chain or series of prosyllogisms,
|
|
that is, of deduced cognitions on the side of the grounds or
|
|
conditions of a given cognition, in other words, the ascending
|
|
series of syllogisms must have a very different relation to the
|
|
faculty of reason from that of the descending series, that is, the
|
|
progressive procedure of reason on the side of the conditioned by
|
|
means of episyllogisms. For, as in the former case the cognition
|
|
(conclusio) is given only as conditioned, reason can attain to this
|
|
cognition only under the presupposition that all the members of the
|
|
series on the side of the conditions are given (totality in the series
|
|
of premisses), because only under this supposition is the judgement we
|
|
may be considering possible a priori; while on the side of the
|
|
conditioned or the inferences, only an incomplete and becoming, and
|
|
not a presupposed or given series, consequently only a potential
|
|
progression, is cogitated. Hence, when a cognition is contemplated
|
|
as conditioned, reason is compelled to consider the series of
|
|
conditions in an ascending line as completed and given in their
|
|
totality. But if the very same condition is considered at the same
|
|
time as the condition of other cognitions, which together constitute a
|
|
series of inferences or consequences in a descending line, reason
|
|
may preserve a perfect indifference, as to how far this progression
|
|
may extend a parte posteriori, and whether the totality of this series
|
|
is possible, because it stands in no need of such a series for the
|
|
purpose of arriving at the conclusion before it, inasmuch as this
|
|
conclusion is sufficiently guaranteed and determined on grounds a
|
|
parte priori. It may be the case, that upon the side of the conditions
|
|
the series of premisses has a first or highest condition, or it may
|
|
not possess this, and so be a parte priori unlimited; but it must,
|
|
nevertheless, contain totality of conditions, even admitting that we
|
|
never could succeed in completely apprehending it; and the whole
|
|
series must be unconditionally true, if the conditioned, which is
|
|
considered as an inference resulting from it, is to be held as true.
|
|
This is a requirement of reason, which announces its cognition as
|
|
determined a priori and as necessary, either in itself- and in this
|
|
case it needs no grounds to rest upon- or, if it is deduced, as a
|
|
member of a series of grounds, which is itself unconditionally true.
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. System of Transcendental Ideas.
|
|
|
|
We are not at present engaged with a logical dialectic, which
|
|
makes complete abstraction of the content of cognition and aims only
|
|
at unveiling the illusory appearance in the form of syllogisms. Our
|
|
subject is transcendental dialectic, which must contain, completely
|
|
a priori, the origin of certain cognitions drawn from pure reason, and
|
|
the origin of certain deduced conceptions, the object of which
|
|
cannot be given empirically and which therefore lie beyond the
|
|
sphere of the faculty of understanding. We have observed, from the
|
|
natural relation which the transcendental use of our cognition, in
|
|
syllogisms as well as in judgements, must have to the logical, that
|
|
there are three kinds of dialectical arguments, corresponding to the
|
|
three modes of conclusion, by which reason attains to cognitions on
|
|
principles; and that in all it is the business of reason to ascend
|
|
from the conditioned synthesis, beyond which the understanding never
|
|
proceeds, to the unconditioned which the understanding never can
|
|
reach.
|
|
|
|
Now the most general relations which can exist in our
|
|
representations are: 1st, the relation to the subject; 2nd, the
|
|
relation to objects, either as phenomena, or as objects of thought
|
|
in general. If we connect this subdivision with the main division, all
|
|
the relations of our representations, of which we can form either a
|
|
conception or an idea, are threefold: 1. The relation to the
|
|
subject; 2. The relation to the manifold of the object as a
|
|
phenomenon; 3. The relation to all things in general.
|
|
|
|
Now all pure conceptions have to do in general with the
|
|
synthetical unity of representations; conceptions of pure reason
|
|
(transcendental ideas), on the other hand, with the unconditional
|
|
synthetical unity of all conditions. It follows that all
|
|
transcendental ideas arrange themselves in three classes, the first of
|
|
which contains the absolute (unconditioned) unity of the thinking
|
|
subject, the second the absolute unity of the series of the conditions
|
|
of a phenomenon, the third the absolute unity of the condition of
|
|
all objects of thought in general.
|
|
|
|
The thinking subject is the object-matter of Psychology; the sum
|
|
total of all phenomena (the world) is the object-matter of
|
|
Cosmology; and the thing which contains the highest condition of the
|
|
possibility of all that is cogitable (the being of all beings) is
|
|
the object-matter of all Theology. Thus pure reason presents us with
|
|
the idea of a transcendental doctrine of the soul (psychologia
|
|
rationalis), of a transcendental science of the world (cosmologia
|
|
rationalis), and finally of a transcendental doctrine of God
|
|
(theologia transcendentalis). Understanding cannot originate even
|
|
the outline of any of these sciences, even when connected with the
|
|
highest logical use of reason, that is, all cogitable syllogisms-
|
|
for the purpose of proceeding from one object (phenomenon) to all
|
|
others, even to the utmost limits of the empirical synthesis. They
|
|
are, on the contrary, pure and genuine products, or problems, of
|
|
pure reason.
|
|
|
|
What modi of the pure conceptions of reason these transcendental
|
|
ideas are will be fully exposed in the following chapter. They
|
|
follow the guiding thread of the categories. For pure reason never
|
|
relates immediately to objects, but to the conceptions of these
|
|
contained in the understanding. In like manner, it will be made
|
|
manifest in the detailed explanation of these ideas- how reason,
|
|
merely through the synthetical use of the same function which it
|
|
employs in a categorical syllogism, necessarily attains to the
|
|
conception of the absolute unity of the thinking subject- how the
|
|
logical procedure in hypothetical ideas necessarily produces the
|
|
idea of the absolutely unconditioned in a series of given
|
|
conditions, and finally- how the mere form of the disjunctive
|
|
syllogism involves the highest conception of a being of all beings:
|
|
a thought which at first sight seems in the highest degree
|
|
paradoxical.
|
|
|
|
An objective deduction, such as we were able to present in the
|
|
case of the categories, is impossible as regards these
|
|
transcendental ideas. For they have, in truth, no relation to any
|
|
object, in experience, for the very reason that they are only ideas.
|
|
But a subjective deduction of them from the nature of our reason is
|
|
possible, and has been given in the present chapter.
|
|
|
|
It is easy to perceive that the sole aim of pure reason is the
|
|
absolute totality of the synthesis on the side of the conditions,
|
|
and that it does not concern itself with the absolute completeness
|
|
on the Part of the conditioned. For of the former alone does she stand
|
|
in need, in order to preposit the whole series of conditions, and thus
|
|
present them to the understanding a priori. But if we once have a
|
|
completely (and unconditionally) given condition, there is no
|
|
further necessity, in proceeding with the series, for a conception
|
|
of reason; for the understanding takes of itself every step
|
|
downward, from the condition to the conditioned. Thus the
|
|
transcendental ideas are available only for ascending in the series of
|
|
conditions, till we reach the unconditioned, that is, principles. As
|
|
regards descending to the conditioned, on the other hand, we find that
|
|
there is a widely extensive logical use which reason makes of the laws
|
|
of the understanding, but that a transcendental use thereof is
|
|
impossible; and that when we form an idea of the absolute totality
|
|
of such a synthesis, for example, of the whole series of all future
|
|
changes in the world, this idea is a mere ens rationis, an arbitrary
|
|
fiction of thought, and not a necessary presupposition of reason.
|
|
For the possibility of the conditioned presupposes the totality of its
|
|
conditions, but not of its consequences. Consequently, this conception
|
|
is not a transcendental idea- and it is with these alone that we are
|
|
at present occupied.
|
|
|
|
Finally, it is obvious that there exists among the transcendental
|
|
ideas a certain connection and unity, and that pure reason, by means
|
|
of them, collects all its cognitions into one system. From the
|
|
cognition of self to the cognition of the world, and through these
|
|
to the supreme being, the progression is so natural, that it seems
|
|
to resemble the logical march of reason from the premisses to the
|
|
conclusion.* Now whether there lies unobserved at the foundation of
|
|
these ideas an analogy of the same kind as exists between the
|
|
logical and transcendental procedure of reason, is another of those
|
|
questions, the answer to which we must not expect till we arrive at
|
|
a more advanced stage in our inquiries. In this cursory and
|
|
preliminary view, we have, meanwhile, reached our aim. For we have
|
|
dispelled the ambiguity which attached to the transcendental
|
|
conceptions of reason, from their being commonly mixed up with other
|
|
conceptions in the systems of philosophers, and not properly
|
|
distinguished from the conceptions of the understanding; we have
|
|
exposed their origin and, thereby, at the same time their
|
|
determinate number, and presented them in a systematic connection, and
|
|
have thus marked out and enclosed a definite sphere for pure reason.
|
|
|
|
*The science of Metaphysics has for the proper object of its
|
|
inquiries only three grand ideas: GOD, FREEDOM, and IMMORTALITY, and
|
|
it aims at showing, that the second conception, conjoined with the
|
|
first, must lead to the third, as a necessary conclusion. All the
|
|
other subjects with which it occupies itself, are merely means for the
|
|
attainment and realization of these ideas. It does not require these
|
|
ideas for the construction of a science of nature, but, on the
|
|
contrary, for the purpose of passing beyond the sphere of nature. A
|
|
complete insight into and comprehension of them would render Theology,
|
|
Ethics, and, through the conjunction of both, Religion, solely
|
|
dependent on the speculative faculty of reason. In a systematic
|
|
representation of these ideas the above-mentioned arrangement- the
|
|
synthetical one- would be the most suitable; but in the
|
|
investigation which must necessarily precede it, the analytical, which
|
|
reverses this arrangement, would be better adapted to our purpose,
|
|
as in it we should proceed from that which experience immediately
|
|
presents to us- psychology, to cosmology, and thence to theology.
|
|
|
|
BOOK II.
|
|
|
|
OF THE DIALECTICAL PROCEDURE OF PURE REASON.
|
|
|
|
It may be said that the object of a merely transcendental idea is
|
|
something of which we have no conception, although the idea may be a
|
|
necessary product of reason according to its original laws. For, in
|
|
fact, a conception of an object that is adequate to the idea given
|
|
by reason, is impossible. For such an object must be capable of
|
|
being presented and intuited in a Possible experience. But we should
|
|
express our meaning better, and with less risk of being misunderstood,
|
|
if we said that we can have no knowledge of an object, which perfectly
|
|
corresponds to an idea, although we may possess a problematical
|
|
conception thereof.
|
|
|
|
Now the transcendental (subjective) reality at least of the pure
|
|
conceptions of reason rests upon the fact that we are led to such
|
|
ideas by a necessary procedure of reason. There must therefore be
|
|
syllogisms which contain no empirical premisses, and by means of which
|
|
we conclude from something that we do know, to something of which we
|
|
do not even possess a conception, to which we, nevertheless, by an
|
|
unavoidable illusion, ascribe objective reality. Such arguments are,
|
|
as regards their result, rather to be termed sophisms than syllogisms,
|
|
although indeed, as regards their origin, they are very well
|
|
entitled to the latter name, inasmuch as they are not fictions or
|
|
accidental products of reason, but are necessitated by its very
|
|
nature. They are sophisms, not of men, but of pure reason herself,
|
|
from which the Wisest cannot free himself. After long labour he may be
|
|
able to guard against the error, but he can never be thoroughly rid of
|
|
the illusion which continually mocks and misleads him.
|
|
|
|
Of these dialectical arguments there are three kinds,
|
|
corresponding to the number of the ideas which their conclusions
|
|
present. In the argument or syllogism of the first class, I
|
|
conclude, from the transcendental conception of the subject contains
|
|
no manifold, the absolute unity of the subject itself, of which I
|
|
cannot in this manner attain to a conception. This dialectical
|
|
argument I shall call the transcendental paralogism. The second
|
|
class of sophistical arguments is occupied with the transcendental
|
|
conception of the absolute totality of the series of conditions for
|
|
a given phenomenon, and I conclude, from the fact that I have always a
|
|
self-contradictory conception of the unconditioned synthetical unity
|
|
of the series upon one side, the truth of the opposite unity, of which
|
|
I have nevertheless no conception. The condition of reason in these
|
|
dialectical arguments, I shall term the antinomy of pure reason.
|
|
Finally, according to the third kind of sophistical argument, I
|
|
conclude, from the totality of the conditions of thinking objects in
|
|
general, in so far as they can be given, the absolute synthetical
|
|
unity of all conditions of the possibility of things in general;
|
|
that is, from things which I do not know in their mere
|
|
transcendental conception, I conclude a being of all beings which I
|
|
know still less by means of a transcendental conception, and of
|
|
whose unconditioned necessity I can form no conception whatever.
|
|
This dialectical argument I shall call the ideal of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. Of the Paralogisms of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
The logical paralogism consists in the falsity of an argument in
|
|
respect of its form, be the content what it may. But a
|
|
transcendental paralogism has a transcendental foundation, and
|
|
concludes falsely, while the form is correct and unexceptionable. In
|
|
this manner the paralogism has its foundation in the nature of human
|
|
reason, and is the parent of an unavoidable, though not insoluble,
|
|
mental illusion.
|
|
|
|
We now come to a conception which was not inserted in the general
|
|
list of transcendental conceptions. and yet must be reckoned with
|
|
them, but at the same time without in the least altering, or
|
|
indicating a deficiency in that table. This is the conception, or,
|
|
if the term is preferred, the judgement, "I think." But it is
|
|
readily perceived that this thought is as it were the vehicle of all
|
|
conceptions in general, and consequently of transcendental conceptions
|
|
also, and that it is therefore regarded as a transcendental
|
|
conception, although it can have no peculiar claim to be so ranked,
|
|
inasmuch as its only use is to indicate that all thought is
|
|
accompanied by consciousness. At the same time, pure as this
|
|
conception is from empirical content (impressions of the senses), it
|
|
enables us to distinguish two different kinds of objects. "I," as
|
|
thinking, am an object of the internal sense, and am called soul. That
|
|
which is an object of the external senses is called body. Thus the
|
|
expression, "I," as a thinking being, designates the object-matter
|
|
of psychology, which may be called "the rational doctrine of the
|
|
soul," inasmuch as in this science I desire to know nothing of the
|
|
soul but what, independently of all experience (which determines me in
|
|
concreto), may be concluded from this conception "I," in so far as
|
|
it appears in all thought.
|
|
|
|
Now, the rational doctrine of the soul is really an undertaking of
|
|
this kind. For if the smallest empirical element of thought, if any
|
|
particular perception of my internal state, were to be introduced
|
|
among the grounds of cognition of this science, it would not be a
|
|
rational, but an empirical doctrine of the soul. We have thus before
|
|
us a pretended science, raised upon the single proposition, "I think,"
|
|
whose foundation or want of foundation we may very properly, and
|
|
agreeably with the nature of a transcendental philosophy, here
|
|
examine. It ought not to be objected that in this proposition, which
|
|
expresses the perception of one's self, an internal experience is
|
|
asserted, and that consequently the rational doctrine of the soul
|
|
which is founded upon it, is not pure, but partly founded upon an
|
|
empirical principle. For this internal perception is nothing more than
|
|
the mere apperception, "I think," which in fact renders all
|
|
transcendental conceptions possible, in which we say, "I think
|
|
substance, cause, etc." For internal experience in general and its
|
|
possibility, or perception in general, and its relation to other
|
|
perceptions, unless some particular distinction or determination
|
|
thereof is empirically given, cannot be regarded as empirical
|
|
cognition, but as cognition of the empirical, and belongs to the
|
|
investigation of the possibility of every experience, which is
|
|
certainly transcendental. The smallest object of experience (for
|
|
example, only pleasure or pain), that should be included in the
|
|
general representation of self-consciousness, would immediately change
|
|
the rational into an empirical psychology.
|
|
|
|
"I think" is therefore the only text of rational psychology, from
|
|
which it must develop its whole system. It is manifest that this
|
|
thought, when applied to an object (myself), can contain nothing but
|
|
transcendental predicates thereof; because the least empirical
|
|
predicate would destroy the purity of the science and its independence
|
|
of all experience.
|
|
|
|
But we shall have to follow here the guidance of the categories-
|
|
only, as in the present case a thing, "I," as thinking being, is at
|
|
first given, we shall- not indeed change the order of the categories
|
|
as it stands in the table- but begin at the category of substance,
|
|
by which at the a thing a thing is represented and proceeds
|
|
backwards through the series. The topic of the rational doctrine of
|
|
the soul, from which everything else it may contain must be deduced,
|
|
is accordingly as follows:
|
|
|
|
1 2
|
|
|
|
The Soul is SUBSTANCE As regards its quality
|
|
|
|
it is SIMPLE
|
|
|
|
3
|
|
|
|
As regards the different
|
|
|
|
times in which it exists,
|
|
|
|
it is numerically identical,
|
|
|
|
that is UNITY, not Plurality.
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
It is in relation to possible objects in space*
|
|
|
|
*The reader, who may not so easily perceive the psychological
|
|
sense of these expressions, taken here in their transcendental
|
|
abstraction, and cannot guess why the latter attribute of the soul
|
|
belongs to the category of existence, will find the expressions
|
|
sufficiently explained and justified in the sequel. I have,
|
|
moreover, to apologize for the Latin terms which have been
|
|
employed,instead of their German synonyms, contrary to the rules of
|
|
correct writing. But I judged it better to sacrifice elegance to
|
|
perspicuity.
|
|
|
|
From these elements originate all the conceptions of pure
|
|
psychology, by combination alone, without the aid of any other
|
|
principle. This substance, merely as an object of the internal
|
|
sense, gives the conception of Immateriality; as simple substance,
|
|
that of Incorruptibility; its identity, as intellectual substance,
|
|
gives the conception of Personality; all these three together,
|
|
Spirituality. Its relation to objects in space gives us the conception
|
|
of connection (commercium) with bodies. Thus it represents thinking
|
|
substance as the principle of life in matter, that is, as a soul
|
|
(anima), and as the ground of Animality; and this, limited and
|
|
determined by the conception of spirituality, gives us that of
|
|
Immortality.
|
|
|
|
Now to these conceptions relate four paralogisms of a transcendental
|
|
psychology, which is falsely held to be a science of pure reason.
|
|
touching the nature of our thinking being. We can, however, lay at the
|
|
foundation of this science nothing but the simple and in itself
|
|
perfectly contentless representation "I which cannot even be called
|
|
a conception, but merely a consciousness which accompanies all
|
|
conceptions. By this "I," or "He," or "It," who or which thinks,
|
|
nothing more is represented than a transcendental subject of thought =
|
|
x, which is cognized only by means of the thoughts that are its
|
|
predicates, and of which, apart from these, we cannot form the least
|
|
conception. Hence in a perpetual circle, inasmuch as we must always
|
|
employ it, in order to frame any judgement respecting it. And this
|
|
inconvenience we find it impossible to rid ourselves of, because
|
|
consciousness in itself is not so much a representation distinguishing
|
|
a particular object, as a form of representation in general, in so far
|
|
as it may be termed cognition; for in and by cognition alone do I
|
|
think anything.
|
|
|
|
It must, however, appear extraordinary at first sight that the
|
|
condition under which I think, and which is consequently a property of
|
|
my subject, should be held to be likewise valid for every existence
|
|
which thinks, and that we can presume to base upon a seemingly
|
|
empirical proposition a judgement which is apodeictic and universal,
|
|
to wit, that everything which thinks is constituted as the voice of my
|
|
consciousness declares it to be, that is, as a self-conscious being.
|
|
The cause of this belief is to be found in the fact that we
|
|
necessarily attribute to things a priori all the properties which
|
|
constitute conditions under which alone we can cogitate them. Now I
|
|
cannot obtain the least representation of a thinking being by means of
|
|
external experience, but solely through self-consciousness. Such
|
|
objects are consequently nothing more than the transference of this
|
|
consciousness of mine to other things which can only thus be
|
|
represented as thinking beings. The proposition, "I think," is, in the
|
|
present case, understood in a problematical sense, not in so far as it
|
|
contains a perception of an existence (like the Cartesian "Cogito,
|
|
ergo sum"),* but in regard to its mere possibility- for the purpose of
|
|
discovering what properties may be inferred from so simple a
|
|
proposition and predicated of the subject of it.
|
|
|
|
*["I think, therefore I am."]
|
|
|
|
If at the foundation of our pure rational cognition of thinking
|
|
beings there lay more than the mere Cogito- if we could likewise
|
|
call in aid observations on the play of our thoughts, and the thence
|
|
derived natural laws of the thinking self, there would arise an
|
|
empirical psychology which would be a kind of physiology of the
|
|
internal sense and might possibly be capable of explaining the
|
|
phenomena of that sense. But it could never be available for
|
|
discovering those properties which do not belong to possible
|
|
experience (such as the quality of simplicity), nor could it make
|
|
any apodeictic enunciation on the nature of thinking beings: it
|
|
would therefore not be a rational psychology.
|
|
|
|
Now, as the proposition "I think" (in the problematical sense)
|
|
contains the form of every judgement in general and is the constant
|
|
accompaniment of all the categories, it is manifest that conclusions
|
|
are drawn from it only by a transcendental employment of the
|
|
understanding. This use of the understanding excludes all empirical
|
|
elements; and we cannot, as has been shown above, have any
|
|
favourable conception beforehand of its procedure. We shall
|
|
therefore follow with a critical eye this proposition through all
|
|
the predicaments of pure psychology; but we shall, for brevity's sake,
|
|
allow this examination to proceed in an uninterrupted connection.
|
|
|
|
Before entering on this task, however, the following general
|
|
remark may help to quicken our attention to this mode of argument.
|
|
It is not merely through my thinking that I cognize an object, but
|
|
only through my determining a given intuition in relation to the unity
|
|
of consciousness in which all thinking consists. It follows that I
|
|
cognize myself, not through my being conscious of myself as
|
|
thinking, but only when I am conscious of the intuition of myself as
|
|
determined in relation to the function of thought. All the modi of
|
|
self-consciousness in thought are hence not conceptions of objects
|
|
(conceptions of the understanding- categories); they are mere
|
|
logical functions, which do not present to thought an object to be
|
|
cognized, and cannot therefore present my Self as an object. Not the
|
|
consciousness of the determining, but only that of the determinable
|
|
self, that is, of my internal intuition (in so far as the manifold
|
|
contained in it can be connected conformably with the general
|
|
condition of the unity of apperception in thought), is the object.
|
|
|
|
1. In all judgements I am the determining subject of that relation
|
|
which constitutes a judgement. But that the I which thinks, must be
|
|
considered as in thought always a subject, and as a thing which cannot
|
|
be a predicate to thought, is an apodeictic and identical proposition.
|
|
But this proposition does not signify that I, as an object, am, for
|
|
myself, a self-subsistent being or substance. This latter statement-
|
|
an ambitious one- requires to be supported by data which are not to be
|
|
discovered in thought; and are perhaps (in so far as I consider the
|
|
thinking self merely as such) not to be discovered in the thinking
|
|
self at all.
|
|
|
|
2. That the I or Ego of apperception, and consequently in all
|
|
thought, is singular or simple, an;3 cannot be resolved into a
|
|
plurality of subjects, and therefore indicates a logically simple
|
|
subject- this is self-evident from the very conception of an Ego,
|
|
and is consequently an analytical proposition. But this is not
|
|
tantamount to declaring that the thinking Ego is a simple substance-
|
|
for this would be a synthetical proposition. The conception of
|
|
substance always relates to intuitions, which with me cannot be
|
|
other than sensuous, and which consequently lie completely out of
|
|
the sphere of the understanding and its thought: but to this sphere
|
|
belongs the affirmation that the Ego is simple in thought. It would
|
|
indeed be surprising, if the conception of "substance," which in other
|
|
cases requires so much labour to distinguish from the other elements
|
|
presented by intuition- so much trouble, too, to discover whether it
|
|
can be simple (as in the case of the parts of matter)- should be
|
|
presented immediately to me, as if by revelation, in the poorest
|
|
mental representation of all.
|
|
|
|
3. The proposition of the identity of my Self amidst all the
|
|
manifold representations of which I am conscious, is likewise a
|
|
proposition lying in the conceptions themselves, and is consequently
|
|
analytical. But this identity of the subject, of which I am
|
|
conscious in all its representations, does not relate to or concern
|
|
the intuition of the subject, by which it is given as an object.
|
|
This proposition cannot therefore enounce the identity of the
|
|
person, by which is understood the consciousness of the identity of
|
|
its own substance as a thinking being in all change and variation of
|
|
circumstances. To prove this, we should require not a mere analysis of
|
|
the proposition, but synthetical judgements based upon a given
|
|
intuition.
|
|
|
|
4. I distinguish my own existence, as that of a thinking being, from
|
|
that of other things external to me- among which my body also is
|
|
reckoned. This is also an analytical proposition, for other things are
|
|
exactly those which I think as different or distinguished from myself.
|
|
But whether this consciousness of myself is possible without things
|
|
external to me; and whether therefore I can exist merely as a thinking
|
|
being (without being man)- cannot be known or inferred from this
|
|
proposition.
|
|
|
|
Thus we have gained nothing as regards the cognition of myself as
|
|
object, by the analysis of the consciousness of my Self in thought.
|
|
The logical exposition of thought in general is mistaken for a
|
|
metaphysical determination of the object.
|
|
|
|
Our Critique would be an investigation utterly superfluous, if there
|
|
existed a possibility of proving a priori, that all thinking beings
|
|
are in themselves simple substances, as such, therefore, possess the
|
|
inseparable attribute of personality, and are conscious of their
|
|
existence apart from and unconnected with matter. For we should thus
|
|
have taken a step beyond the world of sense, and have penetrated
|
|
into the sphere of noumena; and in this case the right could not be
|
|
denied us of extending our knowledge in this sphere, of establishing
|
|
ourselves, and, under a favouring star, appropriating to ourselves
|
|
possessions in it. For the proposition: "Every thinking being, as
|
|
such, is simple substance," is an a priori synthetical proposition;
|
|
because in the first place it goes beyond the conception which is
|
|
the subject of it, and adds to the mere notion of a thinking being the
|
|
mode of its existence, and in the second place annexes a predicate
|
|
(that of simplicity) to the latter conception- a predicate which it
|
|
could not have discovered in the sphere of experience. It would follow
|
|
that a priori synthetical propositions are possible and legitimate,
|
|
not only, as we have maintained, in relation to objects of possible
|
|
experience, and as principles of the possibility of this experience
|
|
itself, but are applicable to things in themselves- an inference which
|
|
makes an end of the whole of this Critique, and obliges us to fall
|
|
back on the old mode of metaphysical procedure. But indeed the
|
|
danger is not so great, if we look a little closer into the question.
|
|
|
|
There lurks in the procedure of rational Psychology a paralogism,
|
|
which is represented in the following syllogism:
|
|
|
|
That which cannot be cogitated otherwise than as subject, does not
|
|
exist otherwise than as subject, and is therefore substance.
|
|
|
|
A thinking being, considered merely as such, cannot be cogitated
|
|
otherwise than as subject.
|
|
|
|
Therefore it exists also as such, that is, as substance.
|
|
|
|
In the major we speak of a being that can be cogitated generally and
|
|
in every relation, consequently as it may be given in intuition. But
|
|
in the minor we speak of the same being only in so far as it regards
|
|
itself as subject, relatively to thought and the unity of
|
|
consciousness, but not in relation to intuition, by which it is
|
|
presented as an object to thought. Thus the conclusion is here arrived
|
|
at by a Sophisma figurae dictionis.*
|
|
|
|
*Thought is taken in the two premisses in two totally different
|
|
senses. In the major it is considered as relating and applying to
|
|
objects in general, consequently to objects of intuition also. In
|
|
the minor, we understand it as relating merely to
|
|
self-consciousness. In this sense, we do not cogitate an object, but
|
|
merely the relation to the self-consciousness of the subject, as the
|
|
form of thought. In the former premiss we speak of things which cannot
|
|
be cogitated otherwise than as subjects. In the second, we do not
|
|
speak of things, but of thought all objects being abstracted), in
|
|
which the Ego is always the subject of consciousness. Hence the
|
|
conclusion cannot be, "I cannot exist otherwise than as subject";
|
|
but only "I can, in cogitating my existence, employ my Ego only as the
|
|
subject of the judgement." But this is an identical proposition, and
|
|
throws no light on the mode of my existence.
|
|
|
|
That this famous argument is a mere paralogism, will be plain to any
|
|
one who will consider the general remark which precedes our exposition
|
|
of the principles of the pure understanding, and the section on
|
|
noumena. For it was there proved that the conception of a thing, which
|
|
can exist per se- only as a subject and never as a predicate,
|
|
possesses no objective reality; that is to say, we can never know
|
|
whether there exists any object to correspond to the conception;
|
|
consequently, the conception is nothing more than a conception, and
|
|
from it we derive no proper knowledge. If this conception is to
|
|
indicate by the term substance, an object that can be given, if it
|
|
is to become a cognition, we must have at the foundation of the
|
|
cognition a permanent intuition, as the indispensable condition of its
|
|
objective reality. For through intuition alone can an object be given.
|
|
But in internal intuition there is nothing permanent, for the Ego is
|
|
but the consciousness of my thought. If then, we appeal merely to
|
|
thought, we cannot discover the necessary condition of the application
|
|
of the conception of substance- that is, of a subject existing per se-
|
|
to the subject as a thinking being. And thus the conception of the
|
|
simple nature of substance, which is connected with the objective
|
|
reality of this conception, is shown to be also invalid, and to be, in
|
|
fact, nothing more than the logical qualitative unity of
|
|
self-consciousness in thought; whilst we remain perfectly ignorant
|
|
whether the subject is composite or not.
|
|
|
|
Refutation of the Argument of Mendelssohn for the
|
|
|
|
Substantiality or Permanence of the Soul.
|
|
|
|
This acute philosopher easily perceived the insufficiency of the
|
|
common argument which attempts to prove that the soul- it being
|
|
granted that it is a simple being- cannot perish by dissolution or
|
|
decomposition; he saw it is not impossible for it to cease to be by
|
|
extinction, or disappearance. He endeavoured to prove in his Phaedo,
|
|
that the soul cannot be annihilated, by showing that a simple being
|
|
cannot cease to exist. Inasmuch as, be said, a simple existence cannot
|
|
diminish, nor gradually lose portions of its being, and thus be by
|
|
degrees reduced to nothing (for it possesses no parts, and therefore
|
|
no multiplicity), between the moment in which it is, and the moment in
|
|
which it is not, no time can be discovered- which is impossible. But
|
|
this philosopher did not consider that, granting the soul to possess
|
|
this simple nature, which contains no parts external to each other and
|
|
consequently no extensive quantity, we cannot refuse to it any less
|
|
than to any other being, intensive quantity, that is, a degree of
|
|
reality in regard to all its faculties, nay, to all that constitutes
|
|
its existence. But this degree of reality can become less and less
|
|
through an infinite series of smaller degrees. It follows,
|
|
therefore, that this supposed substance- this thing, the permanence of
|
|
which is not assured in any other way, may, if not by decomposition,
|
|
by gradual loss (remissio) of its powers (consequently by
|
|
elanguescence, if I may employ this expression), be changed into
|
|
nothing. For consciousness itself has always a degree, which may be
|
|
lessened.* Consequently the faculty of being conscious may be
|
|
diminished; and so with all other faculties. The permanence of the
|
|
soul, therefore, as an object of the internal sense, remains
|
|
undemonstrated, nay, even indemonstrable. Its permanence in life is
|
|
evident, per se, inasmuch as the thinking being (as man) is to itself,
|
|
at the same time, an object of the external senses. But this does
|
|
not authorize the rational psychologist to affirm, from mere
|
|
conceptions, its permanence beyond life.*[2]
|
|
|
|
*Clearness is not, as logicians maintain, the consciousness of a
|
|
representation. For a certain degree of consciousness, which may
|
|
not, however, be sufficient for recollection, is to be met with in
|
|
many dim representations. For without any consciousness at all, we
|
|
should not be able to recognize any difference in the obscure
|
|
representations we connect; as we really can do with many conceptions,
|
|
such as those of right and justice, and those of the musician, who
|
|
strikes at once several notes in improvising a piece of music. But a
|
|
representation is clear, in which our consciousness is sufficient
|
|
for the consciousness of the difference of this representation from
|
|
others. If we are only conscious that there is a difference, but are
|
|
not conscious of the difference- that is, what the difference is-
|
|
the representation must be termed obscure. There is, consequently,
|
|
an infinite series of degrees of consciousness down to its entire
|
|
disappearance.
|
|
|
|
*[2] There are some who think they have done enough to establish a
|
|
new possibility in the mode of the existence of souls, when they
|
|
have shown that there is no contradiction in their hypotheses on
|
|
this subject. Such are those who affirm the possibility of thought- of
|
|
which they have no other knowledge than what they derive from its
|
|
use in connecting empirical intuitions presented in this our human
|
|
life- after this life bas ceased. But it is very easy to embarrass
|
|
them by the introduction of counter-possibilities, which rest upon
|
|
quite as good a foundation. Such, for example, is the possibility of
|
|
the division of a simple substance into several substances; and
|
|
conversely, of the coalition of several into one simple substance.
|
|
For, although divisibility presupposes composition, it does not
|
|
necessarily require a composition of substances, but only of the
|
|
degrees (of the several faculties) of one and the same substance.
|
|
Now we can cogitate all the powers and faculties of the soul- even
|
|
that of consciousness- as diminished by one half, the substance
|
|
still remaining. In the same way we can represent to ourselves without
|
|
contradiction, this obliterated half as preserved, not in the soul,
|
|
but without it; and we can believe that, as in this case every.
|
|
thing that is real in the soul, and has a degree- consequently its
|
|
entire existence- has been halved, a particular substance would
|
|
arise out of the soul. For the multiplicity, which has been divided,
|
|
formerly existed, but not as a multiplicity of substances, but of
|
|
every reality as the quantum of existence in it; and the unity of
|
|
substance was merely a mode of existence, which by this division alone
|
|
has been transformed into a plurality of subsistence. In the same
|
|
manner several simple substances might coalesce into one, without
|
|
anything being lost except the plurality of subsistence, inasmuch as
|
|
the one substance would contain the degree of reality of all the
|
|
former substances. Perhaps, indeed, the simple substances, which
|
|
appear under the form of matter, might (not indeed by a mechanical
|
|
or chemical influence upon each other, but by an unknown influence, of
|
|
which the former would be but the phenomenal appearance), by means
|
|
of such a dynamical division of the parent-souls, as intensive
|
|
quantities, produce other souls, while the former repaired the loss
|
|
thus sustained with new matter of the same sort. I am far from
|
|
allowing any value to such chimeras; and the principles of our
|
|
analytic have clearly proved that no other than an empirical use of
|
|
the categories- that of substance, for example- is possible. But if
|
|
the rationalist is bold enough to construct, on the mere authority
|
|
of the faculty of thought- without any intuition, whereby an object is
|
|
given- a self-subsistent being, merely because the unity of
|
|
apperception in thought cannot allow him to believe it a composite
|
|
being, instead of declaring, as he ought to do, that he is unable to
|
|
explain the possibility of a thinking nature; what ought to hinder the
|
|
materialist, with as complete an independence of experience, to employ
|
|
the principle of the rationalist in a directly opposite manner-
|
|
still preserving the formal unity required by his opponent?
|
|
|
|
If, now, we take the above propositions- as they must be accepted as
|
|
valid for all thinking beings in the system of rational psychology- in
|
|
synthetical connection, and proceed, from the category of relation,
|
|
with the proposition: "All thinking beings are, as such,
|
|
substances," backwards through the series, till the circle is
|
|
completed; we come at last to their existence, of which, in this
|
|
system of rational psychology, substances are held to be conscious,
|
|
independently of external things; nay, it is asserted that, in
|
|
relation to the permanence which is a necessary characteristic of
|
|
substance, they can of themselves determine external things. It
|
|
follows that idealism- at least problematical idealism, is perfectly
|
|
unavoidable in this rationalistic system. And, if the existence of
|
|
outward things is not held to be requisite to the determination of the
|
|
existence of a substance in time, the existence of these outward
|
|
things at all, is a gratuitous assumption which remains without the
|
|
possibility of a proof.
|
|
|
|
But if we proceed analytically- the "I think" as a proposition
|
|
containing in itself an existence as given, consequently modality
|
|
being the principle- and dissect this proposition, in order to
|
|
ascertain its content, and discover whether and how this Ego
|
|
determines its existence in time and space without the aid of anything
|
|
external; the propositions of rationalistic psychology would not begin
|
|
with the conception of a thinking being, but with a reality, and the
|
|
properties of a thinking being in general would be deduced from the
|
|
mode in which this reality is cogitated, after everything empirical
|
|
had been abstracted; as is shown in the following table:
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
I think,
|
|
|
|
2 3
|
|
|
|
as Subject, as simple Subject,
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
as identical Subject,
|
|
|
|
in every state of my thought.
|
|
|
|
Now, inasmuch as it is not determined in this second proposition,
|
|
whether I can exist and be cogitated only as subject, and not also
|
|
as a predicate of another being, the conception of a subject is here
|
|
taken in a merely logical sense; and it remains undetermined,
|
|
whether substance is to be cogitated under the conception or not.
|
|
But in the third proposition, the absolute unity of apperception-
|
|
the simple Ego in the representation to which all connection and
|
|
separation, which constitute thought, relate, is of itself
|
|
important; even although it presents us with no information about
|
|
the constitution or subsistence of the subject. Apperception is
|
|
something real, and the simplicity of its nature is given in the
|
|
very fact of its possibility. Now in space there is nothing real
|
|
that is at the same time simple; for points, which are the only simple
|
|
things in space, are merely limits, but not constituent parts of
|
|
space. From this follows the impossibility of a definition on the
|
|
basis of materialism of the constitution of my Ego as a merely
|
|
thinking subject. But, because my existence is considered in the first
|
|
proposition as given, for it does not mean, "Every thinking being
|
|
exists" (for this would be predicating of them absolute necessity),
|
|
but only, "I exist thinking"; the proposition is quite empirical,
|
|
and contains the determinability of my existence merely in relation to
|
|
my representations in time. But as I require for this purpose
|
|
something that is permanent, such as is not given in internal
|
|
intuition; the mode of my existence, whether as substance or as
|
|
accident, cannot be determined by means of this simple
|
|
self-consciousness. Thus, if materialism is inadequate to explain
|
|
the mode in which I exist, spiritualism is likewise as insufficient;
|
|
and the conclusion is that we are utterly unable to attain to any
|
|
knowledge of the constitution of the soul, in so far as relates to the
|
|
possibility of its existence apart from external objects.
|
|
|
|
And, indeed, how should it be possible, merely by the aid of the
|
|
unity of consciousness- which we cognize only for the reason that it
|
|
is indispensable to the possibility of experience- to pass the
|
|
bounds of experience (our existence in this life); and to extend our
|
|
cognition to the nature of all thinking beings by means of the
|
|
empirical- but in relation to every sort of intuition, perfectly
|
|
undetermined- proposition, "I think"?
|
|
|
|
There does not then exist any rational psychology as a doctrine
|
|
furnishing any addition to our knowledge of ourselves. It is nothing
|
|
more than a discipline, which sets impassable limits to speculative
|
|
reason in this region of thought, to prevent it, on the one hand, from
|
|
throwing itself into the arms of a soulless materialism, and, on the
|
|
other, from losing itself in the mazes of a baseless spiritualism.
|
|
It teaches us to consider this refusal of our reason to give any
|
|
satisfactory answer to questions which reach beyond the limits of this
|
|
our human life, as a hint to abandon fruitless speculation; and to
|
|
direct, to a practical use, our knowledge of ourselves- which,
|
|
although applicable only to objects of experience, receives its
|
|
principles from a higher source, and regulates its procedure as if our
|
|
destiny reached far beyond the boundaries of experience and life.
|
|
|
|
From all this it is evident that rational psychology has its
|
|
origin in a mere misunderstanding. The unity of consciousness, which
|
|
lies at the basis of the categories, is considered to be an
|
|
intuition of the subject as an object; and the category of substance
|
|
is applied to the intuition. But this unity is nothing more than the
|
|
unity in thought, by which no object is given; to which therefore
|
|
the category of substance- which always presupposes a given intuition-
|
|
cannot be applied. Consequently, the subject cannot be cognized. The
|
|
subject of the categories cannot, therefore, for the very reason
|
|
that it cogitates these, frame any conception of itself as an object
|
|
of the categories; for, to cogitate these, it must lay at the
|
|
foundation its own pure self-consciousness- the very thing that it
|
|
wishes to explain and describe. In like manner, the subject, in
|
|
which the representation of time has its basis, cannot determine,
|
|
for this very reason, its own existence in time. Now, if the latter is
|
|
impossible, the former, as an attempt to determine itself by means
|
|
of the categories as a thinking being in general, is no less so.*
|
|
|
|
*The "I think" is, as has been already stated, an empirical
|
|
proposition, and contains the proposition, "I exist." But I cannot
|
|
say, "Everything, which thinks, exists"; for in this case the property
|
|
of thought would constitute all beings possessing it, necessary
|
|
being Hence my existence cannot be considered as an inference from the
|
|
proposition, "I think," as Descartes maintained- because in this
|
|
case the major premiss, "Everything, which thinks, exists," must
|
|
precede- but the two propositions are identical. The proposition, "I
|
|
think," expresses an undetermined empirical intuition, that perception
|
|
(proving consequently that sensation, which must belong to
|
|
sensibility, lies at the foundation of this proposition); but it
|
|
precedes experience, whose province it is to determine an object of
|
|
perception by means of the categories in relation to time; and
|
|
existence in this proposition is not a category, as it does not
|
|
apply to an undetermined given object, but only to one of which we
|
|
have a conception, and about which we wish to know whether it does
|
|
or does not exist, out of, and apart from this conception. An
|
|
undetermined perception signifies here merely something real that
|
|
has been given, only, however, to thought in general- but not as a
|
|
phenomenon, nor as a thing in itself (noumenon), but only as something
|
|
that really exists, and is designated as such in the proposition, "I
|
|
think." For it must be remarked that, when I call the proposition,
|
|
"I think," an empirical proposition, I do not thereby mean that the
|
|
Ego in the proposition is an empirical representation; on the
|
|
contrary, it is purely intellectual, because it belongs to thought
|
|
in general. But without some empirical representation, which
|
|
presents to the mind material for thought, the mental act, "I
|
|
think," would not take place; and the empirical is only the
|
|
condition of the application or employment of the pure intellectual
|
|
faculty.
|
|
|
|
Thus, then, appears the vanity of the hope of establishing a
|
|
cognition which is to extend its rule beyond the limits of experience-
|
|
a cognition which is one of the highest interests of humanity; and
|
|
thus is proved the futility of the attempt of speculative philosophy
|
|
in this region of thought. But, in this interest of thought, the
|
|
severity of criticism has rendered to reason a not unimportant
|
|
service, by the demonstration of the impossibility of making any
|
|
dogmatical affirmation concerning an object of experience beyond the
|
|
boundaries of experience. She has thus fortified reason against all
|
|
affirmations of the contrary. Now, this can be accomplished in only
|
|
two ways. Either our proposition must be proved apodeictically; or, if
|
|
this is unsuccessful, the sources of this inability must be sought
|
|
for, and, if these are discovered to exist in the natural and
|
|
necessary limitation of our reason, our opponents must submit to the
|
|
same law of renunciation and refrain from advancing claims to dogmatic
|
|
assertion.
|
|
|
|
But the right, say rather the necessity to admit a future life, upon
|
|
principles of the practical conjoined with the speculative use of
|
|
reason, has lost nothing by this renunciation; for the merely
|
|
speculative proof has never had any influence upon the common reason
|
|
of men. It stands upon the point of a hair, so that even the schools
|
|
have been able to preserve it from falling only by incessantly
|
|
discussing it and spinning it like a top; and even in their eyes it
|
|
has never been able to present any safe foundation for the erection of
|
|
a theory. The proofs which have been current among men, preserve their
|
|
value undiminished; nay, rather gain in clearness and
|
|
unsophisticated power, by the rejection of the dogmatical
|
|
assumptions of speculative reason. For reason is thus confined
|
|
within her own peculiar province- the arrangement of ends or aims,
|
|
which is at the same time the arrangement of nature; and, as a
|
|
practical faculty, without limiting itself to the latter, it is
|
|
justified in extending the former, and with it our own existence,
|
|
beyond the boundaries of experience and life. If we turn our attention
|
|
to the analogy of the nature of living beings in this world, in the
|
|
consideration of which reason is obliged to accept as a principle that
|
|
no organ, no faculty, no appetite is useless, and that nothing is
|
|
superfluous, nothing disproportionate to its use, nothing unsuited
|
|
to its end; but that, on the contrary, everything is perfectly
|
|
conformed to its destination in life- we shall find that man, who
|
|
alone is the final end and aim of this order, is still the only animal
|
|
that seems to be excepted from it. For his natural gifts- not merely
|
|
as regards the talents and motives that may incite him to employ them,
|
|
but especially the moral law in him- stretch so far beyond all mere
|
|
earthly utility and advantage, that he feels himself bound to prize
|
|
the mere consciousness of probity, apart from all advantageous
|
|
consequences- even the shadowy gift of posthumous fame- above
|
|
everything; and he is conscious of an inward call to constitute
|
|
himself, by his conduct in this world- without regard to mere
|
|
sublunary interests- the citizen of a better. This mighty,
|
|
irresistible proof- accompanied by an ever-increasing knowledge of the
|
|
conformability to a purpose in everything we see around us, by the
|
|
conviction of the boundless immensity of creation, by the
|
|
consciousness of a certain illimitableness in the possible extension
|
|
of our knowledge, and by a desire commensurate therewith- remains to
|
|
humanity, even after the theoretical cognition of ourselves bas failed
|
|
to establish the necessity of an existence after death.
|
|
|
|
Conclusion of the Solution of the
|
|
|
|
Psychological Paralogism.
|
|
|
|
The dialectical illusion in rational psychology arises from our
|
|
confounding an idea of reason (of a pure intelligence) with the
|
|
conception- in every respect undetermined- of a thinking being in
|
|
general. I cogitate myself in behalf of a possible experience, at
|
|
the same time making abstraction of all actual experience; and infer
|
|
therefrom that I can be conscious of myself apart from experience
|
|
and its empirical conditions. I consequently confound the possible
|
|
abstraction of my empirically determined existence with the supposed
|
|
consciousness of a possible separate existence of my thinking self;
|
|
and I believe that I cognize what is substantial in myself as a
|
|
transcendental subject, when I have nothing more in thought than the
|
|
unity of consciousness, which lies at the basis of all determination
|
|
of cognition.
|
|
|
|
The task of explaining the community of the soul with the body
|
|
does not properly belong to the psychology of which we are here
|
|
speaking; because it proposes to prove the personality of the soul
|
|
apart from this communion (after death), and is therefore transcendent
|
|
in the proper sense of the word, although occupying itself with an
|
|
object of experience- only in so far, however, as it ceases to be an
|
|
object of experience. But a sufficient answer may be found to the
|
|
question in our system. The difficulty which lies in the execution
|
|
of this task consists, as is well known, in the presupposed
|
|
heterogeneity of the object of the internal sense (the soul) and the
|
|
objects of the external senses; inasmuch as the formal condition of
|
|
the intuition of the one is time, and of that of the other space also.
|
|
But if we consider that both kinds of objects do not differ
|
|
internally, but only in so far as the one appears externally to the
|
|
other- consequently, that what lies at the basis of phenomena, as a
|
|
thing in itself, may not be heterogeneous; this difficulty disappears.
|
|
There then remains no other difficulty than is to be found in the
|
|
question- how a community of substances is possible; a question
|
|
which lies out of the region of psychology, and which the reader,
|
|
after what in our analytic has been said of primitive forces and
|
|
faculties, will easily judge to be also beyond the region of human
|
|
cognition.
|
|
|
|
GENERAL REMARK
|
|
|
|
On the Transition from Rational Psychology to Cosmology.
|
|
|
|
The proposition, "I think," or, "I exist thinking," is an
|
|
empirical proposition. But such a proposition must be based on
|
|
empirical intuition, and the object cogitated as a phenomenon; and
|
|
thus our theory appears to maintain that the soul, even in thought, is
|
|
merely a phenomenon; and in this way our consciousness itself, in
|
|
fact, abuts upon nothing.
|
|
|
|
Thought, per se, is merely the purely spontaneous logical function
|
|
which operates to connect the manifold of a possible intuition; and it
|
|
does not represent the subject of consciousness as a phenomenon- for
|
|
this reason alone, that it pays no attention to the question whether
|
|
the mode of intuiting it is sensuous or intellectual. I therefore do
|
|
not represent myself in thought either as I am, or as I appear to
|
|
myself; I merely cogitate myself as an object in general, of the
|
|
mode of intuiting which I make abstraction. When I represent myself as
|
|
the subject of thought, or as the ground of thought, these modes of
|
|
representation are not related to the categories of substance or of
|
|
cause; for these are functions of thought applicable only to our
|
|
sensuous intuition. The application of these categories to the Ego
|
|
would, however, be necessary, if I wished to make myself an object
|
|
of knowledge. But I wish to be conscious of myself only as thinking;
|
|
in what mode my Self is given in intuition, I do not consider, and
|
|
it may be that I, who think, am a phenomenon- although not in so far
|
|
as I am a thinking being; but in the consciousness of myself in mere
|
|
thought I am a being, though this consciousness does not present to me
|
|
any property of this being as material for thought.
|
|
|
|
But the proposition, "I think," in so far as it declares, "I exist
|
|
thinking," is not the mere representation of a logical function. It
|
|
determines the subject (which is in this case an object also) in
|
|
relation to existence; and it cannot be given without the aid of the
|
|
internal sense, whose intuition presents to us an object, not as a
|
|
thing in itself, but always as a phenomenon. In this proposition there
|
|
is therefore something more to be found than the mere spontaneity of
|
|
thought; there is also the receptivity of intuition, that is, my
|
|
thought of myself applied to the empirical intuition of myself. Now,
|
|
in this intuition the thinking self must seek the conditions of the
|
|
employment of its logical functions as categories of substance, cause,
|
|
and so forth; not merely for the purpose of distinguishing itself as
|
|
an object in itself by means of the representation "I," but also for
|
|
the purpose of determining the mode of its existence, that is, of
|
|
cognizing itself as noumenon. But this is impossible, for the internal
|
|
empirical intuition is sensuous, and presents us with nothing but
|
|
phenomenal data, which do not assist the object of pure
|
|
consciousness in its attempt to cognize itself as a separate
|
|
existence, but are useful only as contributions to experience.
|
|
|
|
But, let it be granted that we could discover, not in experience,
|
|
but in certain firmly-established a priori laws of the use of pure
|
|
reason- laws relating to our existence, authority to consider
|
|
ourselves as legislating a priori in relation to our own existence and
|
|
as determining this existence; we should, on this supposition, find
|
|
ourselves possessed of a spontaneity, by which our actual existence
|
|
would be determinable, without the aid of the conditions of
|
|
empirical intuition. We should also become aware that in the
|
|
consciousness of our existence there was an a priori content, which
|
|
would serve to determine our own existence- an existence only
|
|
sensuously determinable- relatively, however, to a certain internal
|
|
faculty in relation to an intelligible world.
|
|
|
|
But this would not give the least help to the attempts of rational
|
|
psychology. For this wonderful faculty, which the consciousness of the
|
|
moral law in me reveals, would present me with a principle of the
|
|
determination of my own existence which is purely intellectual- but by
|
|
what predicates? By none other than those which are given in
|
|
sensuous intuition. Thus I should find myself in the same position
|
|
in rational psychology which I formerly occupied, that is to say, I
|
|
should find myself still in need of sensuous intuitions, in order to
|
|
give significance to my conceptions of substance and cause, by means
|
|
of which alone I can possess a knowledge of myself: but these
|
|
intuitions can never raise me above the sphere of experience. I should
|
|
be justified, however, in applying these conceptions, in regard to
|
|
their practical use, which is always directed to objects of
|
|
experience- in conformity with their analogical significance when
|
|
employed theoretically- to freedom and its subject. At the same
|
|
time, I should understand by them merely the logical functions of
|
|
subject and predicate, of principle and consequence, in conformity
|
|
with which all actions are so determined, that they are capable of
|
|
being explained along with the laws of nature, conformably to the
|
|
categories of substance and cause, although they originate from a very
|
|
different principle. We have made these observations for the purpose
|
|
of guarding against misunderstanding, to which the doctrine of our
|
|
intuition of self as a phenomenon is exposed. We shall have occasion
|
|
to perceive their utility in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. The Antinomy of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
We showed in the introduction to this part of our work, that all
|
|
transcendental illusion of pure reason arose from dialectical
|
|
arguments, the schema of which logic gives us in its three formal
|
|
species of syllogisms- just as the categories find their logical
|
|
schema in the four functions of all judgements. The first kind of
|
|
these sophistical arguments related to the unconditioned unity of
|
|
the subjective conditions of all representations in general (of the
|
|
subject or soul), in correspondence with the categorical syllogisms,
|
|
the major of which, as the principle, enounces the relation of a
|
|
predicate to a subject. The second kind of dialectical argument will
|
|
therefore be concerned, following the analogy with hypothetical
|
|
syllogisms, with the unconditioned unity of the objective conditions
|
|
in the phenomenon; and, in this way, the theme of the third kind to be
|
|
treated of in the following chapter will be the unconditioned unity of
|
|
the objective conditions of the possibility of objects in general.
|
|
|
|
But it is worthy of remark that the transcendental paralogism
|
|
produced in the mind only a one-third illusion, in regard to the
|
|
idea of the subject of our thought; and the conceptions of reason gave
|
|
no ground to maintain the contrary proposition. The advantage is
|
|
completely on the side of Pneumatism; although this theory itself
|
|
passes into naught, in the crucible of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
Very different is the case when we apply reason to the objective
|
|
synthesis of phenomena. Here, certainly, reason establishes, with much
|
|
plausibility, its principle of unconditioned unity; but it very soon
|
|
falls into such contradictions that it is compelled, in relation to
|
|
cosmology, to renounce its pretensions.
|
|
|
|
For here a new phenomenon of human reason meets us- a perfectly
|
|
natural antithetic, which does not require to be sought for by
|
|
subtle sophistry, but into which reason of itself unavoidably falls.
|
|
It is thereby preserved, to be sure, from the slumber of a fancied
|
|
conviction- which a merely one-sided illusion produces; but it is at
|
|
the same time compelled, either, on the one hand, to abandon itself to
|
|
a despairing scepticism, or, on the other, to assume a dogmatical
|
|
confidence and obstinate persistence in certain assertions, without
|
|
granting a fair hearing to the other side of the question. Either is
|
|
the death of a sound philosophy, although the former might perhaps
|
|
deserve the title of the euthanasia of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
Before entering this region of discord and confusion, which the
|
|
conflict of the laws of pure reason (antinomy) produces, we shall
|
|
present the reader with some considerations, in explanation and
|
|
justification of the method we intend to follow in our treatment of
|
|
this subject. I term all transcendental ideas, in so far as they
|
|
relate to the absolute totality in the synthesis of phenomena,
|
|
cosmical conceptions; partly on account of this unconditioned
|
|
totality, on which the conception of the world-whole is based- a
|
|
conception, which is itself an idea- partly because they relate solely
|
|
to the synthesis of phenomena- the empirical synthesis; while, on
|
|
the other hand, the absolute totality in the synthesis of the
|
|
conditions of all possible things gives rise to an ideal of pure
|
|
reason, which is quite distinct from the cosmical conception, although
|
|
it stands in relation with it. Hence, as the paralogisms of pure
|
|
reason laid the foundation for a dialectical psychology, the
|
|
antinomy of pure reason will present us with the transcendental
|
|
principles of a pretended pure (rational) cosmology- not, however,
|
|
to declare it valid and to appropriate it, but- as the very term of
|
|
a conflict of reason sufficiently indicates, to present it as an
|
|
idea which cannot be reconciled with phenomena and experience.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I. System of Cosmological Ideas.
|
|
|
|
That We may be able to enumerate with systematic precision these
|
|
ideas according to a principle, we must remark, in the first place,
|
|
that it is from the understanding alone that pure and transcendental
|
|
conceptions take their origin; that the reason does not properly
|
|
give birth to any conception, but only frees the conception of the
|
|
understanding from the unavoidable limitation of a possible
|
|
experience, and thus endeavours to raise it above the empirical,
|
|
though it must still be in connection with it. This happens from the
|
|
fact that, for a given conditioned, reason demands absolute totality
|
|
on the side of the conditions (to which the understanding submits
|
|
all phenomena), and thus makes of the category a transcendental
|
|
idea. This it does that it may be able to give absolute completeness
|
|
to the empirical synthesis, by continuing it to the unconditioned
|
|
(which is not to be found in experience, but only in the idea). Reason
|
|
requires this according to the principle: If the conditioned is
|
|
given the whole of the conditions, and consequently the absolutely
|
|
unconditioned, is also given, whereby alone the former was possible.
|
|
First, then, the transcendental ideas are properly nothing but
|
|
categories elevated to the unconditioned; and they may be arranged
|
|
in a table according to the titles of the latter. But, secondly, all
|
|
the categories are not available for this purpose, but only those in
|
|
which the synthesis constitutes a series- of conditions subordinated
|
|
to, not co-ordinated with, each other. Absolute totality is required
|
|
of reason only in so far as concerns the ascending series of the
|
|
conditions of a conditioned; not, consequently, when the question
|
|
relates to the descending series of consequences, or to the
|
|
aggregate of the co-ordinated conditions of these consequences. For,
|
|
in relation to a given conditioned, conditions are presupposed and
|
|
considered to be given along with it. On the other hand, as the
|
|
consequences do not render possible their conditions, but rather
|
|
presuppose them- in the consideration of the procession of
|
|
consequences (or in the descent from the given condition to the
|
|
conditioned), we may be quite unconcerned whether the series ceases or
|
|
not; and their totality is not a necessary demand of reason.
|
|
|
|
Thus we cogitate- and necessarily- a given time completely elapsed
|
|
up to a given moment, although that time is not determinable by us.
|
|
But as regards time future, which is not the condition of arriving
|
|
at the present, in order to conceive it; it is quite indifferent
|
|
whether we consider future time as ceasing at some point, or as
|
|
prolonging itself to infinity. Take, for example, the series m, n,
|
|
o, in which n is given as conditioned in relation to m, but at the
|
|
same time as the condition of o, and let the series proceed upwards
|
|
from the conditioned n to m (l, k, i, etc.), and also downwards from
|
|
the condition n to the conditioned o (p, q, r, etc.)- I must
|
|
presuppose the former series, to be able to consider n as given, and n
|
|
is according to reason (the totality of conditions) possible only by
|
|
means of that series. But its possibility does not rest on the
|
|
following series o, p, q, r, which for this reason cannot be
|
|
regarded as given, but only as capable of being given (dabilis).
|
|
|
|
I shall term the synthesis of the series on the side of the
|
|
conditions- from that nearest to the given phenomenon up to the more
|
|
remote- regressive; that which proceeds on the side of the
|
|
conditioned, from the immediate consequence to the more remote, I
|
|
shall call the progressive synthesis. The former proceeds in
|
|
antecedentia, the latter in consequentia. The cosmological ideas are
|
|
therefore occupied with the totality of the regressive synthesis,
|
|
and proceed in antecedentia, not in consequentia. When the latter
|
|
takes place, it is an arbitrary and not a necessary problem of pure
|
|
reason; for we require, for the complete understanding of what is
|
|
given in a phenomenon, not the consequences which succeed, but the
|
|
grounds or principles which precede.
|
|
|
|
In order to construct the table of ideas in correspondence with
|
|
the table of categories, we take first the two primitive quanta of all
|
|
our intuitions, time and space. Time is in itself a series (and the
|
|
formal condition of all series), and hence, in relation to a given
|
|
present, we must distinguish a priori in it the antecedentia as
|
|
conditions (time past) from the consequentia (time future).
|
|
Consequently, the transcendental idea of the absolute totality of
|
|
the series of the conditions of a given conditioned, relates merely to
|
|
all past time. According to the idea of reason, the whole past time,
|
|
as the condition of the given moment, is necessarily cogitated as
|
|
given. But, as regards space, there exists in it no distinction
|
|
between progressus and regressus; for it is an aggregate and not a
|
|
series- its parts existing together at the same time. I can consider a
|
|
given point of time in relation to past time only as conditioned,
|
|
because this given moment comes into existence only through the past
|
|
time rather through the passing of the preceding time. But as the
|
|
parts of space are not subordinated, but co-ordinated to each other,
|
|
one part cannot be the condition of the possibility of the other;
|
|
and space is not in itself, like time, a series. But the synthesis
|
|
of the manifold parts of space- (the syntheses whereby we apprehend
|
|
space)- is nevertheless successive; it takes place, therefore, in
|
|
time, and contains a series. And as in this series of aggregated
|
|
spaces (for example, the feet in a rood), beginning with a given
|
|
portion of space, those which continue to be annexed form the
|
|
condition of the limits of the former- the measurement of a space must
|
|
also be regarded as a synthesis of the series of the conditions of a
|
|
given conditioned. It differs, however, in this respect from that of
|
|
time, that the side of the conditioned is not in itself
|
|
distinguishable from the side of the condition; and, consequently,
|
|
regressus and progressus in space seem to be identical. But,
|
|
inasmuch as one part of space is not given, but only limited, by and
|
|
through another, we must also consider every limited space as
|
|
conditioned, in so far as it presupposes some other space as the
|
|
condition of its limitation, and so on. As regards limitation,
|
|
therefore, our procedure in space is also a regressus, and the
|
|
transcendental idea of the absolute totality of the synthesis in a
|
|
series of conditions applies to space also; and I am entitled to
|
|
demand the absolute totality of the phenomenal synthesis in space as
|
|
well as in time. Whether my demand can be satisfied is a question to
|
|
be answered in the sequel.
|
|
|
|
Secondly, the real in space- that is, matter- is conditioned. Its
|
|
internal conditions are its parts, and the parts of parts its remote
|
|
conditions; so that in this case we find a regressive synthesis, the
|
|
absolute totality of which is a demand of reason. But this cannot be
|
|
obtained otherwise than by a complete division of parts, whereby the
|
|
real in matter becomes either nothing or that which is not matter,
|
|
that is to say, the simple. Consequently we find here also a series of
|
|
conditions and a progress to the unconditioned.
|
|
|
|
Thirdly, as regards the categories of a real relation between
|
|
phenomena, the category of substance and its accidents is not suitable
|
|
for the formation of a transcendental idea; that is to say, reason has
|
|
no ground, in regard to it, to proceed regressively with conditions.
|
|
For accidents (in so far as they inhere in a substance) are
|
|
co-ordinated with each other, and do not constitute a series. And,
|
|
in relation to substance, they are not properly subordinated to it,
|
|
but are the mode of existence of the substance itself. The
|
|
conception of the substantial might nevertheless seem to be an idea of
|
|
the transcendental reason. But, as this signifies nothing more than
|
|
the conception of an object in general, which subsists in so far as we
|
|
cogitate in it merely a transcendental subject without any predicates;
|
|
and as the question here is of an unconditioned in the series of
|
|
phenomena- it is clear that the substantial can form no member
|
|
thereof. The same holds good of substances in community, which are
|
|
mere aggregates and do not form a series. For they are not
|
|
subordinated to each other as conditions of the possibility of each
|
|
other; which, however, may be affirmed of spaces, the limits of
|
|
which are never determined in themselves, but always by some other
|
|
space. It is, therefore, only in the category of causality that we can
|
|
find a series of causes to a given effect, and in which we ascend from
|
|
the latter, as the conditioned, to the former as the conditions, and
|
|
thus answer the question of reason.
|
|
|
|
Fourthly, the conceptions of the possible, the actual, and the
|
|
necessary do not conduct us to any series- excepting only in so far as
|
|
the contingent in existence must always be regarded as conditioned,
|
|
and as indicating, according to a law of the understanding, a
|
|
condition, under which it is necessary to rise to a higher, till in
|
|
the totality of the series, reason arrives at unconditioned necessity.
|
|
|
|
There are, accordingly, only four cosmological ideas,
|
|
corresponding with the four titles of the categories. For we can
|
|
select only such as necessarily furnish us with a series in the
|
|
synthesis of the manifold.
|
|
|
|
1
|
|
|
|
The absolute Completeness
|
|
|
|
of the
|
|
|
|
COMPOSITION
|
|
|
|
of the given totality of all phenomena.
|
|
|
|
2
|
|
|
|
The absolute Completeness
|
|
|
|
of the
|
|
|
|
DIVISION
|
|
|
|
of given totality in a phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
3
|
|
|
|
The absolute Completeness
|
|
|
|
of the
|
|
|
|
ORIGINATION
|
|
|
|
of a phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
4
|
|
|
|
The absolute Completeness
|
|
|
|
of the DEPENDENCE of the EXISTENCE
|
|
|
|
of what is changeable in a phenomenon.
|
|
|
|
We must here remark, in the first place, that the idea of absolute
|
|
totality relates to nothing but the exposition of phenomena, and
|
|
therefore not to the pure conception of a totality of things.
|
|
Phenomena are here, therefore, regarded as given, and reason
|
|
requires the absolute completeness of the conditions of their
|
|
possibility, in so far as these conditions constitute a series-
|
|
consequently an absolutely (that is, in every respect) complete
|
|
synthesis, whereby a phenomenon can be explained according to the laws
|
|
of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
Secondly, it is properly the unconditioned alone that reason seeks
|
|
in this serially and regressively conducted synthesis of conditions.
|
|
It wishes, to speak in another way, to attain to completeness in the
|
|
series of premisses, so as to render it unnecessary to presuppose
|
|
others. This unconditioned is always contained in the absolute
|
|
totality of the series, when we endeavour to form a representation
|
|
of it in thought. But this absolutely complete synthesis is itself but
|
|
an idea; for it is impossible, at least before hand, to know whether
|
|
any such synthesis is possible in the case of phenomena. When we
|
|
represent all existence in thought by means of pure conceptions of the
|
|
understanding, without any conditions of sensuous intuition, we may
|
|
say with justice that for a given conditioned the whole series of
|
|
conditions subordinated to each other is also given; for the former is
|
|
only given through the latter. But we find in the case of phenomena
|
|
a particular limitation of the mode in which conditions are given,
|
|
that is, through the successive synthesis of the manifold of
|
|
intuition, which must be complete in the regress. Now whether this
|
|
completeness is sensuously possible, is a problem. But the idea of
|
|
it lies in the reason- be it possible or impossible to connect with
|
|
the idea adequate empirical conceptions. Therefore, as in the absolute
|
|
totality of the regressive synthesis of the manifold in a phenomenon
|
|
(following the guidance of the categories, which represent it as a
|
|
series of conditions to a given conditioned) the unconditioned is
|
|
necessarily contained- it being still left unascertained whether and
|
|
how this totality exists; reason sets out from the idea of totality,
|
|
although its proper and final aim is the unconditioned- of the whole
|
|
series, or of a part thereof.
|
|
|
|
This unconditioned may be cogitated- either as existing only in
|
|
the entire series, all the members of which therefore would be without
|
|
exception conditioned and only the totality absolutely
|
|
unconditioned- and in this case the regressus is called infinite; or
|
|
the absolutely unconditioned is only a part of the series, to which
|
|
the other members are subordinated, but which Is not itself
|
|
submitted to any other condition.* In the former case the series is
|
|
a parte priori unlimited (without beginning), that is, infinite, and
|
|
nevertheless completely given. But the regress in it is never
|
|
completed, and can only be called potentially infinite. In the
|
|
second case there exists a first in the series. This first is
|
|
called, in relation to past time, the beginning of the world; in
|
|
relation to space, the limit of the world; in relation to the parts of
|
|
a given limited whole, the simple; in relation to causes, absolute
|
|
spontaneity (liberty); and in relation to the existence of
|
|
changeable things, absolute physical necessity.
|
|
|
|
*The absolute totality of the series of conditions to a given
|
|
conditioned is always unconditioned; because beyond it there exist
|
|
no other conditions, on which it might depend. But the absolute
|
|
totality of such a series is only an idea, or rather a problematical
|
|
conception, the possibility of which must be investigated-
|
|
particularly in relation to the mode in which the unconditioned, as
|
|
the transcendental idea which is the real subject of inquiry, may be
|
|
contained therein.
|
|
|
|
We possess two expressions, world and nature, which are generally
|
|
interchanged. The first denotes the mathematical total of all
|
|
phenomena and the totality of their synthesis- in its progress by
|
|
means of composition, as well as by division. And the world is
|
|
termed nature,* when it is regarded as a dynamical whole- when our
|
|
attention is not directed to the aggregation in space and time, for
|
|
the purpose of cogitating it as a quantity, but to the unity in the
|
|
existence of phenomena. In this case the condition of that which
|
|
happens is called a cause; the unconditioned causality of the cause in
|
|
a phenomenon is termed liberty; the conditioned cause is called in a
|
|
more limited sense a natural cause. The conditioned in existence is
|
|
termed contingent, and the unconditioned necessary. The
|
|
unconditioned necessity of phenomena may be called natural necessity.
|
|
|
|
*Nature, understood adjective (formaliter), signifies the complex of
|
|
the determinations of a thing, connected according to an internal
|
|
principle of causality. On the other hand, we understand by nature,
|
|
substantive (materialiter), the sum total of phenomena, in so far as
|
|
they, by virtue of an internal principle of causality, are connected
|
|
with each other throughout. In the former sense we speak of the nature
|
|
of liquid matter, of fire, etc., and employ the word only adjective;
|
|
while, if speaking of the objects of nature, we have in our minds
|
|
the idea of a subsisting whole.
|
|
|
|
The ideas which we are at present engaged in discussing I have
|
|
called cosmological ideas; partly because by the term world is
|
|
understood the entire content of all phenomena, and our ideas are
|
|
directed solely to the unconditioned among phenomena; partly also,
|
|
because world, in the transcendental sense, signifies the absolute
|
|
totality of the content of existing things, and we are directing our
|
|
attention only to the completeness of the synthesis- although,
|
|
properly, only in regression. In regard to the fact that these ideas
|
|
are all transcendent. and, although they do not transcend phenomena as
|
|
regards their mode, but are concerned solely with the world of sense
|
|
(and not with noumena), nevertheless carry their synthesis to a degree
|
|
far above all possible experience- it still seems to me that we can,
|
|
with perfect propriety, designate them cosmical conceptions. As
|
|
regards the distinction between the mathematically and the dynamically
|
|
unconditioned which is the aim of the regression of the synthesis, I
|
|
should call the two former, in a more limited signification,
|
|
cosmical conceptions, the remaining two transcendent physical
|
|
conceptions. This distinction does not at present seem to be of
|
|
particular importance, but we shall afterwards find it to be of some
|
|
value.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Antithetic of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
Thetic is the term applied to every collection of dogmatical
|
|
propositions. By antithetic I do not understand dogmatical
|
|
assertions of the opposite, but the self-contradiction of seemingly
|
|
dogmatical cognitions (thesis cum antithesis, in none of which we
|
|
can discover any decided superiority. Antithetic is not, therefore,
|
|
occupied with one-sided statements, but is engaged in considering
|
|
the contradictory nature of the general cognitions of reason and its
|
|
causes. Transcendental antithetic is an investigation into the
|
|
antinomy of pure reason, its causes and result. If we employ our
|
|
reason not merely in the application of the principles of the
|
|
understanding to objects of experience, but venture with it beyond
|
|
these boundaries, there arise certain sophistical propositions or
|
|
theorems. These assertions have the following peculiarities: They
|
|
can find neither confirmation nor confutation in experience; and
|
|
each is in itself not only self-consistent, but possesses conditions
|
|
of its necessity in the very nature of reason- only that, unluckily,
|
|
there exist just as valid and necessary grounds for maintaining the
|
|
contrary proposition.
|
|
|
|
The questions which naturally arise in the consideration of this
|
|
dialectic of pure reason, are therefore: 1st. In what propositions
|
|
is pure reason unavoidably subject to an antinomy? 2nd. What are the
|
|
causes of this antinomy? 3rd. Whether and in what way can reason
|
|
free itself from this self-contradiction?
|
|
|
|
A dialectical proposition or theorem of pure reason must,
|
|
according to what has been said, be distinguishable from all
|
|
sophistical propositions, by the fact that it is not an answer to an
|
|
arbitrary question, which may be raised at the mere pleasure of any
|
|
person, but to one which human reason must necessarily encounter in
|
|
its progress. In the second place, a dialectical proposition, with its
|
|
opposite, does not carry the appearance of a merely artificial
|
|
illusion, which disappears as soon as it is investigated, but a
|
|
natural and unavoidable illusion, which, even when we are no longer
|
|
deceived by it, continues to mock us and, although rendered
|
|
harmless, can never be completely removed.
|
|
|
|
This dialectical doctrine will not relate to the unity of
|
|
understanding in empirical conceptions, but to the unity of reason
|
|
in pure ideas. The conditions of this doctrine are- inasmuch as it
|
|
must, as a synthesis according to rules, be conformable to the
|
|
understanding, and at the same time as the absolute unity of the
|
|
synthesis, to the reason- that, if it is adequate to the unity of
|
|
reason, it is too great for the understanding, if according with the
|
|
understanding, it is too small for the reason. Hence arises a mutual
|
|
opposition, which cannot be avoided, do what we will.
|
|
|
|
These sophistical assertions of dialectic open, as it were, a
|
|
battle-field, where that side obtains the victory which has been
|
|
permitted to make the attack, and he is compelled to yield who has
|
|
been unfortunately obliged to stand on the defensive. And hence,
|
|
champions of ability, whether on the right or on the wrong side, are
|
|
certain to carry away the crown of victory, if they only take care
|
|
to have the right to make the last attack, and are not obliged to
|
|
sustain another onset from their opponent. We can easily believe
|
|
that this arena has been often trampled by the feet of combatants,
|
|
that many victories have been obtained on both sides, but that the
|
|
last victory, decisive of the affair between the contending parties,
|
|
was won by him who fought for the right, only if his adversary was
|
|
forbidden to continue the tourney. As impartial umpires, we must lay
|
|
aside entirely the consideration whether the combatants are fighting
|
|
for the right or for the wrong side, for the true or for the false,
|
|
and allow the combat to be first decided. Perhaps, after they have
|
|
wearied more than injured each other, they will discover the
|
|
nothingness of their cause of quarrel and part good friends.
|
|
|
|
This method of watching, or rather of originating, a conflict of
|
|
assertions, not for the purpose of finally deciding in favour of
|
|
either side, but to discover whether the object of the struggle is not
|
|
a mere illusion, which each strives in vain to reach, but which
|
|
would be no gain even when reached- this procedure, I say, may be
|
|
termed the sceptical method. It is thoroughly distinct from
|
|
scepticism- the principle of a technical and scientific ignorance,
|
|
which undermines the foundations of all knowledge, in order, if
|
|
possible, to destroy our belief and confidence therein. For the
|
|
sceptical method aims at certainty, by endeavouring to discover in a
|
|
conflict of this kind, conducted honestly and intelligently on both
|
|
sides, the point of misunderstanding; just as wise legislators derive,
|
|
from the embarrassment of judges in lawsuits, information in regard to
|
|
the defective and ill-defined parts of their statutes. The antinomy
|
|
which reveals itself in the application of laws, is for our limited
|
|
wisdom the best criterion of legislation. For the attention of reason,
|
|
which in abstract speculation does not easily become conscious of
|
|
its errors, is thus roused to the momenta in the determination of
|
|
its principles.
|
|
|
|
But this sceptical method is essentially peculiar to
|
|
transcendental philosophy, and can perhaps be dispensed with in
|
|
every other field of investigation. In mathematics its use would be
|
|
absurd; because in it no false assertions can long remain hidden,
|
|
inasmuch as its demonstrations must always proceed under the
|
|
guidance of pure intuition, and by means of an always evident
|
|
synthesis. In experimental philosophy, doubt and delay may be very
|
|
useful; but no misunderstanding is possible, which cannot be easily
|
|
removed; and in experience means of solving the difficulty and putting
|
|
an end to the dissension must at last be found, whether sooner or
|
|
later. Moral philosophy can always exhibit its principles, with
|
|
their practical consequences, in concreto- at least in possible
|
|
experiences, and thus escape the mistakes and ambiguities of
|
|
abstraction. But transcendental propositions, which lay claim to
|
|
insight beyond the region of possible experience, cannot, on the one
|
|
hand, exhibit their abstract synthesis in any a priori intuition, nor,
|
|
on the other, expose a lurking error by the help of experience.
|
|
Transcendental reason, therefore, presents us with no other
|
|
criterion than that of an attempt to reconcile such assertions, and
|
|
for this purpose to permit a free and unrestrained conflict between
|
|
them. And this we now proceed to arrange.*
|
|
|
|
*The antinomies stand in the order of the four transcendental
|
|
ideas above detailed.
|
|
|
|
FIRST CONFLICT OF THE TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS.
|
|
|
|
THESIS.
|
|
|
|
The world has a beginning in time, and is also limited in
|
|
regard to space.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Granted that the world has no beginning in time; up to every given
|
|
moment of time, an eternity must have elapsed, and therewith passed
|
|
away an infinite series of successive conditions or states of things
|
|
in the world. Now the infinity of a series consists in the fact that
|
|
it never can be completed by means of a successive synthesis. It
|
|
follows that an infinite series already elapsed is impossible and
|
|
that, consequently, a beginning of the world is a necessary
|
|
condition of its existence. And this was the first thing to be proved.
|
|
|
|
As regards the second, let us take the opposite for granted. In this
|
|
case, the world must be an infinite given total of coexistent
|
|
things. Now we cannot cogitate the dimensions of a quantity, which
|
|
is not given within certain limits of an intuition,* in any other
|
|
way than by means of the synthesis of its parts, and the total of such
|
|
a quantity only by means of a completed synthesis, or the repeated
|
|
addition of unity to itself. Accordingly, to cogitate the world, which
|
|
fills all spaces, as a whole, the successive synthesis of the parts of
|
|
an infinite world must be looked upon as completed, that is to say, an
|
|
infinite time must be regarded as having elapsed in the enumeration of
|
|
all co-existing things; which is impossible. For this reason an
|
|
infinite aggregate of actual things cannot be considered as a given
|
|
whole, consequently, not as a contemporaneously given whole. The world
|
|
is consequently, as regards extension in space, not infinite, but
|
|
enclosed in limits. And this was the second thing to be proved.
|
|
|
|
*We may consider an undetermined quantity as a whole, when it is
|
|
enclosed within limits, although we cannot construct or ascertain
|
|
its totality by measurement, that is, by the successive synthesis of
|
|
its parts. For its limits of themselves determine its completeness
|
|
as a whole.
|
|
|
|
ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
The world has no beginning, and no limits in space, but is, in
|
|
relation both to time and space, infinite.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
For let it be granted that it has a beginning. A beginning is an
|
|
existence which is preceded by a time in which the thing does not
|
|
exist. On the above supposition, it follows that there must have
|
|
been a time in which the world did not exist, that is, a void time.
|
|
But in a void time the origination of a thing is impossible; because
|
|
no part of any such time contains a distinctive condition of being, in
|
|
preference to that of non-being (whether the supposed thing
|
|
originate of itself, or by means of some other cause). Consequently,
|
|
many series of things may have a beginning in the world, but the world
|
|
itself cannot have a beginning, and is, therefore, in relation to past
|
|
time, infinite.
|
|
|
|
As regards the second statement, let us first take the opposite
|
|
for granted- that the world is finite and limited in space; it follows
|
|
that it must exist in a void space, which is not limited. We should
|
|
therefore meet not only with a relation of things in space, but also a
|
|
relation of things to space. Now, as the world is an absolute whole,
|
|
out of and beyond which no object of intuition, and consequently no
|
|
correlate to which can be discovered, this relation of the world to
|
|
a void space is merely a relation to no object. But such a relation,
|
|
and consequently the limitation of the world by void space, is
|
|
nothing. Consequently, the world, as regards space, is not limited,
|
|
that is, it is infinite in regard to extension.*
|
|
|
|
*Space is merely the form of external intuition (formal
|
|
intuition), and not a real object which can be externally perceived.
|
|
Space, prior to all things which determine it (fill or limit it),
|
|
or, rather, which present an empirical intuition conformable to it,
|
|
is, under the title of absolute space, nothing but the mere
|
|
possibility of external phenomena, in so far as they either exist in
|
|
themselves, or can annex themselves to given intuitions. Empirical
|
|
intuition is therefore not a composition of phenomena and space (of
|
|
perception and empty intuition). The one is not the correlate of the
|
|
other in a synthesis, but they are vitally connected in the same
|
|
empirical intuition, as matter and form. If we wish to set one of
|
|
these two apart from the other- space from phenomena- there arise
|
|
all sorts of empty determinations of external intuition, which are
|
|
very far from being possible perceptions. For example, motion or
|
|
rest of the world in an infinite empty space, or a determination of
|
|
the mutual relation of both, cannot possibly be perceived, and is
|
|
therefore merely the predicate of a notional entity.
|
|
|
|
OBSERVATIONS ON THE FIRST ANTINOMY.
|
|
|
|
ON THE THESIS.
|
|
|
|
In bringing forward these conflicting arguments, I have not been
|
|
on the search for sophisms, for the purpose of availing myself of
|
|
special pleading, which takes advantage of the carelessness of the
|
|
opposite party, appeals to a misunderstood statute, and erects its
|
|
unrighteous claims upon an unfair interpretation. Both proofs
|
|
originate fairly from the nature of the case, and the advantage
|
|
presented by the mistakes of the dogmatists of both parties has been
|
|
completely set aside.
|
|
|
|
The thesis might also have been unfairly demonstrated, by the
|
|
introduction of an erroneous conception of the infinity of a given
|
|
quantity. A quantity is infinite, if a greater than itself cannot
|
|
possibly exist. The quantity is measured by the number of given units-
|
|
which are taken as a standard- contained in it. Now no number can be
|
|
the greatest, because one or more units can always be added. It
|
|
follows that an infinite given quantity, consequently an infinite
|
|
world (both as regards time and extension) is impossible. It is,
|
|
therefore, limited in both respects. In this manner I might have
|
|
conducted my proof; but the conception given in it does not agree with
|
|
the true conception of an infinite whole. In this there is no
|
|
representation of its quantity, it is not said how large it is;
|
|
consequently its conception is not the conception of a maximum. We
|
|
cogitate in it merely its relation to an arbitrarily assumed unit,
|
|
in relation to which it is greater than any number. Now, just as the
|
|
unit which is taken is greater or smaller, the infinite will be
|
|
greater or smaller; but the infinity, which consists merely in the
|
|
relation to this given unit, must remain always the same, although the
|
|
absolute quantity of the whole is not thereby cognized.
|
|
|
|
The true (transcendental) conception of infinity is: that the
|
|
successive synthesis of unity in the measurement of a given quantum
|
|
can never be completed.* Hence it follows, without possibility of
|
|
mistake, that an eternity of actual successive states up to a given
|
|
(the present) moment cannot have elapsed, and that the world must
|
|
therefore have a beginning.
|
|
|
|
*The quantum in this sense contains a congeries of given units,
|
|
which is greater than any number- and this is the mathematical
|
|
conception of the infinite.
|
|
|
|
In regard to the second part of the thesis, the difficulty as to
|
|
an infinite and yet elapsed series disappears; for the manifold of a
|
|
world infinite in extension is contemporaneously given. But, in
|
|
order to cogitate the total of this manifold, as we cannot have the
|
|
aid of limits constituting by themselves this total in intuition, we
|
|
are obliged to give some account of our conception, which in this case
|
|
cannot proceed from the whole to the determined quantity of the parts,
|
|
but must demonstrate the possibility of a whole by means of a
|
|
successive synthesis of the parts. But as this synthesis must
|
|
constitute a series that cannot be completed, it is impossible for
|
|
us to cogitate prior to it, and consequently not by means of it, a
|
|
totality. For the conception of totality itself is in the present case
|
|
the representation of a completed synthesis of the parts; and this
|
|
completion, and consequently its conception, is impossible.
|
|
|
|
ON THE ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
The proof in favour of the infinity of the cosmical succession and
|
|
the cosmical content is based upon the consideration that, in the
|
|
opposite case, a void time and a void space must constitute the limits
|
|
of the world. Now I am not unaware, that there are some ways of
|
|
escaping this conclusion. It may, for example, be alleged, that a
|
|
limit to the world, as regards both space and time, is quite possible,
|
|
without at the same time holding the existence of an absolute time
|
|
before the beginning of the world, or an absolute space extending
|
|
beyond the actual world- which is impossible. I am quite well
|
|
satisfied with the latter part of this opinion of the philosophers
|
|
of the Leibnitzian school. Space is merely the form of external
|
|
intuition, but not a real object which can itself be externally
|
|
intuited; it is not a correlate of phenomena, it is the form of
|
|
phenomena itself. Space, therefore, cannot be regarded as absolutely
|
|
and in itself something determinative of the existence of things,
|
|
because it is not itself an object, but only the form of possible
|
|
objects. Consequently, things, as phenomena, determine space; that
|
|
is to say, they render it possible that, of all the possible
|
|
predicates of space (size and relation), certain may belong to
|
|
reality. But we cannot affirm the converse, that space, as something
|
|
self-subsistent, can determine real things in regard to size or shape,
|
|
for it is in itself not a real thing. Space (filled or void)* may
|
|
therefore be limited by phenomena, but phenomena cannot be limited
|
|
by an empty space without them. This is true of time also. All this
|
|
being granted, it is nevertheless indisputable, that we must assume
|
|
these two nonentities, void space without and void time before the
|
|
world, if we assume the existence of cosmical limits, relatively to
|
|
space or time.
|
|
|
|
*It is evident that what is meant here is, that empty space, in so
|
|
far as it is limited by phenomena- space, that is, within the world-
|
|
does not at least contradict transcendental principles, and may
|
|
therefore, as regards them, be admitted, although its possibility
|
|
cannot on that account be affirmed.
|
|
|
|
For, as regards the subterfuge adopted by those who endeavour to
|
|
evade the consequence- that, if the world is limited as to space and
|
|
time, the infinite void must determine the existence of actual
|
|
things in regard to their dimensions- it arises solely from the fact
|
|
that instead of a sensuous world, an intelligible world- of which
|
|
nothing is known- is cogitated; instead of a real beginning (an
|
|
existence, which is preceded by a period in which nothing exists),
|
|
an existence which presupposes no other condition than that of time;
|
|
and, instead of limits of extension, boundaries of the universe. But
|
|
the question relates to the mundus phaenomenon, and its quantity;
|
|
and in this case we cannot make abstraction of the conditions of
|
|
sensibility, without doing away with the essential reality of this
|
|
world itself. The world of sense, if it is limited, must necessarily
|
|
lie in the infinite void. If this, and with it space as the a priori
|
|
condition of the possibility of phenomena, is left out of view, the
|
|
whole world of sense disappears. In our problem is this alone
|
|
considered as given. The mundus intelligibilis is nothing but the
|
|
general conception of a world, in which abstraction has been made of
|
|
all conditions of intuition, and in relation to which no synthetical
|
|
proposition- either affirmative or negative- is possible.
|
|
|
|
SECOND CONFLICT OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS.
|
|
|
|
THESIS.
|
|
|
|
Every composite substance in the world consists of simple parts; and
|
|
there exists nothing that is not either itself simple, or composed
|
|
of simple parts.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
For, grant that composite substances do not consist of simple parts;
|
|
in this case, if all combination or composition were annihilated in
|
|
thought, no composite part, and (as, by the supposition, there do
|
|
not exist simple parts) no simple part would exist. Consequently, no
|
|
substance; consequently, nothing would exist. Either, then, it is
|
|
impossible to annihilate composition in thought; or, after such
|
|
annihilation, there must remain something that subsists without
|
|
composition, that is, something that is simple. But in the former case
|
|
the composite could not itself consist of substances, because with
|
|
substances composition is merely a contingent relation, apart from
|
|
which they must still exist as self-subsistent beings. Now, as this
|
|
case contradicts the supposition, the second must contain the truth-
|
|
that the substantial composite in the world consists of simple parts.
|
|
|
|
It follows, as an immediate inference, that the things in the
|
|
world are all, without exception, simple beings- that composition is
|
|
merely an external condition pertaining to them- and that, although we
|
|
never can separate and isolate the elementary substances from the
|
|
state of composition, reason must cogitate these as the primary
|
|
subjects of all composition, and consequently, as prior thereto- and
|
|
as simple substances.
|
|
|
|
ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
No composite thing in the world consists of simple parts; and
|
|
there does not exist in the world any simple substance.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Let it be supposed that a composite thing (as substance) consists of
|
|
simple parts. Inasmuch as all external relation, consequently all
|
|
composition of substances, is possible only in space; the space,
|
|
occupied by that which is composite, must consist of the same number
|
|
of parts as is contained in the composite. But space does not
|
|
consist of simple parts, but of spaces. Therefore, every part of the
|
|
composite must occupy a space. But the absolutely primary parts of
|
|
what is composite are simple. It follows that what is simple
|
|
occupies a space. Now, as everything real that occupies a space,
|
|
contains a manifold the parts of which are external to each other, and
|
|
is consequently composite- and a real composite, not of accidents (for
|
|
these cannot exist external to each other apart from substance), but
|
|
of substances- it follows that the simple must be a substantial
|
|
composite, which is self-contradictory.
|
|
|
|
The second proposition of the antithesis- that there exists in the
|
|
world nothing that is simple- is here equivalent to the following: The
|
|
existence of the absolutely simple cannot be demonstrated from any
|
|
experience or perception either external or internal; and the
|
|
absolutely simple is a mere idea, the objective reality of which
|
|
cannot be demonstrated in any possible experience; it is consequently,
|
|
in the exposition of phenomena, without application and object. For,
|
|
let us take for granted that an object may be found in experience
|
|
for this transcendental idea; the empirical intuition of such an
|
|
object must then be recognized to contain absolutely no manifold
|
|
with its parts external to each other, and connected into unity.
|
|
Now, as we cannot reason from the non-consciousness of such a manifold
|
|
to the impossibility of its existence in the intuition of an object,
|
|
and as the proof of this impossibility is necessary for the
|
|
establishment and proof of absolute simplicity; it follows that this
|
|
simplicity cannot be inferred from any perception whatever. As,
|
|
therefore, an absolutely simple object cannot be given in any
|
|
experience, and the world of sense must be considered as the sum total
|
|
of all possible experiences: nothing simple exists in the world.
|
|
|
|
This second proposition in the antithesis has a more extended aim
|
|
than the first. The first merely banishes the simple from the
|
|
intuition of the composite; while the second drives it entirely out of
|
|
nature. Hence we were unable to demonstrate it from the conception
|
|
of a given object of external intuition (of the composite), but we
|
|
were obliged to prove it from the relation of a given object to a
|
|
possible experience in general.
|
|
|
|
OBSERVATIONS ON THE SECOND ANTINOMY.
|
|
|
|
THESIS.
|
|
|
|
When I speak of a whole, which necessarily consists of simple parts,
|
|
I understand thereby only a substantial whole, as the true
|
|
composite; that is to say, I understand that contingent unity of the
|
|
manifold which is given as perfectly isolated (at least in thought),
|
|
placed in reciprocal connection, and thus constituted a unity. Space
|
|
ought not to be called a compositum but a totum, for its parts are
|
|
possible in the whole, and not the whole by means of the parts. It
|
|
might perhaps be called a compositum ideale, but not a compositum
|
|
reale. But this is of no importance. As space is not a composite of
|
|
substances (and not even of real accidents), if I abstract all
|
|
composition therein- nothing, not even a point, remains; for a point
|
|
is possible only as the limit of a space- consequently of a composite.
|
|
Space and time, therefore, do not consist of simple parts. That
|
|
which belongs only to the condition or state of a substance, even
|
|
although it possesses a quantity (motion or change, for example),
|
|
likewise does not consist of simple parts. That is to say, a certain
|
|
degree of change does not originate from the addition of many simple
|
|
changes. Our inference of the simple from the composite is valid
|
|
only of self-subsisting things. But the accidents of a state are not
|
|
self-subsistent. The proof, then, for the necessity of the simple,
|
|
as the component part of all that is substantial and composite, may
|
|
prove a failure, and the whole case of this thesis be lost, if we
|
|
carry the proposition too far, and wish to make it valid of everything
|
|
that is composite without distinction- as indeed has really now and
|
|
then happened. Besides, I am here speaking only of the simple, in so
|
|
far as it is necessarily given in the composite- the latter being
|
|
capable of solution into the former as its component parts. The proper
|
|
signification of the word monas (as employed by Leibnitz) ought to
|
|
relate to the simple, given immediately as simple substance (for
|
|
example, in consciousness), and not as an element of the composite. As
|
|
an clement, the term atomus would be more appropriate. And as I wish
|
|
to prove the existence of simple substances, only in relation to,
|
|
and as the elements of, the composite, I might term the antithesis
|
|
of the second Antinomy, transcendental Atomistic. But as this word has
|
|
long been employed to designate a particular theory of corporeal
|
|
phenomena (moleculae), and thus presupposes a basis of empirical
|
|
conceptions, I prefer calling it the dialectical principle of
|
|
Monadology.
|
|
|
|
ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
Against the assertion of the infinite subdivisibility of matter
|
|
whose ground of proof is purely mathematical, objections have been
|
|
alleged by the Monadists. These objections lay themselves open, at
|
|
first sight, to suspicion, from the fact that they do not recognize
|
|
the clearest mathematical proofs as propositions relating to the
|
|
constitution of space, in so far as it is really the formal
|
|
condition of the possibility of all matter, but regard them merely
|
|
as inferences from abstract but arbitrary conceptions, which cannot
|
|
have any application to real things. just as if it were possible to
|
|
imagine another mode of intuition than that given in the primitive
|
|
intuition of space; and just as if its a priori determinations did not
|
|
apply to everything, the existence of which is possible, from the fact
|
|
alone of its filling space. If we listen to them, we shall find
|
|
ourselves required to cogitate, in addition to the mathematical point,
|
|
which is simple- not, however, a part, but a mere limit of space-
|
|
physical points, which are indeed likewise simple, but possess the
|
|
peculiar property, as parts of space, of filling it merely by their
|
|
aggregation. I shall not repeat here the common and clear
|
|
refutations of this absurdity, which are to be found everywhere in
|
|
numbers: every one knows that it is impossible to undermine the
|
|
evidence of mathematics by mere discursive conceptions; I shall only
|
|
remark that, if in this case philosophy endeavours to gain an
|
|
advantage over mathematics by sophistical artifices, it is because
|
|
it forgets that the discussion relates solely to Phenomena and their
|
|
conditions. It is not sufficient to find the conception of the
|
|
simple for the pure conception of the composite, but we must
|
|
discover for the intuition of the composite (matter), the intuition of
|
|
the simple. Now this, according to the laws of sensibility, and
|
|
consequently in the case of objects of sense, is utterly impossible.
|
|
In the case of a whole composed of substances, which is cogitated
|
|
solely by the pure understanding, it may be necessary to be in
|
|
possession of the simple before composition is possible. But this does
|
|
not hold good of the Totum substantiale phaenomenon, which, as an
|
|
empirical intuition in space, possesses the necessary property of
|
|
containing no simple part, for the very reason that no part of space
|
|
is simple. Meanwhile, the Monadists have been subtle enough to
|
|
escape from this difficulty, by presupposing intuition and the
|
|
dynamical relation of substances as the condition of the possibility
|
|
of space, instead of regarding space as the condition of the
|
|
possibility of the objects of external intuition, that is, of
|
|
bodies. Now we have a conception of bodies only as phenomena, and,
|
|
as such, they necessarily presuppose space as the condition of all
|
|
external phenomena. The evasion is therefore in vain; as, indeed, we
|
|
have sufficiently shown in our Aesthetic. If bodies were things in
|
|
themselves, the proof of the Monadists would be unexceptionable.
|
|
|
|
The second dialectical assertion possesses the peculiarity of having
|
|
opposed to it a dogmatical proposition, which, among all such
|
|
sophistical statements, is the only one that undertakes to prove in
|
|
the case of an object of experience, that which is properly a
|
|
transcendental idea- the absolute simplicity of substance. The
|
|
proposition is that the object of the internal sense, the thinking
|
|
Ego, is an absolute simple substance. Without at present entering upon
|
|
this subject- as it has been considered at length in a former chapter-
|
|
I shall merely remark that, if something is cogitated merely as an
|
|
object, without the addition of any synthetical determination of its
|
|
intuition- as happens in the case of the bare representation, I- it is
|
|
certain that no manifold and no composition can be perceived in such a
|
|
representation. As, moreover, the predicates whereby I cogitate this
|
|
object are merely intuitions of the internal sense, there cannot be
|
|
discovered in them anything to prove the existence of a manifold whose
|
|
parts are external to each other, and, consequently, nothing to
|
|
prove the existence of real composition. Consciousness, therefore,
|
|
is so constituted that, inasmuch as the thinking subject is at the
|
|
same time its own object, it cannot divide itself- although it can
|
|
divide its inhering determinations. For every object in relation to
|
|
itself is absolute unity. Nevertheless, if the subject is regarded
|
|
externally, as an object of intuition, it must, in its character of
|
|
phenomenon, possess the property of composition. And it must always be
|
|
regarded in this manner, if we wish to know whether there is or is not
|
|
contained in it a manifold whose parts are external to each other.
|
|
|
|
THIRD CONFLICT OF THE TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS.
|
|
|
|
THESIS.
|
|
|
|
Causality according to the laws of nature, is not the only causality
|
|
operating to originate the phenomena of the world. A causality of
|
|
freedom is also necessary to account fully for these phenomena.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Let it be supposed, that there is no other kind of causality than
|
|
that according to the laws of nature. Consequently, everything that
|
|
happens presupposes a previous condition, which it follows with
|
|
absolute certainty, in conformity with a rule. But this previous
|
|
condition must itself be something that has happened (that has
|
|
arisen in time, as it did not exist before), for, if it has always
|
|
been in existence, its consequence or effect would not thus
|
|
originate for the first time, but would likewise have always
|
|
existed. The causality, therefore, of a cause, whereby something
|
|
happens, is itself a thing that has happened. Now this again
|
|
presupposes, in conformity with the law of nature, a previous
|
|
condition and its causality, and this another anterior to the
|
|
former, and so on. If, then, everything happens solely in accordance
|
|
with the laws of nature, there cannot be any real first beginning of
|
|
things, but only a subaltern or comparative beginning. There cannot,
|
|
therefore, be a completeness of series on the side of the causes which
|
|
originate the one from the other. But the law of nature is that
|
|
nothing can happen without a sufficient a priori determined cause. The
|
|
proposition therefore- if all causality is possible only in accordance
|
|
with the laws of nature- is, when stated in this unlimited and general
|
|
manner, self-contradictory. It follows that this cannot be the only
|
|
kind of causality.
|
|
|
|
From what has been said, it follows that a causality must be
|
|
admitted, by means of which something happens, without its cause being
|
|
determined according to necessary laws by some other cause
|
|
preceding. That is to say, there must exist an absolute spontaneity of
|
|
cause, which of itself originates a series of phenomena which proceeds
|
|
according to natural laws- consequently transcendental freedom,
|
|
without which even in the course of nature the succession of phenomena
|
|
on the side of causes is never complete.
|
|
|
|
ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
There is no such thing as freedom, but everything in the world
|
|
happens solely according to the laws of nature.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Granted, that there does exist freedom in the transcendental
|
|
sense, as a peculiar kind of causality, operating to produce events in
|
|
the world- a faculty, that is to say, of originating a state, and
|
|
consequently a series of consequences from that state. In this case,
|
|
not only the series originated by this spontaneity, but the
|
|
determination of this spontaneity itself to the production of the
|
|
series, that is to say, the causality itself must have an absolute
|
|
commencement, such that nothing can precede to determine this action
|
|
according to unvarying laws. But every beginning of action presupposes
|
|
in the acting cause a state of inaction; and a dynamically primal
|
|
beginning of action presupposes a state, which has no connection- as
|
|
regards causality- with the preceding state of the cause- which does
|
|
not, that is, in any wise result from it. Transcendental freedom is
|
|
therefore opposed to the natural law of cause and effect, and such a
|
|
conjunction of successive states in effective causes is destructive of
|
|
the possibility of unity in experience and for that reason not to be
|
|
found in experience- is consequently a mere fiction of thought.
|
|
|
|
We have, therefore, nothing but nature to which we must look for
|
|
connection and order in cosmical events. Freedom- independence of
|
|
the laws of nature- is certainly a deliverance from restraint, but
|
|
it is also a relinquishing of the guidance of law and rule. For it
|
|
cannot be alleged that, instead of the laws of nature, laws of freedom
|
|
may be introduced into the causality of the course of nature. For,
|
|
if freedom were determined according to laws, it would be no longer
|
|
freedom, but merely nature. Nature, therefore, and transcendental
|
|
freedom are distinguishable as conformity to law and lawlessness.
|
|
The former imposes upon understanding the difficulty of seeking the
|
|
origin of events ever higher and higher in the series of causes,
|
|
inasmuch as causality is always conditioned thereby; while it
|
|
compensates this labour by the guarantee of a unity complete and in
|
|
conformity with law. The latter, on the contrary, holds out to the
|
|
understanding the promise of a point of rest in the chain of causes,
|
|
by conducting it to an unconditioned causality, which professes to
|
|
have the power of spontaneous origination, but which, in its own utter
|
|
blindness, deprives it of the guidance of rules, by which alone a
|
|
completely connected experience is possible.
|
|
|
|
OBSERVATIONS ON THE THIRD ANTINOMY.
|
|
|
|
ON THE THESIS.
|
|
|
|
The transcendental idea of freedom is far from constituting the
|
|
entire content of the psychological conception so termed, which is for
|
|
the most part empirical. It merely presents us with the conception
|
|
of spontaneity of action, as the proper ground for imputing freedom to
|
|
the cause of a certain class of objects. It is, however, the true
|
|
stumbling-stone to philosophy, which meets with unconquerable
|
|
difficulties in the way of its admitting this kind of unconditioned
|
|
causality. That element in the question of the freedom of the will,
|
|
which bas for so long a time placed speculative reason in such
|
|
perplexity, is properly only transcendental, and concerns the
|
|
question, whether there must be held to exist a faculty of spontaneous
|
|
origination of a series of successive things or states. How such a
|
|
faculty is possible is not a necessary inquiry; for in the case of
|
|
natural causality itself, we are obliged to content ourselves with the
|
|
a priori knowledge that such a causality must be presupposed, although
|
|
we are quite incapable of comprehending how the being of one thing
|
|
is possible through the being of another, but must for this
|
|
information look entirely to experience. Now we have demonstrated this
|
|
necessity of a free first beginning of a series of phenomena, only
|
|
in so far as it is required for the comprehension of an origin of
|
|
the world, all following states being regarded as a succession
|
|
according to laws of nature alone. But, as there has thus been
|
|
proved the existence of a faculty which can of itself originate a
|
|
series in time- although we are unable to explain how it can exist- we
|
|
feel ourselves authorized to admit, even in the midst of the natural
|
|
course of events, a beginning, as regards causality, of different
|
|
successions of phenomena, and at the same time to attribute to all
|
|
substances a faculty of free action. But we ought in this case not
|
|
to allow ourselves to fall into a common misunderstanding, and to
|
|
suppose that, because a successive series in the world can only have a
|
|
comparatively first beginning- another state or condition of things
|
|
always preceding- an absolutely first beginning of a series in the
|
|
course of nature is impossible. For we are not speaking here of an
|
|
absolutely first beginning in relation to time, but as regards
|
|
causality alone. When, for example, I, completely of my own free will,
|
|
and independently of the necessarily determinative influence of
|
|
natural causes, rise from my chair, there commences with this event,
|
|
including its material consequences in infinitum, an absolutely new
|
|
series; although, in relation to time, this event is merely the
|
|
continuation of a preceding series. For this resolution and act of
|
|
mine do not form part of the succession of effects in nature, and
|
|
are not mere continuations of it; on the contrary, the determining
|
|
causes of nature cease to operate in reference to this event, which
|
|
certainly succeeds the acts of nature, but does not proceed from them.
|
|
For these reasons, the action of a free agent must be termed, in
|
|
regard to causality, if not in relation to time, an absolutely
|
|
primal beginning of a series of phenomena.
|
|
|
|
The justification of this need of reason to rest upon a free act
|
|
as the first beginning of the series of natural causes is evident from
|
|
the fact, that all philosophers of antiquity (with the exception of
|
|
the Epicurean school) felt themselves obliged, when constructing a
|
|
theory of the motions of the universe, to accept a prime mover, that
|
|
is, a freely acting cause, which spontaneously and prior to all
|
|
other causes evolved this series of states. They always felt the
|
|
need of going beyond mere nature, for the purpose of making a first
|
|
beginning comprehensible.
|
|
|
|
ON THE ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
The assertor of the all-sufficiency of nature in regard to causality
|
|
(transcendental Physiocracy), in opposition to the doctrine of
|
|
freedom, would defend his view of the question somewhat in the
|
|
following manner. He would say, in answer to the sophistical arguments
|
|
of the opposite party: If you do not accept a mathematical first, in
|
|
relation to time, you have no need to seek a dynamical first, in
|
|
regard to causality. Who compelled you to imagine an absolutely primal
|
|
condition of the world, and therewith an absolute beginning of the
|
|
gradually progressing successions of phenomena- and, as some
|
|
foundation for this fancy of yours, to set bounds to unlimited nature?
|
|
Inasmuch as the substances in the world have always existed- at
|
|
least the unity of experience renders such a supposition quite
|
|
necessary- there is no difficulty in believing also, that the
|
|
changes in the conditions of these substances have always existed;
|
|
and, consequently, that a first beginning, mathematical or
|
|
dynamical, is by no means required. The possibility of such an
|
|
infinite derivation, without any initial member from which all the
|
|
others result, is certainly quite incomprehensible. But, if you are
|
|
rash enough to deny the enigmatical secrets of nature for this reason,
|
|
you will find yourselves obliged to deny also the existence of many
|
|
fundamental properties of natural objects (such as fundamental
|
|
forces), which you can just as little comprehend; and even the
|
|
possibility of so simple a conception as that of change must present
|
|
to you insuperable difficulties. For if experience did not teach you
|
|
that it was real, you never could conceive a priori the possibility of
|
|
this ceaseless sequence of being and non-being.
|
|
|
|
But if the existence of a transcendental faculty of freedom is
|
|
granted- a faculty of originating changes in the world- this faculty
|
|
must at least exist out of and apart from the world; although it is
|
|
certainly a bold assumption, that, over and above the complete content
|
|
of all possible intuitions, there still exists an object which
|
|
cannot be presented in any possible perception. But, to attribute to
|
|
substances in the world itself such a faculty, is quite
|
|
inadmissible; for, in this case; the connection of phenomena
|
|
reciprocally determining and determined according to general laws,
|
|
which is termed nature, and along with it the criteria of empirical
|
|
truth, which enable us to distinguish experience from mere visionary
|
|
dreaming, would almost entirely disappear. In proximity with such a
|
|
lawless faculty of freedom, a system of nature is hardly cogitable;
|
|
for the laws of the latter would be continually subject to the
|
|
intrusive influences of the former, and the course of phenomena, which
|
|
would otherwise proceed regularly and uniformly, would become
|
|
thereby confused and disconnected.
|
|
|
|
FOURTH CONFLICT OF THE TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS.
|
|
|
|
THESIS.
|
|
|
|
There exists either in, or in connection with the world- either as a
|
|
part of it, or as the cause of it-an absolutely necessary being.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
The world of sense, as the sum total of all phenomena, contains a
|
|
series of changes. For, without such a series, the mental
|
|
representation of the series of time itself, as the condition of the
|
|
possibility of the sensuous world, could not be presented to us.*
|
|
But every change stands under its condition, which precedes it in time
|
|
and renders it necessary. Now the existence of a given condition
|
|
presupposes a complete series of conditions up to the absolutely
|
|
unconditioned, which alone is absolutely necessary. It follows that
|
|
something that is absolutely necessary must exist, if change exists as
|
|
its consequence. But this necessary thing itself belongs to the
|
|
sensuous world. For suppose it to exist out of and apart from it,
|
|
the series of cosmical changes would receive from it a beginning,
|
|
and yet this necessary cause would not itself belong to the world of
|
|
sense. But this is impossible. For, as the beginning of a series in
|
|
time is determined only by that which precedes it in time, the supreme
|
|
condition of the beginning of a series of changes must exist in the
|
|
time in which this series itself did not exist; for a beginning
|
|
supposes a time preceding, in which the thing that begins to be was
|
|
not in existence. The causality of the necessary cause of changes, and
|
|
consequently the cause itself, must for these reasons belong to
|
|
time- and to phenomena, time being possible only as the form of
|
|
phenomena. Consequently, it cannot be cogitated as separated from
|
|
the world of sense- the sum total of all phenomena. There is,
|
|
therefore, contained in the world, something that is absolutely
|
|
necessary- whether it be the whole cosmical series itself, or only a
|
|
part of it.
|
|
|
|
*Objectively, time, as the formal condition of the possibility of
|
|
change, precedes all changes; but subjectively, and in
|
|
consciousness, the representation of time, like every other, is
|
|
given solely by occasion of perception.
|
|
|
|
ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
An absolutely necessary being does not exist, either in the world,
|
|
or out of it- as its cause.
|
|
|
|
PROOF.
|
|
|
|
Grant that either the world itself is necessary, or that there is
|
|
contained in it a necessary existence. Two cases are possible.
|
|
First, there must either be in the series of cosmical changes a
|
|
beginning, which is unconditionally necessary, and therefore uncaused-
|
|
which is at variance with the dynamical law of the determination of
|
|
all phenomena in time; or, secondly, the series itself is without
|
|
beginning, and, although contingent and conditioned in all its
|
|
parts, is nevertheless absolutely necessary and unconditioned as a
|
|
whole- which is self-contradictory. For the existence of an
|
|
aggregate cannot be necessary, if no single part of it possesses
|
|
necessary existence.
|
|
|
|
Grant, on the other band, that an absolutely necessary cause
|
|
exists out of and apart from the world. This cause, as the highest
|
|
member in the series of the causes of cosmical changes, must originate
|
|
or begin* the existence of the latter and their series. In this case
|
|
it must also begin to act, and its causality would therefore belong to
|
|
time, and consequently to the sum total of phenomena, that is, to
|
|
the world. It follows that the cause cannot be out of the world; which
|
|
is contradictory to the hypothesis. Therefore, neither in the world,
|
|
nor out of it (but in causal connection with it), does there exist any
|
|
absolutely necessary being.
|
|
|
|
*The word begin is taken in two senses. The first is active- the
|
|
cause being regarded as beginning a series of conditions as its effect
|
|
(infit). The second is passive- the causality in the cause itself
|
|
beginning to operate (fit). I reason here from the first to the
|
|
second.
|
|
|
|
OBSERVATIONS ON THE FOURTH ANTINOMY.
|
|
|
|
ON THE THESIS.
|
|
|
|
To demonstrate the existence of a necessary being, I cannot be
|
|
permitted in this place to employ any other than the cosmological
|
|
argument, which ascends from the conditioned in phenomena to the
|
|
unconditioned in conception- the unconditioned being considered the
|
|
necessary condition of the absolute totality of the series. The proof,
|
|
from the mere idea of a supreme being, belongs to another principle of
|
|
reason and requires separate discussion.
|
|
|
|
The pure cosmological proof demonstrates the existence of a
|
|
necessary being, but at the same time leaves it quite unsettled,
|
|
whether this being is the world itself, or quite distinct from it.
|
|
To establish the truth of the latter view, principles are requisite,
|
|
which are not cosmological and do not proceed in the series of
|
|
phenomena. We should require to introduce into our proof conceptions
|
|
of contingent beings- regarded merely as objects of the understanding,
|
|
and also a principle which enables us to connect these, by means of
|
|
mere conceptions, with a necessary being. But the proper place for all
|
|
such arguments is a transcendent philosophy, which has unhappily not
|
|
yet been established.
|
|
|
|
But, if we begin our proof cosmologically, by laying at the
|
|
foundation of it the series of phenomena, and the regress in it
|
|
according to empirical laws of causality, we are not at liberty to
|
|
break off from this mode of demonstration and to pass over to
|
|
something which is not itself a member of the series. The condition
|
|
must be taken in exactly the same signification as the relation of the
|
|
conditioned to its condition in the series has been taken, for the
|
|
series must conduct us in an unbroken regress to this supreme
|
|
condition. But if this relation is sensuous, and belongs to the
|
|
possible empirical employment of understanding, the supreme
|
|
condition or cause must close the regressive series according to the
|
|
laws of sensibility and consequently, must belong to the series of
|
|
time. It follows that this necessary existence must be regarded as the
|
|
highest member of the cosmical series.
|
|
|
|
Certain philosophers have, nevertheless, allowed themselves the
|
|
liberty of making such a saltus (metabasis eis allo gonos). From the
|
|
changes in the world they have concluded their empirical
|
|
contingency, that is, their dependence on empirically-determined
|
|
causes, and they thus admitted an ascending series of empirical
|
|
conditions: and in this they are quite right. But as they could not
|
|
find in this series any primal beginning or any highest member, they
|
|
passed suddenly from the empirical conception of contingency to the
|
|
pure category, which presents us with a series- not sensuous, but
|
|
intellectual- whose completeness does certainly rest upon the
|
|
existence of an absolutely necessary cause. Nay, more, this
|
|
intellectual series is not tied to any sensuous conditions; and is
|
|
therefore free from the condition of time, which requires it
|
|
spontaneously to begin its causality in time. But such a procedure
|
|
is perfectly inadmissible, as will be made plain from what follows.
|
|
|
|
In the pure sense of the categories, that is contingent the
|
|
contradictory opposite of which is possible. Now we cannot reason from
|
|
empirical contingency to intellectual. The opposite of that which is
|
|
changed- the opposite of its state- is actual at another time, and
|
|
is therefore possible. Consequently, it is not the contradictory
|
|
opposite of the former state. To be that, it is necessary that, in the
|
|
same time in which the preceding state existed, its opposite could
|
|
have existed in its place; but such a cognition is not given us in the
|
|
mere phenomenon of change. A body that was in motion = A, comes into a
|
|
state of rest = non-A. Now it cannot be concluded from the fact that a
|
|
state opposite to the state A follows it, that the contradictory
|
|
opposite of A is possible; and that A is therefore contingent. To
|
|
prove this, we should require to know that the state of rest could
|
|
have existed in the very same time in which the motion took place. Now
|
|
we know nothing more than that the state of rest was actual in the
|
|
time that followed the state of motion; consequently, that it was also
|
|
possible. But motion at one time, and rest at another time, are not
|
|
contradictorily opposed to each other. It follows from what has been
|
|
said that the succession of opposite determinations, that is,
|
|
change, does not demonstrate the fact of contingency as represented in
|
|
the conceptions of the pure understanding; and that it cannot,
|
|
therefore, conduct us to the fact of the existence of a necessary
|
|
being. Change proves merely empirical contingency, that is to say,
|
|
that the new state could not have existed without a cause, which
|
|
belongs to the preceding time. This cause- even although it is
|
|
regarded as absolutely necessary- must be presented to us in time, and
|
|
must belong to the series of phenomena.
|
|
|
|
ON THE ANTITHESIS.
|
|
|
|
The difficulties which meet us, in our attempt to rise through the
|
|
series of phenomena to the existence of an absolutely necessary
|
|
supreme cause, must not originate from our inability to establish
|
|
the truth of our mere conceptions of the necessary existence of a
|
|
thing. That is to say, our objections not be ontological, but must
|
|
be directed against the causal connection with a series of phenomena
|
|
of a condition which is itself unconditioned. In one word, they must
|
|
be cosmological and relate to empirical laws. We must show that the
|
|
regress in the series of causes (in the world of sense) cannot
|
|
conclude with an empirically unconditioned condition, and that the
|
|
cosmological argument from the contingency of the cosmical state- a
|
|
contingency alleged to arise from change- does not justify us in
|
|
accepting a first cause, that is, a prime originator of the cosmical
|
|
series.
|
|
|
|
The reader will observe in this antinomy a very remarkable contrast.
|
|
The very same grounds of proof which established in the thesis the
|
|
existence of a supreme being, demonstrated in the antithesis- and with
|
|
equal strictness- the non-existence of such a being. We found,
|
|
first, that a necessary being exists, because the whole time past
|
|
contains the series of all conditions, and with it, therefore, the
|
|
unconditioned (the necessary); secondly, that there does not exist any
|
|
necessary being, for the same reason, that the whole time past
|
|
contains the series of all conditions- which are themselves,
|
|
therefore, in the aggregate, conditioned. The cause of this seeming
|
|
incongruity is as follows. We attend, in the first argument, solely to
|
|
the absolute totality of the series of conditions, the one of which
|
|
determines the other in time, and thus arrive at a necessary
|
|
unconditioned. In the second, we consider, on the contrary, the
|
|
contingency of everything that is determined in the series of time-
|
|
for every event is preceded by a time, in which the condition itself
|
|
must be determined as conditioned- and thus everything that is
|
|
unconditioned or absolutely necessary disappears. In both, the mode of
|
|
proof is quite in accordance with the common procedure of human
|
|
reason, which often falls into discord with itself, from considering
|
|
an object from two different points of view. Herr von Mairan
|
|
regarded the controversy between two celebrated astronomers, which
|
|
arose from a similar difficulty as to the choice of a proper
|
|
standpoint, as a phenomenon of sufficient importance to warrant a
|
|
separate treatise on the subject. The one concluded: the moon revolves
|
|
on its own axis, because it constantly presents the same side to the
|
|
earth; the other declared that the moon does not revolve on its own
|
|
axis, for the same reason. Both conclusions were perfectly correct,
|
|
according to the point of view from which the motions of the moon were
|
|
considered.
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. Of the Interest of Reason in these
|
|
|
|
Self-contradictions.
|
|
|
|
We have thus completely before us the dialectical procedure of the
|
|
cosmological ideas. No possible experience can present us with an
|
|
object adequate to them in extent. Nay, more, reason itself cannot
|
|
cogitate them as according with the general laws of experience. And
|
|
yet they are not arbitrary fictions of thought. On the contrary,
|
|
reason, in its uninterrupted progress in the empirical synthesis, is
|
|
necessarily conducted to them, when it endeavours to free from all
|
|
conditions and to comprehend in its unconditioned totality that
|
|
which can only be determined conditionally in accordance with the laws
|
|
of experience. These dialectical propositions are so many attempts
|
|
to solve four natural and unavoidable problems of reason. There are
|
|
neither more, nor can there be less, than this number, because there
|
|
are no other series of synthetical hypotheses, limiting a priori the
|
|
empirical synthesis.
|
|
|
|
The brilliant claims of reason striving to extend its dominion
|
|
beyond the limits of experience, have been represented above only in
|
|
dry formulae, which contain merely the grounds of its pretensions.
|
|
They have, besides, in conformity with the character of a
|
|
transcendental philosophy, been freed from every empirical element;
|
|
although the full splendour of the promises they hold out, and the
|
|
anticipations they excite, manifests itself only when in connection
|
|
with empirical cognitions. In the application of them, however, and in
|
|
the advancing enlargement of the employment of reason, while
|
|
struggling to rise from the region of experience and to soar to
|
|
those sublime ideas, philosophy discovers a value and a dignity,
|
|
which, if it could but make good its assertions, would raise it far
|
|
above all other departments of human knowledge- professing, as it
|
|
does, to present a sure foundation for our highest hopes and the
|
|
ultimate aims of all the exertions of reason. The questions: whether
|
|
the world has a beginning and a limit to its extension in space;
|
|
whether there exists anywhere, or perhaps, in my own thinking Self, an
|
|
indivisible and indestructible unity- or whether nothing but what is
|
|
divisible and transitory exists; whether I am a free agent, or, like
|
|
other beings, am bound in the chains of nature and fate; whether,
|
|
finally, there is a supreme cause of the world, or all our thought and
|
|
speculation must end with nature and the order of external things- are
|
|
questions for the solution of which the mathematician would
|
|
willingly exchange his whole science; for in it there is no
|
|
satisfaction for the highest aspirations and most ardent desires of
|
|
humanity. Nay, it may even be said that the true value of mathematics-
|
|
that pride of human reason- consists in this: that she guides reason
|
|
to the knowledge of nature- in her greater as well as in her less
|
|
manifestations- in her beautiful order and regularity- guides her,
|
|
moreover, to an insight into the wonderful unity of the moving
|
|
forces in the operations of nature, far beyond the expectations of a
|
|
philosophy building only on experience; and that she thus encourages
|
|
philosophy to extend the province of reason beyond all experience, and
|
|
at the same time provides it with the most excellent materials for
|
|
supporting its investigations, in so far as their nature admits, by
|
|
adequate and accordant intuitions.
|
|
|
|
Unfortunately for speculation- but perhaps fortunately for the
|
|
practical interests of humanity- reason, in the midst of her highest
|
|
anticipations, finds herself hemmed in by a press of opposite and
|
|
contradictory conclusions, from which neither her honour nor her
|
|
safety will permit her to draw back. Nor can she regard these
|
|
conflicting trains of reasoning with indifference as mere passages
|
|
at arms, still less can she command peace; for in the subject of the
|
|
conflict she has a deep interest. There is no other course left open
|
|
to her than to reflect with herself upon the origin of this disunion
|
|
in reason- whether it may not arise from a mere misunderstanding.
|
|
After such an inquiry, arrogant claims would have to be given up on
|
|
both sides; but the sovereignty of reason over understanding and sense
|
|
would be based upon a sure foundation.
|
|
|
|
We shall at present defer this radical inquiry and, in the meantime,
|
|
consider for a little what side in the controversy we should most
|
|
willingly take, if we were obliged to become partisans at all. As,
|
|
in this case, we leave out of sight altogether the logical criterion
|
|
of truth, and merely consult our own interest in reference to the
|
|
question, these considerations, although inadequate to settle the
|
|
question of right in either party, will enable us to comprehend how
|
|
those who have taken part in the struggle, adopt the one view rather
|
|
than the other- no special insight into the subject, however, having
|
|
influenced their choice. They will, at the same time, explain to us
|
|
many other things by the way- for example, the fiery zeal on the one
|
|
side and the cold maintenance of their cause on the other; why the one
|
|
party has met with the warmest approbations, and the other has
|
|
always been repulsed by irreconcilable prejudices.
|
|
|
|
There is one thing, however, that determines the proper point of
|
|
view, from which alone this preliminary inquiry can be instituted
|
|
and carried on with the proper completeness- and that is the
|
|
comparison of the principles from which both sides, thesis and
|
|
antithesis, proceed. My readers would remark in the propositions of
|
|
the antithesis a complete uniformity in the mode of thought and a
|
|
perfect unity of principle. Its principle was that of pure empiricism,
|
|
not only in the explication of the phenomena in the world, but also in
|
|
the solution of the transcendental ideas, even of that of the universe
|
|
itself. The affirmations of the thesis, on the contrary, were based,
|
|
in addition to the empirical mode of explanation employed in the
|
|
series of phenomena, on intellectual propositions; and its
|
|
principles were in so far not simple. I shall term the thesis, in view
|
|
of its essential characteristic, the dogmatism of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
On the side of Dogmatism, or of the thesis, therefore, in the
|
|
determination of the cosmological ideas, we find:
|
|
|
|
1. A practical interest, which must be very dear to every
|
|
right-thinking man. That the word has a beginning- that the nature
|
|
of my thinking self is simple, and therefore indestructible- that I am
|
|
a free agent, and raised above the compulsion of nature and her
|
|
laws- and, finally, that the entire order of things, which form the
|
|
world, is dependent upon a Supreme Being, from whom the whole receives
|
|
unity and connection- these are so many foundation-stones of
|
|
morality and religion. The antithesis deprives us of all these
|
|
supports- or, at least, seems so to deprive us.
|
|
|
|
2. A speculative interest of reason manifests itself on this side.
|
|
For, if we take the transcendental ideas and employ them in the manner
|
|
which the thesis directs, we can exhibit completely a priori the
|
|
entire chain of conditions, and understand the derivation of the
|
|
conditioned- beginning from the unconditioned. This the antithesis
|
|
does not do; and for this reason does not meet with so welcome a
|
|
reception. For it can give no answer to our question respecting the
|
|
conditions of its synthesis- except such as must be supplemented by
|
|
another question, and so on to infinity. According to it, we must rise
|
|
from a given beginning to one still higher; every part conducts us
|
|
to a still smaller one; every event is preceded by another event which
|
|
is its cause; and the conditions of existence rest always upon other
|
|
and still higher conditions, and find neither end nor basis in some
|
|
self-subsistent thing as the primal being.
|
|
|
|
3. This side has also the advantage of popularity; and this
|
|
constitutes no small part of its claim to favour. The common
|
|
understanding does not find the least difficulty in the idea of the
|
|
unconditioned beginning of all synthesis- accustomed, as it is, rather
|
|
to follow our consequences than to seek for a proper basis for
|
|
cognition. In the conception of an absolute first, moreover- the
|
|
possibility of which it does not inquire into- it is highly
|
|
gratified to find a firmly-established point of departure for its
|
|
attempts at theory; while in the restless and continuous ascent from
|
|
the conditioned to the condition, always with one foot in the air,
|
|
it can find no satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
On the side of the antithesis, or Empiricism, in the determination
|
|
of the cosmological ideas:
|
|
|
|
1. We cannot discover any such practical interest arising from
|
|
pure principles of reason as morality and religion present. On the
|
|
contrary, pure empiricism seems to empty them of all their power and
|
|
influence. If there does not exist a Supreme Being distinct from the
|
|
world- if the world is without beginning, consequently without a
|
|
Creator- if our wills are not free, and the soul is divisible and
|
|
subject to corruption just like matter- the ideas and principles of
|
|
morality lose all validity and fall with the transcendental ideas
|
|
which constituted their theoretical support.
|
|
|
|
2. But empiricism, in compensation, holds out to reason, in its
|
|
speculative interests, certain important advantages, far exceeding any
|
|
that the dogmatist can promise us. For, when employed by the
|
|
empiricist, understanding is always upon its proper ground of
|
|
investigation- the field of possible experience, the laws of which
|
|
it can explore, and thus extend its cognition securely and with
|
|
clear intelligence without being stopped by limits in any direction.
|
|
Here can it and ought it to find and present to intuition its proper
|
|
object- not only in itself, but in all its relations; or, if it employ
|
|
conceptions, upon this ground it can always present the
|
|
corresponding images in clear and unmistakable intuitions. It is quite
|
|
unnecessary for it to renounce the guidance of nature, to attach
|
|
itself to ideas, the objects of which it cannot know; because, as mere
|
|
intellectual entities, they cannot be presented in any intuition. On
|
|
the contrary, it is not even permitted to abandon its proper
|
|
occupation, under the pretence that it has been brought to a
|
|
conclusion (for it never can be), and to pass into the region of
|
|
idealizing reason and transcendent conceptions, which it is not
|
|
required to observe and explore the laws of nature, but merely to
|
|
think and to imagine- secure from being contradicted by facts, because
|
|
they have not been called as witnesses, but passed by, or perhaps
|
|
subordinated to the so-called higher interests and considerations of
|
|
pure reason.
|
|
|
|
Hence the empiricist will never allow himself to accept any epoch of
|
|
nature for the first- the absolutely primal state; he will not believe
|
|
that there can be limits to his outlook into her wide domains, nor
|
|
pass from the objects of nature, which he can satisfactorily explain
|
|
by means of observation and mathematical thought- which he can
|
|
determine synthetically in intuition, to those which neither sense nor
|
|
imagination can ever present in concreto; he will not concede the
|
|
existence of a faculty in nature, operating independently of the
|
|
laws of nature- a concession which would introduce uncertainty into
|
|
the procedure of the understanding, which is guided by necessary
|
|
laws to the observation of phenomena; nor, finally, will he permit
|
|
himself to seek a cause beyond nature, inasmuch as we know nothing but
|
|
it, and from it alone receive an objective basis for all our
|
|
conceptions and instruction in the unvarying laws of things.
|
|
|
|
In truth, if the empirical philosopher had no other purpose in the
|
|
establishment of his antithesis than to check the presumption of a
|
|
reason which mistakes its true destination, which boasts of its
|
|
insight and its knowledge, just where all insight and knowledge
|
|
cease to exist, and regards that which is valid only in relation to
|
|
a practical interest, as an advancement of the speculative interests
|
|
of the mind (in order, when it is convenient for itself, to break
|
|
the thread of our physical investigations, and, under pretence of
|
|
extending our cognition, connect them with transcendental ideas, by
|
|
means of which we really know only that we know nothing)- if, I say,
|
|
the empiricist rested satisfied with this benefit, the principle
|
|
advanced by him would be a maxim recommending moderation in the
|
|
pretensions of reason and modesty in its affirmations, and at the same
|
|
time would direct us to the right mode of extending the province of
|
|
the understanding, by the help of the only true teacher, experience.
|
|
In obedience to this advice, intellectual hypotheses and faith would
|
|
not be called in aid of our practical interests; nor should we
|
|
introduce them under the pompous titles of science and insight. For
|
|
speculative cognition cannot find an objective basis any other where
|
|
than in experience; and, when we overstep its limits our synthesis,
|
|
which requires ever new cognitions independent of experience, has no
|
|
substratum of intuition upon which to build.
|
|
|
|
But if- as often happens- empiricism, in relation to ideas,
|
|
becomes itself dogmatic and boldly denies that which is above the
|
|
sphere of its phenomenal cognition, it falls itself into the error
|
|
of intemperance- an error which is here all the more reprehensible, as
|
|
thereby the practical interest of reason receives an irreparable
|
|
injury.
|
|
|
|
And this constitutes the opposition between Epicureanism* and
|
|
Platonism.
|
|
|
|
*It is, however, still a matter of doubt whether Epicurus ever
|
|
propounded these principles as directions for the objective employment
|
|
of the understanding. If, indeed, they were nothing more than maxims
|
|
for the speculative exercise of reason, he gives evidence therein a
|
|
more genuine philosophic spirit than any of the philosophers of
|
|
antiquity. That, in the explanation of phenomena, we must proceed as
|
|
if the field of inquiry had neither limits in space nor commencement
|
|
in time; that we must be satisfied with the teaching of experience
|
|
in reference to the material of which the world is posed; that we must
|
|
not look for any other mode of the origination of events than that
|
|
which is determined by the unalterable laws of nature; and finally,
|
|
that we not employ the hypothesis of a cause distinct from the world
|
|
to account for a phenomenon or for the world itself- are principles
|
|
for the extension of speculative philosophy, and the discovery of
|
|
the true sources of the principles of morals, which, however little
|
|
conformed to in the present day, are undoubtedly correct. At the
|
|
same time, any one desirous of ignoring, in mere speculation, these
|
|
dogmatical propositions, need not for that reason be accused of
|
|
denying them.
|
|
|
|
Both Epicurus and Plato assert more in their systems than they know.
|
|
The former encourages and advances science- although to the
|
|
prejudice of the practical; the latter presents us with excellent
|
|
principles for the investigation of the practical, but, in relation to
|
|
everything regarding which we can attain to speculative cognition,
|
|
permits reason to append idealistic explanations of natural phenomena,
|
|
to the great injury of physical investigation.
|
|
|
|
3. In regard to the third motive for the preliminary choice of a
|
|
party in this war of assertions, it seems very extraordinary that
|
|
empiricism should be utterly unpopular. We should be inclined to
|
|
believe that the common understanding would receive it with
|
|
pleasure- promising as it does to satisfy it without passing the
|
|
bounds of experience and its connected order; while transcendental
|
|
dogmatism obliges it to rise to conceptions which far surpass the
|
|
intelligence and ability of the most practised thinkers. But in
|
|
this, in truth, is to be found its real motive. For the common
|
|
understanding thus finds itself in a situation where not even the most
|
|
learned can have the advantage of it. If it understands little or
|
|
nothing about these transcendental conceptions, no one can boast of
|
|
understanding any more; and although it may not express itself in so
|
|
scholastically correct a manner as others, it can busy itself with
|
|
reasoning and arguments without end, wandering among mere ideas, about
|
|
which one can always be very eloquent, because we know nothing about
|
|
them; while, in the observation and investigation of nature, it
|
|
would be forced to remain dumb and to confess its utter ignorance.
|
|
Thus indolence and vanity form of themselves strong recommendations of
|
|
these principles. Besides, although it is a hard thing for a
|
|
philosopher to assume a principle, of which he can give to himself
|
|
no reasonable account, and still more to employ conceptions, the
|
|
objective reality of which cannot be established, nothing is more
|
|
usual with the common understanding. It wants something which will
|
|
allow it to go to work with confidence. The difficulty of even
|
|
comprehending a supposition does not disquiet it, because- not knowing
|
|
what comprehending means- it never even thinks of the supposition it
|
|
may be adopting as a principle; and regards as known that with which
|
|
it has become familiar from constant use. And, at last, all
|
|
speculative interests disappear before the practical interests which
|
|
it holds dear; and it fancies that it understands and knows what its
|
|
necessities and hopes incite it to assume or to believe. Thus the
|
|
empiricism of transcendentally idealizing reason is robbed of all
|
|
popularity; and, however prejudicial it may be to the highest
|
|
practical principles, there is no fear that it will ever pass the
|
|
limits of the schools, or acquire any favour or influence in society
|
|
or with the multitude a
|
|
|
|
Human reason is by nature architectonic. That is to say, it
|
|
regards all cognitions as parts of a possible system, and hence
|
|
accepts only such principles as at least do not incapacitate a
|
|
cognition to which we may have attained from being placed along with
|
|
others in a general system. But the propositions of the antithesis are
|
|
of a character which renders the completion of an edifice of
|
|
cognitions impossible. According to these, beyond one state or epoch
|
|
of the world there is always to be found one more ancient; in every
|
|
part always other parts themselves divisible; preceding every event
|
|
another, the origin of which must itself be sought still higher; and
|
|
everything in existence is conditioned, and still not dependent on
|
|
an unconditioned and primal existence. As, therefore, the antithesis
|
|
will not concede the existence of a first beginning which might be
|
|
available as a foundation, a complete edifice of cognition, in the
|
|
presence of such hypothesis, is utterly impossible. Thus the
|
|
architectonic interest of reason, which requires a unity- not
|
|
empirical, but a priori and rational- forms a natural recommendation
|
|
for the assertions of the thesis in our antinomy.
|
|
|
|
But if any one could free himself entirely from all considerations
|
|
of interest, and weigh without partiality the assertions of reason,
|
|
attending only to their content, irrespective of the consequences
|
|
which follow from them; such a person, on the supposition that he knew
|
|
no other way out of the confusion than to settle the truth of one or
|
|
other of the conflicting doctrines, would live in a state of continual
|
|
hesitation. Today, he would feel convinced that the human will is
|
|
free; to-morrow, considering the indissoluble chain of nature, he
|
|
would look on freedom as a mere illusion and declare nature to be
|
|
all-in-all. But, if he were called to action, the play of the merely
|
|
speculative reason would disappear like the shapes of a dream, and
|
|
practical interest would dictate his choice of principles. But, as
|
|
it well befits a reflective and inquiring being to devote certain
|
|
periods of time to the examination of its own reason- to divest itself
|
|
of all partiality, and frankly to communicate its observations for the
|
|
judgement and opinion of others; so no one can be blamed for, much
|
|
less prevented from, placing both parties on their trial, with
|
|
permission to end themselves, free from intimidation, before
|
|
intimidation, before a sworn jury of equal condition with
|
|
themselves- the condition of weak and fallible men.
|
|
|
|
SECTION IV. Of the necessity imposed upon Pure Reason
|
|
|
|
of presenting a Solution of its Transcendental
|
|
|
|
Problems.
|
|
|
|
To avow an ability to solve all problems and to answer all questions
|
|
would be a profession certain to convict any philosopher of
|
|
extravagant boasting and self-conceit, and at once to destroy the
|
|
confidence that might otherwise have been reposed in him. There are,
|
|
however, sciences so constituted that every question arising within
|
|
their sphere must necessarily be capable of receiving an answer from
|
|
the knowledge already possessed, for the answer must be received
|
|
from the same sources whence the question arose. In such sciences it
|
|
is not allowable to excuse ourselves on the plea of necessary and
|
|
unavoidable ignorance; a solution is absolutely requisite. The rule of
|
|
right and wrong must help us to the knowledge of what is right or
|
|
wrong in all possible cases; otherwise, the idea of obligation or duty
|
|
would be utterly null, for we cannot have any obligation to that which
|
|
we cannot know. On the other hand, in our investigations of the
|
|
phenomena of nature, much must remain uncertain, and many questions
|
|
continue insoluble; because what we know of nature is far from being
|
|
sufficient to explain all the phenomena that are presented to our
|
|
observation. Now the question is: "Whether there is in
|
|
transcendental philosophy any question, relating to an object
|
|
presented to pure reason, which is unanswerable by this reason; and
|
|
whether we must regard the subject of the question as quite uncertain,
|
|
so far as our knowledge extends, and must give it a place among
|
|
those subjects, of which we have just so much conception as is
|
|
sufficient to enable us to raise a question- faculty or materials
|
|
failing us, however, when we attempt an answer. the world
|
|
|
|
Now I maintain that, among all speculative cognition, the
|
|
peculiarity of transcendental philosophy is that there is no question,
|
|
relating to an object presented to pure reason, which is insoluble
|
|
by this reason; and that the profession of unavoidable ignorance-
|
|
the problem being alleged to be beyond the reach of our faculties-
|
|
cannot free us from the obligation to present a complete and
|
|
satisfactory answer. For the very conception which enables us to raise
|
|
the question must give us the power of answering it; inasmuch as the
|
|
object, as in the case of right and wrong, is not to be discovered out
|
|
of the conception.
|
|
|
|
But, in transcendental philosophy, it is only the cosmological
|
|
questions to which we can demand a satisfactory answer in relation
|
|
to the constitution of their object; and the philosopher is not
|
|
permitted to avail himself of the pretext of necessary ignorance and
|
|
impenetrable obscurity. These questions relate solely to the
|
|
cosmological ideas. For the object must be given in experience, and
|
|
the question relates to the adequateness of the object to an idea.
|
|
If the object is transcendental and therefore itself unknown; if the
|
|
question, for example, is whether the object- the something, the
|
|
phenomenon of which (internal- in ourselves) is thought- that is to
|
|
say, the soul, is in itself a simple being; or whether there is a
|
|
cause of all things, which is absolutely necessary- in such cases we
|
|
are seeking for our idea an object, of which we may confess that it is
|
|
unknown to us, though we must not on that account assert that it is
|
|
impossible.* The cosmological ideas alone posses the peculiarity
|
|
that we can presuppose the object of them and the empirical
|
|
synthesis requisite for the conception of that object to be given; and
|
|
the question, which arises from these ideas, relates merely to the
|
|
progress of this synthesis, in so far as it must contain absolute
|
|
totality- which, however, is not empirical, as it cannot be given in
|
|
any experience. Now, as the question here is solely in regard to a
|
|
thing as the object of a possible experience and not as a thing in
|
|
itself, the answer to the transcendental cosmological question need
|
|
not be sought out of the idea, for the question does not regard an
|
|
object in itself. The question in relation to a possible experience is
|
|
not, "What can be given in an experience in concreto" but "what is
|
|
contained in the idea, to which the empirical synthesis must
|
|
approximate." The question must therefore be capable of solution
|
|
from the idea alone. For the idea is a creation of reason itself,
|
|
which therefore cannot disclaim the obligation to answer or refer us
|
|
to the unknown object.
|
|
|
|
*The question, "What is the constitution of a transcendental
|
|
object?" is unanswerable- we are unable to say what it is; but we
|
|
can perceive that the question itself is nothing; because it does
|
|
not relate to any object that can be presented to us. For this reason,
|
|
we must consider all the questions raised in transcendental psychology
|
|
as answerable and as really answered; for they relate to the
|
|
transcendental subject of all internal phenomena, which is not
|
|
itself phenomenon and consequently not given as an object, in which,
|
|
moreover, none of the categories- and it is to them that the
|
|
question is properly directed- find any conditions of its application.
|
|
Here, therefore, is a case where no answer is the only proper
|
|
answer. For a question regarding the constitution of a something which
|
|
cannot be cogitated by any determined predicate, being completely
|
|
beyond the sphere of objects and experience, is perfectly null and
|
|
void.
|
|
|
|
It is not so extraordinary, as it at first sight appears, that a
|
|
science should demand and expect satisfactory answers to all the
|
|
questions that may arise within its own sphere (questiones
|
|
domesticae), although, up to a certain time, these answers may not
|
|
have been discovered. There are, in addition to transcendental
|
|
philosophy, only two pure sciences of reason; the one with a
|
|
speculative, the other with a practical content- pure mathematics
|
|
and pure ethics. Has any one ever heard it alleged that, from our
|
|
complete and necessary ignorance of the conditions, it is uncertain
|
|
what exact relation the diameter of a circle bears to the circle in
|
|
rational or irrational numbers? By the former the sum cannot be
|
|
given exactly, by the latter only approximately; and therefore we
|
|
decide that the impossibility of a solution of the question is
|
|
evident. Lambert presented us with a demonstration of this. In the
|
|
general principles of morals there can be nothing uncertain, for the
|
|
propositions are either utterly without meaning, or must originate
|
|
solely in our rational conceptions. On the other hand, there must be
|
|
in physical science an infinite number of conjectures, which can never
|
|
become certainties; because the phenomena of nature are not given as
|
|
objects dependent on our conceptions. The key to the solution of
|
|
such questions cannot, therefore, be found in our conceptions, or in
|
|
pure thought, but must lie without us and for that reason is in many
|
|
cases not to be discovered; and consequently a satisfactory
|
|
explanation cannot be expected. The questions of transcendental
|
|
analytic, which relate to the deduction of our pure cognition, are not
|
|
to be regarded as of the same kind as those mentioned above; for we
|
|
are not at present treating of the certainty of judgements in relation
|
|
to the origin of our conceptions, but only of that certainty in
|
|
relation to objects.
|
|
|
|
We cannot, therefore, escape the responsibility of at least a
|
|
critical solution of the questions of reason, by complaints of the
|
|
limited nature of our faculties, and the seemingly humble confession
|
|
that it is beyond the power of our reason to decide, whether the world
|
|
has existed from all eternity or had a beginning- whether it is
|
|
infinitely extended, or enclosed within certain limits- whether
|
|
anything in the world is simple, or whether everything must be capable
|
|
of infinite divisibility- whether freedom can originate phenomena,
|
|
or whether everything is absolutely dependent on the laws and order of
|
|
nature- and, finally, whether there exists a being that is
|
|
completely unconditioned and necessary, or whether the existence of
|
|
everything is conditioned and consequently dependent on something
|
|
external to itself, and therefore in its own nature contingent. For
|
|
all these questions relate to an object, which can be given nowhere
|
|
else than in thought. This object is the absolutely unconditioned
|
|
totality of the synthesis of phenomena. If the conceptions in our
|
|
minds do not assist us to some certain result in regard to these
|
|
problems, we must not defend ourselves on the plea that the object
|
|
itself remains hidden from and unknown to us. For no such thing or
|
|
object can be given- it is not to be found out of the idea in our
|
|
minds. We must seek the cause of our failure in our idea itself, which
|
|
is an insoluble problem and in regard to which we obstinately assume
|
|
that there exists a real object corresponding and adequate to it. A
|
|
clear explanation of the dialectic which lies in our conception,
|
|
will very soon enable us to come to a satisfactory decision in
|
|
regard to such a question.
|
|
|
|
The pretext that we are unable to arrive at certainty in regard to
|
|
these problems may be met with this question, which requires at
|
|
least a plain answer: "From what source do the ideas originate, the
|
|
solution of which involves you in such difficulties? Are you seeking
|
|
for an explanation of certain phenomena; and do you expect these ideas
|
|
to give you the principles or the rules of this explanation?" Let it
|
|
be granted, that all nature was laid open before you; that nothing was
|
|
hid from your senses and your consciousness. Still, you could not
|
|
cognize in concreto the object of your ideas in any experience. For
|
|
what is demanded is not only this full and complete intuition, but
|
|
also a complete synthesis and the consciousness of its absolute
|
|
totality; and this is not possible by means of any empirical
|
|
cognition. It follows that your question- your idea- is by no means
|
|
necessary for the explanation of any phenomenon; and the idea cannot
|
|
have been in any sense given by the object itself. For such an
|
|
object can never be presented to us, because it cannot be given by any
|
|
possible experience. Whatever perceptions you may attain to, you are
|
|
still surrounded by conditions- in space, or in time- and you cannot
|
|
discover anything unconditioned; nor can you decide whether this
|
|
unconditioned is to be placed in an absolute beginning of the
|
|
synthesis, or in an absolute totality of the series without beginning.
|
|
A whole, in the empirical signification of the term, is always
|
|
merely comparative. The absolute whole of quantity (the universe),
|
|
of division, of derivation, of the condition of existence, with the
|
|
question- whether it is to be produced by finite or infinite
|
|
synthesis, no possible experience can instruct us concerning. You will
|
|
not, for example, be able to explain the phenomena of a body in the
|
|
least degree better, whether you believe it to consist of simple, or
|
|
of composite parts; for a simple phenomenon- and just as little an
|
|
infinite series of composition- can never be presented to your
|
|
perception. Phenomena require and admit of explanation, only in so far
|
|
as the conditions of that explanation are given in perception; but the
|
|
sum total of that which is given in phenomena, considered as an
|
|
absolute whole, is itself a perception- and we cannot therefore seek
|
|
for explanations of this whole beyond itself, in other perceptions.
|
|
The explanation of this whole is the proper object of the
|
|
transcendental problems of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
Although, therefore, the solution of these problems is
|
|
unattainable through experience, we must not permit ourselves to say
|
|
that it is uncertain how the object of our inquiries is constituted.
|
|
For the object is in our own mind and cannot be discovered in
|
|
experience; and we have only to take care that our thoughts are
|
|
consistent with each other, and to avoid falling into the amphiboly of
|
|
regarding our idea as a representation of an object empirically given,
|
|
and therefore to be cognized according to the laws of experience. A
|
|
dogmatical solution is therefore not only unsatisfactory but
|
|
impossible. The critical solution, which may be a perfectly certain
|
|
one, does not consider the question objectively, but proceeds by
|
|
inquiring into the basis of the cognition upon which the question
|
|
rests.
|
|
|
|
SECTION V. Sceptical Exposition of the Cosmological Problems
|
|
|
|
presented in the four Transcendental Ideas.
|
|
|
|
We should be quite willing to desist from the demand of a dogmatical
|
|
answer to our questions, if we understood beforehand that, be the
|
|
answer what it may, it would only serve to increase our ignorance,
|
|
to throw us from one incomprehensibility into another, from one
|
|
obscurity into another still greater, and perhaps lead us into
|
|
irreconcilable contradictions. If a dogmatical affirmative or negative
|
|
answer is demanded, is it at all prudent to set aside the probable
|
|
grounds of a solution which lie before us and to take into
|
|
consideration what advantage we shall gain, if the answer is to favour
|
|
the one side or the other? If it happens that in both cases the answer
|
|
is mere nonsense, we have in this an irresistible summons to institute
|
|
a critical investigation of the question, for the purpose of
|
|
discovering whether it is based on a groundless presupposition and
|
|
relates to an idea, the falsity of which would be more easily
|
|
exposed in its application and consequences than in the mere
|
|
representation of its content. This is the great utility of the
|
|
sceptical mode of treating the questions addressed by pure reason to
|
|
itself. By this method we easily rid ourselves of the confusions of
|
|
dogmatism, and establish in its place a temperate criticism, which, as
|
|
a genuine cathartic, will successfully remove the presumptuous notions
|
|
of philosophy and their consequence- the vain pretension to
|
|
universal science.
|
|
|
|
If, then, I could understand the nature of a cosmological idea and
|
|
perceive, before I entered on the discussion of the subject at all,
|
|
that, whatever side of the question regarding the unconditioned of the
|
|
regressive synthesis of phenomena it favoured- it must either be too
|
|
great or too small for every conception of the understanding- I
|
|
would be able to comprehend how the idea, which relates to an object
|
|
of experience- an experience which must be adequate to and in
|
|
accordance with a possible conception of the understanding- must be
|
|
completely void and without significance, inasmuch as its object is
|
|
inadequate, consider it as we may. And this is actually the case
|
|
with all cosmological conceptions, which, for the reason above
|
|
mentioned, involve reason, so long as it remains attached to them,
|
|
in an unavoidable antinomy. For suppose:
|
|
|
|
First, that the world has no beginning- in this case it is too large
|
|
for our conception; for this conception, which consists in a
|
|
successive regress, cannot overtake the whole eternity that has
|
|
elapsed. Grant that it has a beginning, it is then too small for the
|
|
conception of the understanding. For, as a beginning presupposes a
|
|
time preceding, it cannot be unconditioned; and the law of the
|
|
empirical employment of the understanding imposes the necessity of
|
|
looking for a higher condition of time; and the world is, therefore,
|
|
evidently too small for this law.
|
|
|
|
The same is the case with the double answer to the question
|
|
regarding the extent, in space, of the world. For, if it is infinite
|
|
and unlimited, it must be too large for every possible empirical
|
|
conception. If it is finite and limited, we have a right to ask: "What
|
|
determines these limits?" Void space is not a self-subsistent
|
|
correlate of things, and cannot be a final condition- and still less
|
|
an empirical condition, forming a part of a possible experience. For
|
|
how can we have any experience or perception of an absolute void?
|
|
But the absolute totality of the empirical synthesis requires that the
|
|
unconditioned be an empirical conception. Consequently, a finite world
|
|
is too small for our conception.
|
|
|
|
Secondly, if every phenomenon (matter) in space consists of an
|
|
infinite number of parts, the regress of the division is always too
|
|
great for our conception; and if the division of space must cease with
|
|
some member of the division (the simple), it is too small for the idea
|
|
of the unconditioned. For the member at which we have discontinued our
|
|
division still admits a regress to many more parts contained in the
|
|
object.
|
|
|
|
Thirdly, suppose that every event in the world happens in accordance
|
|
with the laws of nature; the causality of a cause must itself be an
|
|
event and necessitates a regress to a still higher cause, and
|
|
consequently the unceasing prolongation of the series of conditions
|
|
a parte priori. Operative nature is therefore too large for every
|
|
conception we can form in the synthesis of cosmical events.
|
|
|
|
If we admit the existence of spontaneously produced events, that is,
|
|
of free agency, we are driven, in our search for sufficient reasons,
|
|
on an unavoidable law of nature and are compelled to appeal to the
|
|
empirical law of causality, and we find that any such totality of
|
|
connection in our synthesis is too small for our necessary empirical
|
|
conception.
|
|
|
|
Fourthly, if we assume the existence of an absolutely necessary
|
|
being- whether it be the world or something in the world, or the cause
|
|
of the world- we must place it in a time at an infinite distance
|
|
from any given moment; for, otherwise, it must be dependent on some
|
|
other and higher existence. Such an existence is, in this case, too
|
|
large for our empirical conception, and unattainable by the
|
|
continued regress of any synthesis.
|
|
|
|
But if we believe that everything in the world- be it condition or
|
|
conditioned- is contingent; every given existence is too small for our
|
|
conception. For in this case we are compelled to seek for some other
|
|
existence upon which the former depends.
|
|
|
|
We have said that in all these cases the cosmological idea is either
|
|
too great or too small for the empirical regress in a synthesis, and
|
|
consequently for every possible conception of the understanding. Why
|
|
did we not express ourselves in a manner exactly the reverse of this
|
|
and, instead of accusing the cosmological idea of over stepping or
|
|
of falling short of its true aim, possible experience, say that, in
|
|
the first case, the empirical conception is always too small for the
|
|
idea, and in the second too great, and thus attach the blame of
|
|
these contradictions to the empirical regress? The reason is this.
|
|
Possible experience can alone give reality to our conceptions; without
|
|
it a conception is merely an idea, without truth or relation to an
|
|
object. Hence a possible empirical conception must be the standard
|
|
by which we are to judge whether an idea is anything more than an idea
|
|
and fiction of thought, or whether it relates to an object in the
|
|
world. If we say of a thing that in relation to some other thing it is
|
|
too large or too small, the former is considered as existing for the
|
|
sake of the latter, and requiring to be adapted to it. Among the
|
|
trivial subjects of discussion in the old schools of dialectics was
|
|
this question: "If a ball cannot pass through a hole, shall we say
|
|
that the ball is too large or the hole too small?" In this case it
|
|
is indifferent what expression we employ; for we do not know which
|
|
exists for the sake of the other. On the other hand, we cannot say:
|
|
"The man is too long for his coat"; but: "The coat is too short for
|
|
the man."
|
|
|
|
We are thus led to the well-founded suspicion that the
|
|
cosmological ideas, and all the conflicting sophistical assertions
|
|
connected with them, are based upon a false and fictitious
|
|
conception of the mode in which the object of these ideas is presented
|
|
to us; and this suspicion will probably direct us how to expose the
|
|
illusion that has so long led us astray from the truth.
|
|
|
|
SECTION VI. Transcendental Idealism as the Key to the
|
|
|
|
Solution of Pure Cosmological Dialectic.
|
|
|
|
In the transcendental aesthetic we proved that everything intuited
|
|
in space and time, all objects of a possible experience, are nothing
|
|
but phenomena, that is, mere representations; and that these, as
|
|
presented to us- as extended bodies, or as series of changes- have
|
|
no self-subsistent existence apart from human thought. This doctrine I
|
|
call Transcendental Idealism.* The realist in the transcendental sense
|
|
regards these modifications of our sensibility, these mere
|
|
representations, as things subsisting in themselves.
|
|
|
|
*I have elsewhere termed this theory formal idealism, to distinguish
|
|
it from material idealism, which doubts or denies the existence of
|
|
external things. To avoid ambiguity, it seems advisable in many
|
|
cases to employ this term instead of that mentioned in the text.
|
|
|
|
It would be unjust to accuse us of holding the long-decried theory
|
|
of empirical idealism, which, while admitting the reality of space,
|
|
denies, or at least doubts, the existence of bodies extended in it,
|
|
and thus leaves us without a sufficient criterion of reality and
|
|
illusion. The supporters of this theory find no difficulty in
|
|
admitting the reality of the phenomena of the internal sense in
|
|
time; nay, they go the length of maintaining that this internal
|
|
experience is of itself a sufficient proof of the real existence of
|
|
its object as a thing in itself.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental idealism allows that the objects of external
|
|
intuition- as intuited in space, and all changes in time- as
|
|
represented by the internal sense, are real. For, as space is the form
|
|
of that intuition which we call external, and, without objects in
|
|
space, no empirical representation could be given us, we can and ought
|
|
to regard extended bodies in it as real. The case is the same with
|
|
representations in time. But time and space, with all phenomena
|
|
therein, are not in themselves things. They are nothing but
|
|
representations and cannot exist out of and apart from the mind.
|
|
Nay, the sensuous internal intuition of the mind (as the object of
|
|
consciousness), the determination of which is represented by the
|
|
succession of different states in time, is not the real, proper
|
|
self, as it exists in itself- not the transcendental subject- but only
|
|
a phenomenon, which is presented to the sensibility of this, to us,
|
|
unknown being. This internal phenomenon cannot be admitted to be a
|
|
self-subsisting thing; for its condition is time, and time cannot be
|
|
the condition of a thing in itself. But the empirical truth of
|
|
phenomena in space and time is guaranteed beyond the possibility of
|
|
doubt, and sufficiently distinguished from the illusion of dreams or
|
|
fancy- although both have a proper and thorough connection in an
|
|
experience according to empirical laws. The objects of experience then
|
|
are not things in themselves, but are given only in experience, and
|
|
have no existence apart from and independently of experience. That
|
|
there may be inhabitants in the moon, although no one has ever
|
|
observed them, must certainly be admitted; but this assertion means
|
|
only, that we may in the possible progress of experience discover them
|
|
at some future time. For that which stands in connection with a
|
|
perception according to the laws of the progress of experience is
|
|
real. They are therefore really existent, if they stand in empirical
|
|
connection with my actual or real consciousness, although they are not
|
|
in themselves real, that is, apart from the progress of experience.
|
|
|
|
There is nothing actually given- we can be conscious of nothing as
|
|
real, except a perception and the empirical progression from it to
|
|
other possible perceptions. For phenomena, as mere representations,
|
|
are real only in perception; and perception is, in fact, nothing but
|
|
the reality of an empirical representation, that is, a phenomenon.
|
|
To call a phenomenon a real thing prior to perception means either
|
|
that we must meet with this phenomenon in the progress of
|
|
experience, or it means nothing at all. For I can say only of a
|
|
thing in itself that it exists without relation to the senses and
|
|
experience. But we are speaking here merely of phenomena in space
|
|
and time, both of which are determinations of sensibility, and not
|
|
of things in themselves. It follows that phenomena are not things in
|
|
themselves, but are mere representations, which if not given in us- in
|
|
perception- are non-existent.
|
|
|
|
The faculty of sensuous intuition is properly a receptivity- a
|
|
capacity of being affected in a certain manner by representations, the
|
|
relation of which to each other is a pure intuition of space and time-
|
|
the pure forms of sensibility. These representations, in so far as
|
|
they are connected and determinable in this relation (in space and
|
|
time) according to laws of the unity of experience, are called
|
|
objects. The non-sensuous cause of these representations is completely
|
|
unknown to us and hence cannot be intuited as an object. For such an
|
|
object could not be represented either in space or in time; and
|
|
without these conditions intuition or representation is impossible. We
|
|
may, at the same time, term the non-sensuous cause of phenomena the
|
|
transcendental object- but merely as a mental correlate to
|
|
sensibility, considered as a receptivity. To this transcendental
|
|
object we may attribute the whole connection and extent of our
|
|
possible perceptions, and say that it is given and exists in itself
|
|
prior to all experience. But the phenomena, corresponding to it, are
|
|
not given as things in themselves, but in experience alone. For they
|
|
are mere representations, receiving from perceptions alone
|
|
significance and relation to a real object, under the condition that
|
|
this or that perception- indicating an object- is in complete
|
|
connection with all others in accordance with the rules of the unity
|
|
of experience. Thus we can say: "The things that really existed in
|
|
past time are given in the transcendental object of experience." But
|
|
these are to me real objects, only in so far as I can represent to
|
|
my own mind, that a regressive series of possible perceptions-
|
|
following the indications of history, or the footsteps of cause and
|
|
effect- in accordance with empirical laws- that, in one word, the
|
|
course of the world conducts us to an elapsed series of time as the
|
|
condition of the present time. This series in past time is represented
|
|
as real, not in itself, but only in connection with a possible
|
|
experience. Thus, when I say that certain events occurred in past
|
|
time, I merely assert the possibility of prolonging the chain of
|
|
experience, from the present perception, upwards to the conditions
|
|
that determine it according to time.
|
|
|
|
If I represent to myself all objects existing in all space and time,
|
|
I do not thereby place these in space and time prior to all
|
|
experience; on the contrary, such a representation is nothing more
|
|
than the notion of a possible experience, in its absolute
|
|
completeness. In experience alone are those objects, which are nothing
|
|
but representations, given. But, when I say they existed prior to my
|
|
experience, this means only that I must begin with the perception
|
|
present to me and follow the track indicated until I discover them
|
|
in some part or region of experience. The cause of the empirical
|
|
condition of this progression- and consequently at what member therein
|
|
I must stop, and at what point in the regress I am to find this
|
|
member- is transcendental, and hence necessarily incognizable. But
|
|
with this we have not to do; our concern is only with the law of
|
|
progression in experience, in which objects, that is, phenomena, are
|
|
given. It is a matter of indifference, whether I say, "I may in the
|
|
progress of experience discover stars, at a hundred times greater
|
|
distance than the most distant of those now visible," or, "Stars at
|
|
this distance may be met in space, although no one has, or ever will
|
|
discover them." For, if they are given as things in themselves,
|
|
without any relation to possible experience, they are for me
|
|
non-existent, consequently, are not objects, for they are not
|
|
contained in the regressive series of experience. But, if these
|
|
phenomena must be employed in the construction or support of the
|
|
cosmological idea of an absolute whole, and when we are discussing a
|
|
question that oversteps the limits of possible experience, the
|
|
proper distinction of the different theories of the reality of
|
|
sensuous objects is of great importance, in order to avoid the
|
|
illusion which must necessarily arise from the misinterpretation of
|
|
our empirical conceptions.
|
|
|
|
SECTION VII. Critical Solution of the Cosmological Problem.
|
|
|
|
The antinomy of pure reason is based upon the following
|
|
dialectical argument: "If that which is conditioned is given, the
|
|
whole series of its conditions is also given; but sensuous objects are
|
|
given as conditioned; consequently..." This syllogism, the major of
|
|
which seems so natural and evident, introduces as many cosmological
|
|
ideas as there are different kinds of conditions in the synthesis of
|
|
phenomena, in so far as these conditions constitute a series. These
|
|
ideas require absolute totality in the series, and thus place reason
|
|
in inextricable embarrassment. Before proceeding to expose the fallacy
|
|
in this dialectical argument, it will be necessary to have a correct
|
|
understanding of certain conceptions that appear in it.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, the following proposition is evident, and
|
|
indubitably certain: "If the conditioned is given, a regress in the
|
|
series of all its conditions is thereby imperatively required." For
|
|
the very conception of a conditioned is a conception of something
|
|
related to a condition, and, if this condition is itself
|
|
conditioned, to another condition- and so on through all the members
|
|
of the series. This proposition is, therefore, analytical and has
|
|
nothing to fear from transcendental criticism. It is a logical
|
|
postulate of reason: to pursue, as far as possible, the connection
|
|
of a conception with its conditions.
|
|
|
|
If, in the second place, both the conditioned and the condition
|
|
are things in themselves, and if the former is given, not only is
|
|
the regress to the latter requisite, but the latter is really given
|
|
with the former. Now, as this is true of all the members of the
|
|
series, the entire series of conditions, and with them the
|
|
unconditioned, is at the same time given in the very fact of the
|
|
conditioned, the existence of which is possible only in and through
|
|
that series, being given. In this case, the synthesis of the
|
|
conditioned with its condition, is a synthesis of the understanding
|
|
merely, which represents things as they are, without regarding whether
|
|
and how we can cognize them. But if I have to do with phenomena,
|
|
which, in their character of mere representations, are not given, if I
|
|
do not attain to a cognition of them (in other words, to themselves,
|
|
for they are nothing more than empirical cognitions), I am not
|
|
entitled to say: "If the conditioned is given, all its conditions
|
|
(as phenomena) are also given." I cannot, therefore, from the fact
|
|
of a conditioned being given, infer the absolute totality of the
|
|
series of its conditions. For phenomena are nothing but an empirical
|
|
synthesis in apprehension or perception, and are therefore given
|
|
only in it. Now, in speaking of phenomena it does not follow that,
|
|
if the conditioned is given, the synthesis which constitutes its
|
|
empirical condition is also thereby given and presupposed; such a
|
|
synthesis can be established only by an actual regress in the series
|
|
of conditions. But we are entitled to say in this case that a
|
|
regress to the conditions of a conditioned, in other words, that a
|
|
continuous empirical synthesis is enjoined; that, if the conditions
|
|
are not given, they are at least required; and that we are certain
|
|
to discover the conditions in this regress.
|
|
|
|
We can now see that the major, in the above cosmological
|
|
syllogism, takes the conditioned in the transcendental signification
|
|
which it has in the pure category, while the minor speaks of it in the
|
|
empirical signification which it has in the category as applied to
|
|
phenomena. There is, therefore, a dialectical fallacy in the
|
|
syllogism- a sophisma figurae dictionis. But this fallacy is not a
|
|
consciously devised one, but a perfectly natural illusion of the
|
|
common reason of man. For, when a thing is given as conditioned, we
|
|
presuppose in the major its conditions and their series,
|
|
unperceived, as it were, and unseen; because this is nothing more than
|
|
the logical requirement of complete and satisfactory premisses for a
|
|
given conclusion. In this case, time is altogether left out in the
|
|
connection of the conditioned with the condition; they are supposed to
|
|
be given in themselves, and contemporaneously. It is, moreover, just
|
|
as natural to regard phenomena (in the minor) as things in
|
|
themselves and as objects presented to the pure understanding, as in
|
|
the major, in which complete abstraction was made of all conditions of
|
|
intuition. But it is under these conditions alone that objects are
|
|
given. Now we overlooked a remarkable distinction between the
|
|
conceptions. The synthesis of the conditioned with its condition,
|
|
and the complete series of the latter (in the major) are not limited
|
|
by time, and do not contain the conception of succession. On the
|
|
contrary, the empirical synthesis and the series of conditions in
|
|
the phenomenal world- subsumed in the minor- are necessarily
|
|
successive and given in time alone. It follows that I cannot
|
|
presuppose in the minor, as I did in the major, the absolute
|
|
totality of the synthesis and of the series therein represented; for
|
|
in the major all the members of the series are given as things in
|
|
themselves- without any limitations or conditions of time, while in
|
|
the minor they are possible only in and through a successive
|
|
regress, which cannot exist, except it be actually carried into
|
|
execution in the world of phenomena.
|
|
|
|
After this proof of the viciousness of the argument commonly
|
|
employed in maintaining cosmological assertions, both parties may
|
|
now be justly dismissed, as advancing claims without grounds or title.
|
|
But the process has not been ended by convincing them that one or both
|
|
were in the wrong and had maintained an assertion which was without
|
|
valid grounds of proof. Nothing seems to be clearer than that, if
|
|
one maintains: "The world has a beginning," and another: "The world
|
|
has no beginning," one of the two must be right. But it is likewise
|
|
clear that, if the evidence on both sides is equal, it is impossible
|
|
to discover on what side the truth lies; and the controversy
|
|
continues, although the parties have been recommended to peace
|
|
before the tribunal of reason. There remains, then, no other means
|
|
of settling the question than to convince the parties, who refute each
|
|
other with such conclusiveness and ability, that they are disputing
|
|
about nothing, and that a transcendental illusion has been mocking
|
|
them with visions of reality where there is none. The mode of
|
|
adjusting a dispute which cannot be decided upon its own merits, we
|
|
shall now proceed to lay before our readers.
|
|
|
|
Zeno of Elea, a subtle dialectician, was severely reprimanded by
|
|
Plato as a sophist, who, merely from the base motive of exhibiting his
|
|
skill in discussion, maintained and subverted the same proposition
|
|
by arguments as powerful and convincing on the one side as on the
|
|
other. He maintained, for example, that God (who was probably
|
|
nothing more, in his view, than the world) is neither finite nor
|
|
infinite, neither in motion nor in rest, neither similar nor
|
|
dissimilar to any other thing. It seemed to those philosophers who
|
|
criticized his mode of discussion that his purpose was to deny
|
|
completely both of two self-contradictory propositions- which is
|
|
absurd. But I cannot believe that there is any justice in this
|
|
accusation. The first of these propositions I shall presently consider
|
|
in a more detailed manner. With regard to the others, if by the word
|
|
of God he understood merely the Universe, his meaning must have
|
|
been- that it cannot be permanently present in one place- that is,
|
|
at rest- nor be capable of changing its place- that is, of moving-
|
|
because all places are in the universe, and the universe itself is,
|
|
therefore, in no place. Again, if the universe contains in itself
|
|
everything that exists, it cannot be similar or dissimilar to any
|
|
other thing, because there is, in fact, no other thing with which it
|
|
can be compared. If two opposite judgements presuppose a contingent
|
|
impossible, or arbitrary condition, both- in spite of their opposition
|
|
(which is, however, not properly or really a contradiction)- fall
|
|
away; because the condition, which ensured the validity of both, has
|
|
itself disappeared.
|
|
|
|
If we say: "Everybody has either a good or a bad smell," we have
|
|
omitted a third possible judgement- it has no smell at all; and thus
|
|
both conflicting statements may be false. If we say: "It is either
|
|
good-smelling or not good-smelling (vel suaveolens vel
|
|
non-suaveolens)," both judgements are contradictorily opposed; and the
|
|
contradictory opposite of the former judgement- some bodies are not
|
|
good-smelling- embraces also those bodies which have no smell at
|
|
all. In the preceding pair of opposed judgements (per disparata),
|
|
the contingent condition of the conception of body (smell) attached to
|
|
both conflicting statements, instead of having been omitted in the
|
|
latter, which is consequently not the contradictory opposite of the
|
|
former.
|
|
|
|
If, accordingly, we say: "The world is either infinite in extension,
|
|
or it is not infinite (non est infinitus)"; and if the former
|
|
proposition is false, its contradictory opposite- the world is not
|
|
infinite- must be true. And thus I should deny the existence of an
|
|
infinite, without, however affirming the existence of a finite
|
|
world. But if we construct our proposition thus: "The world is
|
|
either infinite or finite (non-infinite)," both statements may be
|
|
false. For, in this case, we consider the world as per se determined
|
|
in regard to quantity, and while, in the one judgement, we deny its
|
|
infinite and consequently, perhaps, its independent existence; in
|
|
the other, we append to the world, regarded as a thing in itself, a
|
|
certain determination- that of finitude; and the latter may be false
|
|
as well as the former, if the world is not given as a thing in itself,
|
|
and thus neither as finite nor as infinite in quantity. This kind of
|
|
opposition I may be allowed to term dialectical; that of
|
|
contradictories may be called analytical opposition. Thus then, of two
|
|
dialectically opposed judgements both may be false, from the fact,
|
|
that the one is not a mere contradictory of the other, but actually
|
|
enounces more than is requisite for a full and complete contradiction.
|
|
|
|
When we regard the two propositions- "The world is infinite in
|
|
quantity," and, "The world is finite in quantity," as contradictory
|
|
opposites, we are assuming that the world- the complete series of
|
|
phenomena- is a thing in itself. For it remains as a permanent
|
|
quantity, whether I deny the infinite or the finite regress in the
|
|
series of its phenomena. But if we dismiss this assumption- this
|
|
transcendental illusion- and deny that it is a thing in itself, the
|
|
contradictory opposition is metamorphosed into a merely dialectical
|
|
one; and the world, as not existing in itself- independently of the
|
|
regressive series of my representations- exists in like manner neither
|
|
as a whole which is infinite nor as a whole which is finite in itself.
|
|
The universe exists for me only in the empirical regress of the series
|
|
of phenomena and not per se. If, then, it is always conditioned, it is
|
|
never completely or as a whole; and it is, therefore, not an
|
|
unconditioned whole and does not exist as such, either with an
|
|
infinite, or with a finite quantity.
|
|
|
|
What we have here said of the first cosmological idea- that of the
|
|
absolute totality of quantity in phenomena- applies also to the
|
|
others. The series of conditions is discoverable only in the
|
|
regressive synthesis itself, and not in the phenomenon considered as a
|
|
thing in itself- given prior to all regress. Hence I am compelled to
|
|
say: "The aggregate of parts in a given phenomenon is in itself
|
|
neither finite nor infinite; and these parts are given only in the
|
|
regressive synthesis of decomposition- a synthesis which is never
|
|
given in absolute completeness, either as finite, or as infinite." The
|
|
same is the case with the series of subordinated causes, or of the
|
|
conditioned up to the unconditioned and necessary existence, which can
|
|
never be regarded as in itself, ind in its totality, either as
|
|
finite or as infinite; because, as a series of subordinate
|
|
representations, it subsists only in the dynamical regress and
|
|
cannot be regarded as existing previously to this regress, or as a
|
|
self-subsistent series of things.
|
|
|
|
Thus the antinomy of pure reason in its cosmological ideas
|
|
disappears. For the above demonstration has established the fact
|
|
that it is merely the product of a dialectical and illusory
|
|
opposition, which arises from the application of the idea of
|
|
absolute totality- admissible only as a condition of things in
|
|
themselves- to phenomena, which exist only in our representations,
|
|
and- when constituting a series- in a successive regress. This
|
|
antinomy of reason may, however, be really profitable to our
|
|
speculative interests, not in the way of contributing any dogmatical
|
|
addition, but as presenting to us another material support in our
|
|
critical investigations. For it furnishes us with an indirect proof of
|
|
the transcendental ideality of phenomena, if our minds were not
|
|
completely satisfied with the direct proof set forth in the
|
|
Trancendental Aesthetic. The proof would proceed in the following
|
|
dilemma. If the world is a whole existing in itself, it must be either
|
|
finite or infinite. But it is neither finite nor infinite- as has been
|
|
shown, on the one side, by the thesis, on the other, by the
|
|
antithesis. Therefore the world- the content of all phenomena- is
|
|
not a whole existing in itself. It follows that phenomena are nothing,
|
|
apart from our representations. And this is what we mean by
|
|
transcendental ideality.
|
|
|
|
This remark is of some importance. It enables us to see that the
|
|
proofs of the fourfold antinomy are not mere sophistries- are not
|
|
fallacious, but grounded on the nature of reason, and valid- under the
|
|
supposition that phenomena are things in themselves. The opposition of
|
|
the judgements which follow makes it evident that a fallacy lay in the
|
|
initial supposition, and thus helps us to discover the true
|
|
constitution of objects of sense. This transcendental dialectic does
|
|
not favour scepticism, although it presents us with a triumphant
|
|
demonstration of the advantages of the sceptical method, the great
|
|
utility of which is apparent in the antinomy, where the arguments of
|
|
reason were allowed to confront each other in undiminished force.
|
|
And although the result of these conflicts of reason is not what we
|
|
expected- although we have obtained no positive dogmatical addition to
|
|
metaphysical science- we have still reaped a great advantage in the
|
|
correction of our judgements on these subjects of thought.
|
|
|
|
SECTION VIII. Regulative Principle of Pure Reason in relation
|
|
|
|
to the Cosmological Ideas.
|
|
|
|
The cosmological principle of totality could not give us any certain
|
|
knowledge in regard to the maximum in the series of conditions in
|
|
the world of sense, considered as a thing in itself. The actual
|
|
regress in the series is the only means of approaching this maximum.
|
|
This principle of pure reason, therefore, may still be considered as
|
|
valid- not as an axiom enabling us to cogitate totality in the
|
|
object as actual, but as a problem for the understanding, which
|
|
requires it to institute and to continue, in conformity with the
|
|
idea of totality in the mind, the regress in the series of the
|
|
conditions of a given conditioned. For in the world of sense, that is,
|
|
in space and time, every condition which we discover in our
|
|
investigation of phenomena is itself conditioned; because sensuous
|
|
objects are not things in themselves (in which case an absolutely
|
|
unconditioned might be reached in the progress of cognition), but
|
|
are merely empirical representations the conditions of which must
|
|
always be found in intuition. The principle of reason is therefore
|
|
properly a mere rule- prescribing a regress in the series of
|
|
conditions for given phenomena, and prohibiting any pause or rest on
|
|
an absolutely unconditioned. It is, therefore, not a principle of
|
|
the possibility of experience or of the empirical cognition of
|
|
sensuous objects- consequently not a principle of the understanding;
|
|
for every experience is confined within certain proper limits
|
|
determined by the given intuition. Still less is it a constitutive
|
|
principle of reason authorizing us to extend our conception of the
|
|
sensuous world beyond all possible experience. It is merely a
|
|
principle for the enlargement and extension of experience as far as is
|
|
possible for human faculties. It forbids us to consider any
|
|
empirical limits as absolute. It is, hence, a principle of reason,
|
|
which, as a rule, dictates how we ought to proceed in our empirical
|
|
regress, but is unable to anticipate or indicate prior to the
|
|
empirical regress what is given in the object itself. I have termed it
|
|
for this reason a regulative principle of reason; while the
|
|
principle of the absolute totality of the series of conditions, as
|
|
existing in itself and given in the object, is a constitutive
|
|
cosmological principle. This distinction will at once demonstrate
|
|
the falsehood of the constitutive principle, and prevent us from
|
|
attributing (by a transcendental subreptio) objective reality to an
|
|
idea, which is valid only as a rule.
|
|
|
|
In order to understand the proper meaning of this rule of pure
|
|
reason, we must notice first that it cannot tell us what the object
|
|
is, but only how the empirical regress is to be proceeded with in
|
|
order to attain to the complete conception of the object. If it gave
|
|
us any information in respect to the former statement, it would be a
|
|
constitutive principle- a principle impossible from the nature of pure
|
|
reason. It will not therefore enable us to establish any such
|
|
conclusions as: "The series of conditions for a given conditioned is
|
|
in itself finite." or, "It is infinite." For, in this case, we
|
|
should be cogitating in the mere idea of absolute totality, an
|
|
object which is not and cannot be given in experience; inasmuch as
|
|
we should be attributing a reality objective and independent of the
|
|
empirical synthesis, to a series of phenomena. This idea of reason
|
|
cannot then be regarded as valid- except as a rule for the
|
|
regressive synthesis in the series of conditions, according to which
|
|
we must proceed from the conditioned, through all intermediate and
|
|
subordinate conditions, up to the unconditioned; although this goal is
|
|
unattained and unattainable. For the absolutely unconditioned cannot
|
|
be discovered in the sphere of experience.
|
|
|
|
We now proceed to determine clearly our notion of a synthesis
|
|
which can never be complete. There are two terms commonly employed for
|
|
this purpose. These terms are regarded as expressions of different and
|
|
distinguishable notions, although the ground of the distinction has
|
|
never been clearly exposed. The term employed by the mathematicians is
|
|
progressus in infinitum. The philosophers prefer the expression
|
|
progressus in indefinitum. Without detaining the reader with an
|
|
examination of the reasons for such a distinction, or with remarks
|
|
on the right or wrong use of the terms, I shall endeavour clearly to
|
|
determine these conceptions, so far as is necessary for the purpose in
|
|
this Critique.
|
|
|
|
We may, with propriety, say of a straight line, that it may be
|
|
produced to infinity. In this case the distinction between a
|
|
progressus in infinitum and a progressus in indefinitum is a mere
|
|
piece of subtlety. For, although when we say, "Produce a straight
|
|
line," it is more correct to say in indefinitum than in infinitum;
|
|
because the former means, "Produce it as far as you please," the
|
|
second, "You must not cease to produce it"; the expression in
|
|
infinitum is, when we are speaking of the power to do it, perfectly
|
|
correct, for we can always make it longer if we please- on to
|
|
infinity. And this remark holds good in all cases, when we speak of
|
|
a progressus, that is, an advancement from the condition to the
|
|
conditioned; this possible advancement always proceeds to infinity. We
|
|
may proceed from a given pair in the descending line of generation
|
|
from father to son, and cogitate a never-ending line of descendants
|
|
from it. For in such a case reason does not demand absolute totality
|
|
in the series, because it does not presuppose it as a condition and as
|
|
given (datum), but merely as conditioned, and as capable of being
|
|
given (dabile).
|
|
|
|
Very different is the case with the problem: "How far the regress,
|
|
which ascends from the given conditioned to the conditions, must
|
|
extend"; whether I can say: "It is a regress in infinitum," or only
|
|
"in indefinitum"; and whether, for example, setting out from the human
|
|
beings at present alive in the world, I may ascend in the series of
|
|
their ancestors, in infinitum- mr whether all that can be said is,
|
|
that so far as I have proceeded, I have discovered no empirical ground
|
|
for considering the series limited, so that I am justified, and
|
|
indeed, compelled to search for ancestors still further back, although
|
|
I am not obliged by the idea of reason to presuppose them.
|
|
|
|
My answer to this question is: "If the series is given in
|
|
empirical intuition as a whole, the regress in the series of its
|
|
internal conditions proceeds in infinitum; but, if only one member
|
|
of the series is given, from which the regress is to proceed to
|
|
absolute totality, the regress is possible only in indefinitum." For
|
|
example, the division of a portion of matter given within certain
|
|
limits- of a body, that is- proceeds in infinitum. For, as the
|
|
condition of this whole is its part, and the condition of the part a
|
|
part of the part, and so on, and as in this regress of decomposition
|
|
an unconditioned indivisible member of the series of conditions is not
|
|
to be found; there are no reasons or grounds in experience for
|
|
stopping in the division, but, on the contrary, the more remote
|
|
members of the division are actually and empirically given prior to
|
|
this division. That is to say, the division proceeds to infinity. On
|
|
the other hand, the series of ancestors of any given human being is
|
|
not given, in its absolute totality, in any experience, and yet the
|
|
regress proceeds from every genealogical member of this series to
|
|
one still higher, and does not meet with any empirical limit
|
|
presenting an absolutely unconditioned member of the series. But as
|
|
the members of such a series are not contained in the empirical
|
|
intuition of the whole, prior to the regress, this regress does not
|
|
proceed to infinity, but only in indefinitum, that is, we are called
|
|
upon to discover other and higher members, which are themselves always
|
|
conditioned.
|
|
|
|
In neither case- the regressus in infinitum, nor the regressus in
|
|
indefinitum, is the series of conditions to be considered as
|
|
actually infinite in the object itself. This might be true of things
|
|
in themselves, but it cannot be asserted of phenomena, which, as
|
|
conditions of each other, are only given in the empirical regress
|
|
itself. Hence, the question no longer is, "What is the quantity of
|
|
this series of conditions in itself- is it finite or infinite?" for it
|
|
is nothing in itself; but, "How is the empirical regress to be
|
|
commenced, and how far ought we to proceed with it?" And here a signal
|
|
distinction in the application of this rule becomes apparent. If the
|
|
whole is given empirically, it is possible to recede in the series
|
|
of its internal conditions to infinity. But if the whole is not given,
|
|
and can only be given by and through the empirical regress, I can only
|
|
say: "It is possible to infinity, to proceed to still higher
|
|
conditions in the series." In the first case, I am justified in
|
|
asserting that more members are empirically given in the object than I
|
|
attain to in the regress (of decomposition). In the second case, I
|
|
am justified only in saying, that I can always proceed further in
|
|
the regress, because no member of the series. is given as absolutely
|
|
conditioned, and thus a higher member is possible, and an inquiry with
|
|
regard to it is necessary. In the one case it is necessary to find
|
|
other members of the series, in the other it is necessary to inquire
|
|
for others, inasmuch as experience presents no absolute limitation
|
|
of the regress. For, either you do not possess a perception which
|
|
absolutely limits your empirical regress, and in this case the regress
|
|
cannot be regarded as complete; or, you do possess such a limitative
|
|
perception, in which case it is not a part of your series (for that
|
|
which limits must be distinct from that which is limited by it), and
|
|
it is incumbent you to continue your regress up to this condition, and
|
|
so on.
|
|
|
|
These remarks will be placed in their proper light by their
|
|
application in the following section.
|
|
|
|
SECTION IX. Of the Empirical Use of the Regulative Principle
|
|
|
|
of Reason with regard to the Cosmological Ideas.
|
|
|
|
We have shown that no transcendental use can be made either of the
|
|
conceptions of reason or of understanding. We have shown, likewise,
|
|
that the demand of absolute totality in the series of conditions in
|
|
the world of sense arises from a transcendental employment of
|
|
reason, resting on the opinion that phenomena are to be regarded as
|
|
things in themselves. It follows that we are not required to answer
|
|
the question respecting the absolute quantity of a series- whether
|
|
it is in itself limited or unlimited. We are only called upon to
|
|
determine how far we must proceed in the empirical regress from
|
|
condition to condition, in order to discover, in conformity with the
|
|
rule of reason, a full and correct answer to the questions proposed by
|
|
reason itself.
|
|
|
|
This principle of reason is hence valid only as a rule for the
|
|
extension of a possible experience- its invalidity as a principle
|
|
constitutive of phenomena in themselves having been sufficiently
|
|
demonstrated. And thus, too, the antinomial conflict of reason with
|
|
itself is completely put an end to; inasmuch as we have not only
|
|
presented a critical solution of the fallacy lurking in the opposite
|
|
statements of reason, but have shown the true meaning of the ideas
|
|
which gave rise to these statements. The dialectical principle of
|
|
reason has, therefore, been changed into a doctrinal principle. But in
|
|
fact, if this principle, in the subjective signification which we have
|
|
shown to be its only true sense, may be guaranteed as a principle of
|
|
the unceasing extension of the employment of our understanding, its
|
|
influence and value are just as great as if it were an axiom for the a
|
|
priori determination of objects. For such an axiom could not exert a
|
|
stronger influence on the extension and rectification of our
|
|
knowledge, otherwise than by procuring for the principles of the
|
|
understanding the most widely expanded employment in the field of
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
I. Solution of the Cosmological Idea of the Totality of the
|
|
|
|
Composition of Phenomena in the Universe.
|
|
|
|
Here, as well as in the case of the other cosmological problems, the
|
|
ground of the regulative principle of reason is the proposition that
|
|
in our empirical regress no experience of an absolute limit, and
|
|
consequently no experience of a condition, which is itself
|
|
absolutely unconditioned, is discoverable. And the truth of this
|
|
proposition itself rests upon the consideration that such an
|
|
experience must represent to us phenomena as limited by nothing or the
|
|
mere void, on which our continued regress by means of perception
|
|
must abut- which is impossible.
|
|
|
|
Now this proposition, which declares that every condition attained
|
|
in the empirical regress must itself be considered empirically
|
|
conditioned, contains the rule in terminis, which requires me, to
|
|
whatever extent I may have proceeded in the ascending series, always
|
|
to look for some higher member in the series- whether this member is
|
|
to become known to me through experience, or not.
|
|
|
|
Nothing further is necessary, then, for the solution of the first
|
|
cosmological problem, than to decide, whether, in the regress to the
|
|
unconditioned quantity of the universe (as regards space and time),
|
|
this never limited ascent ought to be called a regressus in
|
|
infinitum or indefinitum.
|
|
|
|
The general representation which we form in our minds of the
|
|
series of all past states or conditions of the world, or of all the
|
|
things which at present exist in it, is itself nothing more than a
|
|
possible empirical regress, which is cogitated- although in an
|
|
undetermined manner- in the mind, and which gives rise to the
|
|
conception of a series of conditions for a given object.* Now I have a
|
|
conception of the universe, but not an intuition- that is, not an
|
|
intuition of it as a whole. Thus I cannot infer the magnitude of the
|
|
regress from the quantity or magnitude of the world, and determine the
|
|
former by means of the latter; on the contrary, I must first of all
|
|
form a conception of the quantity or magnitude of the world from the
|
|
magnitude of the empirical regress. But of this regress I know nothing
|
|
more than that I ought to proceed from every given member of the
|
|
series of conditions to one still higher. But the quantity of the
|
|
universe is not thereby determined, and we cannot affirm that this
|
|
regress proceeds in infinitum. Such an affirmation would anticipate
|
|
the members of the series which have not yet been reached, and
|
|
represent the number of them as beyond the grasp of any empirical
|
|
synthesis; it would consequently determine the cosmical quantity prior
|
|
to the regress (although only in a negative manner)- which is
|
|
impossible. For the world is not given in its totality in any
|
|
intuition: consequently, its quantity cannot be given prior to the
|
|
regress. It follows that we are unable to make any declaration
|
|
respecting the cosmical quantity in itself- not even that the
|
|
regress in it is a regress in infinitum; we must only endeavour to
|
|
attain to a conception of the quantity of the universe, in
|
|
conformity with the rule which determines the empirical regress in it.
|
|
But this rule merely requires us never to admit an absolute limit to
|
|
our series- how far soever we may have proceeded in it, but always, on
|
|
the contrary, to subordinate every phenomenon to some other as its
|
|
condition, and consequently to proceed to this higher phenomenon. Such
|
|
a regress is, therefore, the regressus in indefinitum, which, as not
|
|
determining a quantity in the object, is clearly distinguishable
|
|
from the regressus in infinitum.
|
|
|
|
*The cosmical series can neither be greater nor smaller than the
|
|
possible empirical regress, upon which its conception is based. And as
|
|
this regress cannot be a determinate infinite regress, still less a
|
|
determinate finite (absolutely limited), it is evident that we
|
|
cannot regard the world as either finite or infinite, because the
|
|
regress, which gives us the representation of the world, is neither
|
|
finite nor infinite.
|
|
|
|
It follows from what we have said that we are not justified in
|
|
declaring the world to be infinite in space, or as regards past
|
|
time. For this conception of an infinite given quantity is
|
|
empirical; but we cannot apply the conception of an infinite
|
|
quantity to the world as an object of the senses. I cannot say, "The
|
|
regress from a given perception to everything limited either in
|
|
space or time, proceeds in infinitum," for this presupposes an
|
|
infinite cosmical quantity; neither can I say, "It is finite," for
|
|
an absolute limit is likewise impossible in experience. It follows
|
|
that I am not entitled to make any assertion at all respecting the
|
|
whole object of experience- the world of sense; I must limit my
|
|
declarations to the rule according to which experience or empirical
|
|
knowledge is to be attained.
|
|
|
|
To the question, therefore, respecting the cosmical quantity, the
|
|
first and negative answer is: "The world has no beginning in time, and
|
|
no absolute limit in space."
|
|
|
|
For, in the contrary case, it would be limited by a void time on the
|
|
one hand, and by a void space on the other. Now, since the world, as a
|
|
phenomenon, cannot be thus limited in itself for a phenomenon is not a
|
|
thing in itself; it must be possible for us to have a perception of
|
|
this limitation by a void time and a void space. But such a
|
|
perception- such an experience is impossible; because it has no
|
|
content. Consequently, an absolute cosmical limit is empirically,
|
|
and therefore absolutely, impossible.*
|
|
|
|
*The reader will remark that the proof presented above is very
|
|
different from the dogmatical demonstration given in the antithesis of
|
|
the first antinomy. In that demonstration, it was taken for granted
|
|
that the world is a thing in itself- given in its totality prior to
|
|
all regress, and a determined position in space and time was denied to
|
|
it- if it was not considered as occupying all time and all space.
|
|
Hence our conclusion differed from that given above; for we inferred
|
|
in the antithesis the actual infinity of the world.
|
|
|
|
From this follows the affirmative answer: "The regress in the series
|
|
of phenomena- as a determination of the cosmical quantity, proceeds in
|
|
indefinitum." This is equivalent to saying: "The world of sense has no
|
|
absolute quantity, but the empirical regress (through which alone
|
|
the world of sense is presented to us on the side of its conditions)
|
|
rests upon a rule, which requires it to proceed from every member of
|
|
the series, as conditioned, to one still more remote (whether
|
|
through personal experience, or by means of history, or the chain of
|
|
cause and effect), and not to cease at any point in this extension
|
|
of the possible empirical employment of the understanding." And this
|
|
is the proper and only use which reason can make of its principles.
|
|
|
|
The above rule does not prescribe an unceasing regress in one kind
|
|
of phenomena. It does not, for example, forbid us, in our ascent
|
|
from an individual human being through the line of his ancestors, to
|
|
expect that we shall discover at some point of the regress a
|
|
primeval pair, or to admit, in the series of heavenly bodies, a sun at
|
|
the farthest possible distance from some centre. All that it demands
|
|
is a perpetual progress from phenomena to phenomena, even although
|
|
an actual perception is not presented by them (as in the case of our
|
|
perceptions being so weak as that we are unable to become conscious of
|
|
them), since they, nevertheless, belong to possible experience.
|
|
|
|
Every beginning is in time, and all limits to extension are in
|
|
space. But space and time are in the world of sense. Consequently
|
|
phenomena in the world are conditionally limited, but the world itself
|
|
is not limited, either conditionally or unconditionally.
|
|
|
|
For this reason, and because neither the world nor the cosmical
|
|
series of conditions to a given conditioned can be completely given,
|
|
our conception of the cosmical quantity is given only in and through
|
|
the regress and not prior to it- in a collective intuition. But the
|
|
regress itself is really nothing more than the determining of the
|
|
cosmical quantity, and cannot therefore give us any determined
|
|
conception of it- still less a conception of a quantity which is, in
|
|
relation to a certain standard, infinite. The regress does not,
|
|
therefore, proceed to infinity (an infinity given), but only to an
|
|
indefinite extent, for or the of presenting to us a quantity- realized
|
|
only in and through the regress itself.
|
|
|
|
II. Solution of the Cosmological Idea of the Totality of
|
|
|
|
the Division of a Whole given in Intuition.
|
|
|
|
When I divide a whole which is given in intuition, I proceed from
|
|
a conditioned to its conditions. The division of the parts of the
|
|
whole (subdivisio or decompositio) is a regress in the series of these
|
|
conditions. The absolute totality of this series would be actually
|
|
attained and given to the mind, if the regress could arrive at
|
|
simple parts. But if all the parts in a continuous decomposition are
|
|
themselves divisible, the division, that is to say, the regress,
|
|
proceeds from the conditioned to its conditions in infinitum;
|
|
because the conditions (the parts) are themselves contained in the
|
|
conditioned, and, as the latter is given in a limited intuition, the
|
|
former are all given along with it. This regress cannot, therefore, be
|
|
called a regressus in indefinitum, as happened in the case of the
|
|
preceding cosmological idea, the regress in which proceeded from the
|
|
conditioned to the conditions not given contemporaneously and along
|
|
with it, but discoverable only through the empirical regress. We are
|
|
not, however, entitled to affirm of a whole of this kind, which is
|
|
divisible in infinitum, that it consists of an infinite number of
|
|
parts. For, although all the parts are contained in the intuition of
|
|
the whole, the whole division is not contained therein. The division
|
|
is contained only in the progressing decomposition- in the regress
|
|
itself, which is the condition of the possibility and actuality of the
|
|
series. Now, as this regress is infinite, all the members (parts) to
|
|
which it attains must be contained in the given whole as an aggregate.
|
|
But the complete series of division is not contained therein. For this
|
|
series, being infinite in succession and always incomplete, cannot
|
|
represent an infinite number of members, and still less a
|
|
composition of these members into a whole.
|
|
|
|
To apply this remark to space. Every limited part of space presented
|
|
to intuition is a whole, the parts of which are always spaces- to
|
|
whatever extent subdivided. Every limited space is hence divisible
|
|
to infinity.
|
|
|
|
Let us again apply the remark to an external phenomenon enclosed
|
|
in limits, that is, a body. The divisibility of a body rests upon
|
|
the divisibility of space, which is the condition of the possibility
|
|
of the body as an extended whole. A body is consequently divisible
|
|
to infinity, though it does not, for that reason, consist of an
|
|
infinite number of parts.
|
|
|
|
It certainly seems that, as a body must be cogitated as substance in
|
|
space, the law of divisibility would not be applicable to it as
|
|
substance. For we may and ought to grant, in the case of space, that
|
|
division or decomposition, to any extent, never can utterly annihilate
|
|
composition (that is to say, the smallest part of space must still
|
|
consist of spaces); otherwise space would entirely cease to exist-
|
|
which is impossible. But, the assertion on the other band that when
|
|
all composition in matter is annihilated in thought, nothing
|
|
remains, does not seem to harmonize with the conception of
|
|
substance, which must be properly the subject of all composition and
|
|
must remain, even after the conjunction of its attributes in space-
|
|
which constituted a body- is annihilated in thought. But this is not
|
|
the case with substance in the phenomenal world, which is not a
|
|
thing in itself cogitated by the pure category. Phenomenal substance
|
|
is not an absolute subject; it is merely a permanent sensuous image,
|
|
and nothing more than an intuition, in which the unconditioned is
|
|
not to be found.
|
|
|
|
But, although this rule of progress to infinity is legitimate and
|
|
applicable to the subdivision of a phenomenon, as a mere occupation or
|
|
filling of space, it is not applicable to a whole consisting of a
|
|
number of distinct parts and constituting a quantum discretum- that is
|
|
to say, an organized body. It cannot be admitted that every part in an
|
|
organized whole is itself organized, and that, in analysing it to
|
|
infinity, we must always meet with organized parts; although we may
|
|
allow that the parts of the matter which we decompose in infinitum,
|
|
may be organized. For the infinity of the division of a phenomenon
|
|
in space rests altogether on the fact that the divisibility of a
|
|
phenomenon is given only in and through this infinity, that is, an
|
|
undetermined number of parts is given, while the parts themselves
|
|
are given and determined only in and through the subdivision; in a
|
|
word, the infinity of the division necessarily presupposes that the
|
|
whole is not already divided in se. Hence our division determines a
|
|
number of parts in the whole- a number which extends just as far as
|
|
the actual regress in the division; while, on the other hand, the very
|
|
notion of a body organized to infinity represents the whole as already
|
|
and in itself divided. We expect, therefore, to find in it a
|
|
determinate, but at the same time, infinite, number of parts- which is
|
|
self-contradictory. For we should thus have a whole containing a
|
|
series of members which could not be completed in any regress- which
|
|
is infinite, and at the same time complete in an organized
|
|
composite. Infinite divisibility is applicable only to a quantum
|
|
continuum, and is based entirely on the infinite divisibility of
|
|
space, But in a quantum discretum the multitude of parts or units is
|
|
always determined, and hence always equal to some number. To what
|
|
extent a body may be organized, experience alone can inform us; and
|
|
although, so far as our experience of this or that body has
|
|
extended, we may not have discovered any inorganic part, such parts
|
|
must exist in possible experience. But how far the transcendental
|
|
division of a phenomenon must extend, we cannot know from
|
|
experience- it is a question which experience cannot answer; it is
|
|
answered only by the principle of reason which forbids us to
|
|
consider the empirical regress, in the analysis of extended body, as
|
|
ever absolutely complete.
|
|
|
|
Concluding Remark on the Solution of the Transcendental
|
|
|
|
Mathematical Ideas- and Introductory to the
|
|
|
|
Solution of the Dynamical Ideas.
|
|
|
|
We presented the antinomy of pure reason in a tabular form, and we
|
|
endeavoured to show the ground of this self-contradiction on the
|
|
part of reason, and the only means of bringing it to a conclusion-
|
|
znamely, by declaring both contradictory statements to be false. We
|
|
represented in these antinomies the conditions of phenomena as
|
|
belonging to the conditioned according to relations of space and time-
|
|
which is the usual supposition of the common understanding. In this
|
|
respect, all dialectical representations of totality, in the series of
|
|
conditions to a given conditioned, were perfectly homogeneous. The
|
|
condition was always a member of the series along with the
|
|
conditioned, and thus the homogeneity of the whole series was assured.
|
|
In this case the regress could never be cogitated as complete; or,
|
|
if this was the case, a member really conditioned was falsely regarded
|
|
as a primal member, consequently as unconditioned. In such an
|
|
antinomy, therefore, we did not consider the object, that is, the
|
|
conditioned, but the series of conditions belonging to the object, and
|
|
the magnitude of that series. And thus arose the difficulty- a
|
|
difficulty not to be settled by any decision regarding the claims of
|
|
the two parties, but simply by cutting the knot- by declaring the
|
|
series proposed by reason to be either too long or too short for the
|
|
understanding, which could in neither case make its conceptions
|
|
adequate with the ideas.
|
|
|
|
But we have overlooked, up to this point, an essential difference
|
|
existing between the conceptions of the understanding which reason
|
|
endeavours to raise to the rank of ideas- two of these indicating a
|
|
mathematical, and two a dynamical synthesis of phenomena. Hitherto, it
|
|
was necessary to signalize this distinction; for, just as in our
|
|
general representation of all transcendental ideas, we considered them
|
|
under phenomenal conditions, so, in the two mathematical ideas, our
|
|
discussion is concerned solely with an object in the world of
|
|
phenomena. But as we are now about to proceed to the consideration
|
|
of the dynamical conceptions of the understanding, and their
|
|
adequateness with ideas, we must not lose sight of this distinction.
|
|
We shall find that it opens up to us an entirely new view of the
|
|
conflict in which reason is involved. For, while in the first two
|
|
antinomies, both parties were dismissed, on the ground of having
|
|
advanced statements based upon false hypothesis; in the present case
|
|
the hope appears of discovering a hypothesis which may be consistent
|
|
with the demands of reason, and, the judge completing the statement of
|
|
the grounds of claim, which both parties had left in an unsatisfactory
|
|
state, the question may be settled on its own merits, not by
|
|
dismissing the claimants, but by a comparison of the arguments on both
|
|
sides. If we consider merely their extension, and whether they are
|
|
adequate with ideas, the series of conditions may be regarded as all
|
|
homogeneous. But the conception of the understanding which lies at the
|
|
basis of these ideas, contains either a synthesis of the homogeneous
|
|
(presupposed in every quantity- in its composition as well as in its
|
|
division) or of the heterogeneous, which is the case in the
|
|
dynamical synthesis of cause and effect, as well as of the necessary
|
|
and the contingent.
|
|
|
|
Thus it happens that in the mathematical series of phenomena no
|
|
other than a sensuous condition is admissible- a condition which is
|
|
itself a member of the series; while the dynamical series of
|
|
sensuous conditions admits a heterogeneous condition, which is not a
|
|
member of the series, but, as purely intelligible, lies out of and
|
|
beyond it. And thus reason is satisfied, and an unconditioned placed
|
|
at the head of the series of phenomena, without introducing
|
|
confusion into or discontinuing it, contrary to the principles of
|
|
the understanding.
|
|
|
|
Now, from the fact that the dynamical ideas admit a condition of
|
|
phenomena which does not form a part of the series of phenomena,
|
|
arises a result which we should not have expected from an antinomy. In
|
|
former cases, the result was that both contradictory dialectical
|
|
statements were declared to be false. In the present case, we find the
|
|
conditioned in the dynamical series connected with an empirically
|
|
unconditioned, but non-sensuous condition; and thus satisfaction is
|
|
done to the understanding on the one hand and to the reason on the
|
|
other.* While, moreover, the dialectical arguments for unconditioned
|
|
totality in mere phenomena fall to the ground, both propositions of
|
|
reason may be shown to be true in their proper signification. This
|
|
could not happen in the case of the cosmological ideas which
|
|
demanded a mathematically unconditioned unity; for no condition
|
|
could be placed at the head of the series of phenomena, except one
|
|
which was itself a phenomenon and consequently a member of the series.
|
|
|
|
*For the understanding cannot admit among phenomena a condition
|
|
which is itself empirically unconditioned. But if it is possible to
|
|
cogitate an intelligible condition- one which is not a member of the
|
|
series of phenomena- for a conditioned phenomenon, without breaking
|
|
the series of empirical conditions, such a condition may be admissible
|
|
as empirically unconditioned, and the empirical regress continue
|
|
regular, unceasing, and intact.
|
|
|
|
III. Solution of the Cosmological Idea of the Totality of
|
|
|
|
the Deduction of Cosmical Events from their Causes.
|
|
|
|
There are only two modes of causality cogitable- the causality of
|
|
nature or of freedom. The first is the conjunction of a particular
|
|
state with another preceding it in the world of sense, the former
|
|
following the latter by virtue of a law. Now, as the causality of
|
|
phenomena is subject to conditions of time, and the preceding state,
|
|
if it had always existed, could not have produced an effect which
|
|
would make its first appearance at a particular time, the causality of
|
|
a cause must itself be an effect- must itself have begun to be, and
|
|
therefore, according to the principle of the understanding, itself
|
|
requires a cause.
|
|
|
|
We must understand, on the contrary, by the term freedom, in the
|
|
cosmological sense, a faculty of the spontaneous origination of a
|
|
state; the causality of which, therefore, is not subordinated to
|
|
another cause determining it in time. Freedom is in this sense a
|
|
pure transcendental idea, which, in the first place, contains no
|
|
empirical element; the object of which, in the second place, cannot be
|
|
given or determined in any experience, because it is a universal law
|
|
of the very possibility of experience, that everything which happens
|
|
must have a cause, that consequently the causality of a cause, being
|
|
itself something that has happened, must also have a cause. In this
|
|
view of the case, the whole field of experience, how far soever it may
|
|
extend, contains nothing that is not subject to the laws of nature.
|
|
But, as we cannot by this means attain to an absolute totality of
|
|
conditions in reference to the series of causes and effects, reason
|
|
creates the idea of a spontaneity, which can begin to act of itself,
|
|
and without any external cause determining it to action, according
|
|
to the natural law of causality.
|
|
|
|
It is especially remarkable that the practical conception of freedom
|
|
is based upon the transcendental idea, and that the question of the
|
|
possibility of the former is difficult only as it involves the
|
|
consideration of the truth of the latter. Freedom, in the practical
|
|
sense, is the independence of the will of coercion by sensuous
|
|
impulses. A will is sensuous, in so far as it is pathologically
|
|
affected (by sensuous impulses); it is termed animal (arbitrium
|
|
brutum), when it is pathologically necessitated. The human will is
|
|
certainly an arbitrium sensitivum, not brutum, but liberum; because
|
|
sensuousness does not necessitate its action, a faculty existing in
|
|
man of self-determination, independently of all sensuous coercion.
|
|
|
|
It is plain that, if all causality in the world of sense were
|
|
natural- and natural only- every event would be determined by
|
|
another according to necessary laws, and that, consequently,
|
|
phenomena, in so far as they determine the will, must necessitate
|
|
every action as a natural effect from themselves; and thus all
|
|
practical freedom would fall to the ground with the transcendental
|
|
idea. For the latter presupposes that although a certain thing has not
|
|
happened, it ought to have happened, and that, consequently, its
|
|
phenomenal cause was not so powerful and determinative as to exclude
|
|
the causality of our will- a causality capable of producing effects
|
|
independently of and even in opposition to the power of natural
|
|
causes, and capable, consequently, of spontaneously originating a
|
|
series of events.
|
|
|
|
Here, too, we find it to be the case, as we generally found in the
|
|
self-contradictions and perplexities of a reason which strives to pass
|
|
the bounds of possible experience, that the problem is properly not
|
|
physiological, but transcendental. The question of the possibility
|
|
of freedom does indeed concern psychology; but, as it rests upon
|
|
dialectical arguments of pure reason, its solution must engage the
|
|
attention of transcendental philosophy. Before attempting this
|
|
solution, a task which transcendental philosophy cannot decline, it
|
|
will be advisable to make a remark with regard to its procedure in the
|
|
settlement of the question.
|
|
|
|
If phenomena were things in themselves, and time and space forms
|
|
of the existence of things, condition and conditioned would always
|
|
be members of the same series; and thus would arise in the present
|
|
case the antinomy common to all transcendental ideas- that their
|
|
series is either too great or too small for the understanding. The
|
|
dynamical ideas, which we are about to discuss in this and the
|
|
following section, possess the peculiarity of relating to an object,
|
|
not considered as a quantity, but as an existence; and thus, in the
|
|
discussion of the present question, we may make abstraction of the
|
|
quantity of the series of conditions, and consider merely the
|
|
dynamical relation of the condition to the conditioned. The
|
|
question, then, suggests itself, whether freedom is possible; and,
|
|
if it is, whether it can consist with the universality of the
|
|
natural law of causality; and, consequently, whether we enounce a
|
|
proper disjunctive proposition when we say: "Every effect must have
|
|
its origin either in nature or in freedom," or whether both cannot
|
|
exist together in the same event in different relations. The principle
|
|
of an unbroken connection between all events in the phenomenal
|
|
world, in accordance with the unchangeable laws of nature, is a
|
|
well-established principle of transcendental analytic which admits
|
|
of no exception. The question, therefore, is: "Whether an effect,
|
|
determined according to the laws of nature, can at the same time be
|
|
produced by a free agent, or whether freedom and nature mutually
|
|
exclude each other?" And here, the common but fallacious hypothesis of
|
|
the absolute reality of phenomena manifests its injurious influence in
|
|
embarrassing the procedure of reason. For if phenomena are things in
|
|
themselves, freedom is impossible. In this case, nature is the
|
|
complete and all-sufficient cause of every event; and condition and
|
|
conditioned, cause and effect are contained in the same series, and
|
|
necessitated by the same law. If, on the contrary, phenomena are
|
|
held to be, as they are in fact, nothing more than mere
|
|
representations, connected with each other in accordance with
|
|
empirical laws, they must have a ground which is not phenomenal. But
|
|
the causality of such an intelligible cause is not determined or
|
|
determinable by phenomena; although its effects, as phenomena, must be
|
|
determined by other phenomenal existences. This cause and its
|
|
causality exist therefore out of and apart from the series of
|
|
phenomena; while its effects do exist and are discoverable in the
|
|
series of empirical conditions. Such an effect may therefore be
|
|
considered to be free in relation to its intelligible cause, and
|
|
necessary in relation to the phenomena from which it is a necessary
|
|
consequence- a distinction which, stated in this perfectly general and
|
|
abstract manner, must appear in the highest degree subtle and obscure.
|
|
The sequel will explain. It is sufficient, at present, to remark that,
|
|
as the complete and unbroken connection of phenomena is an unalterable
|
|
law of nature, freedom is impossible- on the supposition that
|
|
phenomena are absolutely real. Hence those philosophers who adhere
|
|
to the common opinion on this subject can never succeed in reconciling
|
|
the ideas of nature and freedom.
|
|
|
|
Possibility of Freedom in Harmony with the Universal Law
|
|
|
|
of Natural Necessity.
|
|
|
|
That element in a sensuous object which is not itself sensuous, I
|
|
may be allowed to term intelligible. If, accordingly, an object
|
|
which must be regarded as a sensuous phenomenon possesses a faculty
|
|
which is not an object of sensuous intuition, but by means of which it
|
|
is capable of being the cause of phenomena, the causality of an object
|
|
or existence of this kind may be regarded from two different points of
|
|
view. It may be considered to be intelligible, as regards its
|
|
action- the action of a thing which is a thing in itself, and
|
|
sensuous, as regards its effects- the effects of a phenomenon
|
|
belonging to the sensuous world. We should accordingly, have to form
|
|
both an empirical and an intellectual conception of the causality of
|
|
such a faculty or power- both, however, having reference to the same
|
|
effect. This twofold manner of cogitating a power residing in a
|
|
sensuous object does not run counter to any of the conceptions which
|
|
we ought to form of the world of phenomena or of a possible
|
|
experience. Phenomena- not being things in themselves- must have a
|
|
transcendental object as a foundation, which determines them as mere
|
|
representations; and there seems to be no reason why we should not
|
|
ascribe to this transcendental object, in addition to the property
|
|
of self-phenomenization, a causality whose effects are to be met
|
|
with in the world of phenomena, although it is not itself a
|
|
phenomenon. But every effective cause must possess a character, that
|
|
is to say, a law of its causality, without which it would cease to
|
|
be a cause. In the above case, then, every sensuous object would
|
|
possess an empirical character, which guaranteed that its actions,
|
|
as phenomena, stand in complete and harmonious connection, conformably
|
|
to unvarying natural laws, with all other phenomena, and can be
|
|
deduced from these, as conditions, and that they do thus, in
|
|
connection with these, constitute a series in the order of nature.
|
|
This sensuous object must, in the second place, possess an
|
|
intelligible character, which guarantees it to be the cause of those
|
|
actions, as phenomena, although it is not itself a phenomenon nor
|
|
subordinate to the conditions of the world of sense. The former may be
|
|
termed the character of the thing as a phenomenon, the latter the
|
|
character of the thing as a thing in itself.
|
|
|
|
Now this active subject would, in its character of intelligible
|
|
subject, be subordinate to no conditions of time, for time is only a
|
|
condition of phenomena, and not of things in themselves. No action
|
|
would begin or cease to be in this subject; it would consequently be
|
|
free from the law of all determination of time- the law of change,
|
|
namely, that everything which happens must have a cause in the
|
|
phenomena of a preceding state. In one word, the causality of the
|
|
subject, in so far as it is intelligible, would not form part of the
|
|
series of empirical conditions which determine and necessitate an
|
|
event in the world of sense. Again, this intelligible character of a
|
|
thing cannot be immediately cognized, because we can perceive
|
|
nothing but phenomena, but it must be capable of being cogitated in
|
|
harmony with the empirical character; for we always find ourselves
|
|
compelled to place, in thought, a transcendental object at the basis
|
|
of phenomena although we can never know what this object is in itself.
|
|
|
|
In virtue of its empirical character, this subject would at the same
|
|
time be subordinate to all the empirical laws of causality, and, as
|
|
a phenomenon and member of the sensuous world, its effects would
|
|
have to be accounted for by a reference to preceding phenomena.
|
|
Eternal phenomena must be capable of influencing it; and its
|
|
actions, in accordance with natural laws, must explain to us how its
|
|
empirical character, that is, the law of its causality, is to be
|
|
cognized in and by means of experience. In a word, all requisites
|
|
for a complete and necessary determination of these actions must be
|
|
presented to us by experience.
|
|
|
|
In virtue of its intelligible character, on the other hand (although
|
|
we possess only a general conception of this character), the subject
|
|
must be regarded as free from all sensuous influences, and from all
|
|
phenomenal determination. Moreover, as nothing happens in this
|
|
subject- for it is a noumenon, and there does not consequently exist
|
|
in it any change, demanding the dynamical determination of time, and
|
|
for the same reason no connection with phenomena as causes- this
|
|
active existence must in its actions be free from and independent of
|
|
natural necessity, for or necessity exists only in the world of
|
|
phenomena. It would be quite correct to say that it originates or
|
|
begins its effects in the world of sense from itself, although the
|
|
action productive of these effects does not begin in itself. We should
|
|
not be in this case affirming that these sensuous effects began to
|
|
exist of themselves, because they are always determined by prior
|
|
empirical conditions- by virtue of the empirical character, which is
|
|
the phenomenon of the intelligible character- and are possible only as
|
|
constituting a continuation of the series of natural causes. And
|
|
thus nature and freedom, each in the complete and absolute
|
|
signification of these terms, can exist, without contradiction or
|
|
disagreement, in the same action to
|
|
|
|
Exposition of the Cosmological Idea of Freedom in Harmony
|
|
|
|
with the Universal Law of Natural Necessity.
|
|
|
|
I have thought it advisable to lay before the reader at first merely
|
|
a sketch of the solution of this transcendental problem, in order to
|
|
enable him to form with greater ease a clear conception of the
|
|
course which reason must adopt in the solution. I shall now proceed to
|
|
exhibit the several momenta of this solution, and to consider them
|
|
in their order.
|
|
|
|
The natural law that everything which happens must have a cause,
|
|
that the causality of this cause, that is, the action of the cause
|
|
(which cannot always have existed, but must be itself an event, for it
|
|
precedes in time some effect which it has originated), must have
|
|
itself a phenomenal cause, by which it is determined and, and,
|
|
consequently, all events are empirically determined in an order of
|
|
nature- this law, I say, which lies at the foundation of the
|
|
possibility of experience, and of a connected system of phenomena or
|
|
nature is a law of the understanding, from which no departure, and
|
|
to which no exception, can be admitted. For to except even a single
|
|
phenomenon from its operation is to exclude it from the sphere of
|
|
possible experience and thus to admit it to be a mere fiction of
|
|
thought or phantom of the brain.
|
|
|
|
Thus we are obliged to acknowledge the existence of a chain of
|
|
causes, in which, however, absolute totality cannot be found. But we
|
|
need not detain ourselves with this question, for it has already
|
|
been sufficiently answered in our discussion of the antinomies into
|
|
which reason falls, when it attempts to reach the unconditioned in the
|
|
series of phenomena. If we permit ourselves to be deceived by the
|
|
illusion of transcendental idealism, we shall find that neither nature
|
|
nor freedom exists. Now the question is: "Whether, admitting the
|
|
existence of natural necessity in the world of phenomena, it is
|
|
possible to consider an effect as at the same time an effect of nature
|
|
and an effect of freedom- or, whether these two modes of causality are
|
|
contradictory and incompatible?"
|
|
|
|
No phenomenal cause can absolutely and of itself begin a series.
|
|
Every action, in so far as it is productive of an event, is itself
|
|
an event or occurrence, and presupposes another preceding state, in
|
|
which its cause existed. Thus everything that happens is but a
|
|
continuation of a series, and an absolute beginning is impossible in
|
|
the sensuous world. The actions of natural causes are, accordingly,
|
|
themselves effects, and presuppose causes preceding them in time. A
|
|
primal action which forms an absolute beginning, is beyond the
|
|
causal power of phenomena.
|
|
|
|
Now, is it absolutely necessary that, granting that all effects
|
|
are phenomena, the causality of the cause of these effects must also
|
|
be a phenomenon and belong to the empirical world? Is it not rather
|
|
possible that, although every effect in the phenomenal world must be
|
|
connected with an empirical cause, according to the universal law of
|
|
nature, this empirical causality may be itself the effect of a
|
|
non-empirical and intelligible causality- its connection with
|
|
natural causes remaining nevertheless intact? Such a causality would
|
|
be considered, in reference to phenomena, as the primal action of a
|
|
cause, which is in so far, therefore, not phenomenal, but, by reason
|
|
of this faculty or power, intelligible; although it must, at the
|
|
same time, as a link in the chain of nature, be regarded as
|
|
belonging to the sensuous world.
|
|
|
|
A belief in the reciprocal causality of phenomena is necessary, if
|
|
we are required to look for and to present the natural conditions of
|
|
natural events, that is to say, their causes. This being admitted as
|
|
unexceptionably valid, the requirements of the understanding, which
|
|
recognizes nothing but nature in the region of phenomena, are
|
|
satisfied, and our physical explanations of physical phenomena may
|
|
proceed in their regular course, without hindrance and without
|
|
opposition. But it is no stumbling-block in the way, even assuming the
|
|
idea to be a pure fiction, to admit that there are some natural causes
|
|
in the possession of a faculty which is not empirical, but
|
|
intelligible, inasmuch as it is not determined to action by
|
|
empirical conditions, but purely and solely upon grounds brought
|
|
forward by the understanding- this action being still, when the
|
|
cause is phenomenized, in perfect accordance with the laws of
|
|
empirical causality. Thus the acting subject, as a causal
|
|
phenomenon, would continue to preserve a complete connection with
|
|
nature and natural conditions; and the phenomenon only of the
|
|
subject (with all its phenomenal causality) would contain certain
|
|
conditions, which, if we ascend from the empirical to the
|
|
transcendental object, must necessarily be regarded as intelligible.
|
|
For, if we attend, in our inquiries with regard to causes in the world
|
|
of phenomena, to the directions of nature alone, we need not trouble
|
|
ourselves about the relation in which the transcendental subject,
|
|
which is completely unknown to us, stands to these phenomena and their
|
|
connection in nature. The intelligible ground of phenomena in this
|
|
subject does not concern empirical questions. It has to do only with
|
|
pure thought; and, although the effects of this thought and action
|
|
of the pure understanding are discoverable in phenomena, these
|
|
phenomena must nevertheless be capable of a full and complete
|
|
explanation, upon purely physical grounds and in accordance with
|
|
natural laws. And in this case we attend solely to their empirical and
|
|
omit all consideration of their intelligible character (which is the
|
|
transcendental cause of the former) as completely unknown, except in
|
|
so far as it is exhibited by the latter as its empirical symbol. Now
|
|
let us apply this to experience. Man is a phenomenon of the sensuous
|
|
world and, at the same time, therefore, a natural cause, the causality
|
|
of which must be regulated by empirical laws. As such, he must possess
|
|
an empirical character, like all other natural phenomena. We remark
|
|
this empirical character in his actions, which reveal the presence
|
|
of certain powers and faculties. If we consider inanimate or merely
|
|
animal nature, we can discover no reason for ascribing to ourselves
|
|
any other than a faculty which is determined in a purely sensuous
|
|
manner. But man, to whom nature reveals herself only through sense,
|
|
cognizes himself not only by his senses, but also through pure
|
|
apperception; and this in actions and internal determinations, which
|
|
he cannot regard as sensuous impressions. He is thus to himself, on
|
|
the one hand, a phenomenon, but on the other hand, in respect of
|
|
certain faculties, a purely intelligible object- intelligible, because
|
|
its action cannot be ascribed to sensuous receptivity. These faculties
|
|
are understanding and reason. The latter, especially, is in a peculiar
|
|
manner distinct from all empirically-conditioned faculties, for it
|
|
employs ideas alone in the consideration of its objects, and by
|
|
means of these determines the understanding, which then proceeds to
|
|
make an empirical use of its own conceptions, which, like the ideas of
|
|
reason, are pure and non-empirical.
|
|
|
|
That reason possesses the faculty of causality, or that at least
|
|
we are compelled so to represent it, is evident from the
|
|
imperatives, which in the sphere of the practical we impose on many of
|
|
our executive powers. The words I ought express a species of
|
|
necessity, and imply a connection with grounds which nature does not
|
|
and cannot present to the mind of man. Understanding knows nothing
|
|
in nature but that which is, or has been, or will be. It would be
|
|
absurd to say that anything in nature ought to be other than it is
|
|
in the relations of time in which it stands; indeed, the ought, when
|
|
we consider merely the course of nature, bas neither application nor
|
|
meaning. The question, "What ought to happen in the sphere of nature?"
|
|
is just as absurd as the question, "What ought to be the properties of
|
|
a circle?" All that we are entitled to ask is, "What takes place in
|
|
nature?" or, in the latter case, "What are the properties of a
|
|
circle?"
|
|
|
|
But the idea of an ought or of duty indicates a possible action, the
|
|
ground of which is a pure conception; while the ground of a merely
|
|
natural action is, on the contrary, always a phenomenon. This action
|
|
must certainly be possible under physical conditions, if it is
|
|
prescribed by the moral imperative ought; but these physical or
|
|
natural conditions do not concern the determination of the will
|
|
itself, they relate to its effects alone, and the consequences of
|
|
the effect in the world of phenomena. Whatever number of motives
|
|
nature may present to my will, whatever sensuous impulses- the moral
|
|
ought it is beyond their power to produce. They may produce a
|
|
volition, which, so far from being necessary, is always conditioned- a
|
|
volition to which the ought enunciated by reason, sets an aim and a
|
|
standard, gives permission or prohibition. Be the object what it
|
|
may, purely sensuous- as pleasure, or presented by pure reason- as
|
|
good, reason will not yield to grounds which have an empirical origin.
|
|
Reason will not follow the order of things presented by experience,
|
|
but, with perfect spontaneity, rearranges them according to ideas,
|
|
with which it compels empirical conditions to agree. It declares, in
|
|
the name of these ideas, certain actions to be necessary which
|
|
nevertheless have not taken place and which perhaps never will take
|
|
place; and yet presupposes that it possesses the faculty of
|
|
causality in relation to these actions. For, in the absence of this
|
|
supposition, it could not expect its ideas to produce certain
|
|
effects in the world of experience.
|
|
|
|
Now, let us stop here and admit it to be at least possible that
|
|
reason does stand in a really causal relation to phenomena. In this
|
|
case it must- pure reason as it is- exhibit an empirical character.
|
|
For every cause supposes a rule, according to which certain
|
|
phenomena follow as effects from the cause, and every rule requires
|
|
uniformity in these effects; and this is the proper ground of the
|
|
conception of a cause- as a faculty or power. Now this conception
|
|
(of a cause) may be termed the empirical character of reason; and this
|
|
character is a permanent one, while the effects produced appear, in
|
|
conformity with the various conditions which accompany and partly
|
|
limit them, in various forms.
|
|
|
|
Thus the volition of every man has an empirical character, which
|
|
is nothing more than the causality of his reason, in so far as its
|
|
effects in the phenomenal world manifest the presence of a rule,
|
|
according to which we are enabled to examine, in their several kinds
|
|
and degrees, the actions of this causality and the rational grounds
|
|
for these actions, and in this way to decide upon the subjective
|
|
principles of the volition. Now we learn what this empirical character
|
|
is only from phenomenal effects, and from the rule of these which is
|
|
presented by experience; and for this reason all the actions of man in
|
|
the world of phenomena are determined by his empirical character,
|
|
and the co-operative causes of nature. If, then, we could
|
|
investigate all the phenomena of human volition to their lowest
|
|
foundation in the mind, there would be no action which we could not
|
|
anticipate with certainty, and recognize to be absolutely necessary
|
|
from its preceding conditions. So far as relates to this empirical
|
|
character, therefore, there can be no freedom; and it is only in the
|
|
light of this character that we can consider the human will, when we
|
|
confine ourselves to simple observation and, as is the case in
|
|
anthropology, institute a physiological investigation of the motive
|
|
causes of human actions.
|
|
|
|
But when we consider the same actions in relation to reason- not for
|
|
the purpose of explaining their origin, that is, in relation to
|
|
speculative reason, but to practical reason, as the producing cause of
|
|
these actions- we shall discover a rule and an order very different
|
|
from those of nature and experience. For the declaration of this
|
|
mental faculty may be that what has and could not but take place in
|
|
the course of nature, ought not to have taken place. Sometimes, too,
|
|
we discover, or believe that we discover, that the ideas of reason did
|
|
actually stand in a causal relation to certain actions of man; and
|
|
that these actions have taken place because they were determined,
|
|
not by empirical causes, but by the act of the will upon grounds of
|
|
reason.
|
|
|
|
Now, granting that reason stands in a causal relation to
|
|
phenomena; can an action of reason be called free, when we know
|
|
that, sensuously, in its empirical character, it is completely
|
|
determined and absolutely necessary? But this empirical character is
|
|
itself determined by the intelligible character. The latter we
|
|
cannot cognize; we can only indicate it by means of phenomena, which
|
|
enable us to have an immediate cognition only of the empirical
|
|
character.* An action, then, in so far as it is to be ascribed to an
|
|
intelligible cause, does not result from it in accordance with
|
|
empirical laws. That is to say, not the conditions of pure reason, but
|
|
only their effects in the internal sense, precede the act. Pure
|
|
reason, as a purely intelligible faculty, is not subject to the
|
|
conditions of time. The causality of reason in its intelligible
|
|
character does not begin to be; it does not make its appearance at a
|
|
certain time, for the purpose of producing an effect. If this were not
|
|
the case, the causality of reason would be subservient to the
|
|
natural law of phenomena, which determines them according to time, and
|
|
as a series of causes and effects in time; it would consequently cease
|
|
to be freedom and become a part of nature. We are therefore
|
|
justified in saying: "If reason stands in a causal relation to
|
|
phenomena, it is a faculty which originates the sensuous condition
|
|
of an empirical series of effects." For the condition, which resides
|
|
in the reason, is non-sensuous, and therefore cannot be originated, or
|
|
begin to be. And thus we find- what we could not discover in any
|
|
empirical series- a condition of a successive series of events
|
|
itself empirically unconditioned. For, in the present case, the
|
|
condition stands out of and beyond the series of phenomena- it is
|
|
intelligible, and it consequently cannot be subjected to any
|
|
sensuous condition, or to any time-determination by a preceding cause.
|
|
|
|
*The real morality of actions- their merit or demerit, and even that
|
|
of our own conduct, is completely unknown to us. Our estimates can
|
|
relate only to their empirical character. How much is the result of
|
|
the action of free will, how much is to be ascribed to nature and to
|
|
blameless error, or to a happy constitution of temperament (merito
|
|
fortunae), no one can discover, nor, for this reason, determine with
|
|
perfect justice.
|
|
|
|
But, in another respect, the same cause belongs also to the series
|
|
of phenomena. Man is himself a phenomenon. His will has an empirical
|
|
character, which is the empirical cause of all his actions. There is
|
|
no condition- determining man and his volition in conformity with this
|
|
character- which does not itself form part of the series of effects in
|
|
nature, and is subject to their law- the law according to which an
|
|
empirically undetermined cause of an event in time cannot exist. For
|
|
this reason no given action can have an absolute and spontaneous
|
|
origination, all actions being phenomena, and belonging to the world
|
|
of experience. But it cannot be said of reason, that the state in
|
|
which it determines the will is always preceded by some other state
|
|
determining it. For reason is not a phenomenon, and therefore not
|
|
subject to sensuous conditions; and, consequently, even in relation to
|
|
its causality, the sequence or conditions of time do not influence
|
|
reason, nor can the dynamical law of nature, which determines the
|
|
sequence of time according to certain rules, be applied to it.
|
|
|
|
Reason is consequently the permanent condition of all actions of the
|
|
human will. Each of these is determined in the empirical character
|
|
of the man, even before it has taken place. The intelligible
|
|
character, of which the former is but the sensuous schema, knows no
|
|
before or after; and every action, irrespective of the time-relation
|
|
in which it stands with other phenomena, is the immediate effect of
|
|
the intelligible character of pure reason, which, consequently, enjoys
|
|
freedom of action, and is not dynamically determined either by
|
|
internal or external preceding conditions. This freedom must not be
|
|
described, in a merely negative manner, as independence of empirical
|
|
conditions, for in this case the faculty of reason would cease to be a
|
|
cause of phenomena; but it must be regarded, positively, as a
|
|
faculty which can spontaneously originate a series of events. At the
|
|
same time, it must not be supposed that any beginning can take place
|
|
in reason; on the contrary, reason, as the unconditioned condition
|
|
of all action of the will, admits of no time-conditions, although
|
|
its effect does really begin in a series of phenomena- a beginning
|
|
which is not, however, absolutely primal.
|
|
|
|
I shall illustrate this regulative principle of reason by an
|
|
example, from its employment in the world of experience; proved it
|
|
cannot be by any amount of experience, or by any number of facts,
|
|
for such arguments cannot establish the truth of transcendental
|
|
propositions. Let us take a voluntary action- for example, a
|
|
falsehood- by means of which a man has introduced a certain degree
|
|
of confusion into the social life of humanity, which is judged
|
|
according to the motives from which it originated, and the blame of
|
|
which and of the evil consequences arising from it, is imputed to
|
|
the offender. We at first proceed to examine the empirical character
|
|
of the offence, and for this purpose we endeavour to penetrate to
|
|
the sources of that character, such as a defective education, bad
|
|
company, a shameless and wicked disposition, frivolity, and want of
|
|
reflection- not forgetting also the occasioning causes which prevailed
|
|
at the moment of the transgression. In this the procedure is exactly
|
|
the same as that pursued in the investigation of the series of
|
|
causes which determine a given physical effect. Now, although we
|
|
believe the action to have been determined by all these circumstances,
|
|
we do not the less blame the offender. We do not blame him for his
|
|
unhappy disposition, nor for the circumstances which influenced him,
|
|
nay, not even for his former course of life; for we presuppose that
|
|
all these considerations may be set aside, that the series of
|
|
preceding conditions may be regarded as having never existed, and that
|
|
the action may be considered as completely unconditioned in relation
|
|
to any state preceding, just as if the agent commenced with it an
|
|
entirely new series of effects. Our blame of the offender is
|
|
grounded upon a law of reason, which requires us to regard this
|
|
faculty as a cause, which could have and ought to have otherwise
|
|
determined the behaviour of the culprit, independently of all
|
|
empirical conditions. This causality of reason we do not regard as a
|
|
co-operating agency, but as complete in itself. It matters not whether
|
|
the sensuous impulses favoured or opposed the action of this
|
|
causality, the offence is estimated according to its intelligible
|
|
character- the offender is decidedly worthy of blame, the moment he
|
|
utters a falsehood. It follows that we regard reason, in spite of
|
|
the empirical conditions of the act, as completely free, and
|
|
therefore, therefore, as in the present case, culpable.
|
|
|
|
The above judgement is complete evidence that we are accustomed to
|
|
think that reason is not affected by sensuous conditions, that in it
|
|
no change takes place- although its phenomena, in other words, the
|
|
mode in which it appears in its effects, are subject to change- that
|
|
in it no preceding state determines the following, and,
|
|
consequently, that it does not form a member of the series of sensuous
|
|
conditions which necessitate phenomena according to natural laws.
|
|
Reason is present and the same in all human actions and at all
|
|
times; but it does not itself exist in time, and therefore does not
|
|
enter upon any state in which it did not formerly exist. It is,
|
|
relatively to new states or conditions, determining, but not
|
|
determinable. Hence we cannot ask: "Why did not reason determine
|
|
itself in a different manner?" The question ought to be thus stated:
|
|
"Why did not reason employ its power of causality to determine certain
|
|
phenomena in a different manner?" "But this is a question which admits
|
|
of no answer. For a different intelligible character would have
|
|
exhibited a different empirical character; and, when we say that, in
|
|
spite of the course which his whole former life has taken, the
|
|
offender could have refrained from uttering the falsehood, this
|
|
means merely that the act was subject to the power and authority-
|
|
permissive or prohibitive- of reason. Now, reason is not subject in
|
|
its causality to any conditions of phenomena or of time; and a
|
|
difference in time may produce a difference in the relation of
|
|
phenomena to each other- for these are not things and therefore not
|
|
causes in themselves- but it cannot produce any difference in the
|
|
relation in which the action stands to the faculty of reason.
|
|
|
|
Thus, then, in our investigation into free actions and the causal
|
|
power which produced them, we arrive at an intelligible cause,
|
|
beyond which, however, we cannot go; although we can recognize that it
|
|
is free, that is, independent of all sensuous conditions, and that, in
|
|
this way, it may be the sensuously unconditioned condition of
|
|
phenomena. But for what reason the intelligible character generates
|
|
such and such phenomena and exhibits such and such an empirical
|
|
character under certain circumstances, it is beyond the power of our
|
|
reason to decide. The question is as much above the power and the
|
|
sphere of reason as the following would be: "Why does the
|
|
transcendental object of our external sensuous intuition allow of no
|
|
other form than that of intuition in space?" But the problem, which we
|
|
were called upon to solve, does not require us to entertain any such
|
|
questions. The problem was merely this- whether freedom and natural
|
|
necessity can exist without opposition in the same action. To this
|
|
question we have given a sufficient answer; for we have shown that, as
|
|
the former stands in a relation to a different kind of condition
|
|
from those of the latter, the law of the one does not affect the law
|
|
of the other and that, consequently, both can exist together in
|
|
independence of and without interference with each other.
|
|
|
|
The reader must be careful to remark that my intention in the
|
|
above remarks has not been to prove the actual existence of freedom,
|
|
as a faculty in which resides the cause of certain sensuous phenomena.
|
|
For, not to mention that such an argument would not have a
|
|
transcendental character, nor have been limited to the discussion of
|
|
pure conceptions- all attempts at inferring from experience what
|
|
cannot be cogitated in accordance with its laws, must ever be
|
|
unsuccessful. Nay, more, I have not even aimed at demonstrating the
|
|
possibility of freedom; for this too would have been a vain endeavour,
|
|
inasmuch as it is beyond the power of the mind to cognize the
|
|
possibility of a reality or of a causal power by the aid of mere a
|
|
priori conceptions. Freedom has been considered in the foregoing
|
|
remarks only as a transcendental idea, by means of which reason aims
|
|
at originating a series of conditions in the world of phenomena with
|
|
the help of that which is sensuously unconditioned, involving
|
|
itself, however, in an antinomy with the laws which itself
|
|
prescribes for the conduct of the understanding. That this antinomy is
|
|
based upon a mere illusion, and that nature and freedom are at least
|
|
not opposed- this was the only thing in our power to prove, and the
|
|
question which it was our task to solve.
|
|
|
|
IV. Solution of the Cosmological Idea of the Totality of
|
|
|
|
the Dependence of Phenomenal Existences.
|
|
|
|
In the preceding remarks, we considered the changes in the world
|
|
of sense as constituting a dynamical series, in which each member is
|
|
subordinated to another- as its cause. Our present purpose is to avail
|
|
ourselves of this series of states or conditions as a guide to an
|
|
existence which may be the highest condition of all changeable
|
|
phenomena, that is, to a necessary being. Our endeavour to reach,
|
|
not the unconditioned causality, but the unconditioned existence, of
|
|
substance. The series before us is therefore a series of
|
|
conceptions, and not of intuitions (in which the one intuition is
|
|
the condition of the other).
|
|
|
|
But it is evident that, as all phenomena are subject to change and
|
|
conditioned in their existence, the series of dependent existences
|
|
cannot embrace an unconditioned member, the existence of which would
|
|
be absolutely necessary. It follows that, if phenomena were things
|
|
in themselves, and- as an immediate consequence from this supposition-
|
|
condition and conditioned belonged to the same series of phenomena,
|
|
the existence of a necessary being, as the condition of the
|
|
existence of sensuous phenomena, would be perfectly impossible.
|
|
|
|
An important distinction, however, exists between the dynamical
|
|
and the mathematical regress. The latter is engaged solely with the
|
|
combination of parts into a whole, or with the division of a whole
|
|
into its parts; and therefore are the conditions of its series parts
|
|
of the series, and to be consequently regarded as homogeneous, and for
|
|
this reason, as consisting, without exception, of phenomena. If the
|
|
former regress, on the contrary, the aim of which is not to
|
|
establish the possibility of an unconditioned whole consisting of
|
|
given parts, or of an unconditioned part of a given whole, but to
|
|
demonstrate the possibility of the deduction of a certain state from
|
|
its cause, or of the contingent existence of substance from that which
|
|
exists necessarily, it is not requisite that the condition should form
|
|
part of an empirical series along with the conditioned.
|
|
|
|
In the case of the apparent antinomy with which we are at present
|
|
dealing, there exists a way of escape from the difficulty; for it is
|
|
not impossible that both of the contradictory statements may be true
|
|
in different relations. All sensuous phenomena may be contingent,
|
|
and consequently possess only an empirically conditioned existence,
|
|
and yet there may also exist a non-empirical condition of the whole
|
|
series, or, in other words, a necessary being. For this necessary
|
|
being, as an intelligible condition, would not form a member- not even
|
|
the highest member- of the series; the whole world of sense would be
|
|
left in its empirically determined existence uninterfered with and
|
|
uninfluenced. This would also form a ground of distinction between the
|
|
modes of solution employed for the third and fourth antinomies. For,
|
|
while in the consideration of freedom in the former antinomy, the
|
|
thing itself- the cause (substantia phaenomenon)- was regarded as
|
|
belonging to the series of conditions, and only its causality to the
|
|
intelligible world- we are obliged in the present case to cogitate
|
|
this necessary being as purely intelligible and as existing entirely
|
|
apart from the world of sense (as an ens extramundanum); for otherwise
|
|
it would be subject to the phenomenal law of contingency and
|
|
dependence.
|
|
|
|
In relation to the present problem, therefore, the regulative
|
|
principle of reason is that everything in the sensuous world possesses
|
|
an empirically conditioned existence- that no property of the sensuous
|
|
world possesses unconditioned necessity- that we are bound to
|
|
expect, and, so far as is possible, to seek for the empirical
|
|
condition of every member in the series of conditions- and that
|
|
there is no sufficient reason to justify us in deducing any
|
|
existence from a condition which lies out of and beyond the
|
|
empirical series, or in regarding any existence as independent and
|
|
self-subsistent; although this should not prevent us from
|
|
recognizing the possibility of the whole series being based upon a
|
|
being which is intelligible, and for this reason free from all
|
|
empirical conditions.
|
|
|
|
But it has been far from my intention, in these remarks, to prove
|
|
the existence of this unconditioned and necessary being, or even to
|
|
evidence the possibility of a purely intelligible condition of the
|
|
existence or all sensuous phenomena. As bounds were set to reason,
|
|
to prevent it from leaving the guiding thread of empirical
|
|
conditions and losing itself in transcendent theories which are
|
|
incapable of concrete presentation; so it was my purpose, on the other
|
|
band, to set bounds to the law of the purely empirical
|
|
understanding, and to protest against any attempts on its part at
|
|
deciding on the possibility of things, or declaring the existence of
|
|
the intelligible to be impossible, merely on the ground that it is not
|
|
available for the explanation and exposition of phenomena. It has been
|
|
shown, at the same time, that the contingency of all the phenomena
|
|
of nature and their empirical conditions is quite consistent with
|
|
the arbitrary hypothesis of a necessary, although purely
|
|
intelligible condition, that no real contradiction exists between them
|
|
and that, consequently, both may be true. The existence of such an
|
|
absolutely necessary being may be impossible; but this can never be
|
|
demonstrated from the universal contingency and dependence of sensuous
|
|
phenomena, nor from the principle which forbids us to discontinue
|
|
the series at some member of it, or to seek for its cause in some
|
|
sphere of existence beyond the world of nature. Reason goes its way in
|
|
the empirical world, and follows, too, its peculiar path in the sphere
|
|
of the transcendental.
|
|
|
|
The sensuous world contains nothing but phenomena, which are mere
|
|
representations, and always sensuously conditioned; things in
|
|
themselves are not, and cannot be, objects to us. It is not to be
|
|
wondered at, therefore, that we are not justified in leaping from some
|
|
member of an empirical series beyond the world of sense, as if
|
|
empirical representations were things in themselves, existing apart
|
|
from their transcendental ground in the human mind, and the cause of
|
|
whose existence may be sought out of the empirical series. This
|
|
would certainly be the case with contingent things; but it cannot be
|
|
with mere representations of things, the contingency of which is
|
|
itself merely a phenomenon and can relate to no other regress than
|
|
that which determines phenomena, that is, the empirical. But to
|
|
cogitate an intelligible ground of phenomena, as free, moreover,
|
|
from the contingency of the latter, conflicts neither with the
|
|
unlimited nature of the empirical regress, nor with the complete
|
|
contingency of phenomena. And the demonstration of this was the only
|
|
thing necessary for the solution of this apparent antinomy. For if the
|
|
condition of every conditioned- as regards its existence- is sensuous,
|
|
and for this reason a part of the same series, it must be itself
|
|
conditioned, as was shown in the antithesis of the fourth antinomy.
|
|
The embarrassments into which a reason, which postulates the
|
|
unconditioned, necessarily falls, must, therefore, continue to
|
|
exist; or the unconditioned must be placed in the sphere of the
|
|
intelligible. In this way, its necessity does not require, nor does it
|
|
even permit, the presence of an empirical condition: and it is,
|
|
consequently, unconditionally necessary.
|
|
|
|
The empirical employment of reason is not affected by the assumption
|
|
of a purely intelligible being; it continues its operations on the
|
|
principle of the contingency of all phenomena, proceeding from
|
|
empirical conditions to still higher and higher conditions, themselves
|
|
empirical. just as little does this regulative principle exclude the
|
|
assumption of an intelligible cause, when the question regards
|
|
merely the pure employment of reason- in relation to ends or aims.
|
|
For, in this case, an intelligible cause signifies merely the
|
|
transcendental and to us unknown ground of the possibility of sensuous
|
|
phenomena, and its existence, necessary and independent of all
|
|
sensuous conditions, is not inconsistent with the contingency of
|
|
phenomena, or with the unlimited possibility of regress which exists
|
|
in the series of empirical conditions.
|
|
|
|
Concluding Remarks on the Antinomy of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
So long as the object of our rational conceptions is the totality of
|
|
conditions in the world of phenomena, and the satisfaction, from
|
|
this source, of the requirements of reason, so long are our ideas
|
|
transcendental and cosmological. But when we set the unconditioned-
|
|
which is the aim of all our inquiries- in a sphere which lies out of
|
|
the world of sense and possible experience, our ideas become
|
|
transcendent. They are then not merely serviceable towards the
|
|
completion of the exercise of reason (which remains an idea, never
|
|
executed, but always to be pursued); they detach themselves completely
|
|
from experience and construct for themselves objects, the material
|
|
of which has not been presented by experience, and the objective
|
|
reality of which is not based upon the completion of the empirical
|
|
series, but upon pure a priori conceptions. The intelligible object of
|
|
these transcendent ideas may be conceded, as a transcendental
|
|
object. But we cannot cogitate it as a thing determinable by certain
|
|
distinct predicates relating to its internal nature, for it has no
|
|
connection with empirical conceptions; nor are we justified in
|
|
affirming the existence of any such object. It is, consequently, a
|
|
mere product of the mind alone. Of all the cosmological ideas,
|
|
however, it is that occasioning the fourth antinomy which compels us
|
|
to venture upon this step. For the existence of phenomena, always
|
|
conditioned and never self-subsistent, requires us to look for an
|
|
object different from phenomena- an intelligible object, with which
|
|
all contingency must cease. But, as we have allowed ourselves to
|
|
assume the existence of a self-subsistent reality out of the field
|
|
of experience, and are therefore obliged to regard phenomena as merely
|
|
a contingent mode of representing intelligible objects employed by
|
|
beings which are themselves intelligences- no other course remains for
|
|
us than to follow an alogy and employ the same mode in forming some
|
|
conception of intelligible things, of which we have not the least
|
|
knowledge, which nature taught us to use in the formation of empirical
|
|
conceptions. Experience made us acquainted with the contingent. But we
|
|
are at present engaged in the discussion of things which are not
|
|
objects of experience; and must, therefore, deduce our knowledge of
|
|
them from that which is necessary absolutely and in itself, that is,
|
|
from pure conceptions. Hence the first step which we take out of the
|
|
world of sense obliges us to begin our system of new cognition with
|
|
the investigation of a necessary being, and to deduce from our
|
|
conceptions of it all our conceptions of intelligible things. This
|
|
we propose to attempt in the following chapter.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. The Ideal of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I. Of the Ideal in General.
|
|
|
|
We have seen that pure conceptions do not present objects to the
|
|
mind, except under sensuous conditions; because the conditions of
|
|
objective reality do not exist in these conceptions, which contain, in
|
|
fact, nothing but the mere form of thought. They may, however, when
|
|
applied to phenomena, be presented in concreto; for it is phenomena
|
|
that present to them the materials for the formation of empirical
|
|
conceptions, which are nothing more than concrete forms of the
|
|
conceptions of the understanding. But ideas are still further
|
|
removed from objective reality than categories; for no phenomenon
|
|
can ever present them to the human mind in concreto. They contain a
|
|
certain perfection, attainable by no possible empirical cognition; and
|
|
they give to reason a systematic unity, to which the unity of
|
|
experience attempts to approximate, but can never completely attain.
|
|
|
|
But still further removed than the idea from objective reality is
|
|
the Ideal, by which term I understand the idea, not in concreto, but
|
|
in individuo- as an individual thing, determinable or determined by
|
|
the idea alone. The idea of humanity in its complete perfection
|
|
supposes not only the advancement of all the powers and faculties,
|
|
which constitute our conception of human nature, to a complete
|
|
attainment of their final aims, but also everything which is requisite
|
|
for the complete determination of the idea; for of all contradictory
|
|
predicates, only one can conform with the idea of the perfect man.
|
|
What I have termed an ideal was in Plato's philosophy an idea of the
|
|
divine mind- an individual object present to its pure intuition, the
|
|
most perfect of every kind of possible beings, and the archetype of
|
|
all phenomenal existences.
|
|
|
|
Without rising to these speculative heights, we are bound to confess
|
|
that human reason contains not only ideas, but ideals, which
|
|
possess, not, like those of Plato, creative, but certainly practical
|
|
power- as regulative principles, and form the basis of the
|
|
perfectibility of certain actions. Moral conceptions are not perfectly
|
|
pure conceptions of reason, because an empirical element- of
|
|
pleasure or pain- lies at the foundation of them. In relation,
|
|
however, to the principle, whereby reason sets bounds to a freedom
|
|
which is in itself without law, and consequently when we attend merely
|
|
to their form, they may be considered as pure conceptions of reason.
|
|
Virtue and wisdom in their perfect purity are ideas. But the wise
|
|
man of the Stoics is an ideal, that is to say, a human being
|
|
existing only in thought and in complete conformity with the idea of
|
|
wisdom. As the idea provides a rule, so the ideal serves as an
|
|
archetype for the perfect and complete determination of the copy. Thus
|
|
the conduct of this wise and divine man serves us as a standard of
|
|
action, with which we may compare and judge ourselves, which may
|
|
help us to reform ourselves, although the perfection it demands can
|
|
never be attained by us. Although we cannot concede objective
|
|
reality to these ideals, they are not to be considered as chimeras; on
|
|
the contrary, they provide reason with a standard, which enables it to
|
|
estimate, by comparison, the degree of incompleteness in the objects
|
|
presented to it. But to aim at realizing the ideal in an example in
|
|
the world of experience- to describe, for instance, the character of
|
|
the perfectly wise man in a romance- is impracticable. Nay more, there
|
|
is something absurd in the attempt; and the result must be little
|
|
edifying, as the natural limitations, which are continually breaking
|
|
in upon the perfection and completeness of the idea, destroy the
|
|
illusion in the story and throw an air of suspicion even on what is
|
|
good in the idea, which hence appears fictitious and unreal.
|
|
|
|
Such is the constitution of the ideal of reason, which is always
|
|
based upon determinate conceptions, and serves as a rule and a model
|
|
for limitation or of criticism. Very different is the nature of the
|
|
ideals of the imagination. Of these it is impossible to present an
|
|
intelligible conception; they are a kind of monogram, drawn
|
|
according to no determinate rule, and forming rather a vague
|
|
picture- the production of many diverse experiences- than a
|
|
determinate image. Such are the ideals which painters and
|
|
physiognomists profess to have in their minds, and which can serve
|
|
neither as a model for production nor as a standard for
|
|
appreciation. They may be termed, though improperly, sensuous
|
|
ideals, as they are declared to be models of certain possible
|
|
empirical intuitions. They cannot, however, furnish rules or standards
|
|
for explanation or examination with
|
|
|
|
In its ideals, reason aims at complete and perfect determination
|
|
according to a priori rules; and hence it cogitates an object, which
|
|
must be completely determinable in conformity with principles,
|
|
although all empirical conditions are absent, and the conception of
|
|
the object is on this account transcendent.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Of the Transcendental Ideal (Prototypon
|
|
|
|
Trancendentale).
|
|
|
|
Every conception is, in relation to that which is not contained in
|
|
it, undetermined and subject to the principle of determinability. This
|
|
principle is that, of every two contradictorily opposed predicates,
|
|
only one can belong to a conception. It is a purely logical principle,
|
|
itself based upon the principle of contradiction; inasmuch as it makes
|
|
complete abstraction of the content and attends merely to the
|
|
logical form of the cognition.
|
|
|
|
But again, everything, as regards its possibility, is also subject
|
|
to the principle of complete determination, according to which one
|
|
of all the possible contradictory predicates of things must belong
|
|
to it. This principle is not based merely upon that of
|
|
contradiction; for, in addition to the relation between two
|
|
contradictory predicates, it regards everything as standing in a
|
|
relation to the sum of possibilities, as the sum total of all
|
|
predicates of things, and, while presupposing this sum as an a
|
|
priori condition, presents to the mind everything as receiving the
|
|
possibility of its individual existence from the relation it bears to,
|
|
and the share it possesses in, the aforesaid sum of possibilities.*
|
|
The principle of complete determination relates the content and not to
|
|
the logical form. It is the principle of the synthesis of all the
|
|
predicates which are required to constitute the complete conception of
|
|
a thing, and not a mere principle analytical representation, which
|
|
enounces that one of two contradictory predicates must belong to a
|
|
conception. It contains, moreover, a transcendental presupposition-
|
|
that, namely, of the material for all possibility, which must
|
|
contain a priori the data for this or that particular possibility.
|
|
|
|
*Thus this principle declares everything to possess a relation to
|
|
a common correlate- the sum-total of possibility, which, if discovered
|
|
to exist in the idea of one individual thing, would establish the
|
|
affinity of all possible things, from the identity of the ground of
|
|
their complete determination. The determinability of every
|
|
conception is subordinate to the universality (Allgemeinheit,
|
|
universalitas) of the principle of excluded middle; the
|
|
determination of a thing to the totality (Allheit, universitas) of all
|
|
possible predicates.
|
|
|
|
The proposition, Everything which exists is completely determined,
|
|
means not only that one of every pair of given contradictory
|
|
attributes, but that one of all possible attributes, is always
|
|
predicable of the thing; in it the predicates are not merely
|
|
compared logically with each other, but the thing itself is
|
|
transcendentally compared with the sum-total of all possible
|
|
predicates. The proposition is equivalent to saying: "To attain to a
|
|
complete knowledge of a thing, it is necessary to possess a
|
|
knowledge of everything that is possible, and to determine it
|
|
thereby in a positive or negative manner." The conception of
|
|
complete determination is consequently a conception which cannot be
|
|
presented in its totality in concreto, and is therefore based upon
|
|
an idea, which has its seat in the reason- the faculty which
|
|
prescribes to the understanding the laws of its harmonious and perfect
|
|
exercise relates
|
|
|
|
Now, although this idea of the sum-total of all possibility, in so
|
|
far as it forms the condition of the complete determination of
|
|
everything, is itself undetermined in relation to the predicates which
|
|
may constitute this sum-total, and we cogitate in it merely the
|
|
sum-total of all possible predicates- we nevertheless find, upon
|
|
closer examination, that this idea, as a primitive conception of the
|
|
mind, excludes a large number of predicates- those deduced and those
|
|
irreconcilable with others, and that it is evolved as a conception
|
|
completely determined a priori. Thus it becomes the conception of an
|
|
individual object, which is completely determined by and through the
|
|
mere idea, and must consequently be termed an ideal of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
When we consider all possible predicates, not merely logically,
|
|
but transcendentally, that is to say, with reference to the content
|
|
which may be cogitated as existing in them a priori, we shall find
|
|
that some indicate a being, others merely a non-being. The logical
|
|
negation expressed in the word not does not properly belong to a
|
|
conception, but only to the relation of one conception to another in a
|
|
judgement, and is consequently quite insufficient to present to the
|
|
mind the content of a conception. The expression not mortal does not
|
|
indicate that a non-being is cogitated in the object; it does not
|
|
concern the content at all. A transcendental negation, on the
|
|
contrary, indicates non-being in itself, and is opposed to
|
|
transcendental affirmation, the conception of which of itself
|
|
expresses a being. Hence this affirmation indicates a reality, because
|
|
in and through it objects are considered to be something- to be
|
|
things; while the opposite negation, on the other band, indicates a
|
|
mere want, or privation, or absence, and, where such negations alone
|
|
are attached to a representation, the non-existence of anything
|
|
corresponding to the representation.
|
|
|
|
Now a negation cannot be cogitated as determined, without cogitating
|
|
at the same time the opposite affirmation. The man born blind has
|
|
not the least notion of darkness, because he has none of light; the
|
|
vagabond knows nothing of poverty, because he has never known what
|
|
it is to be in comfort;* the ignorant man has no conception of his
|
|
ignorance, because he has no conception of knowledge. All
|
|
conceptions of negatives are accordingly derived or deduced
|
|
conceptions; and realities contain the data, and, so to speak, the
|
|
material or transcendental content of the possibility and complete
|
|
determination of all things.
|
|
|
|
*The investigations and calculations of astronomers have taught us
|
|
much that is wonderful; but the most important lesson we have received
|
|
from them is the discovery of the abyss of our ignorance in relation
|
|
to the universe- an ignorance the magnitude of which reason, without
|
|
the information thus derived, could never have conceived. This
|
|
discovery of our deficiencies must produce a great change in the
|
|
determination of the aims of human reason.
|
|
|
|
If, therefore, a transcendental substratum lies at the foundation of
|
|
the complete determination of things- a substratum which is to form
|
|
the fund from which all possible predicates of things are to be
|
|
supplied, this substratum cannot be anything else than the idea of a
|
|
sum-total of reality (omnitudo realitatis). In this view, negations
|
|
are nothing but limitations- a term which could not, with propriety,
|
|
be applied to them, if the unlimited (the all) did not form the true
|
|
basis of our conception.
|
|
|
|
This conception of a sum-total of reality is the conception of a
|
|
thing in itself, regarded as completely determined; and the conception
|
|
of an ens realissimum is the conception of an individual being,
|
|
inasmuch as it is determined by that predicate of all possible
|
|
contradictory predicates, which indicates and belongs to being. It is,
|
|
therefore, a transcendental ideal which forms the basis of the
|
|
complete determination of everything that exists, and is the highest
|
|
material condition of its possibility- a condition on which must
|
|
rest the cogitation of all objects with respect to their content. Nay,
|
|
more, this ideal is the only proper ideal of which the human mind is
|
|
capable; because in this case alone a general conception of a thing is
|
|
completely determined by and through itself, and cognized as the
|
|
representation of an individuum.
|
|
|
|
The logical determination of a conception is based upon a
|
|
disjunctive syllogism, the major of which contains the logical
|
|
division of the extent of a general conception, the minor limits
|
|
this extent to a certain part, while the conclusion determines the
|
|
conception by this part. The general conception of a reality cannot be
|
|
divided a priori, because, without the aid of experience, we cannot
|
|
know any determinate kinds of reality, standing under the former as
|
|
the genus. The transcendental principle of the complete
|
|
determination of all things is therefore merely the representation
|
|
of the sum-total of all reality; it is not a conception which is the
|
|
genus of all predicates under itself, but one which comprehends them
|
|
all within itself. The complete determination of a thing is
|
|
consequently based upon the limitation of this total of reality, so
|
|
much being predicated of the thing, while all that remains over is
|
|
excluded- a procedure which is in exact agreement with that of the
|
|
disjunctive syllogism and the determination of the objects in the
|
|
conclusion by one of the members of the division. It follows that
|
|
reason, in laying the transcendental ideal at the foundation of its
|
|
determination of all possible things, takes a course in exact
|
|
analogy with that which it pursues in disjunctive syllogisms- a
|
|
proposition which formed the basis of the systematic division of all
|
|
transcendental ideas, according to which they are produced in complete
|
|
parallelism with the three modes of syllogistic reasoning employed
|
|
by the human mind.
|
|
|
|
It is self-evident that reason, in cogitating the necessary complete
|
|
determination of things, does not presuppose the existence of a
|
|
being corresponding to its ideal, but merely the idea of the ideal-
|
|
for the purpose of deducing from the unconditional totality of
|
|
complete determination, The ideal is therefore the prototype of all
|
|
things, which, as defective copies (ectypa), receive from it the
|
|
material of their possibility, and approximate to it more or less,
|
|
though it is impossible that they can ever attain to its perfection.
|
|
|
|
The possibility of things must therefore be regarded as derived-
|
|
except that of the thing which contains in itself all reality, which
|
|
must be considered to be primitive and original. For all negations-
|
|
and they are the only predicates by means of which all other things
|
|
can be distinguished from the ens realissimum- are mere limitations of
|
|
a greater and a higher- nay, the highest reality; and they
|
|
consequently presuppose this reality, and are, as regards their
|
|
content, derived from it. The manifold nature of things is only an
|
|
infinitely various mode of limiting the conception of the highest
|
|
reality, which is their common substratum; just as all figures are
|
|
possible only as different modes of limiting infinite space. The
|
|
object of the ideal of reason- an object existing only in reason
|
|
itself- is also termed the primal being (ens originarium); as having
|
|
no existence superior to him, the supreme being (ens summum); and as
|
|
being the condition of all other beings, which rank under it, the
|
|
being of all beings (ens entium). But none of these terms indicate the
|
|
objective relation of an actually existing object to other things, but
|
|
merely that of an idea to conceptions; and all our investigations into
|
|
this subject still leave us in perfect uncertainty with regard to
|
|
the existence of this being.
|
|
|
|
A primal being cannot be said to consist of many other beings with
|
|
an existence which is derivative, for the latter presuppose the
|
|
former, and therefore cannot be constitutive parts of it. It follows
|
|
that the ideal of the primal being must be cogitated as simple.
|
|
|
|
The deduction of the possibility of all other things from this
|
|
primal being cannot, strictly speaking, be considered as a limitation,
|
|
or as a kind of division of its reality; for this would be regarding
|
|
the primal being as a mere aggregate- which has been shown to be
|
|
impossible, although it was so represented in our first rough
|
|
sketch. The highest reality must be regarded rather as the ground than
|
|
as the sum-total of the possibility of all things, and the manifold
|
|
nature of things be based, not upon the limitation of the primal being
|
|
itself, but upon the complete series of effects which flow from it.
|
|
And thus all our powers of sense, as well as all phenomenal reality,
|
|
phenomenal reality, may be with propriety regarded as belonging to
|
|
this series of effects, while they could not have formed parts of
|
|
the idea, considered as an aggregate. Pursuing this track, and
|
|
hypostatizing this idea, we shall find ourselves authorized to
|
|
determine our notion of the Supreme Being by means of the mere
|
|
conception of a highest reality, as one, simple, all-sufficient,
|
|
eternal, and so on- in one word, to determine it in its
|
|
unconditioned completeness by the aid of every possible predicate. The
|
|
conception of such a being is the conception of God in its
|
|
transcendental sense, and thus the ideal of pure reason is the
|
|
object-matter of a transcendental theology.
|
|
|
|
But, by such an employment of the transcendental idea, we should
|
|
be over stepping the limits of its validity and purpose. For reason
|
|
placed it, as the conception of all reality, at the basis of the
|
|
complete determination of things, without requiring that this
|
|
conception be regarded as the conception of an objective existence.
|
|
Such an existence would be purely fictitious, and the hypostatizing of
|
|
the content of the idea into an ideal, as an individual being, is a
|
|
step perfectly unauthorized. Nay, more, we are not even called upon to
|
|
assume the possibility of such an hypothesis, as none of the
|
|
deductions drawn from such an ideal would affect the complete
|
|
determination of things in general- for the sake of which alone is the
|
|
idea necessary.
|
|
|
|
It is not sufficient to circumscribe the procedure and the dialectic
|
|
of reason; we must also endeavour to discover the sources of this
|
|
dialectic, that we may have it in our power to give a rational
|
|
explanation of this illusion, as a phenomenon of the human mind. For
|
|
the ideal, of which we are at present speaking, is based, not upon
|
|
an arbitrary, but upon a natural, idea. The question hence arises: How
|
|
happens it that reason regards the possibility of all things as
|
|
deduced from a single possibility, that, to wit, of the highest
|
|
reality, and presupposes this as existing in an individual and
|
|
primal being?
|
|
|
|
The answer is ready; it is at once presented by the procedure of
|
|
transcendental analytic. The possibility of sensuous objects is a
|
|
relation of these objects to thought, in which something (the
|
|
empirical form) may be cogitated a priori; while that which
|
|
constitutes the matter- the reality of the phenomenon (that element
|
|
which corresponds to sensation)- must be given from without, as
|
|
otherwise it could not even be cogitated by, nor could its possibility
|
|
be presentable to the mind. Now, a sensuous object is completely
|
|
determined, when it has been compared with all phenomenal
|
|
predicates, and represented by means of these either positively or
|
|
negatively. But, as that which constitutes the thing itself- the
|
|
real in a phenomenon, must be given, and that, in which the real of
|
|
all phenomena is given, is experience, one, sole, and all-embracing-
|
|
the material of the possibility of all sensuous objects must be
|
|
presupposed as given in a whole, and it is upon the limitation of this
|
|
whole that the possibility of all empirical objects, their distinction
|
|
from each other and their complete determination, are based. Now, no
|
|
other objects are presented to us besides sensuous objects, and
|
|
these can be given only in connection with a possible experience; it
|
|
follows that a thing is not an object to us, unless it presupposes the
|
|
whole or sum-total of empirical reality as the condition of its
|
|
possibility. Now, a natural illusion leads us to consider this
|
|
principle, which is valid only of sensuous objects, as valid with
|
|
regard to things in general. And thus we are induced to hold the
|
|
empirical principle of our conceptions of the possibility of things,
|
|
as phenomena, by leaving out this limitative condition, to be a
|
|
transcendental principle of the possibility of things in general.
|
|
|
|
We proceed afterwards to hypostatize this idea of the sum-total of
|
|
all reality, by changing the distributive unity of the empirical
|
|
exercise of the understanding into the collective unity of an
|
|
empirical whole- a dialectical illusion, and by cogitating this
|
|
whole or sum of experience as an individual thing, containing in
|
|
itself all empirical reality. This individual thing or being is
|
|
then, by means of the above-mentioned transcendental subreption,
|
|
substituted for our notion of a thing which stands at the head of
|
|
the possibility of all things, the real conditions of whose complete
|
|
determination it presents.*
|
|
|
|
*This ideal of the ens realissimum- although merely a mental
|
|
representation- is first objectivized, that is, has an objective
|
|
existence attributed to it, then hypostatized, and finally, by the
|
|
natural progress of reason to the completion of unity, personified, as
|
|
we shall show presently. For the regulative unity of experience is not
|
|
based upon phenomena themselves, but upon the connection of the
|
|
variety of phenomena by the understanding in a consciousness, and thus
|
|
the unity of the supreme reality and the complete determinability of
|
|
all things, seem to reside in a supreme understanding, and,
|
|
consequently, in a conscious intelligence.
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. Of the Arguments employed by Speculative Reason in
|
|
|
|
Proof of the Existence of a Supreme Being.
|
|
|
|
Notwithstanding the pressing necessity which reason feels, to form
|
|
some presupposition that shall serve the understanding as a proper
|
|
basis for the complete determination of its conceptions, the
|
|
idealistic and factitious nature of such a presupposition is too
|
|
evident to allow reason for a moment to persuade itself into a
|
|
belief of the objective existence of a mere creation of its own
|
|
thought. But there are other considerations which compel reason to
|
|
seek out some resting place in the regress from the conditioned to the
|
|
unconditioned, which is not given as an actual existence from the mere
|
|
conception of it, although it alone can give completeness to the
|
|
series of conditions. And this is the natural course of every human
|
|
reason, even of the most uneducated, although the path at first
|
|
entered it does not always continue to follow. It does not begin
|
|
from conceptions, but from common experience, and requires a basis
|
|
in actual existence. But this basis is insecure, unless it rests
|
|
upon the immovable rock of the absolutely necessary. And this
|
|
foundation is itself unworthy of trust, if it leave under and above it
|
|
empty space, if it do not fill all, and leave no room for a why or a
|
|
wherefore, if it be not, in one word, infinite in its reality.
|
|
|
|
If we admit the existence of some one thing, whatever it may be,
|
|
we must also admit that there is something which exists necessarily.
|
|
For what is contingent exists only under the condition of some other
|
|
thing, which is its cause; and from this we must go on to conclude the
|
|
existence of a cause which is not contingent, and which consequently
|
|
exists necessarily and unconditionally. Such is the argument by
|
|
which reason justifies its advances towards a primal being.
|
|
|
|
Now reason looks round for the conception of a being that may be
|
|
admitted, without inconsistency, to be worthy of the attribute of
|
|
absolute necessity, not for the purpose of inferring a priori, from
|
|
the conception of such a being, its objective existence (for if reason
|
|
allowed itself to take this course, it would not require a basis in
|
|
given and actual existence, but merely the support of pure
|
|
conceptions), but for the purpose of discovering, among all our
|
|
conceptions of possible things, that conception which possesses no
|
|
element inconsistent with the idea of absolute necessity. For that
|
|
there must be some absolutely necessary existence, it regards as a
|
|
truth already established. Now, if it can remove every existence
|
|
incapable of supporting the attribute of absolute necessity, excepting
|
|
one- this must be the absolutely necessary being, whether its
|
|
necessity is comprehensible by us, that is, deducible from the
|
|
conception of it alone, or not.
|
|
|
|
Now that, the conception of which contains a therefore to every
|
|
wherefore, which is not defective in any respect whatever, which is
|
|
all-sufficient as a condition, seems to be the being of which we can
|
|
justly predicate absolute necessity- for this reason, that, possessing
|
|
the conditions of all that is possible, it does not and cannot
|
|
itself require any condition. And thus it satisfies, in one respect at
|
|
least, the requirements of the conception of absolute necessity. In
|
|
this view, it is superior to all other conceptions, which, as
|
|
deficient and incomplete, do not possess the characteristic of
|
|
independence of all higher conditions. It is true that we cannot infer
|
|
from this that what does not contain in itself the supreme and
|
|
complete condition- the condition of all other things- must possess
|
|
only a conditioned existence; but as little can we assert the
|
|
contrary, for this supposed being does not possess the only
|
|
characteristic which can enable reason to cognize by means of an a
|
|
priori conception the unconditioned and necessary nature of its
|
|
existence.
|
|
|
|
The conception of an ens realissimum is that which best agrees
|
|
with the conception of an unconditioned and necessary being. The
|
|
former conception does not satisfy all the requirements of the latter;
|
|
but we have no choice, we are obliged to adhere to it, for we find
|
|
that we cannot do without the existence of a necessary being; and even
|
|
although we admit it, we find it out of our power to discover in the
|
|
whole sphere of possibility any being that can advance wellgrounded
|
|
claims to such a distinction.
|
|
|
|
The following is, therefore, the natural course of human reason.
|
|
It begins by persuading itself of the existence of some necessary
|
|
being. In this being it recognizes the characteristics of
|
|
unconditioned existence. It then seeks the conception of that which is
|
|
independent of all conditions, and finds it in that which is itself
|
|
the sufficient condition of all other things- in other words, in
|
|
that which contains all reality. But the unlimited all is an
|
|
absolute unity, and is conceived by the mind as a being one and
|
|
supreme; and thus reason concludes that the Supreme Being, as the
|
|
primal basis of all things, possesses an existence which is absolutely
|
|
necessary.
|
|
|
|
This conception must be regarded as in some degree satisfactory,
|
|
if we admit the existence of a necessary being, and consider that
|
|
there exists a necessity for a definite and final answer to these
|
|
questions. In such a case, we cannot make a better choice, or rather
|
|
we have no choice at all, but feel ourselves obliged to declare in
|
|
favour of the absolute unity of complete reality, as the highest
|
|
source of the possibility of things. But if there exists no motive for
|
|
coming to a definite conclusion, and we may leave the question
|
|
unanswered till we have fully weighed both sides- in other words, when
|
|
we are merely called upon to decide how much we happen to know about
|
|
the question, and how much we merely flatter ourselves that we know-
|
|
the above conclusion does not appear to be so great advantage, but, on
|
|
the contrary, seems defective in the grounds upon which it is
|
|
supported.
|
|
|
|
For, admitting the truth of all that has been said, that, namely,
|
|
the inference from a given existence (my own, for example) to the
|
|
existence of an unconditioned and necessary being is valid and
|
|
unassailable; that, in the second place, we must consider a being
|
|
which contains all reality, and consequently all the conditions of
|
|
other things, to be absolutely unconditioned; and admitting too,
|
|
that we have thus discovered the conception of a thing to which may be
|
|
attributed, without inconsistency, absolute necessity- it does not
|
|
follow from all this that the conception of a limited being, in
|
|
which the supreme reality does not reside, is therefore incompatible
|
|
with the idea of absolute necessity. For, although I do not discover
|
|
the element of the unconditioned in the conception of such a being- an
|
|
element which is manifestly existent in the sum-total of all
|
|
conditions- I am not entitled to conclude that its existence is
|
|
therefore conditioned; just as I am not entitled to affirm, in a
|
|
hypothetical syllogism, that where a certain condition does not
|
|
exist (in the present, completeness, as far as pure conceptions are
|
|
concerned), the conditioned does not exist either. On the contrary, we
|
|
are free to consider all limited beings as likewise unconditionally
|
|
necessary, although we are unable to infer this from the general
|
|
conception which we have of them. Thus conducted, this argument is
|
|
incapable of giving us the least notion of the properties of a
|
|
necessary being, and must be in every respect without result.
|
|
|
|
This argument continues, however, to possess a weight and an
|
|
authority, which, in spite of its objective insufficiency, it has
|
|
never been divested of. For, granting that certain responsibilities
|
|
lie upon us, which, as based on the ideas of reason, deserve to be
|
|
respected and submitted to, although they are incapable of a real or
|
|
practical application to our nature, or, in other words, would be
|
|
responsibilities without motives, except upon the supposition of a
|
|
Supreme Being to give effect and influence to the practical laws: in
|
|
such a case we should be bound to obey our conceptions, which,
|
|
although objectively insufficient, do, according to the standard of
|
|
reason, preponderate over and are superior to any claims that may be
|
|
advanced from any other quarter. The equilibrium of doubt would in
|
|
this case be destroyed by a practical addition; indeed, Reason would
|
|
be compelled to condemn herself, if she refused to comply with the
|
|
demands of the judgement, no superior to which we know- however
|
|
defective her understanding of the grounds of these demands might be.
|
|
|
|
This argument, although in fact transcendental, inasmuch as it rests
|
|
upon the intrinsic insufficiency of the contingent, is so simple and
|
|
natural, that the commonest understanding can appreciate its value. We
|
|
see things around us change, arise, and pass away; they, or their
|
|
condition, must therefore have a cause. The same demand must again
|
|
be made of the cause itself- as a datum of experience. Now it is
|
|
natural that we should place the highest causality just where we place
|
|
supreme causality, in that being, which contains the conditions of all
|
|
possible effects, and the conception of which is so simple as that
|
|
of an all-embracing reality. This highest cause, then, we regard as
|
|
absolutely necessary, because we find it absolutely necessary to
|
|
rise to it, and do not discover any reason for proceeding beyond it.
|
|
Thus, among all nations, through the darkest polytheism glimmer some
|
|
faint sparks of monotheism, to which these idolaters have been led,
|
|
not from reflection and profound thought, but by the study and natural
|
|
progress of the common understanding.
|
|
|
|
There are only three modes of proving the existence of a Deity, on
|
|
the grounds of speculative reason.
|
|
|
|
All the paths conducting to this end begin either from determinate
|
|
experience and the peculiar constitution of the world of sense, and
|
|
rise, according to the laws of causality, from it to the highest cause
|
|
existing apart from the world- or from a purely indeterminate
|
|
experience, that is, some empirical existence- or abstraction is
|
|
made of all experience, and the existence of a supreme cause is
|
|
concluded from a priori conceptions alone. The first is the
|
|
physicotheological argument, the second the cosmological, the third
|
|
the ontological. More there are not, and more there cannot be.
|
|
|
|
I shall show it is as unsuccessful on the one path- the empirical-
|
|
as on the other- the transcendental- and that it stretches its wings
|
|
in vain, to soar beyond the world of sense by the mere might of
|
|
speculative thought. As regards the order in which we must discuss
|
|
those arguments, it will be exactly the reverse of that in which
|
|
reason, in the progress of its development, attains to them- the order
|
|
in which they are placed above. For it will be made manifest to the
|
|
reader that, although experience presents the occasion and the
|
|
starting-point, it is the transcendental idea of reason which guides
|
|
it in its pilgrimage and is the goal of all its struggles. I shall
|
|
therefore begin with an examination of the transcendental argument,
|
|
and afterwards inquire what additional strength has accrued to this
|
|
mode of proof from the addition of the empirical element.
|
|
|
|
SECTION IV. Of the Impossibility of an Ontological Proof of
|
|
|
|
the Existence of God.
|
|
|
|
It is evident from what has been said that the conception of an
|
|
absolutely necessary being is a mere idea, the objective reality of
|
|
which is far from being established by the mere fact that it is a need
|
|
of reason. On the contrary, this idea serves merely to indicate a
|
|
certain unattainable perfection, and rather limits the operations
|
|
than, by the presentation of new objects, extends the sphere of the
|
|
understanding. But a strange anomaly meets us at the very threshold;
|
|
for the inference from a given existence in general to an absolutely
|
|
necessary existence seems to be correct and unavoidable, while the
|
|
conditions of the understanding refuse to aid us in forming any
|
|
conception of such a being.
|
|
|
|
Philosophers have always talked of an absolutely necessary being,
|
|
and have nevertheless declined to take the trouble of conceiving
|
|
whether- and how- a being of this nature is even cogitable, not to
|
|
mention that its existence is actually demonstrable. A verbal
|
|
definition of the conception is certainly easy enough: it is something
|
|
the non-existence of which is impossible. But does this definition
|
|
throw any light upon the conditions which render it impossible to
|
|
cogitate the non-existence of a thing- conditions which we wish to
|
|
ascertain, that we may discover whether we think anything in the
|
|
conception of such a being or not? For the mere fact that I throw
|
|
away, by means of the word unconditioned, all the conditions which the
|
|
understanding habitually requires in order to regard anything as
|
|
necessary, is very far from making clear whether by means of the
|
|
conception of the unconditionally necessary I think of something, or
|
|
really of nothing at all.
|
|
|
|
Nay, more, this chance-conception, now become so current, many
|
|
have endeavoured to explain by examples which seemed to render any
|
|
inquiries regarding its intelligibility quite needless. Every
|
|
geometrical proposition- a triangle has three angles- it was said,
|
|
is absolutely necessary; and thus people talked of an object which lay
|
|
out of the sphere of our understanding as if it were perfectly plain
|
|
what the conception of such a being meant.
|
|
|
|
All the examples adduced have been drawn, without exception, from
|
|
judgements, and not from things. But the unconditioned necessity of
|
|
a judgement does not form the absolute necessity of a thing. On the
|
|
contrary, the absolute necessity of a judgement is only a
|
|
conditioned necessity of a thing, or of the predicate in a
|
|
judgement. The proposition above-mentioned does not enounce that three
|
|
angles necessarily exist, but, upon condition that a triangle
|
|
exists, three angles must necessarily exist- in it. And thus this
|
|
logical necessity has been the source of the greatest delusions.
|
|
Having formed an a priori conception of a thing, the content of
|
|
which was made to embrace existence, we believed ourselves safe in
|
|
concluding that, because existence belongs necessarily to the object
|
|
of the conception (that is, under the condition of my positing this
|
|
thing as given), the existence of the thing is also posited
|
|
necessarily, and that it is therefore absolutely necessary- merely
|
|
because its existence has been cogitated in the conception.
|
|
|
|
If, in an identical judgement, I annihilate the predicate in
|
|
thought, and retain the subject, a contradiction is the result; and
|
|
hence I say, the former belongs necessarily to the latter. But if I
|
|
suppress both subject and predicate in thought, no contradiction
|
|
arises; for there is nothing at all, and therefore no means of forming
|
|
a contradiction. To suppose the existence of a triangle and not that
|
|
of its three angles, is self-contradictory; but to suppose the
|
|
non-existence of both triangle and angles is perfectly admissible. And
|
|
so is it with the conception of an absolutely necessary being.
|
|
Annihilate its existence in thought, and you annihilate the thing
|
|
itself with all its predicates; how then can there be any room for
|
|
contradiction? Externally, there is nothing to give rise to a
|
|
contradiction, for a thing cannot be necessary externally; nor
|
|
internally, for, by the annihilation or suppression of the thing
|
|
itself, its internal properties are also annihilated. God is
|
|
omnipotent- that is a necessary judgement. His omnipotence cannot be
|
|
denied, if the existence of a Deity is posited- the existence, that
|
|
is, of an infinite being, the two conceptions being identical. But
|
|
when you say, God does not exist, neither omnipotence nor any other
|
|
predicate is affirmed; they must all disappear with the subject, and
|
|
in this judgement there cannot exist the least self-contradiction.
|
|
|
|
You have thus seen that when the predicate of a judgement is
|
|
annihilated in thought along with the subject, no internal
|
|
contradiction can arise, be the predicate what it may. There is no
|
|
possibility of evading the conclusion- you find yourselves compelled
|
|
to declare: There are certain subjects which cannot be annihilated
|
|
in thought. But this is nothing more than saying: There exist subjects
|
|
which are absolutely necessary- the very hypothesis which you are
|
|
called upon to establish. For I find myself unable to form the
|
|
slightest conception of a thing which when annihilated in thought with
|
|
all its predicates, leaves behind a contradiction; and contradiction
|
|
is the only criterion of impossibility in the sphere of pure a
|
|
priori conceptions.
|
|
|
|
Against these general considerations, the justice of which no one
|
|
can dispute, one argument is adduced, which is regarded as
|
|
furnishing a satisfactory demonstration from the fact. It is
|
|
affirmed that there is one and only one conception, in which the
|
|
non-being or annihilation of the object is self-contradictory, and
|
|
this is the conception of an ens realissimum. It possesses, you say,
|
|
all reality, and you feel yourselves justified in admitting the
|
|
possibility of such a being. (This I am willing to grant for the
|
|
present, although the existence of a conception which is not
|
|
self-contradictory is far from being sufficient to prove the
|
|
possibility of an object.)* Now the notion of all reality embraces
|
|
in it that of existence; the notion of existence lies, therefore, in
|
|
the conception of this possible thing. If this thing is annihilated in
|
|
thought, the internal possibility of the thing is also annihilated,
|
|
which is self-contradictory.
|
|
|
|
*A conception is always possible, if it is not self-contradictory.
|
|
This is the logical criterion of possibility, distinguishing the
|
|
object of such a conception from the nihil negativum. But it may be,
|
|
notwithstanding, an empty conception, unless the objective reality
|
|
of this synthesis, but which it is generated, is demonstrated; and a
|
|
proof of this kind must be based upon principles of possible
|
|
experience, and not upon the principle of analysis or contradiction.
|
|
This remark may be serviceable as a warning against concluding, from
|
|
the possibility of a conception- which is logical- the possibility
|
|
of a thing- which is real.
|
|
|
|
I answer: It is absurd to introduce- under whatever term
|
|
disguised- into the conception of a thing, which is to be cogitated
|
|
solely in reference to its possibility, the conception of its
|
|
existence. If this is admitted, you will have apparently gained the
|
|
day, but in reality have enounced nothing but a mere tautology. I ask,
|
|
is the proposition, this or that thing (which I am admitting to be
|
|
possible) exists, an analytical or a synthetical proposition? If the
|
|
former, there is no addition made to the subject of your thought by
|
|
the affirmation of its existence; but then the conception in your
|
|
minds is identical with the thing itself, or you have supposed the
|
|
existence of a thing to be possible, and then inferred its existence
|
|
from its internal possibility- which is but a miserable tautology. The
|
|
word reality in the conception of the thing, and the word existence in
|
|
the conception of the predicate, will not help you out of the
|
|
difficulty. For, supposing you were to term all positing of a thing
|
|
reality, you have thereby posited the thing with all its predicates in
|
|
the conception of the subject and assumed its actual existence, and
|
|
this you merely repeat in the predicate. But if you confess, as
|
|
every reasonable person must, that every existential proposition is
|
|
synthetical, how can it be maintained that the predicate of
|
|
existence cannot be denied without contradiction?- a property which is
|
|
the characteristic of analytical propositions, alone.
|
|
|
|
I should have a reasonable hope of putting an end for ever to this
|
|
sophistical mode of argumentation, by a strict definition of the
|
|
conception of existence, did not my own experience teach me that the
|
|
illusion arising from our confounding a logical with a real
|
|
predicate (a predicate which aids in the determination of a thing)
|
|
resists almost all the endeavours of explanation and illustration. A
|
|
logical predicate may be what you please, even the subject may be
|
|
predicated of itself; for logic pays no regard to the content of a
|
|
judgement. But the determination of a conception is a predicate, which
|
|
adds to and enlarges the conception. It must not, therefore, be
|
|
contained in the conception.
|
|
|
|
Being is evidently not a real predicate, that is, a conception of
|
|
something which is added to the conception of some other thing. It
|
|
is merely the positing of a thing, or of certain determinations in it.
|
|
Logically, it is merely the copula of a judgement. The proposition,
|
|
God is omnipotent, contains two conceptions, which have a certain
|
|
object or content; the word is, is no additional predicate- it
|
|
merely indicates the relation of the predicate to the subject. Now, if
|
|
I take the subject (God) with all its predicates (omnipotence being
|
|
one), and say: God is, or, There is a God, I add no new predicate to
|
|
the conception of God, I merely posit or affirm the existence of the
|
|
subject with all its predicates- I posit the object in relation to
|
|
my conception. The content of both is the same; and there is no
|
|
addition made to the conception, which expresses merely the
|
|
possibility of the object, by my cogitating the object- in the
|
|
expression, it is- as absolutely given or existing. Thus the real
|
|
contains no more than the possible. A hundred real dollars contain
|
|
no more than a hundred possible dollars. For, as the latter indicate
|
|
the conception, and the former the object, on the supposition that the
|
|
content of the former was greater than that of the latter, my
|
|
conception would not be an expression of the whole object, and would
|
|
consequently be an inadequate conception of it. But in reckoning my
|
|
wealth there may be said to be more in a hundred real dollars than
|
|
in a hundred possible dollars- that is, in the mere conception of
|
|
them. For the real object- the dollars- is not analytically
|
|
contained in my conception, but forms a synthetical addition to my
|
|
conception (which is merely a determination of my mental state),
|
|
although this objective reality- this existence- apart from my
|
|
conceptions, does not in the least degree increase the aforesaid
|
|
hundred dollars.
|
|
|
|
By whatever and by whatever number of predicates- even to the
|
|
complete determination of it- I may cogitate a thing, I do not in
|
|
the least augment the object of my conception by the addition of the
|
|
statement: This thing exists. Otherwise, not exactly the same, but
|
|
something more than what was cogitated in my conception, would
|
|
exist, and I could not affirm that the exact object of my conception
|
|
had real existence. If I cogitate a thing as containing all modes of
|
|
reality except one, the mode of reality which is absent is not added
|
|
to the conception of the thing by the affirmation that the thing
|
|
exists; on the contrary, the thing exists- if it exist at all- with
|
|
the same defect as that cogitated in its conception; otherwise not
|
|
that which was cogitated, but something different, exists. Now, if I
|
|
cogitate a being as the highest reality, without defect or
|
|
imperfection, the question still remains- whether this being exists or
|
|
not? For, although no element is wanting in the possible real
|
|
content of my conception, there is a defect in its relation to my
|
|
mental state, that is, I am ignorant whether the cognition of the
|
|
object indicated by the conception is possible a posteriori. And
|
|
here the cause of the present difficulty becomes apparent. If the
|
|
question regarded an object of sense merely, it would be impossible
|
|
for me to confound the conception with the existence of a thing. For
|
|
the conception merely enables me to cogitate an object as according
|
|
with the general conditions of experience; while the existence of
|
|
the object permits me to cogitate it as contained in the sphere of
|
|
actual experience. At the same time, this connection with the world of
|
|
experience does not in the least augment the conception, although a
|
|
possible perception has been added to the experience of the mind.
|
|
But if we cogitate existence by the pure category alone, it is not
|
|
to be wondered at, that we should find ourselves unable to present any
|
|
criterion sufficient to distinguish it from mere possibility.
|
|
|
|
Whatever be the content of our conception of an object, it is
|
|
necessary to go beyond it, if we wish to predicate existence of the
|
|
object. In the case of sensuous objects, this is attained by their
|
|
connection according to empirical laws with some one of my
|
|
perceptions; but there is no means of cognizing the existence of
|
|
objects of pure thought, because it must be cognized completely a
|
|
priori. But all our knowledge of existence (be it immediately by
|
|
perception, or by inferences connecting some object with a perception)
|
|
belongs entirely to the sphere of experience- which is in perfect
|
|
unity with itself; and although an existence out of this sphere cannot
|
|
be absolutely declared to be impossible, it is a hypothesis the
|
|
truth of which we have no means of ascertaining.
|
|
|
|
The notion of a Supreme Being is in many respects a highly useful
|
|
idea; but for the very reason that it is an idea, it is incapable of
|
|
enlarging our cognition with regard to the existence of things. It
|
|
is not even sufficient to instruct us as to the possibility of a being
|
|
which we do not know to exist. The analytical criterion of
|
|
possibility, which consists in the absence of contradiction in
|
|
propositions, cannot be denied it. But the connection of real
|
|
properties in a thing is a synthesis of the possibility of which an
|
|
a priori judgement cannot be formed, because these realities are not
|
|
presented to us specifically; and even if this were to happen, a
|
|
judgement would still be impossible, because the criterion of the
|
|
possibility of synthetical cognitions must be sought for in the
|
|
world of experience, to which the object of an idea cannot belong. And
|
|
thus the celebrated Leibnitz has utterly failed in his attempt to
|
|
establish upon a priori grounds the possibility of this sublime
|
|
ideal being.
|
|
|
|
The celebrated ontological or Cartesian argument for the existence
|
|
of a Supreme Being is therefore insufficient; and we may as well
|
|
hope to increase our stock of knowledge by the aid of mere ideas, as
|
|
the merchant to augment his wealth by the addition of noughts to his
|
|
cash account.
|
|
|
|
SECTION V. Of the Impossibility of a Cosmological Proof
|
|
|
|
of the Existence of God.
|
|
|
|
It was by no means a natural course of proceeding, but, on the
|
|
contrary, an invention entirely due to the subtlety of the schools, to
|
|
attempt to draw from a mere idea a proof of the existence of an object
|
|
corresponding to it. Such a course would never have been pursued, were
|
|
it not for that need of reason which requires it to suppose the
|
|
existence of a necessary being as a basis for the empirical regress,
|
|
and that, as this necessity must be unconditioned and a priori, reason
|
|
is bound to discover a conception which shall satisfy, if possible,
|
|
this requirement, and enable us to attain to the a priori cognition of
|
|
such a being. This conception was thought to be found in the idea of
|
|
an ens realissimum, and thus this idea was employed for the attainment
|
|
of a better defined knowledge of a necessary being, of the existence
|
|
of which we were convinced, or persuaded, on other grounds. Thus
|
|
reason was seduced from her natural courage; and, instead of
|
|
concluding with the conception of an ens realissimum, an attempt was
|
|
made to begin with it, for the purpose of inferring from it that
|
|
idea of a necessary existence which it was in fact called in to
|
|
complete. Thus arose that unfortunate ontological argument, which
|
|
neither satisfies the healthy common sense of humanity, nor sustains
|
|
the scientific examination of the philosopher.
|
|
|
|
The cosmological proof, which we are about to examine, retains the
|
|
connection between absolute necessity and the highest reality; but,
|
|
instead of reasoning from this highest reality to a necessary
|
|
existence, like the preceding argument, it concludes from the given.
|
|
unconditioned necessity of some being its unlimited reality. The track
|
|
it pursues, whether rational or sophistical, is at least natural,
|
|
and not only goes far to persuade the common understanding, but
|
|
shows itself deserving of respect from the speculative intellect;
|
|
while it contains, at the same time, the outlines of all the arguments
|
|
employed in natural theology- arguments which always have been, and
|
|
still will be, in use and authority. These, however adorned, and hid
|
|
under whatever embellishments of rhetoric and sentiment, are at bottom
|
|
identical with the arguments we are at present to discuss. This proof,
|
|
termed by Leibnitz the argumentum a contingentia mundi, I shall now
|
|
lay before the reader, and subject to a strict examination.
|
|
|
|
It is framed in the following manner: If something exists, an
|
|
absolutely necessary being must likewise exist. Now I, at least,
|
|
exist. Consequently, there exists an absolutely necessary being. The
|
|
minor contains an experience, the major reasons from a general
|
|
experience to the existence of a necessary being.* Thus this
|
|
argument really begins at experience, and is not completely a
|
|
priori, or ontological. The object of all possible experience being
|
|
the world, it is called the cosmological proof. It contains no
|
|
reference to any peculiar property of sensuous objects, by which
|
|
this world of sense might be distinguished from other possible worlds;
|
|
and in this respect it differs from the physico-theological proof,
|
|
which is based upon the consideration of the peculiar constitution
|
|
of our sensuous world.
|
|
|
|
*This inference is too well known to require more detailed
|
|
discussion. It is based upon the spurious transcendental law of
|
|
causality, that everything which is contingent has a cause, which,
|
|
if itself contingent, must also have a cause; and so on, till the
|
|
series of subordinated causes must end with an absolutely necessary
|
|
cause, without which it would not possess completeness.
|
|
|
|
The proof proceeds thus: A necessary being can be determined only in
|
|
one way, that is, it can be determined by only one of all possible
|
|
opposed predicates; consequently, it must be completely determined
|
|
in and by its conception. But there is only a single conception of a
|
|
thing possible, which completely determines the thing a priori: that
|
|
is, the conception of the ens realissimum. It follows that the
|
|
conception of the ens realissimum is the only conception by and in
|
|
which we can cogitate a necessary being. Consequently, a Supreme Being
|
|
necessarily exists.
|
|
|
|
In this cosmological argument are assembled so many sophistical
|
|
propositions that speculative reason seems to have exerted in it all
|
|
her dialectical skill to produce a transcendental illusion of the most
|
|
extreme character. We shall postpone an investigation of this argument
|
|
for the present, and confine ourselves to exposing the stratagem by
|
|
which it imposes upon us an old argument in a new dress, and appeals
|
|
to the agreement of two witnesses, the one with the credentials of
|
|
pure reason, and the other with those of empiricism; while, in fact,
|
|
it is only the former who has changed his dress and voice, for the
|
|
purpose of passing himself off for an additional witness. That it
|
|
may possess a secure foundation, it bases its conclusions upon
|
|
experience, and thus appears to be completely distinct from the
|
|
ontological argument, which places its confidence entirely in pure a
|
|
priori conceptions. But this experience merely aids reason in making
|
|
one step- to the existence of a necessary being. What the properties
|
|
of this being are cannot be learned from experience; and therefore
|
|
reason abandons it altogether, and pursues its inquiries in the sphere
|
|
of pure conception, for the purpose of discovering what the properties
|
|
of an absolutely necessary being ought to be, that is, what among
|
|
all possible things contain the conditions (requisita) of absolute
|
|
necessity. Reason believes that it has discovered these requisites
|
|
in the conception of an ens realissimum- and in it alone, and hence
|
|
concludes: The ens realissimum is an absolutely necessary being. But
|
|
it is evident that reason has here presupposed that the conception
|
|
of an ens realissimum is perfectly adequate to the conception of a
|
|
being of absolute necessity, that is, that we may infer the
|
|
existence of the latter from that of the former- a proposition which
|
|
formed the basis of the ontological argument, and which is now
|
|
employed in the support of the cosmological argument, contrary to
|
|
the wish and professions of its inventors. For the existence of an
|
|
absolutely necessary being is given in conceptions alone. But if I
|
|
say: "The conception of the ens realissimum is a conception of this
|
|
kind, and in fact the only conception which is adequate to our idea of
|
|
a necessary being," I am obliged to admit, that the latter may be
|
|
inferred from the former. Thus it is properly the ontological argument
|
|
which figures in the cosmological, and constitutes the whole
|
|
strength of the latter; while the spurious basis of experience has
|
|
been of no further use than to conduct us to the conception of
|
|
absolute necessity, being utterly insufficient to demonstrate the
|
|
presence of this attribute in any determinate existence or thing.
|
|
For when we propose to ourselves an aim of this character, we must
|
|
abandon the sphere of experience, and rise to that of pure
|
|
conceptions, which we examine with the purpose of discovering
|
|
whether any one contains the conditions of the possibility of an
|
|
absolutely necessary being. But if the possibility of such a being
|
|
is thus demonstrated, its existence is also proved; for we may then
|
|
assert that, of all possible beings there is one which possesses the
|
|
attribute of necessity- in other words, this being possesses an
|
|
absolutely necessary existence.
|
|
|
|
All illusions in an argument are more easily detected when they
|
|
are presented in the formal manner employed by the schools, which we
|
|
now proceed to do.
|
|
|
|
If the proposition: "Every absolutely necessary being is likewise an
|
|
ens realissimum," is correct (and it is this which constitutes the
|
|
nervus probandi of the cosmological argument), it must, like all
|
|
affirmative judgements, be capable of conversion- the conversio per
|
|
accidens, at least. It follows, then, that some entia realissima are
|
|
absolutely necessary beings. But no ens realissimum is in any
|
|
respect different from another, and what is valid of some is valid
|
|
of all. In this present case, therefore, I may employ simple
|
|
conversion, and say: "Every ens realissimum is a necessary being." But
|
|
as this proposition is determined a priori by the conceptions
|
|
contained in it, the mere conception of an ens realissimum must
|
|
possess the additional attribute of absolute necessity. But this is
|
|
exactly what was maintained in the ontological argument, and not
|
|
recognized by the cosmological, although it formed the real ground
|
|
of its disguised and illusory reasoning.
|
|
|
|
Thus the second mode employed by speculative reason of demonstrating
|
|
the existence of a Supreme Being, is not only, like the first,
|
|
illusory and inadequate, but possesses the additional blemish of an
|
|
ignoratio elenchi- professing to conduct us by a new road to the
|
|
desired goal, but bringing us back, after a short circuit, to the
|
|
old path which we had deserted at its call.
|
|
|
|
I mentioned above that this cosmological argument contains a perfect
|
|
nest of dialectical assumptions, which transcendental criticism does
|
|
not find it difficult to expose and to dissipate. I shall merely
|
|
enumerate these, leaving it to the reader, who must by this time be
|
|
well practised in such matters, to investigate the fallacies
|
|
residing therein.
|
|
|
|
The following fallacies, for example, are discoverable in this
|
|
mode of proof: 1. The transcendental principle: "Everything that is
|
|
contingent must have a cause"- a principle without significance,
|
|
except in the sensuous world. For the purely intellectual conception
|
|
of the contingent cannot produce any synthetical proposition, like
|
|
that of causality, which is itself without significance or
|
|
distinguishing characteristic except in the phenomenal world. But in
|
|
the present case it is employed to help us beyond the limits of its
|
|
sphere. 2. "From the impossibility of an infinite ascending series
|
|
of causes in the world of sense a first cause is inferred"; a
|
|
conclusion which the principles of the employment of reason do not
|
|
justify even in the sphere of experience, and still less when an
|
|
attempt is made to pass the limits of this sphere. 3. Reason allows
|
|
itself to be satisfied upon insufficient grounds, with regard to the
|
|
completion of this series. It removes all conditions (without which,
|
|
however, no conception of Necessity can take place); and, as after
|
|
this it is beyond our power to form any other conceptions, it
|
|
accepts this as a completion of the conception it wishes to form of
|
|
the series. 4. The logical possibility of a conception of the total of
|
|
reality (the criterion of this possibility being the absence of
|
|
contradiction) is confound. ed with the transcendental, which requires
|
|
a principle of the practicability of such a synthesis- a principle
|
|
which again refers us to the world of experience. And so on.
|
|
|
|
The aim of the cosmological argument is to avoid the necessity of
|
|
proving the existence of a necessary being priori from mere
|
|
conceptions- a proof which must be ontological, and of which we feel
|
|
ourselves quite incapable. With this purpose, we reason from an actual
|
|
existence- an experience in general, to an absolutely necessary
|
|
condition of that existence. It is in this case unnecessary to
|
|
demonstrate its possibility. For after having proved that it exists,
|
|
the question regarding its possibility is superfluous. Now, when we
|
|
wish to define more strictly the nature of this necessary being, we do
|
|
not look out for some being the conception of which would enable us to
|
|
comprehend the necessity of its being- for if we could do this, an
|
|
empirical presupposition would be unnecessary; no, we try to
|
|
discover merely the negative condition (conditio sine qua non),
|
|
without which a being would not be absolutely necessary. Now this
|
|
would be perfectly admissible in every sort of reasoning, from a
|
|
consequence to its principle; but in the present case it unfortunately
|
|
happens that the condition of absolute necessity can be discovered
|
|
in but a single being, the conception of which must consequently
|
|
contain all that is requisite for demonstrating the presence of
|
|
absolute necessity, and thus entitle me to infer this absolute
|
|
necessity a priori. That is, it must be possible to reason conversely,
|
|
and say: The thing, to which the conception of the highest reality
|
|
belongs, is absolutely necessary. But if I cannot reason thus- and I
|
|
cannot, unless I believe in the sufficiency of the ontological
|
|
argument- I find insurmountable obstacles in my new path, and am
|
|
really no farther than the point from which I set out. The
|
|
conception of a Supreme Being satisfies all questions a priori
|
|
regarding the internal determinations of a thing, and is for this
|
|
reason an ideal without equal or parallel, the general conception of
|
|
it indicating it as at the same time an ens individuum among all
|
|
possible things. But the conception does not satisfy the question
|
|
regarding its existence- which was the purpose of all our inquiries;
|
|
and, although the existence of a necessary being were admitted, we
|
|
should find it impossible to answer the question: What of all things
|
|
in the world must be regarded as such?
|
|
|
|
It is certainly allowable to admit the existence of an
|
|
all-sufficient being- a cause of all possible effects- for the purpose
|
|
of enabling reason to introduce unity into its mode and grounds of
|
|
explanation with regard to phenomena. But to assert that such a
|
|
being necessarily exists, is no longer the modest enunciation of an
|
|
admissible hypothesis, but the boldest declaration of an apodeictic
|
|
certainty; for the cognition of that which is absolutely necessary
|
|
must itself possess that character.
|
|
|
|
The aim of the transcendental ideal formed by the mind is either
|
|
to discover a conception which shall harmonize with the idea of
|
|
absolute necessity, or a conception which shall contain that idea.
|
|
If the one is possible, so is the other; for reason recognizes that
|
|
alone as absolutely necessary which is necessary from its
|
|
conception. But both attempts are equally beyond our power- we find it
|
|
impossible to satisfy the understanding upon this point, and as
|
|
impossible to induce it to remain at rest in relation to this
|
|
incapacity.
|
|
|
|
Unconditioned necessity, which, as the ultimate support and stay
|
|
of all existing things, is an indispensable requirement of the mind,
|
|
is an abyss on the verge of which human reason trembles in dismay.
|
|
Even the idea of eternity, terrible and sublime as it is, as
|
|
depicted by Haller, does not produce upon the mental vision such a
|
|
feeling of awe and terror; for, although it measures the duration of
|
|
things, it does not support them. We cannot bear, nor can we rid
|
|
ourselves of the thought that a being, which we regard as the greatest
|
|
of all possible existences, should say to himself: I am from
|
|
eternity to eternity; beside me there is nothing, except that which
|
|
exists by my will; whence then am I? Here all sinks away from under
|
|
us; and the greatest, as the smallest, perfection, hovers without stay
|
|
or footing in presence of the speculative reason, which finds it as
|
|
easy to part with the one as with the other.
|
|
|
|
Many physical powers, which evidence their existence by their
|
|
effects, are perfectly inscrutable in their nature; they elude all our
|
|
powers of observation. The transcendental object which forms the basis
|
|
of phenomena, and, in connection with it, the reason why our
|
|
sensibility possesses this rather than that particular kind of
|
|
conditions, are and must ever remain hidden from our mental vision;
|
|
the fact is there, the reason of the fact we cannot see. But an
|
|
ideal of pure reason cannot be termed mysterious or inscrutable,
|
|
because the only credential of its reality is the need of it felt by
|
|
reason, for the purpose of giving completeness to the world of
|
|
synthetical unity. An ideal is not even given as a cogitable object,
|
|
and therefore cannot be inscrutable; on the contrary, it must, as a
|
|
mere idea, be based on the constitution of reason itself, and on
|
|
this account must be capable of explanation and solution. For the very
|
|
essence of reason consists in its ability to give an account, of all
|
|
our conceptions, opinions, and assertions- upon objective, or, when
|
|
they happen to be illusory and fallacious, upon subjective grounds.
|
|
|
|
Detection and Explanation of the Dialectical Illusion in
|
|
|
|
all Transcendental Arguments for the Existence of a
|
|
|
|
Necessary Being.
|
|
|
|
Both of the above arguments are transcendental; in other words, they
|
|
do not proceed upon empirical principles. For, although the
|
|
cosmological argument professed to lay a basis of experience for its
|
|
edifice of reasoning, it did not ground its procedure upon the
|
|
peculiar constitution of experience, but upon pure principles of
|
|
reason- in relation to an existence given by empirical
|
|
consciousness; utterly abandoning its guidance, however, for the
|
|
purpose of supporting its assertions entirely upon pure conceptions.
|
|
Now what is the cause, in these transcendental arguments, of the
|
|
dialectical, but natural, illusion, which connects the conceptions
|
|
of necessity and supreme reality, and hypostatizes that which cannot
|
|
be anything but an idea? What is the cause of this unavoidable step on
|
|
the part of reason, of admitting that some one among all existing
|
|
things must be necessary, while it falls back from the assertion of
|
|
the existence of such a being as from an abyss? And how does reason
|
|
proceed to explain this anomaly to itself, and from the wavering
|
|
condition of a timid and reluctant approbation- always again
|
|
withdrawn- arrive at a calm and settled insight into its cause?
|
|
|
|
It is something very remarkable that, on the supposition that
|
|
something exists, I cannot avoid the inference that something exists
|
|
necessarily. Upon this perfectly natural- but not on that account
|
|
reliable- inference does the cosmological argument rest. But, let me
|
|
form any conception whatever of a thing, I find that I cannot cogitate
|
|
the existence of the thing as absolutely necessary, and that nothing
|
|
prevents me- be the thing or being what it may- from cogitating its
|
|
non-existence. I may thus be obliged to admit that all existing things
|
|
have a necessary basis, while I cannot cogitate any single or
|
|
individual thing as necessary. In other words, I can never complete
|
|
the regress through the conditions of existence, without admitting the
|
|
existence of a necessary being; but, on the other hand, I cannot
|
|
make a commencement from this being.
|
|
|
|
If I must cogitate something as existing necessarily as the basis of
|
|
existing things, and yet am not permitted to cogitate any individual
|
|
thing as in itself necessary, the inevitable inference is that
|
|
necessity and contingency are not properties of things themselves-
|
|
otherwise an internal contradiction would result; that consequently
|
|
neither of these principles are objective, but merely subjective
|
|
principles of reason- the one requiring us to seek for a necessary
|
|
ground for everything that exists, that is, to be satisfied with no
|
|
other explanation than that which is complete a priori, the other
|
|
forbidding us ever to hope for the attainment of this completeness,
|
|
that is, to regard no member of the empirical world as
|
|
unconditioned. In this mode of viewing them, both principles, in their
|
|
purely heuristic and regulative character, and as concerning merely
|
|
the formal interest of reason, are quite consistent with each other.
|
|
The one says: "You must philosophize upon nature," as if there existed
|
|
a necessary primal basis of all existing things, solely for the
|
|
purpose of introducing systematic unity into your knowledge, by
|
|
pursuing an idea of this character- a foundation which is
|
|
arbitrarily admitted to be ultimate; while the other warns you to
|
|
consider no individual determination, concerning the existence of
|
|
things, as such an ultimate foundation, that is, as absolutely
|
|
necessary, but to keep the way always open for further progress in the
|
|
deduction, and to treat every determination as determined by some
|
|
other. But if all that we perceive must be regarded as conditionally
|
|
necessary, it is impossible that anything which is empirically given
|
|
should be absolutely necessary.
|
|
|
|
It follows from this that you must accept the absolutely necessary
|
|
as out of and beyond the world, inasmuch as it is useful only as a
|
|
principle of the highest possible unity in experience, and you
|
|
cannot discover any such necessary existence in the would, the
|
|
second rule requiring you to regard all empirical causes of unity as
|
|
themselves deduced.
|
|
|
|
The philosophers of antiquity regarded all the forms of nature as
|
|
contingent; while matter was considered by them, in accordance with
|
|
the judgement of the common reason of mankind, as primal and
|
|
necessary. But if they had regarded matter, not relatively- as the
|
|
substratum of phenomena, but absolutely and in itself- as an
|
|
independent existence, this idea of absolute necessity would have
|
|
immediately disappeared. For there is nothing absolutely connecting
|
|
reason with such an existence; on the contrary, it can annihilate it
|
|
in thought, always and without self-contradiction. But in thought
|
|
alone lay the idea of absolute necessity. A regulative principle must,
|
|
therefore, have been at the foundation of this opinion. In fact,
|
|
extension and impenetrability- which together constitute our
|
|
conception of matter- form the supreme empirical principle of the
|
|
unity of phenomena, and this principle, in so far as it is empirically
|
|
unconditioned, possesses the property of a regulative principle.
|
|
But, as every determination of matter which constitutes what is real
|
|
in it- and consequently impenetrability- is an effect, which must have
|
|
a cause, and is for this reason always derived, the notion of matter
|
|
cannot harmonize with the idea of a necessary being, in its
|
|
character of the principle of all derived unity. For every one of
|
|
its real properties, being derived, must be only conditionally
|
|
necessary, and can therefore be annihilated in thought; and thus the
|
|
whole existence of matter can be so annihilated or suppressed. If this
|
|
were not the case, we should have found in the world of phenomena
|
|
the highest ground or condition of unity- which is impossible,
|
|
according to the second regulative principle. It follows that
|
|
matter, and, in general, all that forms part of the world of sense,
|
|
cannot be a necessary primal being, nor even a principle of
|
|
empirical unity, but that this being or principle must have its
|
|
place assigned without the world. And, in this way, we can proceed
|
|
in perfect confidence to deduce the phenomena of the world and their
|
|
existence from other phenomena, just as if there existed no
|
|
necessary being; and we can at the same time, strive without ceasing
|
|
towards the attainment of completeness for our deduction, just as if
|
|
such a being- the supreme condition of all existences- were
|
|
presupposed by the mind.
|
|
|
|
These remarks will have made it evident to the reader that the ideal
|
|
of the Supreme Being, far from being an enouncement of the existence
|
|
of a being in itself necessary, is nothing more than a regulative
|
|
principle of reason, requiring us to regard all connection existing
|
|
between phenomena as if it had its origin from an all-sufficient
|
|
necessary cause, and basing upon this the rule of a systematic and
|
|
necessary unity in the explanation of phenomena. We cannot, at the
|
|
same time, avoid regarding, by a transcendental subreptio, this formal
|
|
principle as constitutive, and hypostatizing this unity. Precisely
|
|
similar is the case with our notion of space. Space is the primal
|
|
condition of all forms, which are properly just so many different
|
|
limitations of it; and thus, although it is merely a principle of
|
|
sensibility, we cannot help regarding it as an absolutely necessary
|
|
and self-subsistent thing- as an object given a priori in itself. In
|
|
the same way, it is quite natural that, as the systematic unity of
|
|
nature cannot be established as a principle for the empirical
|
|
employment of reason, unless it is based upon the idea of an ens
|
|
realissimum, as the supreme cause, we should regard this idea as a
|
|
real object, and this object, in its character of supreme condition,
|
|
as absolutely necessary, and that in this way a regulative should be
|
|
transformed into a constitutive principle. This interchange becomes
|
|
evident when I regard this supreme being, which, relatively to the
|
|
world, was absolutely (unconditionally) necessary, as a thing per
|
|
se. In this case, I find it impossible to represent this necessity
|
|
in or by any conception, and it exists merely in my own mind, as the
|
|
formal condition of thought, but not as a material and hypostatic
|
|
condition of existence.
|
|
|
|
SECTION VI. Of the Impossibility of a Physico-Theological Proof.
|
|
|
|
If, then, neither a pure conception nor the general experience of an
|
|
existing being can provide a sufficient basis for the proof of the
|
|
existence of the Deity, we can make the attempt by the only other
|
|
mode- that of grounding our argument upon a determinate experience
|
|
of the phenomena of the present world, their constitution and
|
|
disposition, and discover whether we can thus attain to a sound
|
|
conviction of the existence of a Supreme Being. This argument we shall
|
|
term the physico-theological argument. If it is shown to be
|
|
insufficient, speculative reason cannot present us with any
|
|
satisfactory proof of the existence of a being corresponding to our
|
|
transcendental idea.
|
|
|
|
It is evident from the remarks that have been made in the
|
|
preceding sections, that an answer to this question will be far from
|
|
being difficult or unconvincing. For how can any experience be
|
|
adequate with an idea? The very essence of an idea consists in the
|
|
fact that no experience can ever be discovered congruent or adequate
|
|
with it. The transcendental idea of a necessary and all-sufficient
|
|
being is so immeasurably great, so high above all that is empirical,
|
|
which is always conditioned, that we hope in vain to find materials in
|
|
the sphere of experience sufficiently ample for our conception, and in
|
|
vain seek the unconditioned among things that are conditioned, while
|
|
examples, nay, even guidance is denied us by the laws of empirical
|
|
synthesis.
|
|
|
|
If the Supreme Being forms a link in the chain of empirical
|
|
conditions, it must be a member of the empirical series, and, like the
|
|
lower members which it precedes, have its origin in some higher member
|
|
of the series. If, on the other hand, we disengage it from the
|
|
chain, and cogitate it as an intelligible being, apart from the series
|
|
of natural causes- how shall reason bridge the abyss that separates
|
|
the latter from the former? All laws respecting the regress from
|
|
effects to causes, all synthetical additions to our knowledge relate
|
|
solely to possible experience and the objects of the sensuous world,
|
|
and, apart from them, are without significance.
|
|
|
|
The world around us opens before our view so magnificent a spectacle
|
|
of order, variety, beauty, and conformity to ends, that whether we
|
|
pursue our observations into the infinity of space in the one
|
|
direction, or into its illimitable divisions in the other, whether
|
|
we regard the world in its greatest or its least manifestations-
|
|
even after we have attained to the highest summit of knowledge which
|
|
our weak minds can reach, we find that language in the presence of
|
|
wonders so inconceivable has lost its force, and number its power to
|
|
reckon, nay, even thought fails to conceive adequately, and our
|
|
conception of the whole dissolves into an astonishment without power
|
|
of expression- all the more eloquent that it is dumb. Everywhere
|
|
around us we observe a chain of causes and effects, of means and ends,
|
|
of death and birth; and, as nothing has entered of itself into the
|
|
condition in which we find it, we are constantly referred to some
|
|
other thing, which itself suggests the same inquiry regarding its
|
|
cause, and thus the universe must sink into the abyss of
|
|
nothingness, unless we admit that, besides this infinite chain of
|
|
contingencies, there exists something that is primal and
|
|
self-subsistent- something which, as the cause of this phenomenal
|
|
world, secures its continuance and preservation.
|
|
|
|
This highest cause- what magnitude shall we attribute to it? Of
|
|
the content of the world we are ignorant; still less can we estimate
|
|
its magnitude by comparison with the sphere of the possible. But
|
|
this supreme cause being a necessity of the human mind, what is
|
|
there to prevent us from attributing to it such a degree of perfection
|
|
as to place it above the sphere of all that is possible? This we can
|
|
easily do, although only by the aid of the faint outline of an
|
|
abstract conception, by representing this being to ourselves as
|
|
containing in itself, as an individual substance, all possible
|
|
perfection- a conception which satisfies that requirement of reason
|
|
which demands parsimony in principles, which is free from
|
|
self-contradiction, which even contributes to the extension of the
|
|
employment of reason in experience, by means of the guidance
|
|
afforded by this idea to order and system, and which in no respect
|
|
conflicts with any law of experience.
|
|
|
|
This argument always deserves to be mentioned with respect. It is
|
|
the oldest, the clearest, and that most in conformity with the
|
|
common reason of humanity. It animates the study of nature, as it
|
|
itself derives its existence and draws ever new strength from that
|
|
source. It introduces aims and ends into a sphere in which our
|
|
observation could not of itself have discovered them, and extends
|
|
our knowledge of nature, by directing our attention to a unity, the
|
|
principle of which lies beyond nature. This knowledge of nature
|
|
again reacts upon this idea- its cause; and thus our belief in a
|
|
divine author of the universe rises to the power of an irresistible
|
|
conviction.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons it would be utterly hopeless to attempt to rob
|
|
this argument of the authority it has always enjoyed. The mind,
|
|
unceasingly elevated by these considerations, which, although
|
|
empirical, are so remarkably powerful, and continually adding to their
|
|
force, will not suffer itself to be depressed by the doubts
|
|
suggested by subtle speculation; it tears itself out of this state
|
|
of uncertainty, the moment it casts a look upon the wondrous forms
|
|
of nature and the majesty of the universe, and rises from height to
|
|
height, from condition to condition, till it has elevated itself to
|
|
the supreme and unconditioned author of all.
|
|
|
|
But although we have nothing to object to the reasonableness and
|
|
utility of this procedure, but have rather to commend and encourage
|
|
it, we cannot approve of the claims which this argument advances to
|
|
demonstrative certainty and to a reception upon its own merits,
|
|
apart from favour or support by other arguments. Nor can it injure the
|
|
cause of morality to endeavour to lower the tone of the arrogant
|
|
sophist, and to teach him that modesty and moderation which are the
|
|
properties of a belief that brings calm and content into the mind,
|
|
without prescribing to it an unworthy subjection. I maintain, then,
|
|
that the physico-theological argument is insufficient of itself to
|
|
prove the existence of a Supreme Being, that it must entrust this to
|
|
the ontological argument- to which it serves merely as an
|
|
introduction, and that, consequently, this argument contains the
|
|
only possible ground of proof (possessed by speculative reason) for
|
|
the existence of this being.
|
|
|
|
The chief momenta in the physico-theological argument are as follow:
|
|
1. We observe in the world manifest signs of an arrangement full of
|
|
purpose, executed with great wisdom, and argument in whole of a
|
|
content indescribably various, and of an extent without limits. 2.
|
|
This arrangement of means and ends is entirely foreign to the things
|
|
existing in the world- it belongs to them merely as a contingent
|
|
attribute; in other words, the nature of different things could not of
|
|
itself, whatever means were employed, harmoniously tend towards
|
|
certain purposes, were they not chosen and directed for these purposes
|
|
by a rational and disposing principle, in accordance with certain
|
|
fundamental ideas. 3. There exists, therefore, a sublime and wise
|
|
cause (or several), which is not merely a blind, all-powerful
|
|
nature, producing the beings and events which fill the world in
|
|
unconscious fecundity, but a free and intelligent cause of the
|
|
world. 4. The unity of this cause may be inferred from the unity of
|
|
the reciprocal relation existing between the parts of the world, as
|
|
portions of an artistic edifice- an inference which all our
|
|
observation favours, and all principles of analogy support.
|
|
|
|
In the above argument, it is inferred from the analogy of certain
|
|
products of nature with those of human art, when it compels Nature
|
|
to bend herself to its purposes, as in the case of a house, a ship, or
|
|
a watch, that the same kind of causality- namely, understanding and
|
|
will- resides in nature. It is also declared that the internal
|
|
possibility of this freely-acting nature (which is the source of all
|
|
art, and perhaps also of human reason) is derivable from another and
|
|
superhuman art- a conclusion which would perhaps be found incapable of
|
|
standing the test of subtle transcendental criticism. But to neither
|
|
of these opinions shall we at present object. We shall only remark
|
|
that it must be confessed that, if we are to discuss the subject of
|
|
cause at all, we cannot proceed more securely than with the guidance
|
|
of the analogy subsisting between nature and such products of
|
|
design- these being the only products whose causes and modes of
|
|
organization are completely known to us. Reason would be unable to
|
|
satisfy her own requirements, if she passed from a causality which she
|
|
does know, to obscure and indemonstrable principles of explanation
|
|
which she does not know.
|
|
|
|
According to the physico-theological argument, the connection and
|
|
harmony existing in the world evidence the contingency of the form
|
|
merely, but not of the matter, that is, of the substance of the world.
|
|
To establish the truth of the latter opinion, it would be necessary to
|
|
prove that all things would be in themselves incapable of this harmony
|
|
and order, unless they were, even as regards their substance, the
|
|
product of a supreme wisdom. But this would require very different
|
|
grounds of proof from those presented by the analogy with human art.
|
|
This proof can at most, therefore, demonstrate the existence of an
|
|
architect of the world, whose efforts are limited by the
|
|
capabilities of the material with which he works, but not of a creator
|
|
of the world, to whom all things are subject. Thus this argument is
|
|
utterly insufficient for the task before us- a demonstration of the
|
|
existence of an all-sufficient being. If we wish to prove the
|
|
contingency of matter, we must have recourse to a transcendental
|
|
argument, which the physicotheological was constructed expressly to
|
|
avoid.
|
|
|
|
We infer, from the order and design visible in the universe, as a
|
|
disposition of a thoroughly contingent character, the existence of a
|
|
cause proportionate thereto. The conception of this cause must contain
|
|
certain determinate qualities, and it must therefore be regarded as
|
|
the conception of a being which possesses all power, wisdom, and so
|
|
on, in one word, all perfection- the conception, that is, of an
|
|
all-sufficient being. For the predicates of very great, astonishing,
|
|
or immeasurable power and excellence, give us no determinate
|
|
conception of the thing, nor do they inform us what the thing may be
|
|
in itself. They merely indicate the relation existing between the
|
|
magnitude of the object and the observer, who compares it with himself
|
|
and with his own power of comprehension, and are mere expressions of
|
|
praise and reverence, by which the object is either magnified, or
|
|
the observing subject depreciated in relation to the object. Where
|
|
we have to do with the magnitude (of the perfection) of a thing, we
|
|
can discover no determinate conception, except that which
|
|
comprehends all possible perfection or completeness, and it is only
|
|
the total (omnitudo) of reality which is completely determined in
|
|
and through its conception alone.
|
|
|
|
Now it cannot be expected that any one will be bold enough to
|
|
declare that he has a perfect insight into the relation which the
|
|
magnitude of the world he contemplates bears (in its extent as well as
|
|
in its content) to omnipotence, into that of the order and design in
|
|
the world to the highest wisdom, and that of the unity of the world to
|
|
the absolute unity of a Supreme Being. Physico-theology is therefore
|
|
incapable of presenting a determinate conception of a supreme cause of
|
|
the world, and is therefore insufficient as a principle of theology- a
|
|
theology which is itself to be the basis of religion.
|
|
|
|
The attainment of absolute totality is completely impossible on
|
|
the path of empiricism. And yet this is the path pursued in the
|
|
physicotheological argument. What means shall we employ to bridge
|
|
the abyss?
|
|
|
|
After elevating ourselves to admiration of the magnitude of the
|
|
power, wisdom, and other attributes of the author of the world, and
|
|
finding we can advance no further, we leave the argument on
|
|
empirical grounds, and proceed to infer the contingency of the world
|
|
from the order and conformity to aims that are observable in it.
|
|
From this contingency we infer, by the help of transcendental
|
|
conceptions alone, the existence of something absolutely necessary;
|
|
and, still advancing, proceed from the conception of the absolute
|
|
necessity of the first cause to the completely determined or
|
|
determining conception thereof- the conception of an all-embracing
|
|
reality. Thus the physico-theological, failing in its undertaking,
|
|
recurs in its embarrassment to the cosmological argument; and, as this
|
|
is merely the ontological argument in disguise, it executes its design
|
|
solely by the aid of pure reason, although it at first professed to
|
|
have no connection with this faculty and to base its entire
|
|
procedure upon experience alone.
|
|
|
|
The physico-theologians have therefore no reason to regard with such
|
|
contempt the transcendental mode of argument, and to look down upon
|
|
it, with the conceit of clear-sighted observers of nature, as the
|
|
brain-cobweb of obscure speculatists. For, if they reflect upon and
|
|
examine their own arguments, they will find that, after following
|
|
for some time the path of nature and experience, and discovering
|
|
themselves no nearer their object, they suddenly leave this path and
|
|
pass into the region of pure possibility, where they hope to reach
|
|
upon the wings of ideas what had eluded all their empirical
|
|
investigations. Gaining, as they think, a firm footing after this
|
|
immense leap, they extend their determinate conception- into the
|
|
possession of which they have come, they know not how- over the
|
|
whole sphere of creation, and explain their ideal, which is entirely a
|
|
product of pure reason, by illustrations drawn from experience- though
|
|
in a degree miserably unworthy of the grandeur of the object, while
|
|
they refuse to acknowledge that they have arrived at this cognition or
|
|
hypothesis by a very different road from that of experience.
|
|
|
|
Thus the physico-theological is based upon the cosmological, and
|
|
this upon the ontological proof of the existence of a Supreme Being;
|
|
and as besides these three there is no other path open to
|
|
speculative reason, the ontological proof, on the ground of pure
|
|
conceptions of reason, is the only possible one, if any proof of a
|
|
proposition so far transcending the empirical exercise of the
|
|
understanding is possible at all.
|
|
|
|
SECTION VII. Critique of all Theology based upon Speculative
|
|
|
|
Principles of Reason.
|
|
|
|
If by the term theology I understand the cognition of a primal
|
|
being, that cognition is based either upon reason alone (theologia
|
|
rationalis) or upon revelation (theologia revelata). The former
|
|
cogitates its object either by means of pure transcendental
|
|
conceptions, as an ens originarium, realissimum, ens entium, and is
|
|
termed transcendental theology; or, by means of a conception derived
|
|
from the nature of our own mind, as a supreme intelligence, and must
|
|
then be entitled natural theology. The person who believes in a
|
|
transcendental theology alone, is termed a deist; he who
|
|
acknowledges the possibility of a natural theology also, a theist. The
|
|
former admits that we can cognize by pure reason alone the existence
|
|
of a Supreme Being, but at the same time maintains that our conception
|
|
of this being is purely transcendental, and that all we can say of
|
|
it is that it possesses all reality, without being able to define it
|
|
more closely. The second asserts that reason is capable of
|
|
presenting us, from the analogy with nature, with a more definite
|
|
conception of this being, and that its operations, as the cause of all
|
|
things, are the results of intelligence and free will. The former
|
|
regards the Supreme Being as the cause of the world- whether by the
|
|
necessity of his nature, or as a free agent, is left undetermined; the
|
|
latter considers this being as the author of the world.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental theology aims either at inferring the existence of
|
|
a Supreme Being from a general experience, without any closer
|
|
reference to the world to which this experience belongs, and in this
|
|
case it is called cosmotheology; or it endeavours to cognize the
|
|
existence of such a being, through mere conceptions, without the aid
|
|
of experience, and is then termed ontotheology.
|
|
|
|
Natural theology infers the attributes and the existence of an
|
|
author of the world, from the constitution of, the order and unity
|
|
observable in, the world, in which two modes of causality must be
|
|
admitted to exist- those of nature and freedom. Thus it rises from
|
|
this world to a supreme intelligence, either as the principle of all
|
|
natural, or of all moral order and perfection. In the former case it
|
|
is termed physico-theology, in the latter, ethical or moral-theology.*
|
|
|
|
*Not theological ethics; for this science contains ethical laws,
|
|
which presuppose the existence of a Supreme Governor of the world;
|
|
while moral-theology, on the contrary, is the expression of a
|
|
conviction of the existence of a Supreme Being, founded upon ethical
|
|
laws.
|
|
|
|
As we are wont to understand by the term God not merely an eternal
|
|
nature, the operations of which are insensate and blind, but a Supreme
|
|
Being, who is the free and intelligent author of all things, and as it
|
|
is this latter view alone that can be of interest to humanity, we
|
|
might, in strict rigour, deny to the deist any belief in God at all,
|
|
and regard him merely as a maintainer of the existence of a primal
|
|
being or thing- the supreme cause of all other things. But, as no
|
|
one ought to be blamed, merely because he does not feel himself
|
|
justified in maintaining a certain opinion, as if he altogether denied
|
|
its truth and asserted the opposite, it is more correct- as it is less
|
|
harsh- to say, the deist believes in a God, the theist in a living God
|
|
(summa intelligentia). We shall now proceed to investigate the sources
|
|
of all these attempts of reason to establish the existence of a
|
|
Supreme Being.
|
|
|
|
It may be sufficient in this place to define theoretical knowledge
|
|
or cognition as knowledge of that which is, and practical knowledge as
|
|
knowledge of that which ought to be. In this view, the theoretical
|
|
employment of reason is that by which I cognize a priori (as
|
|
necessary) that something is, while the practical is that by which I
|
|
cognize a priori what ought to happen. Now, if it is an indubitably
|
|
certain, though at the same time an entirely conditioned truth, that
|
|
something is, or ought to happen, either a certain determinate
|
|
condition of this truth is absolutely necessary, or such a condition
|
|
may be arbitrarily presupposed. In the former case the condition is
|
|
postulated (per thesin), in the latter supposed (per hypothesin).
|
|
There are certain practical laws- those of morality- which are
|
|
absolutely necessary. Now, if these laws necessarily presuppose the
|
|
existence of some being, as the condition of the possibility of
|
|
their obligatory power, this being must be postulated, because the
|
|
conditioned, from which we reason to this determinate condition, is
|
|
itself cognized a priori as absolutely necessary. We shall at some
|
|
future time show that the moral laws not merely presuppose the
|
|
existence of a Supreme Being, but also, as themselves absolutely
|
|
necessary in a different relation, demand or postulate it- although
|
|
only from a practical point of view. The discussion of this argument
|
|
we postpone for the present.
|
|
|
|
When the question relates merely to that which is, not to that which
|
|
ought to be, the conditioned which is presented in experience is
|
|
always cogitated as contingent. For this reason its condition cannot
|
|
be regarded as absolutely necessary, but merely as relatively
|
|
necessary, or rather as needful; the condition is in itself and a
|
|
priori a mere arbitrary presupposition in aid of the cognition, by
|
|
reason, of the conditioned. If, then, we are to possess a
|
|
theoretical cognition of the absolute necessity of a thing, we
|
|
cannot attain to this cognition otherwise than a priori by means of
|
|
conceptions; while it is impossible in this way to cognize the
|
|
existence of a cause which bears any relation to an existence given in
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
Theoretical cognition is speculative when it relates to an object or
|
|
certain conceptions of an object which is not given and cannot be
|
|
discovered by means of experience. It is opposed to the cognition of
|
|
nature, which concerns only those objects or predicates which can be
|
|
presented in a possible experience.
|
|
|
|
The principle that everything which happens (the empirically
|
|
contingent) must have a cause, is a principle of the cognition of
|
|
nature, but not of speculative cognition. For, if we change it into an
|
|
abstract principle, and deprive it of its reference to experience
|
|
and the empirical, we shall find that it cannot with justice be
|
|
regarded any longer as a synthetical proposition, and that it is
|
|
impossible to discover any mode of transition from that which exists
|
|
to something entirely different- termed cause. Nay, more, the
|
|
conception of a cause likewise that of the contingent- loses, in
|
|
this speculative mode of employing it, all significance, for its
|
|
objective reality and meaning are comprehensible from experience
|
|
alone.
|
|
|
|
When from the existence of the universe and the things in it the
|
|
existence of a cause of the universe is inferred, reason is proceeding
|
|
not in the natural, but in the speculative method. For the principle
|
|
of the former enounces, not that things themselves or substances,
|
|
but only that which happens or their states- as empirically
|
|
contingent, have a cause: the assertion that the existence of
|
|
substance itself is contingent is not justified by experience, it is
|
|
the assertion of a reason employing its principles in a speculative
|
|
manner. If, again, I infer from the form of the universe, from the way
|
|
in which all things are connected and act and react upon each other,
|
|
the existence of a cause entirely distinct from the universe- this
|
|
would again be a judgement of purely speculative reason; because the
|
|
object in this case- the cause- can never be an object of possible
|
|
experience. In both these cases the principle of causality, which is
|
|
valid only in the field of experience- useless and even meaningless
|
|
beyond this region, would be diverted from its proper destination.
|
|
|
|
Now I maintain that all attempts of reason to establish a theology
|
|
by the aid of speculation alone are fruitless, that the principles
|
|
of reason as applied to nature do not conduct us to any theological
|
|
truths, and, consequently, that a rational theology can have no
|
|
existence, unless it is founded upon the laws of morality. For all
|
|
synthetical principles of the understanding are valid only as immanent
|
|
in experience; while the cognition of a Supreme Being necessitates
|
|
their being employed transcendentally, and of this the understanding
|
|
is quite incapable. If the empirical law of causality is to conduct us
|
|
to a Supreme Being, this being must belong to the chain of empirical
|
|
objects- in which case it would be, like all phenomena, itself
|
|
conditioned. If the possibility of passing the limits of experience be
|
|
admitted, by means of the dynamical law of the relation of an effect
|
|
to its cause, what kind of conception shall we obtain by this
|
|
procedure? Certainly not the conception of a Supreme Being, because
|
|
experience never presents us with the greatest of all possible
|
|
effects, and it is only an effect of this character that could witness
|
|
to the existence of a corresponding cause. If, for the purpose of
|
|
fully satisfying the requirements of Reason, we recognize her right to
|
|
assert the existence of a perfect and absolutely necessary being, this
|
|
can be admitted only from favour, and cannot be regarded as the result
|
|
or irresistible demonstration. The physico-theological proof may add
|
|
weight to others- if other proofs there are- by connecting speculation
|
|
with experience; but in itself it rather prepares the mind for
|
|
theological cognition, and gives it a right and natural direction,
|
|
than establishes a sure foundation for theology.
|
|
|
|
It is now perfectly evident that transcendental questions admit only
|
|
of transcendental answers- those presented a priori by pure
|
|
conceptions without the least empirical admixture. But the question in
|
|
the present case is evidently synthetical- it aims at the extension of
|
|
our cognition beyond the bounds of experience- it requires an
|
|
assurance respecting the existence of a being corresponding with the
|
|
idea in our minds, to which no experience can ever be adequate. Now it
|
|
has been abundantly proved that all a priori synthetical cognition
|
|
is possible only as the expression of the formal conditions of a
|
|
possible experience; and that the validity of all principles depends
|
|
upon their immanence in the field of experience, that is, their
|
|
relation to objects of empirical cognition or phenomena. Thus all
|
|
transcendental procedure in reference to speculative theology is
|
|
without result.
|
|
|
|
If any one prefers doubting the conclusiveness of the proofs of
|
|
our analytic to losing the persuasion of the validity of these old and
|
|
time honoured arguments, he at least cannot decline answering the
|
|
question- how he can pass the limits of all possible experience by the
|
|
help of mere ideas. If he talks of new arguments, or of improvements
|
|
upon old arguments, I request him to spare me. There is certainly no
|
|
great choice in this sphere of discussion, as all speculative
|
|
arguments must at last look for support to the ontological, and I
|
|
have, therefore, very little to fear from the argumentative
|
|
fecundity of the dogmatical defenders of a non-sensuous reason.
|
|
Without looking upon myself as a remarkably combative person, I
|
|
shall not decline the challenge to detect the fallacy and destroy
|
|
the pretensions of every attempt of speculative theology. And yet
|
|
the hope of better fortune never deserts those who are accustomed to
|
|
the dogmatical mode of procedure. I shall, therefore, restrict
|
|
myself to the simple and equitable demand that such reasoners will
|
|
demonstrate, from the nature of the human mind as well as from that of
|
|
the other sources of knowledge, how we are to proceed to extend our
|
|
cognition completely a priori, and to carry it to that point where
|
|
experience abandons us, and no means exist of guaranteeing the
|
|
objective reality of our conceptions. In whatever way the
|
|
understanding may have attained to a conception, the existence of
|
|
the object of the conception cannot be discovered in it by analysis,
|
|
because the cognition of the existence of the object depends upon
|
|
the object's being posited and given in itself apart from the
|
|
conception. But it is utterly impossible to go beyond our
|
|
conception, without the aid of experience- which presents to the
|
|
mind nothing but phenomena, or to attain by the help of mere
|
|
conceptions to a conviction of the existence of new kinds of objects
|
|
or supernatural beings.
|
|
|
|
But although pure speculative reason is far from sufficient to
|
|
demonstrate the existence of a Supreme Being, it is of the highest
|
|
utility in correcting our conception of this being- on the supposition
|
|
that we can attain to the cognition of it by some other means- in
|
|
making it consistent with itself and with all other conceptions of
|
|
intelligible objects, clearing it from all that is incompatible with
|
|
the conception of an ens summun, and eliminating from it all
|
|
limitations or admixtures of empirical elements.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental theology is still therefore, notwithstanding its
|
|
objective insufficiency, of importance in a negative respect; it is
|
|
useful as a test of the procedure of reason when engaged with pure
|
|
ideas, no other than a transcendental standard being in this case
|
|
admissible. For if, from a practical point of view, the hypothesis
|
|
of a Supreme and All-sufficient Being is to maintain its validity
|
|
without opposition, it must be of the highest importance to define
|
|
this conception in a correct and rigorous manner- as the
|
|
transcendental conception of a necessary being, to eliminate all
|
|
phenomenal elements (anthropomorphism in its most extended
|
|
signification), and at the same time to overflow all contradictory
|
|
assertions- be they atheistic, deistic, or anthropomorphic. This is of
|
|
course very easy; as the same arguments which demonstrated the
|
|
inability of human reason to affirm the existence of a Supreme Being
|
|
must be alike sufficient to prove the invalidity of its denial. For it
|
|
is impossible to gain from the pure speculation of reason
|
|
demonstration that there exists no Supreme Being, as the ground of all
|
|
that exists, or that this being possesses none of those properties
|
|
which we regard as analogical with the dynamical qualities of a
|
|
thinking being, or that, as the anthropomorphists would have us
|
|
believe, it is subject to all the limitations which sensibility
|
|
imposes upon those intelligences which exist in the world of
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
A Supreme Being is, therefore, for the speculative reason, a mere
|
|
ideal, though a faultless one- a conception which perfects and
|
|
crowns the system of human cognition, but the objective reality of
|
|
which can neither be proved nor disproved by pure reason. If this
|
|
defect is ever supplied by a moral theology, the problematic
|
|
transcendental theology which has preceded, will have been at least
|
|
serviceable as demonstrating the mental necessity existing for the
|
|
conception, by the complete determination of it which it has
|
|
furnished, and the ceaseless testing of the conclusions of a reason
|
|
often deceived by sense, and not always in harmony with its own ideas.
|
|
The attributes of necessity, infinitude, unity, existence apart from
|
|
the world (and not as a world soul), eternity (free from conditions of
|
|
time), omnipresence (free from conditions of space), omnipotence,
|
|
and others, are pure transcendental predicates; and thus the
|
|
accurate conception of a Supreme Being, which every theology requires,
|
|
is furnished by transcendental theology alone.
|
|
APPENDIX
|
|
|
|
APPENDIX.
|
|
|
|
Of the Regulative Employment of the Ideas of
|
|
|
|
Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
The result of all the dialectical attempts of pure reason not only
|
|
confirms the truth of what we have already proved in our
|
|
Transcendental Analytic, namely, that all inferences which would
|
|
lead us beyond the limits of experience are fallacious and groundless,
|
|
but it at the same time teaches us this important lesson, that human
|
|
reason has a natural inclination to overstep these limits, and that
|
|
transcendental ideas are as much the natural property of the reason as
|
|
categories are of the understanding. There exists this difference,
|
|
however, that while the categories never mislead us, outward objects
|
|
being always in perfect harmony therewith, ideas are the parents of
|
|
irresistible illusions, the severest and most subtle criticism being
|
|
required to save us from the fallacies which they induce.
|
|
|
|
Whatever is grounded in the nature of our powers will be found to be
|
|
in harmony with the final purpose and proper employment of these
|
|
powers, when once we have discovered their true direction and aim.
|
|
We are entitled to suppose, therefore, that there exists a mode of
|
|
employing transcendental ideas which is proper and immanent; although,
|
|
when we mistake their meaning, and regard them as conceptions of
|
|
actual things, their mode of application is transcendent and delusive.
|
|
For it is not the idea itself, but only the employment of the idea
|
|
in relation to possible experience, that is transcendent or
|
|
immanent. An idea is employed transcendently, when it is applied to an
|
|
object falsely believed to be adequate with and to correspond to it;
|
|
imminently, when it is applied solely to the employment of the
|
|
understanding in the sphere of experience. Thus all errors of
|
|
subreptio- of misapplication, are to be ascribed to defects of
|
|
judgement, and not to understanding or reason.
|
|
|
|
Reason never has an immediate relation to an object; it relates
|
|
immediately to the understanding alone. It is only through the
|
|
understanding that it can be employed in the field of experience. It
|
|
does not form conceptions of objects, it merely arranges them and
|
|
gives to them that unity which they are capable of possessing when the
|
|
sphere of their application has been extended as widely as possible.
|
|
Reason avails itself of the conception of the understanding for the
|
|
sole purpose of producing totality in the different series. This
|
|
totality the understanding does not concern itself with; its only
|
|
occupation is the connection of experiences, by which series of
|
|
conditions in accordance with conceptions are established. The
|
|
object of reason is, therefore, the understanding and its proper
|
|
destination. As the latter brings unity into the diversity of
|
|
objects by means of its conceptions, so the former brings unity into
|
|
the diversity of conceptions by means of ideas; as it sets the final
|
|
aim of a collective unity to the operations of the understanding,
|
|
which without this occupies itself with a distributive unity alone.
|
|
|
|
I accordingly maintain that transcendental ideas can never be
|
|
employed as constitutive ideas, that they cannot be conceptions of
|
|
objects, and that, when thus considered, they assume a fallacious
|
|
and dialectical character. But, on the other hand, they are capable of
|
|
an admirable and indispensably necessary application to objects- as
|
|
regulative ideas, directing the understanding to a certain aim, the
|
|
guiding lines towards which all its laws follow, and in which they all
|
|
meet in one point. This point- though a mere idea (focus imaginarius),
|
|
that is, not a point from which the conceptions of the understanding
|
|
do really proceed, for it lies beyond the sphere of possible
|
|
experience- serves, notwithstanding, to give to these conceptions
|
|
the greatest possible unity combined with the greatest possible
|
|
extension. Hence arises the natural illusion which induces us to
|
|
believe that these lines proceed from an object which lies out of
|
|
the sphere of empirical cognition, just as objects reflected in a
|
|
mirror appear to be behind it. But this illusion- which we may
|
|
hinder from imposing upon us- is necessary and unavoidable, if we
|
|
desire to see, not only those objects which lie before us, but those
|
|
which are at a great distance behind us; that is to say, when, in
|
|
the present case, we direct the aims of the understanding, beyond
|
|
every given experience, towards an extension as great as can
|
|
possibly be attained.
|
|
|
|
If we review our cognitions in their entire extent, we shall find
|
|
that the peculiar business of reason is to arrange them into a system,
|
|
that is to say, to give them connection according to a principle. This
|
|
unity presupposes an idea- the idea of the form of a whole (of
|
|
cognition), preceding the determinate cognition of the parts, and
|
|
containing the conditions which determine a priori to every part its
|
|
place and relation to the other parts of the whole system. This
|
|
idea, accordingly, demands complete unity in the cognition of the
|
|
understanding- not the unity of a contingent aggregate, but that of
|
|
a system connected according to necessary laws. It cannot be
|
|
affirmed with propriety that this idea is a conception of an object;
|
|
it is merely a conception of the complete unity of the conceptions
|
|
of objects, in so far as this unity is available to the
|
|
understanding as a rule. Such conceptions of reason are not derived
|
|
from nature; on the contrary, we employ them for the interrogation and
|
|
investigation of nature, and regard our cognition as defective so long
|
|
as it is not adequate to them. We admit that such a thing as pure
|
|
earth, pure water, or pure air, is not to be discovered. And yet we
|
|
require these conceptions (which have their origin in the reason, so
|
|
far as regards their absolute purity and completeness) for the purpose
|
|
of determining the share which each of these natural causes has in
|
|
every phenomenon. Thus the different kinds of matter are all ref erred
|
|
to earths, as mere weight; to salts and inflammable bodies, as pure
|
|
force; and finally, to water and air, as the vehicula of the former,
|
|
or the machines employed by them in their operations- for the
|
|
purpose of explaining the chemical action and reaction of bodies in
|
|
accordance with the idea of a mechanism. For, although not actually so
|
|
expressed, the influence of such ideas of reason is very observable in
|
|
the procedure of natural philosophers.
|
|
|
|
If reason is the faculty of deducing the particular from the
|
|
general, and if the general be certain in se and given, it is only
|
|
necessary that the judgement should subsume the particular under the
|
|
general, the particular being thus necessarily determined. I shall
|
|
term this the demonstrative or apodeictic employment of reason. If,
|
|
however, the general is admitted as problematical only, and is a
|
|
mere idea, the particular case is certain, but the universality of the
|
|
rule which applies to this particular case remains a problem.
|
|
Several particular cases, the certainty of which is beyond doubt,
|
|
are then taken and examined, for the purpose of discovering whether
|
|
the rule is applicable to them; and if it appears that all the
|
|
particular cases which can be collected follow from the rule, its
|
|
universality is inferred, and at the same time, all the causes which
|
|
have not, or cannot be presented to our observation, are concluded
|
|
to be of the same character with those which we have observed. This
|
|
I shall term the hypothetical employment of the reason.
|
|
|
|
The hypothetical exercise of reason by the aid of ideas employed
|
|
as problematical conceptions is properly not constitutive. That is
|
|
to say, if we consider the subject strictly, the truth of the rule,
|
|
which has been employed as an hypothesis, does not follow from the use
|
|
that is made of it by reason. For how can we know all the possible
|
|
cases that may arise? some of which may, however, prove exceptions
|
|
to the universality of the rule. This employment of reason is merely
|
|
regulative, and its sole aim is the introduction of unity into the
|
|
aggregate of our particular cognitions, and thereby the
|
|
approximating of the rule to universality.
|
|
|
|
The object of the hypothetical employment of reason is therefore the
|
|
systematic unity of cognitions; and this unity is the criterion of the
|
|
truth of a rule. On the other hand, this systematic unity- as a mere
|
|
idea- is in fact merely a unity projected, not to be regarded as
|
|
given, but only in the light of a problem- a problem which serves,
|
|
however, as a principle for the various and particular exercise of the
|
|
understanding in experience, directs it with regard to those cases
|
|
which are not presented to our observation, and introduces harmony and
|
|
consistency into all its operations.
|
|
|
|
All that we can be certain of from the above considerations is
|
|
that this systematic unity is a logical principle, whose aim is to
|
|
assist the understanding, where it cannot of itself attain to rules,
|
|
by means of ideas, to bring all these various rules under one
|
|
principle, and thus to ensure the most complete consistency and
|
|
connection that can be attained. But the assertion that objects and
|
|
the understanding by which they are cognized are so constituted as
|
|
to be determined to systematic unity, that this may be postulated a
|
|
priori, without any reference to the interest of reason, and that we
|
|
are justified in declaring all possible cognitions- empirical and
|
|
others- to possess systematic unity, and to be subject to general
|
|
principles from which, notwithstanding their various character, they
|
|
are all derivable such an assertion can be founded only upon a
|
|
transcendental principle of reason, which would render this systematic
|
|
unity not subjectively and logically- in its character of a method,
|
|
but objectively necessary.
|
|
|
|
We shall illustrate this by an example. The conceptions of the
|
|
understanding make us acquainted, among many other kinds of unity,
|
|
with that of the causality of a substance, which is termed power.
|
|
The different phenomenal manifestations of the same substance appear
|
|
at first view to be so very dissimilar that we are inclined to
|
|
assume the existence of just as many different powers as there are
|
|
different effects- as, in the case of the human mind, we have feeling,
|
|
consciousness, imagination, memory, wit, analysis, pleasure, desire
|
|
and so on. Now we are required by a logical maxim to reduce these
|
|
differences to as small a number as possible, by comparing them and
|
|
discovering the hidden identity which exists. We must inquire, for
|
|
example, whether or not imagination (connected with consciousness),
|
|
memory, wit, and analysis are not merely different forms of
|
|
understanding and reason. The idea of a fundamental power, the
|
|
existence of which no effort of logic can assure us of, is the problem
|
|
to be solved, for the systematic representation of the existing
|
|
variety of powers. The logical principle of reason requires us to
|
|
produce as great a unity as is possible in the system of our
|
|
cognitions; and the more the phenomena of this and the other power are
|
|
found to be identical, the more probable does it become, that they are
|
|
nothing but different manifestations of one and the same power,
|
|
which may be called, relatively speaking, a fundamental power. And
|
|
so with other cases.
|
|
|
|
These relatively fundamental powers must again be compared with each
|
|
other, to discover, if possible, the one radical and absolutely
|
|
fundamental power of which they are but the manifestations. But this
|
|
unity is purely hypothetical. It is not maintained, that this unity
|
|
does really exist, but that we must, in the interest of reason, that
|
|
is, for the establishment of principles for the various rules
|
|
presented by experience, try to discover and introduce it, so far as
|
|
is practicable, into the sphere of our cognitions.
|
|
|
|
But the transcendental employment of the understanding would lead us
|
|
to believe that this idea of a fundamental power is not problematical,
|
|
but that it possesses objective reality, and thus the systematic unity
|
|
of the various powers or forces in a substance is demanded by the
|
|
understanding and erected into an apodeictic or necessary principle.
|
|
For, without having attempted to discover the unity of the various
|
|
powers existing in nature, nay, even after all our attempts have
|
|
failed, we notwithstanding presuppose that it does exist, and may
|
|
be, sooner or later, discovered. And this reason does, not only, as in
|
|
the case above adduced, with regard to the unity of substance, but
|
|
where many substances, although all to a certain extent homogeneous,
|
|
are discoverable, as in the case of matter in general. Here also
|
|
does reason presuppose the existence of the systematic unity of
|
|
various powers- inasmuch as particular laws of nature are
|
|
subordinate to general laws; and parsimony in principles is not merely
|
|
an economical principle of reason, but an essential law of nature.
|
|
|
|
We cannot understand, in fact, how a logical principle of unity
|
|
can of right exist, unless we presuppose a transcendental principle,
|
|
by which such a systematic unit- as a property of objects
|
|
themselves- is regarded as necessary a priori. For with what right can
|
|
reason, in its logical exercise, require us to regard the variety of
|
|
forces which nature displays, as in effect a disguised unity, and to
|
|
deduce them from one fundamental force or power, when she is free to
|
|
admit that it is just as possible that all forces should be
|
|
different in kind, and that a systematic unity is not conformable to
|
|
the design of nature? In this view of the case, reason would be
|
|
proceeding in direct opposition to her own destination, by setting
|
|
as an aim an idea which entirely conflicts with the procedure and
|
|
arrangement of nature. Neither can we assert that reason has
|
|
previously inferred this unity from the contingent nature of
|
|
phenomena. For the law of reason which requires us to seek for this
|
|
unity is a necessary law, inasmuch as without it we should not possess
|
|
a faculty of reason, nor without reason a consistent and
|
|
self-accordant mode of employing the understanding, nor, in the
|
|
absence of this, any proper and sufficient criterion of empirical
|
|
truth. In relation to this criterion, therefore, we must suppose the
|
|
idea of the systematic unity of nature to possess objective validity
|
|
and necessity.
|
|
|
|
We find this transcendental presupposition lurking in different
|
|
forms in the principles of philosophers, although they have neither
|
|
recognized it nor confessed to themselves its presence. That the
|
|
diversities of individual things do not exclude identity of species,
|
|
that the various species must be considered as merely different
|
|
determinations of a few genera, and these again as divisions of
|
|
still higher races, and so on- that, accordingly, a certain systematic
|
|
unity of all possible empirical conceptions, in so far as they can
|
|
be deduced from higher and more general conceptions, must be sought
|
|
for, is a scholastic maxim or logical principle, without which
|
|
reason could not be employed by us. For we can infer the particular
|
|
from the general, only in so far as general properties of things
|
|
constitute the foundation upon which the particular rest.
|
|
|
|
That the same unity exists in nature is presupposed by
|
|
philosophers in the well-known scholastic maxim, which forbids us
|
|
unnecessarily to augment the number of entities or principles (entia
|
|
praeter necessitatem non esse multiplicanda). This maxim asserts
|
|
that nature herself assists in the establishment of this unity of
|
|
reason, and that the seemingly infinite diversity of phenomena
|
|
should not deter us from the expectation of discovering beneath this
|
|
diversity a unity of fundamental properties, of which the aforesaid
|
|
variety is but a more or less determined form. This unity, although
|
|
a mere idea, thinkers have found it necessary rather to moderate the
|
|
desire than to encourage it. It was considered a great step when
|
|
chemists were able to reduce all salts to two main genera- acids and
|
|
alkalis; and they regard this difference as itself a mere variety,
|
|
or different manifestation of one and the same fundamental material.
|
|
The different kinds of earths (stones and even metals) chemists have
|
|
endeavoured to reduce to three, and afterwards to two; but still,
|
|
not content with this advance, they cannot but think that behind these
|
|
diversities there lurks but one genus- nay, that even salts and earths
|
|
have a common principle. It might be conjectured that this is merely
|
|
an economical plan of reason, for the purpose of sparing itself
|
|
trouble, and an attempt of a purely hypothetical character, which,
|
|
when successful, gives an appearance of probability to the principle
|
|
of explanation employed by the reason. But a selfish purpose of this
|
|
kind is easily to be distinguished from the idea, according to which
|
|
every one presupposes that this unity is in accordance with the laws
|
|
of nature, and that reason does not in this case request, but
|
|
requires, although we are quite unable to determine the proper
|
|
limits of this unity.
|
|
|
|
If the diversity existing in phenomena- a diversity not of form (for
|
|
in this they may be similar) but of content- were so great that the
|
|
subtlest human reason could never by comparison discover in them the
|
|
least similarity (which is not impossible), in this case the logical
|
|
law of genera would be without foundation, the conception of a
|
|
genus, nay, all general conceptions would be impossible, and the
|
|
faculty of the understanding, the exercise of which is restricted to
|
|
the world of conceptions, could not exist. The logical principle of
|
|
genera, accordingly, if it is to be applied to nature (by which I mean
|
|
objects presented to our senses), presupposes a transcendental
|
|
principle. In accordance with this principle, homogeneity is
|
|
necessarily presupposed in the variety of phenomena (although we are
|
|
unable to determine a priori the degree of this homogeneity),
|
|
because without it no empirical conceptions, and consequently no
|
|
experience, would be possible.
|
|
|
|
The logical principle of genera, which demands identity in
|
|
phenomena, is balanced by another principle- that of species, which
|
|
requires variety and diversity in things, notwithstanding their
|
|
accordance in the same genus, and directs the understanding to
|
|
attend to the one no less than to the other. This principle (of the
|
|
faculty of distinction) acts as a check upon the reason and reason
|
|
exhibits in this respect a double and conflicting interest- on the one
|
|
hand, the interest in the extent (the interest of generality) in
|
|
relation to genera; on the other, that of the content (the interest of
|
|
individuality) in relation to the variety of species. In the former
|
|
case, the understanding cogitates more under its conceptions, in the
|
|
latter it cogitates more in them. This distinction manifests itself
|
|
likewise in the habits of thought peculiar to natural philosophers,
|
|
some of whom- the remarkably speculative heads- may be said to be
|
|
hostile to heterogeneity in phenomena, and have their eyes always
|
|
fixed on the unity of genera, while others- with a strong empirical
|
|
tendency- aim unceasingly at the analysis of phenomena, and almost
|
|
destroy in us the hope of ever being able to estimate the character of
|
|
these according to general principles.
|
|
|
|
The latter mode of thought is evidently based upon a logical
|
|
principle, the aim of which is the systematic completeness of all
|
|
cognitions. This principle authorizes me, beginning at the genus, to
|
|
descend to the various and diverse contained under it; and in this way
|
|
extension, as in the former case unity, is assured to the system.
|
|
For if we merely examine the sphere of the conception which
|
|
indicates a genus, we cannot discover how far it is possible to
|
|
proceed in the division of that sphere; just as it is impossible, from
|
|
the consideration of the space occupied by matter, to determine how
|
|
far we can proceed in the division of it. Hence every genus must
|
|
contain different species, and these again different subspecies; and
|
|
as each of the latter must itself contain a sphere (must be of a
|
|
certain extent, as a conceptus communis), reason demands that no
|
|
species or sub-species is to be considered as the lowest possible. For
|
|
a species or sub-species, being always a conception, which contains
|
|
only what is common to a number of different things, does not
|
|
completely determine any individual thing, or relate immediately to
|
|
it, and must consequently contain other conceptions, that is, other
|
|
sub-species under it. This law of specification may be thus expressed:
|
|
entium varietates non temere sunt minuendae.
|
|
|
|
But it is easy to see that this logical law would likewise be
|
|
without sense or application, were it not based upon a
|
|
transcendental law of specification, which certainly does not
|
|
require that the differences existing phenomena should be infinite
|
|
in number, for the logical principle, which merely maintains the
|
|
indeterminateness of the logical sphere of a conception, in relation
|
|
to its possible division, does not authorize this statement; while
|
|
it does impose upon the understanding the duty of searching for
|
|
subspecies to every species, and minor differences in every
|
|
difference. For, were there no lower conceptions, neither could
|
|
there be any higher. Now the understanding cognizes only by means of
|
|
conceptions; consequently, how far soever it may proceed in
|
|
division, never by mere intuition, but always by lower and lower
|
|
conceptions. The cognition of phenomena in their complete
|
|
determination (which is possible only by means of the understanding)
|
|
requires an unceasingly continued specification of conceptions, and
|
|
a progression to ever smaller differences, of which abstraction bad
|
|
been made in the conception of the species, and still more in that
|
|
of the genus.
|
|
|
|
This law of specification cannot be deduced from experience; it
|
|
can never present us with a principle of so universal an
|
|
application. Empirical specification very soon stops in its
|
|
distinction of diversities, and requires the guidance of the
|
|
transcendental law, as a principle of the reason- a law which
|
|
imposes on us the necessity of never ceasing in our search for
|
|
differences, even although these may not present themselves to the
|
|
senses. That absorbent earths are of different kinds could only be
|
|
discovered by obeying the anticipatory law of reason, which imposes
|
|
upon the understanding the task of discovering the differences
|
|
existing between these earths, and supposes that nature is richer in
|
|
substances than our senses would indicate. The faculty of the
|
|
understanding belongs to us just as much under the presupposition of
|
|
differences in the objects of nature, as under the condition that
|
|
these objects are homogeneous, because we could not possess
|
|
conceptions, nor make any use of our understanding, were not the
|
|
phenomena included under these conceptions in some respects
|
|
dissimilar, as well as similar, in their character.
|
|
|
|
Reason thus prepares the sphere of the understanding for the
|
|
operations of this faculty: 1. By the principle of the homogeneity
|
|
of the diverse in higher genera; 2. By the principle of the variety of
|
|
the homogeneous in lower species; and, to complete the systematic
|
|
unity, it adds, 3. A law of the affinity of all conceptions which
|
|
prescribes a continuous transition from one species to every other
|
|
by the gradual increase of diversity. We may term these the principles
|
|
of the homogeneity, the specification, and the continuity of forms.
|
|
The latter results from the union of the two former, inasmuch as we
|
|
regard the systematic connection as complete in thought, in the ascent
|
|
to higher genera, as well as in the descent to lower species. For
|
|
all diversities must be related to each other, as they all spring from
|
|
one highest genus, descending through the different gradations of a
|
|
more and more extended determination.
|
|
|
|
We may illustrate the systematic unity produced by the three logical
|
|
principles in the following manner. Every conception may be regarded
|
|
as a point, which, as the standpoint of a spectator, has a certain
|
|
horizon, which may be said to enclose a number of things that may be
|
|
viewed, so to speak, from that centre. Within this horizon there
|
|
must be an infinite number of other points, each of which has its
|
|
own horizon, smaller and more circumscribed; in other words, every
|
|
species contains sub-species, according to the principle of
|
|
specification, and the logical horizon consists of smaller horizons
|
|
(subspecies), but not of points (individuals), which possess no
|
|
extent. But different horizons or genera, which include under them
|
|
so many conceptions, may have one common horizon, from which, as
|
|
from a mid-point, they may be surveyed; and we may proceed thus,
|
|
till we arrive at the highest genus, or universal and true horizon,
|
|
which is determined by the highest conception, and which contains
|
|
under itself all differences and varieties, as genera, species, and
|
|
subspecies.
|
|
|
|
To this highest standpoint I am conducted by the law of homogeneity,
|
|
as to all lower and more variously-determined conceptions by the law
|
|
of specification. Now as in this way there exists no void in the whole
|
|
extent of all possible conceptions, and as out of the sphere of
|
|
these the mind can discover nothing, there arises from the
|
|
presupposition of the universal horizon above mentioned, and its
|
|
complete division, the principle: Non datur vacuum formarum. This
|
|
principle asserts that there are not different primitive and highest
|
|
genera, which stand isolated, so to speak, from each other, but all
|
|
the various genera are mere divisions and limitations of one highest
|
|
and universal genus; and hence follows immediately the principle:
|
|
Datur continuum formarum. This principle indicates that all
|
|
differences of species limit each other, and do not admit of
|
|
transition from one to another by a saltus, but only through smaller
|
|
degrees of the difference between the one species and the other. In
|
|
one word, there are no species or sub-species which (in the view of
|
|
reason) are the nearest possible to each other; intermediate species
|
|
or sub-species being always possible, the difference of which from
|
|
each of the former is always smaller than the difference existing
|
|
between these.
|
|
|
|
The first law, therefore, directs us to avoid the notion that
|
|
there exist different primal genera, and enounces the fact of
|
|
perfect homogeneity; the second imposes a check upon this tendency
|
|
to unity and prescribes the distinction of sub-species, before
|
|
proceeding to apply our general conceptions to individuals. The
|
|
third unites both the former, by enouncing the fact of homogeneity
|
|
as existing even in the most various diversity, by means of the
|
|
gradual transition from one species to another. Thus it indicates a
|
|
relationship between the different branches or species, in so far as
|
|
they all spring from the same stem.
|
|
|
|
But this logical law of the continuum specierum (formarum logicarum)
|
|
presupposes a transcendental principle (lex continui in natura),
|
|
without which the understanding might be led into error, by
|
|
following the guidance of the former, and thus perhaps pursuing a path
|
|
contrary to that prescribed by nature. This law must, consequently, be
|
|
based upon pure transcendental, and not upon empirical,
|
|
considerations. For, in the latter case, it would come later than
|
|
the system; whereas it is really itself the parent of all that is
|
|
systematic in our cognition of nature. These principles are not mere
|
|
hypotheses employed for the purpose of experimenting upon nature;
|
|
although when any such connection is discovered, it forms a solid
|
|
ground for regarding the hypothetical unity as valid in the sphere
|
|
of nature- and thus they are in this respect not without their use.
|
|
But we go farther, and maintain that it is manifest that these
|
|
principles of parsimony in fundamental causes, variety in effects, and
|
|
affinity in phenomena, are in accordance both with reason and
|
|
nature, and that they are not mere methods or plans devised for the
|
|
purpose of assisting us in our observation of the external world.
|
|
|
|
But it is plain that this continuity of forms is a mere idea, to
|
|
which no adequate object can be discovered in experience. And this for
|
|
two reasons. First, because the species in nature are really
|
|
divided, and hence form quanta discreta; and, if the gradual
|
|
progression through their affinity were continuous, the intermediate
|
|
members lying between two given species must be infinite in number,
|
|
which is impossible. Secondly, because we cannot make any
|
|
determinate empirical use of this law, inasmuch as it does not present
|
|
us with any criterion of affinity which could aid us in determining
|
|
how far we ought to pursue the graduation of differences: it merely
|
|
contains a general indication that it is our duty to seek for and,
|
|
if possible, to discover them.
|
|
|
|
When we arrange these principles of systematic unity in the order
|
|
conformable to their employment in experience, they will stand thus:
|
|
Variety, Affinity, Unity, each of them, as ideas, being taken in the
|
|
highest degree of their completeness. Reason presupposes the existence
|
|
of cognitions of the understanding, which have a direct relation to
|
|
experience, and aims at the ideal unity of these cognitions- a unity
|
|
which far transcends all experience or empirical notions. The affinity
|
|
of the diverse, notwithstanding the differences existing between its
|
|
parts, has a relation to things, but a still closer one to the mere
|
|
properties and powers of things. For example, imperfect experience may
|
|
represent the orbits of the planets as circular. But we discover
|
|
variations from this course, and we proceed to suppose that the
|
|
planets revolve in a path which, if not a circle, is of a character
|
|
very similar to it. That is to say, the movements of those planets
|
|
which do not form a circle will approximate more or less to the
|
|
properties of a circle, and probably form an ellipse. The paths of
|
|
comets exhibit still greater variations, for, so far as our
|
|
observation extends, they do not return upon their own course in a
|
|
circle or ellipse. But we proceed to the conjecture that comets
|
|
describe a parabola, a figure which is closely allied to the
|
|
ellipse. In fact, a parabola is merely an ellipse, with its longer
|
|
axis produced to an indefinite extent. Thus these principles conduct
|
|
us to a unity in the genera of the forms of these orbits, and,
|
|
proceeding farther, to a unity as regards the cause of the motions
|
|
of the heavenly bodies- that is, gravitation. But we go on extending
|
|
our conquests over nature, and endeavour to explain all seeming
|
|
deviations from these rules, and even make additions to our system
|
|
which no experience can ever substantiate- for example, the theory, in
|
|
affinity with that of ellipses, of hyperbolic paths of comets,
|
|
pursuing which, these bodies leave our solar system and, passing
|
|
from sun to sun, unite the most distant parts of the infinite
|
|
universe, which is held together by the same moving power.
|
|
|
|
The most remarkable circumstance connected with these principles
|
|
is that they seem to be transcendental, and, although only
|
|
containing ideas for the guidance of the empirical exercise of reason,
|
|
and although this empirical employment stands to these ideas in an
|
|
asymptotic relation alone (to use a mathematical term), that is,
|
|
continually approximate, without ever being able to attain to them,
|
|
they possess, notwithstanding, as a priori synthetical propositions,
|
|
objective though undetermined validity, and are available as rules for
|
|
possible experience. In the elaboration of our experience, they may
|
|
also be employed with great advantage, as heuristic* principles. A
|
|
transcendental deduction of them cannot be made; such a deduction
|
|
being always impossible in the case of ideas, as has been already
|
|
shown.
|
|
|
|
*From the Greek, eurhioko.
|
|
|
|
We distinguished, in the Transcendental Analytic, the dynamical
|
|
principles of the understanding, which are regulative principles of
|
|
intuition, from the mathematical, which are constitutive principles of
|
|
intuition. These dynamical laws are, however, constitutive in relation
|
|
to experience, inasmuch as they render the conceptions without which
|
|
experience could not exist possible a priori. But the principles of
|
|
pure reason cannot be constitutive even in regard to empirical
|
|
conceptions, because no sensuous schema corresponding to them can be
|
|
discovered, and they cannot therefore have an object in concreto. Now,
|
|
if I grant that they cannot be employed in the sphere of experience,
|
|
as constitutive principles, how shall I secure for them employment and
|
|
objective validity as regulative principles, and in what way can
|
|
they be so employed?
|
|
|
|
The understanding is the object of reason, as sensibility is the
|
|
object of the understanding. The production of systematic unity in all
|
|
the empirical operations of the understanding is the proper occupation
|
|
of reason; just as it is the business of the understanding to
|
|
connect the various content of phenomena by means of conceptions,
|
|
and subject them to empirical laws. But the operations of the
|
|
understanding are, without the schemata of sensibility,
|
|
undetermined; and, in the same manner, the unity of reason is
|
|
perfectly undetermined as regards the conditions under which, and
|
|
the extent to which, the understanding ought to carry the systematic
|
|
connection of its conceptions. But, although it is impossible to
|
|
discover in intuition a schema for the complete systematic unity of
|
|
all the conceptions of the understanding, there must be some
|
|
analogon of this schema. This analogon is the idea of the maximum of
|
|
the division and the connection of our cognition in one principle. For
|
|
we may have a determinate notion of a maximum and an absolutely
|
|
perfect, all the restrictive conditions which are connected with an
|
|
indeterminate and various content having been abstracted. Thus the
|
|
idea of reason is analogous with a sensuous schema, with this
|
|
difference, that the application of the categories to the schema of
|
|
reason does not present a cognition of any object (as is the case with
|
|
the application of the categories to sensuous schemata), but merely
|
|
provides us with a rule or principle for the systematic unity of the
|
|
exercise of the understanding. Now, as every principle which imposes
|
|
upon the exercise of the understanding a priori compliance with the
|
|
rule of systematic unity also relates, although only in an indirect
|
|
manner, to an object of experience, the principles of pure reason will
|
|
also possess objective reality and validity in relation to experience.
|
|
But they will not aim at determining our knowledge in regard to any
|
|
empirical object; they will merely indicate the procedure, following
|
|
which the empirical and determinate exercise of the understanding
|
|
may be in complete harmony and connection with itself- a result
|
|
which is produced by its being brought into harmony with the principle
|
|
of systematic unity, so far as that is possible, and deduced from it.
|
|
|
|
I term all subjective principles, which are not derived from
|
|
observation of the constitution of an object, but from the interest
|
|
which Reason has in producing a certain completeness in her
|
|
cognition of that object, maxims of reason. Thus there are maxims of
|
|
speculative reason, which are based solely upon its speculative
|
|
interest, although they appear to be objective principles.
|
|
|
|
When principles which are really regulative are regarded as
|
|
constitutive, and employed as objective principles, contradictions
|
|
must arise; but if they are considered as mere maxims, there is no
|
|
room for contradictions of any kind, as they then merely indicate
|
|
the different interests of reason, which occasion differences in the
|
|
mode of thought. In effect, Reason has only one single interest, and
|
|
the seeming contradiction existing between her maxims merely indicates
|
|
a difference in, and a reciprocal limitation of, the methods by
|
|
which this interest is satisfied.
|
|
|
|
This reasoner has at heart the interest of diversity- in
|
|
accordance with the principle of specification; another, the
|
|
interest of unity- in accordance with the principle of aggregation.
|
|
Each believes that his judgement rests upon a thorough insight into
|
|
the subject he is examining, and yet it has been influenced solely
|
|
by a greater or less degree of adherence to some one of the two
|
|
principles, neither of which are objective, but originate solely
|
|
from the interest of reason, and on this account to be termed maxims
|
|
rather than principles. When I observe intelligent men disputing about
|
|
the distinctive characteristics of men, animals, or plants, and even
|
|
of minerals, those on the one side assuming the existence of certain
|
|
national characteristics, certain well-defined and hereditary
|
|
distinctions of family, race, and so on, while the other side maintain
|
|
that nature has endowed all races of men with the same faculties and
|
|
dispositions, and that all differences are but the result of
|
|
external and accidental circumstances- I have only to consider for a
|
|
moment the real nature of the subject of discussion, to arrive at
|
|
the conclusion that it is a subject far too deep for us to judge of,
|
|
and that there is little probability of either party being able to
|
|
speak from a perfect insight into and understanding of the nature of
|
|
the subject itself. Both have, in reality, been struggling for the
|
|
twofold interest of reason; the one maintaining the one interest,
|
|
the other the other. But this difference between the maxims of
|
|
diversity and unity may easily be reconciled and adjusted; although,
|
|
so long as they are regarded as objective principles, they must
|
|
occasion not only contradictions and polemic, but place hinderances in
|
|
the way of the advancement of truth, until some means is discovered of
|
|
reconciling these conflicting interests, and bringing reason into
|
|
union and harmony with itself.
|
|
|
|
The same is the case with the so-called law discovered by
|
|
Leibnitz, and supported with remarkable ability by Bonnet- the law
|
|
of the continuous gradation of created beings, which is nothing more
|
|
than an inference from the principle of affinity; for observation
|
|
and study of the order of nature could never present it to the mind as
|
|
an objective truth. The steps of this ladder, as they appear in
|
|
experience, are too far apart from each other, and the so-called petty
|
|
differences between different kinds of animals are in nature
|
|
commonly so wide separations that no confidence can be placed in
|
|
such views (particularly when we reflect on the great variety of
|
|
things, and the ease with which we can discover resemblances), and
|
|
no faith in the laws which are said to express the aims and purposes
|
|
of nature. On the other hand, the method of investigating the order of
|
|
nature in the light of this principle, and the maxim which requires us
|
|
to regard this order- it being still undetermined how far it
|
|
extends- as really existing in nature, is beyond doubt a legitimate
|
|
and excellent principle of reason- a principle which extends farther
|
|
than any experience or observation of ours and which, without giving
|
|
us any positive knowledge of anything in the region of experience,
|
|
guides us to the goal of systematic unity.
|
|
|
|
Of the Ultimate End of the Natural Dialectic of Human Reason.
|
|
|
|
The ideas of pure reason cannot be, of themselves and in their own
|
|
nature, dialectical; it is from their misemployment alone that
|
|
fallacies and illusions arise. For they originate in the nature of
|
|
reason itself, and it is impossible that this supreme tribunal for all
|
|
the rights and claims of speculation should be itself undeserving of
|
|
confidence and promotive of error. It is to be expected, therefore,
|
|
that these ideas have a genuine and legitimate aim. It is true, the
|
|
mob of sophists raise against reason the cry of inconsistency and
|
|
contradiction, and affect to despise the government of that faculty,
|
|
because they cannot understand its constitution, while it is to its
|
|
beneficial influences alone that they owe the position and the
|
|
intelligence which enable them to criticize and to blame its
|
|
procedure.
|
|
|
|
We cannot employ an a priori conception with certainty, until we
|
|
have made a transcendental deduction therefore. The ideas of pure
|
|
reason do not admit of the same kind of deduction as the categories.
|
|
But if they are to possess the least objective validity, and to
|
|
represent anything but mere creations of thought (entia rationis
|
|
ratiocinantis), a deduction of them must be possible. This deduction
|
|
will complete the critical task imposed upon pure reason; and it is to
|
|
this part Of our labours that we now proceed.
|
|
|
|
There is a great difference between a thing's being presented to the
|
|
mind as an object in an absolute sense, or merely as an ideal
|
|
object. In the former case I employ my conceptions to determine the
|
|
object; in the latter case nothing is present to the mind but a mere
|
|
schema, which does not relate directly to an object, not even in a
|
|
hypothetical sense, but which is useful only for the purpose of
|
|
representing other objects to the mind, in a mediate and indirect
|
|
manner, by means of their relation to the idea in the intellect.
|
|
Thus I say the conception of a supreme intelligence is a mere idea;
|
|
that is to say, its objective reality does not consist in the fact
|
|
that it has an immediate relation to an object (for in this sense we
|
|
have no means of establishing its objective validity), it is merely
|
|
a schema constructed according to the necessary conditions of the
|
|
unity of reason- the schema of a thing in general, which is useful
|
|
towards the production of the highest degree of systematic unity in
|
|
the empirical exercise of reason, in which we deduce this or that
|
|
object of experience from the imaginary object of this idea, as the
|
|
ground or cause of the said object of experience. In this way, the
|
|
idea is properly a heuristic, and not an ostensive, conception; it
|
|
does not give us any information respecting the constitution of an
|
|
object, it merely indicates how, under the guidance of the idea, we
|
|
ought to investigate the constitution and the relations of objects
|
|
in the world of experience. Now, if it can be shown that the three
|
|
kinds of transcendental ideas (psychological, cosmological, and
|
|
theological), although not relating directly to any object nor
|
|
determining it, do nevertheless, on the supposition of the existence
|
|
of an ideal object, produce systematic unity in the laws of the
|
|
empirical employment of the reason, and extend our empirical
|
|
cognition, without ever being inconsistent or in opposition with it-
|
|
it must be a necessary maxim of reason to regulate its procedure
|
|
according to these ideas. And this forms the transcendental
|
|
deduction of all speculative ideas, not as constitutive principles
|
|
of the extension of our cognition beyond the limits of our experience,
|
|
but as regulative principles of the systematic unity of empirical
|
|
cognition, which is by the aid of these ideas arranged and emended
|
|
within its own proper limits, to an extent unattainable by the
|
|
operation of the principles of the understanding alone.
|
|
|
|
I shall make this plainer. Guided by the principles involved in
|
|
these ideas, we must, in the first place, so connect all the
|
|
phenomena, actions, and feelings of the mind, as if it were a simple
|
|
substance, which, endowed with personal identity, possesses a
|
|
permanent existence (in this life at least), while its states, among
|
|
which those of the body are to be included as external conditions, are
|
|
in continual change. Secondly, in cosmology, we must investigate the
|
|
conditions of all natural phenomena, internal as well as external,
|
|
as if they belonged to a chain infinite and without any prime or
|
|
supreme member, while we do not, on this account, deny the existence
|
|
of intelligible grounds of these phenomena, although we never employ
|
|
them to explain phenomena, for the simple reason that they are not
|
|
objects of our cognition. Thirdly, in the sphere of theology, we
|
|
must regard the whole system of possible experience as forming an
|
|
absolute, but dependent and sensuously-conditioned unity, and at the
|
|
same time as based upon a sole, supreme, and all-sufficient ground
|
|
existing apart from the world itself- a ground which is a
|
|
self-subsistent, primeval and creative reason, in relation to which we
|
|
so employ our reason in the field of experience, as if all objects
|
|
drew their origin from that archetype of all reason. In other words,
|
|
we ought not to deduce the internal phenomena of the mind from a
|
|
simple thinking substance, but deduce them from each other under the
|
|
guidance of the regulative idea of a simple being; we ought not to
|
|
deduce the phenomena, order, and unity of the universe from a
|
|
supreme intelligence, but merely draw from this idea of a supremely
|
|
wise cause the rules which must guide reason in its connection of
|
|
causes and effects.
|
|
|
|
Now there is nothing to hinder us from admitting these ideas to
|
|
possess an objective and hyperbolic existence, except the cosmological
|
|
ideas, which lead reason into an antinomy: the psychological and
|
|
theological ideas are not antinomial. They contain no contradiction;
|
|
and how, then, can any one dispute their objective reality, since he
|
|
who denies it knows as little about their possibility as we who
|
|
affirm? And yet, when we wish to admit the existence of a thing, it is
|
|
not sufficient to convince ourselves that there is no positive
|
|
obstacle in the way; for it cannot be allowable to regard mere
|
|
creations of thought, which transcend, though they do not
|
|
contradict, all our conceptions, as real and determinate objects,
|
|
solely upon the authority of a speculative reason striving to
|
|
compass its own aims. They cannot, therefore, be admitted to be real
|
|
in themselves; they can only possess a comparative reality- that of
|
|
a schema of the regulative principle of the systematic unity of all
|
|
cognition. They are to be regarded not as actual things, but as in
|
|
some measure analogous to them. We abstract from the object of the
|
|
idea all the conditions which limit the exercise of our understanding,
|
|
but which, on the other hand, are the sole conditions of our
|
|
possessing a determinate conception of any given thing. And thus we
|
|
cogitate a something, of the real nature of which we have not the
|
|
least conception, but which we represent to ourselves as standing in a
|
|
relation to the whole system of phenomena, analogous to that in
|
|
which phenomena stand to each other.
|
|
|
|
By admitting these ideal beings, we do not really extend our
|
|
cognitions beyond the objects of possible experience; we extend merely
|
|
the empirical unity of our experience, by the aid of systematic unity,
|
|
the schema of which is furnished by the idea, which is therefore
|
|
valid- not as a constitutive, but as a regulative principle. For
|
|
although we posit a thing corresponding to the idea- a something, an
|
|
actual existence- we do not on that account aim at the extension of
|
|
our cognition by means of transcendent conceptions. This existence
|
|
is purely ideal, and not objective; it is the mere expression of the
|
|
systematic unity which is to be the guide of reason in the field of
|
|
experience. There are no attempts made at deciding what the ground
|
|
of this unity may be, or what the real nature of this imaginary being.
|
|
|
|
Thus the transcendental and only determinate conception of God,
|
|
which is presented to us by speculative reason, is in the strictest
|
|
sense deistic. In other words, reason does not assure us of the
|
|
objective validity of the conception; it merely gives us the idea of
|
|
something, on which the supreme and necessary unity of all
|
|
experience is based. This something we cannot, following the analogy
|
|
of a real substance, cogitate otherwise than as the cause of all
|
|
things operating in accordance with rational laws, if we regard it
|
|
as an individual object; although we should rest contented with the
|
|
idea alone as a regulative principle of reason, and make no attempt at
|
|
completing the sum of the conditions imposed by thought. This
|
|
attempt is, indeed, inconsistent with the grand aim of complete
|
|
systematic unity in the sphere of cognition- a unity to which no
|
|
bounds are set by reason.
|
|
|
|
Hence it happens that, admitting a divine being, I can have no
|
|
conception of the internal possibility of its perfection, or of the
|
|
necessity of its existence. The only advantage of this admission is
|
|
that it enables me to answer all other questions relating to the
|
|
contingent, and to give reason the most complete satisfaction as
|
|
regards the unity which it aims at attaining in the world of
|
|
experience. But I cannot satisfy reason with regard to this hypothesis
|
|
itself; and this proves that it is not its intelligence and insight
|
|
into the subject, but its speculative interest alone which induces
|
|
it to proceed from a point lying far beyond the sphere of our
|
|
cognition, for the purpose of being able to consider all objects as
|
|
parts of a systematic whole.
|
|
|
|
Here a distinction presents itself, in regard to the way in which we
|
|
may cogitate a presupposition- a distinction which is somewhat subtle,
|
|
but of great importance in transcendental philosophy. I may have
|
|
sufficient grounds to admit something, or the existence of
|
|
something, in a relative point of view (suppositio relativa),
|
|
without being justified in admitting it in an absolute sense
|
|
(suppositio absoluta). This distinction is undoubtedly requisite, in
|
|
the case of a regulative principle, the necessity of which we
|
|
recognize, though we are ignorant of the source and cause of that
|
|
necessity, and which we assume to be based upon some ultimate
|
|
ground, for the purpose of being able to cogitate the universality
|
|
of the principle in a more determinate way. For example, I cogitate
|
|
the existence of a being corresponding to a pure transcendental
|
|
idea. But I cannot admit that this being exists absolutely and in
|
|
itself, because all of the conceptions by which I can cogitate an
|
|
object in a determinate manner fall short of assuring me of its
|
|
existence; nay, the conditions of the objective validity of my
|
|
conceptions are excluded by the idea- by the very fact of its being an
|
|
idea. The conceptions of reality, substance, causality, nay, even that
|
|
of necessity in existence, have no significance out of the sphere of
|
|
empirical cognition, and cannot, beyond that sphere, determine any
|
|
object. They may, accordingly, be employed to explain the
|
|
possibility of things in the world of sense, but they are utterly
|
|
inadequate to explain the possibility of the universe itself
|
|
considered as a whole; because in this case the ground of
|
|
explanation must lie out of and beyond the world, and cannot,
|
|
therefore, be an object of possible experience. Now, I may admit the
|
|
existence of an incomprehensible being of this nature- the object of a
|
|
mere idea, relatively to the world of sense; although I have no ground
|
|
to admit its existence absolutely and in itself. For if an idea
|
|
(that of a systematic and complete unity, of which I shall presently
|
|
speak more particularly) lies at the foundation of the most extended
|
|
empirical employment of reason, and if this idea cannot be
|
|
adequately represented in concreto, although it is indispensably
|
|
necessary for the approximation of empirical unity to the highest
|
|
possible degree- I am not only authorized, but compelled, to realize
|
|
this idea, that is, to posit a real object corresponding thereto.
|
|
But I cannot profess to know this object; it is to me merely a
|
|
something, to which, as the ground of systematic unity in cognition, I
|
|
attribute such properties as are analogous to the conceptions employed
|
|
by the understanding in the sphere of experience. Following the
|
|
analogy of the notions of reality, substance, causality, and
|
|
necessity, I cogitate a being, which possesses all these attributes in
|
|
the highest degree; and, as this idea is the offspring of my reason
|
|
alone, I cogitate this being as self-subsistent reason, and as the
|
|
cause of the universe operating by means of ideas of the greatest
|
|
possible harmony and unity. Thus I abstract all conditions that
|
|
would limit my idea, solely for the purpose of rendering systematic
|
|
unity possible in the world of empirical diversity, and thus
|
|
securing the widest possible extension for the exercise of reason in
|
|
that sphere. This I am enabled to do, by regarding all connections and
|
|
relations in the world of sense, as if they were the dispositions of a
|
|
supreme reason, of which our reason is but a faint image. I then
|
|
proceed to cogitate this Supreme Being by conceptions which have,
|
|
properly, no meaning or application, except in the world of sense. But
|
|
as I am authorized to employ the transcendental hypothesis of such a
|
|
being in a relative respect alone, that is, as the substratum of the
|
|
greatest possible unity in experience- I may attribute to a being
|
|
which I regard as distinct from the world, such properties as belong
|
|
solely to the sphere of sense and experience. For I do not desire, and
|
|
am not justified in desiring, to cognize this object of my idea, as it
|
|
exists in itself; for I possess no conceptions sufficient for or task,
|
|
those of reality, substance, causality, nay, even that of necessity in
|
|
existence, losing all significance, and becoming merely the signs of
|
|
conceptions, without content and without applicability, when I attempt
|
|
to carry them beyond the limits of the world of sense. I cogitate
|
|
merely the relation of a perfectly unknown being to the greatest
|
|
possible systematic unity of experience, solely for the purpose of
|
|
employing it as the schema of the regulative principle which directs
|
|
reason in its empirical exercise.
|
|
|
|
It is evident, at the first view, that we cannot presuppose the
|
|
reality of this transcendental object, by means of the conceptions
|
|
of reality, substance, causality, and so on, because these conceptions
|
|
cannot be applied to anything that is distinct from the world of
|
|
sense. Thus the supposition of a Supreme Being or cause is purely
|
|
relative; it is cogitated only in behalf of the systematic unity of
|
|
experience; such a being is but a something, of whose existence in
|
|
itself we have not the least conception. Thus, too, it becomes
|
|
sufficiently manifest why we required the idea of a necessary being in
|
|
relation to objects given by sense, although we can never have the
|
|
least conception of this being, or of its absolute necessity.
|
|
|
|
And now we can clearly perceive the result of our transcendental
|
|
dialectic, and the proper aim of the ideas of pure reason- which
|
|
become dialectical solely from misunderstanding and inconsiderateness.
|
|
Pure reason is, in fact, occupied with itself, and not with any
|
|
object. Objects are not presented to it to be embraced in the unity of
|
|
an empirical conception; it is only the cognitions of the
|
|
understanding that are presented to it, for the purpose of receiving
|
|
the unity of a rational conception, that is, of being connected
|
|
according to a principle. The unity of reason is the unity of
|
|
system; and this systematic unity is not an objective principle,
|
|
extending its dominion over objects, but a subjective maxim, extending
|
|
its authority over the empirical cognition of objects. The
|
|
systematic connection which reason gives to the empirical employment
|
|
of the understanding not only advances the extension of that
|
|
employment, but ensures its correctness, and thus the principle of a
|
|
systematic unity of this nature is also objective, although only in an
|
|
indefinite respect (principium vagum). It is not, however, a
|
|
constitutive principle, determining an object to which it directly
|
|
relates; it is merely a regulative principle or maxim, advancing and
|
|
strengthening the empirical exercise of reason, by the opening up of
|
|
new paths of which the understanding is ignorant, while it never
|
|
conflicts with the laws of its exercise in the sphere of experience.
|
|
|
|
But reason cannot cogitate this systematic unity, without at the
|
|
same time cogitating an object of the idea- an object that cannot be
|
|
presented in any experience, which contains no concrete example of a
|
|
complete systematic unity. This being (ens rationis ratiocinatae) is
|
|
therefore a mere idea and is not assumed to be a thing which is real
|
|
absolutely and in itself. On the contrary, it forms merely the
|
|
problematical foundation of the connection which the mind introduces
|
|
among the phenomena of the sensuous world. We look upon this
|
|
connection, in the light of the above-mentioned idea, as if it drew
|
|
its origin from the supposed being which corresponds to the idea.
|
|
And yet all we aim at is the possession of this idea as a secure
|
|
foundation for the systematic unity of experience- a unity
|
|
indispensable to reason, advantageous to the understanding, and
|
|
promotive of the interests of empirical cognition.
|
|
|
|
We mistake the true meaning of this idea when we regard it as an
|
|
enouncement, or even as a hypothetical declaration of the existence of
|
|
a real thing, which we are to regard as the origin or ground of a
|
|
systematic constitution of the universe. On the contrary, it is left
|
|
completely undetermined what the nature or properties of this
|
|
so-called ground may be. The idea is merely to be adopted as a point
|
|
of view, from which this unity, so essential to reason and so
|
|
beneficial to the understanding, may be regarded as radiating. In
|
|
one word, this transcendental thing is merely the schema of a
|
|
regulative principle, by means of which Reason, so far as in her lies,
|
|
extends the dominion of systematic unity over the whole sphere of
|
|
experience.
|
|
|
|
The first object of an idea of this kind is the ego, considered
|
|
merely as a thinking nature or soul. If I wish to investigate the
|
|
properties of a thinking being, I must interrogate experience. But I
|
|
find that I can apply none of the categories to this object, the
|
|
schema of these categories, which is the condition of their
|
|
application, being given only in sensuous intuition. But I cannot thus
|
|
attain to the cognition of a systematic unity of all the phenomena
|
|
of the internal sense. Instead, therefore, of an empirical
|
|
conception of what the soul really is, reason takes the conception
|
|
of the empirical unity of all thought, and, by cogitating this unity
|
|
as unconditioned and primitive, constructs the rational conception
|
|
or idea of a simple substance which is in itself unchangeable,
|
|
possessing personal identity, and in connection with other real things
|
|
external to it; in one word, it constructs the idea of a simple
|
|
self-subsistent intelligence. But the real aim of reason in this
|
|
procedure is the attainment of principles of systematic unity for
|
|
the explanation of the phenomena of the soul. That is, reason
|
|
desires to be able to represent all the determinations of the internal
|
|
sense as existing in one subject, all powers as deduced from one
|
|
fundamental power, all changes as mere varieties in the condition of a
|
|
being which is permanent and always the same, and all phenomena in
|
|
space as entirely different in their nature from the procedure of
|
|
thought. Essential simplicity (with the other attributes predicated of
|
|
the ego) is regarded as the mere schema of this regulative
|
|
principle; it is not assumed that it is the actual ground of the
|
|
properties of the soul. For these properties may rest upon quite
|
|
different grounds, of which we are completely ignorant; just as the
|
|
above predicates could not give us any knowledge of the soul as it
|
|
is in itself, even if we regarded them as valid in respect of it,
|
|
inasmuch as they constitute a mere idea, which cannot be represented
|
|
in concreto. Nothing but good can result from a psychological idea
|
|
of this kind, if we only take proper care not to consider it as more
|
|
than an idea; that is, if we regard it as valid merely in relation
|
|
to the employment of reason, in the sphere of the phenomena of the
|
|
soul. Under the guidance of this idea, or principle, no empirical laws
|
|
of corporeal phenomena are called in to explain that which is a
|
|
phenomenon of the internal sense alone; no windy hypotheses of the
|
|
generation, annihilation, and palingenesis of souls are admitted. Thus
|
|
the consideration of this object of the internal sense is kept pure,
|
|
and unmixed with heterogeneous elements; while the investigation of
|
|
reason aims at reducing all the grounds of explanation employed in
|
|
this sphere of knowledge to a single principle. All this is best
|
|
effected, nay, cannot be effected otherwise than by means of such a
|
|
schema, which requires us to regard this ideal thing as an actual
|
|
existence. The psychological idea is, therefore, meaningless and
|
|
inapplicable, except as the schema of a regulative conception. For, if
|
|
I ask whether the soul is not really of a spiritual nature- it is a
|
|
question which has no meaning. From such a conception has been
|
|
abstracted, not merely all corporeal nature, but all nature, that
|
|
is, all the predicates of a possible experience; and consequently, all
|
|
the conditions which enable us to cogitate an object to this
|
|
conception have disappeared. But, if these conditions are absent, it
|
|
is evident that the conception is meaningless.
|
|
|
|
The second regulative idea of speculative reason is the conception
|
|
of the universe. For nature is properly the only object presented to
|
|
us, in regard to which reason requires regulative principles. Nature
|
|
is twofold- thinking and corporeal nature. To cogitate the latter in
|
|
regard to its internal possibility, that is, to determine the
|
|
application of the categories to it, no idea is required- no
|
|
representation which transcends experience. In this sphere, therefore,
|
|
an idea is impossible, sensuous intuition being our only guide; while,
|
|
in the sphere of psychology, we require the fundamental idea (I),
|
|
which contains a priori a certain form of thought namely, the unity of
|
|
the ego. Pure reason has, therefore, nothing left but nature in
|
|
general, and the completeness of conditions in nature in accordance
|
|
with some principle. The absolute totality of the series of these
|
|
conditions is an idea, which can never be fully realized in the
|
|
empirical exercise of reason, while it is serviceable as a rule for
|
|
the procedure of reason in relation to that totality. It requires
|
|
us, in the explanation of given phenomena (in the regress or ascent in
|
|
the series), to proceed as if the series were infinite in itself, that
|
|
is, were prolonged in indefinitum,; while on the other hand, where
|
|
reason is regarded as itself the determining cause (in the region of
|
|
freedom), we are required to proceed as if we had not before us an
|
|
object of sense, but of the pure understanding. In this latter case,
|
|
the conditions do not exist in the series of phenomena, but may be
|
|
placed quite out of and beyond it, and the series of conditions may be
|
|
regarded as if it had an absolute beginning from an intelligible
|
|
cause. All this proves that the cosmological ideas are nothing but
|
|
regulative principles, and not constitutive; and that their aim is not
|
|
to realize an actual totality in such series. The full discussion of
|
|
this subject will be found in its proper place in the chapter on the
|
|
antinomy of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
The third idea of pure reason, containing the hypothesis of a
|
|
being which is valid merely as a relative hypothesis, is that of the
|
|
one and all-sufficient cause of all cosmological series, in other
|
|
words, the idea of God. We have not the slightest ground absolutely to
|
|
admit the existence of an object corresponding to this idea; for
|
|
what can empower or authorize us to affirm the existence of a being of
|
|
the highest perfection- a being whose existence is absolutely
|
|
necessary- merely because we possess the conception of such a being?
|
|
The answer is: It is the existence of the world which renders this
|
|
hypothesis necessary. But this answer makes it perfectly evident
|
|
that the idea of this being, like all other speculative ideas, is
|
|
essentially nothing more than a demand upon reason that it shall
|
|
regulate the connection which it and its subordinate faculties
|
|
introduce into the phenomena of the world by principles of
|
|
systematic unity and, consequently, that it shall regard all phenomena
|
|
as originating from one all-embracing being, as the supreme and
|
|
all-sufficient cause. From this it is plain that the only aim of
|
|
reason in this procedure is the establishment of its own formal rule
|
|
for the extension of its dominion in the world of experience; that
|
|
it does not aim at an extension of its cognition beyond the limits
|
|
of experience; and that, consequently, this idea does not contain
|
|
any constitutive principle.
|
|
|
|
The highest formal unity, which is based upon ideas alone, is the
|
|
unity of all things- a unity in accordance with an aim or purpose; and
|
|
the speculative interest of reason renders it necessary to regard
|
|
all order in the world as if it originated from the intention and
|
|
design of a supreme reason. This principle unfolds to the view of
|
|
reason in the sphere of experience new and enlarged prospects, and
|
|
invites it to connect the phenomena of the world according to
|
|
teleological laws, and in this way to attain to the highest possible
|
|
degree of systematic unity. The hypothesis of a supreme
|
|
intelligence, as the sole cause of the universe- an intelligence which
|
|
has for us no more than an ideal existence- is accordingly always of
|
|
the greatest service to reason. Thus, if we presuppose, in relation to
|
|
the figure of the earth (which is round, but somewhat flattened at the
|
|
poles),* or that of mountains or seas, wise designs on the part of
|
|
an author of the universe, we cannot fail to make, by the light of
|
|
this supposition, a great number of interesting discoveries. If we
|
|
keep to this hypothesis, as a principle which is purely regulative,
|
|
even error cannot be very detrimental. For, in this case, error can
|
|
have no more serious consequences than that, where we expected to
|
|
discover a teleological connection (nexus finalis), only a
|
|
mechanical or physical connection appears. In such a case, we merely
|
|
fail to find the additional form of unity we expected, but we do not
|
|
lose the rational unity which the mind requires in its procedure in
|
|
experience. But even a miscarriage of this sort cannot affect the
|
|
law in its general and teleological relations. For although we may
|
|
convict an anatomist of an error, when he connects the limb of some
|
|
animal with a certain purpose, it is quite impossible to prove in a
|
|
single case that any arrangement of nature, be it what it may, is
|
|
entirely without aim or design. And thus medical physiology, by the
|
|
aid of a principle presented to it by pure reason, extends its very
|
|
limited empirical knowledge of the purposes of the different parts
|
|
of an organized body so far that it may be asserted with the utmost
|
|
confidence, and with the approbation of all reflecting men, that every
|
|
organ or bodily part of an animal has its use and answers a certain
|
|
design. Now, this is a supposition which, if regarded as of a
|
|
constitutive character, goes much farther than any experience or
|
|
observation of ours can justify. Hence it is evident that it is
|
|
nothing more than a regulative principle of reason, which aims at
|
|
the highest degree of systematic unity, by the aid of the idea of a
|
|
causality according to design in a supreme cause- a cause which it
|
|
regards as the highest intelligence.
|
|
|
|
*The advantages which a circular form, in the case of the earth, has
|
|
over every other, are well known. But few are aware that the slight
|
|
flattening at the poles, which gives it the figure of a spheroid, is
|
|
the only cause which prevents the elevations of continents or even
|
|
of mountains, perhaps thrown up by some internal convulsion, from
|
|
continually altering the position of the axis of the earth- and that
|
|
to some considerable degree in a short time. The great protuberance of
|
|
the earth under the Equator serves to overbalance the impetus of all
|
|
other masses of earth, and thus to preserve the axis of the earth,
|
|
so far as we can observe, in its present position. And yet this wise
|
|
arrangement has been unthinkingly explained from the equilibrium of
|
|
the formerly fluid mass.
|
|
|
|
If, however, we neglect this restriction of the idea to a purely
|
|
regulative influence, reason is betrayed into numerous errors. For
|
|
it has then left the ground of experience, in which alone are to be
|
|
found the criteria of truth, and has ventured into the region of the
|
|
incomprehensible and unsearchable, on the heights of which it loses
|
|
its power and collectedness, because it has completely severed its
|
|
connection with experience.
|
|
|
|
The first error which arises from our employing the idea of a
|
|
Supreme Being as a constitutive (in repugnance to the very nature of
|
|
an idea), and not as a regulative principle, is the error of
|
|
inactive reason (ignava ratio).* We may so term every principle
|
|
which requires us to regard our investigations of nature as absolutely
|
|
complete, and allows reason to cease its inquiries, as if it had fully
|
|
executed its task. Thus the psychological idea of the ego, when
|
|
employed as a constitutive principle for the explanation of the
|
|
phenomena of the soul, and for the extension of our knowledge
|
|
regarding this subject beyond the limits of experience- even to the
|
|
condition of the soul after death- is convenient enough for the
|
|
purposes of pure reason, but detrimental and even ruinous to its
|
|
interests in the sphere of nature and experience. The dogmatizing
|
|
spiritualist explains the unchanging unity of our personality
|
|
through all changes of condition from the unity of a thinking
|
|
substance, the interest which we take in things and events that can
|
|
happen only after our death, from a consciousness of the immaterial
|
|
nature of our thinking subject, and so on. Thus he dispenses with
|
|
all empirical investigations into the cause of these internal
|
|
phenomena, and with all possible explanations of them upon purely
|
|
natural grounds; while, at the dictation of a transcendent reason,
|
|
he passes by the immanent sources of cognition in experience,
|
|
greatly to his own ease and convenience, but to the sacrifice of
|
|
all, genuine insight and intelligence. These prejudicial
|
|
consequences become still more evident, in the case of the
|
|
dogmatical treatment of our idea of a Supreme Intelligence, and the
|
|
theological system of nature (physico-theology) which is falsely based
|
|
upon it. For, in this case, the aims which we observe in nature, and
|
|
often those which we merely fancy to exist, make the investigation
|
|
of causes a very easy task, by directing us to refer such and such
|
|
phenomena immediately to the unsearchable will and counsel of the
|
|
Supreme Wisdom, while we ought to investigate their causes in the
|
|
general laws of the mechanism of matter. We are thus recommended to
|
|
consider the labour of reason as ended, when we have merely
|
|
dispensed with its employment, which is guided surely and safely
|
|
only by the order of nature and the series of changes in the world-
|
|
which are arranged according to immanent and general laws. This
|
|
error may be avoided, if we do not merely consider from the view-point
|
|
of final aims certain parts of nature, such as the division and
|
|
structure of a continent, the constitution and direction of certain
|
|
mountain-chains, or even the organization existing in the vegetable
|
|
and animal kingdoms, but look upon this systematic unity of nature
|
|
in a perfectly general way, in relation to the idea of a Supreme
|
|
Intelligence. If we pursue this advice, we lay as a foundation for all
|
|
investigation the conformity to aims of all phenomena of nature in
|
|
accordance with universal laws, for which no particular arrangement of
|
|
nature is exempt, but only cognized by us with more or less
|
|
difficulty; and we possess a regulative principle of the systematic
|
|
unity of a teleological connection, which we do not attempt to
|
|
anticipate or predetermine. All that we do, and ought to do, is to
|
|
follow out the physico-mechanical connection in nature according to
|
|
general laws, with the hope of discovering, sooner or later, the
|
|
teleological connection also. Thus, and thus only, can the principle
|
|
of final unity aid in the extension of the employment of reason in the
|
|
sphere of experience, without being in any case detrimental to its
|
|
interests.
|
|
|
|
*This was the term applied by the old dialecticians to a sophistical
|
|
argument, which ran thus: If it is your fate to die of this disease,
|
|
you will die, whether you employ a physician or not. Cicero says
|
|
that this mode of reasoning has received this appellation, because, if
|
|
followed, it puts an end to the employment of reason in the affairs of
|
|
life. For a similar reason, I have applied this designation to the
|
|
sophistical argument of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
The second error which arises from the misconception of the
|
|
principle of systematic unity is that of perverted reason (perversa
|
|
ratio, usteron roteron rationis). The idea of systematic unity is
|
|
available as a regulative principle in the connection of phenomena
|
|
according to general natural laws; and, how far soever we have to
|
|
travel upon the path of experience to discover some fact or event,
|
|
this idea requires us to believe that we have approached all the
|
|
more nearly to the completion of its use in the sphere of nature,
|
|
although that completion can never be attained. But this error
|
|
reverses the procedure of reason. We begin by hypostatizing the
|
|
principle of systematic unity, and by giving an anthropomorphic
|
|
determination to the conception of a Supreme Intelligence, and then
|
|
proceed forcibly to impose aims upon nature. Thus not only does
|
|
teleology, which ought to aid in the completion of unity in accordance
|
|
with general laws, operate to the destruction of its influence, but it
|
|
hinders reason from attaining its proper aim, that is, the proof, upon
|
|
natural grounds, of the existence of a supreme intelligent cause. For,
|
|
if we cannot presuppose supreme finality in nature a priori, that
|
|
is, as essentially belonging to nature, how can we be directed to
|
|
endeavour to discover this unity and, rising gradually through its
|
|
different degrees, to approach the supreme perfection of an author
|
|
of all- a perfection which is absolutely necessary, and therefore
|
|
cognizable a priori? The regulative principle directs us to presuppose
|
|
systematic unity absolutely and, consequently, as following from the
|
|
essential nature of things- but only as a unity of nature, not
|
|
merely cognized empirically, but presupposed a priori, although only
|
|
in an indeterminate manner. But if I insist on basing nature upon
|
|
the foundation of a supreme ordaining Being, the unity of nature is in
|
|
effect lost. For, in this case, it is quite foreign and unessential to
|
|
the nature of things, and cannot be cognized from the general laws
|
|
of nature. And thus arises a vicious circular argument, what ought
|
|
to have been proved having been presupposed.
|
|
|
|
To take the regulative principle of systematic unity in nature for a
|
|
constitutive principle, and to hypostatize and make a cause out of
|
|
that which is properly the ideal ground of the consistent and
|
|
harmonious exercise of reason, involves reason in inextricable
|
|
embarrassments. The investigation of nature pursues its own path under
|
|
the guidance of the chain of natural causes, in accordance with the
|
|
general laws of nature, and ever follows the light of the idea of an
|
|
author of the universe- not for the purpose of deducing the
|
|
finality, which it constantly pursues, from this Supreme Being, but to
|
|
attain to the cognition of his existence from the finality which it
|
|
seeks in the existence of the phenomena of nature, and, if possible,
|
|
in that of all things to cognize this being, consequently, as
|
|
absolutely necessary. Whether this latter purpose succeed or not,
|
|
the idea is and must always be a true one, and its employment, when
|
|
merely regulative, must always be accompanied by truthful and
|
|
beneficial results.
|
|
|
|
Complete unity, in conformity with aims, constitutes absolute
|
|
perfection. But if we do not find this unity in the nature of the
|
|
things which go to constitute the world of experience, that is, of
|
|
objective cognition, consequently in the universal and necessary
|
|
laws of nature, how can we infer from this unity the idea of the
|
|
supreme and absolutely necessary perfection of a primal being, which
|
|
is the origin of all causality? The greatest systematic unity, and
|
|
consequently teleological unity, constitutes the very foundation of
|
|
the possibility of the most extended employment of human reason. The
|
|
idea of unity is therefore essentially and indissolubly connected with
|
|
the nature of our reason. This idea is a legislative one; and hence it
|
|
is very natural that we should assume the existence of a legislative
|
|
reason corresponding to it, from which the systematic unity of nature-
|
|
the object of the operations of reason- must be derived.
|
|
|
|
In the course of our discussion of the antinomies, we stated that it
|
|
is always possible to answer all the questions which pure reason may
|
|
raise; and that the plea of the limited nature of our cognition, which
|
|
is unavoidable and proper in many questions regarding natural
|
|
phenomena, cannot in this case be admitted, because the questions
|
|
raised do not relate to the nature of things, but are necessarily
|
|
originated by the nature of reason itself, and relate to its own
|
|
internal constitution. We can now establish this assertion, which at
|
|
first sight appeared so rash, in relation to the two questions in
|
|
which reason takes the greatest interest, and thus complete our
|
|
discussion of the dialectic of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
If, then, the question is asked, in relation to transcendental
|
|
theology,* first, whether there is anything distinct from the world,
|
|
which contains the ground of cosmical order and connection according
|
|
to general laws? The answer is: Certainly. For the world is a sum of
|
|
phenomena; there must, therefore, be some transcendental basis of
|
|
these phenomena, that is, a basis cogitable by the pure
|
|
understanding alone. If, secondly, the question is asked whether
|
|
this being is substance, whether it is of the greatest reality,
|
|
whether it is necessary, and so forth? I answer that this question
|
|
is utterly without meaning. For all the categories which aid me in
|
|
forming a conception of an object cannot be employed except in the
|
|
world of sense, and are without meaning when not applied to objects of
|
|
actual or possible experience. Out of this sphere, they are not
|
|
properly conceptions, but the mere marks or indices of conceptions,
|
|
which we may admit, although they cannot, without the help of
|
|
experience, help us to understand any subject or thing. If, thirdly,
|
|
the question is whether we may not cogitate this being, which is
|
|
distinct from the world, in analogy with the objects of experience?
|
|
The answer is: Undoubtedly, but only as an ideal, and not as a real
|
|
object. That is, we must cogitate it only as an unknown substratum
|
|
of the systematic unity, order, and finality of the world- a unity
|
|
which reason must employ as the regulative principle of its
|
|
investigation of nature. Nay, more, we may admit into the idea certain
|
|
anthropomorphic elements, which are promotive of the interests of this
|
|
regulative principle. For it is no more than an idea, which does not
|
|
relate directly to a being distinct from the world, but to the
|
|
regulative principle of the systematic unity of the world, by means,
|
|
however, of a schema of this unity- the schema of a Supreme
|
|
Intelligence, who is the wisely-designing author of the universe. What
|
|
this basis of cosmical unity may be in itself, we know not- we
|
|
cannot discover from the idea; we merely know how we ought to employ
|
|
the idea of this unity, in relation to the systematic operation of
|
|
reason in the sphere of experience.
|
|
|
|
*After what has been said of the psychological idea of the ego and
|
|
its proper employment as a regulative principle of the operations of
|
|
reason, I need not enter into details regarding the transcendental
|
|
illusion by which the systematic unity of all the various phenomena of
|
|
the internal sense is hypostatized. The procedure is in this case very
|
|
similar to that which has been discussed in our remarks on the
|
|
theological ideal.
|
|
|
|
But, it will be asked again, can we on these grounds, admit the
|
|
existence of a wise and omnipotent author of the world? Without doubt;
|
|
and not only so, but we must assume the existence of such a being. But
|
|
do we thus extend the limits of our knowledge beyond the field of
|
|
possible experience? By no means. For we have merely presupposed a
|
|
something, of which we have no conception, which we do not know as
|
|
it is in itself; but, in relation to the systematic disposition of the
|
|
universe, which we must presuppose in all our observation of nature,
|
|
we have cogitated this unknown being in analogy with an intelligent
|
|
existence (an empirical conception), that is to say, we have endowed
|
|
it with those attributes, which, judging from the nature of our own
|
|
reason, may contain the ground of such a systematic unity. This idea
|
|
is therefore valid only relatively to the employment in experience
|
|
of our reason. But if we attribute to it absolute and objective
|
|
validity, we overlook the fact that it is merely an ideal being that
|
|
we cogitate; and, by setting out from a basis which is not
|
|
determinable by considerations drawn from experience, we place
|
|
ourselves in a position which incapacitates us from applying this
|
|
principle to the empirical employment of reason.
|
|
|
|
But, it will be asked further, can I make any use of this conception
|
|
and hypothesis in my investigations into the world and nature? Yes,
|
|
for this very purpose was the idea established by reason as a
|
|
fundamental basis. But may I regard certain arrangements, which seemed
|
|
to have been made in conformity with some fixed aim, as the
|
|
arrangements of design, and look upon them as proceeding from the
|
|
divine will, with the intervention, however, of certain other
|
|
particular arrangements disposed to that end? Yes, you may do so;
|
|
but at the same time you must regard it as indifferent, whether it
|
|
is asserted that divine wisdom has disposed all things in conformity
|
|
with his highest aims, or that the idea of supreme wisdom is a
|
|
regulative principle in the investigation of nature, and at the same
|
|
time a principle of the systematic unity of nature according to
|
|
general laws, even in those cases where we are unable to discover that
|
|
unity. In other words, it must be perfectly indifferent to you whether
|
|
you say, when you have discovered this unity: God has wisely willed it
|
|
so; or: Nature has wisely arranged this. For it was nothing but the
|
|
systematic unity, which reason requires as a basis for the
|
|
investigation of nature, that justified you in accepting the idea of a
|
|
supreme intelligence as a schema for a regulative principle; and,
|
|
the farther you advance in the discovery of design and finality, the
|
|
more certain the validity of your idea. But, as the whole aim of
|
|
this regulative principle was the discovery of a necessary and
|
|
systematic unity in nature, we have, in so far as we attain this, to
|
|
attribute our success to the idea of a Supreme Being; while, at the
|
|
same time, we cannot, without involving ourselves in contradictions,
|
|
overlook the general laws of nature, as it was in reference to them
|
|
alone that this idea was employed. We cannot, I say, overlook the
|
|
general laws of nature, and regard this conformity to aims
|
|
observable in nature as contingent or hyperphysical in its origin;
|
|
inasmuch as there is no ground which can justify us in the admission
|
|
of a being with such properties distinct from and above nature. All
|
|
that we are authorized to assert is that this idea may be employed
|
|
as a principle, and that the properties of the being which is
|
|
assumed to correspond to it may be regarded as systematically
|
|
connected in analogy with the causal determination of phenomena.
|
|
|
|
For the same reasons we are justified in introducing into the idea
|
|
of the supreme cause other anthropomorphic elements (for without these
|
|
we could not predicate anything of it); we may regard it as
|
|
allowable to cogitate this cause as a being with understanding, the
|
|
feelings of pleasure and displeasure, and faculties of desire and will
|
|
corresponding to these. At the same time, we may attribute to this
|
|
being infinite perfection- a perfection which necessarily transcends
|
|
that which our knowledge of the order and design in the world
|
|
authorize us to predicate of it. For the regulative law of
|
|
systematic unity requires us to study nature on the supposition that
|
|
systematic and final unity in infinitum is everywhere discoverable,
|
|
even in the highest diversity. For, although we may discover little of
|
|
this cosmical perfection, it belongs to the legislative prerogative of
|
|
reason to require us always to seek for and to expect it; while it
|
|
must always be beneficial to institute all inquiries into nature in
|
|
accordance with this principle. But it is evident that, by this idea
|
|
of a supreme author of all, which I place as the foundation of all
|
|
inquiries into nature, I do not mean to assert the existence of such a
|
|
being, or that I have any knowledge of its existence; and,
|
|
consequently, I do not really deduce anything from the existence of
|
|
this being, but merely from its idea, that is to say, from the
|
|
nature of things in this world, in accordance with this idea. A
|
|
certain dim consciousness of the true use of this idea seems to have
|
|
dictated to the philosophers of all times the moderate language used
|
|
by them regarding the cause of the world. We find them employing the
|
|
expressions wisdom and care of nature, and divine wisdom, as
|
|
synonymous- nay, in purely speculative discussions, preferring the
|
|
former, because it does not carry the appearance of greater
|
|
pretensions than such as we are entitled to make, and at the same time
|
|
directs reason to its proper field of action- nature and her
|
|
phenomena.
|
|
|
|
Thus, pure reason, which at first seemed to promise us nothing
|
|
less than the extension of our cognition beyond the limits of
|
|
experience, is found, when thoroughly examined, to contain nothing but
|
|
regulative principles, the virtue and function of which is to
|
|
introduce into our cognition a higher degree of unity than the
|
|
understanding could of itself. These principles, by placing the goal
|
|
of all our struggles at so great a distance, realize for us the most
|
|
thorough connection between the different parts of our cognition,
|
|
and the highest degree of systematic unity. But, on the other hand, if
|
|
misunderstood and employed as constitutive principles of
|
|
transcendent cognition, they become the parents of illusions and
|
|
contradictions, while pretending to introduce us to new regions of
|
|
knowledge.
|
|
|
|
Thus all human cognition begins with intuitions, proceeds from
|
|
thence to conceptions, and ends with ideas. Although it possesses,
|
|
in relation to all three elements, a priori sources of cognition,
|
|
which seemed to transcend the limits of all experience, a
|
|
thoroughgoing criticism demonstrates that speculative reason can
|
|
never, by the aid of these elements, pass the bounds of possible
|
|
experience, and that the proper destination of this highest faculty of
|
|
cognition is to employ all methods, and all the principles of these
|
|
methods, for the purpose of penetrating into the innermost secrets
|
|
of nature, by the aid of the principles of unity (among all kinds of
|
|
which teleological unity is the highest), while it ought not to
|
|
attempt to soar above the sphere of experience, beyond which there
|
|
lies nought for us but the void inane. The critical examination, in
|
|
our Transcendental Analytic, of all the propositions which professed
|
|
to extend cognition beyond the sphere of experience, completely
|
|
demonstrated that they can only conduct us to a possible experience.
|
|
If we were not distrustful even of the clearest abstract theorems,
|
|
if we were not allured by specious and inviting prospects to escape
|
|
from the constraining power of their evidence, we might spare
|
|
ourselves the laborious examination of all the dialectical arguments
|
|
which a transcendent reason adduces in support of its pretensions; for
|
|
we should know with the most complete certainty that, however honest
|
|
such professions might be, they are null and valueless, because they
|
|
relate to a kind of knowledge to which no man can by any possibility
|
|
attain. But, as there is no end to discussion, if we cannot discover
|
|
the true cause of the illusions by which even the wisest are deceived,
|
|
and as the analysis of all our transcendent cognition into its
|
|
elements is of itself of no slight value as a psychological study,
|
|
while it is a duty incumbent on every philosopher- it was found
|
|
necessary to investigate the dialectical procedure of reason in its
|
|
primary sources. And as the inferences of which this dialectic is
|
|
the parent are not only deceitful, but naturally possess a profound
|
|
interest for humanity, it was advisable at the same time, to give a
|
|
full account of the momenta of this dialectical procedure, and to
|
|
deposit it in the archives of human reason, as a warning to all future
|
|
metaphysicians to avoid these causes of speculative error.
|
|
METHOD
|
|
|
|
II.
|
|
|
|
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHOD.
|
|
|
|
If we regard the sum of the cognition of pure speculative reason
|
|
as an edifice, the idea of which, at least, exists in the human
|
|
mind, it may be said that we have in the Transcendental Doctrine of
|
|
Elements examined the materials and determined to what edifice these
|
|
belong, and what its height and stability. We have found, indeed,
|
|
that, although we had purposed to build for ourselves a tower which
|
|
should reach to Heaven, the supply of materials sufficed merely for
|
|
a habitation, which was spacious enough for all terrestrial
|
|
purposes, and high enough to enable us to survey the level plain of
|
|
experience, but that the bold undertaking designed necessarily
|
|
failed for want of materials- not to mention the confusion of tongues,
|
|
which gave rise to endless disputes among the labourers on the plan of
|
|
the edifice, and at last scattered them over all the world, each to
|
|
erect a separate building for himself, according to his own plans
|
|
and his own inclinations. Our present task relates not to the
|
|
materials, but to the plan of an edifice; and, as we have had
|
|
sufficient warning not to venture blindly upon a design which may be
|
|
found to transcend our natural powers, while, at the same time, we
|
|
cannot give up the intention of erecting a secure abode for the
|
|
mind, we must proportion our design to the material which is presented
|
|
to us, and which is, at the same time, sufficient for all our wants.
|
|
|
|
I understand, then, by the transcendental doctrine of method, the
|
|
determination of the formal conditions of a complete system of pure
|
|
reason. We shall accordingly have to treat of the discipline, the
|
|
canon, the architectonic, and, finally, the history of pure reason.
|
|
This part of our Critique will accomplish, from the transcendental
|
|
point of view, what has been usually attempted, but miserably
|
|
executed, under the name of practical logic. It has been badly
|
|
executed, I say, because general logic, not being limited to any
|
|
particular kind of cognition (not even to the pure cognition of the
|
|
understanding) nor to any particular objects, it cannot, without
|
|
borrowing from other sciences, do more than present merely the
|
|
titles or signs of possible methods and the technical expressions,
|
|
which are employed in the systematic parts of all sciences; and thus
|
|
the pupil is made acquainted with names, the meaning and application
|
|
of which he is to learn only at some future time.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. The Discipline of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
Negative judgements- those which are so not merely as regards
|
|
their logical form, but in respect of their content- are not
|
|
commonly held in especial respect. They are, on the contrary, regarded
|
|
as jealous enemies of our insatiable desire for knowledge; and it
|
|
almost requires an apology to induce us to tolerate, much less to
|
|
prize and to respect them.
|
|
|
|
All propositions, indeed, may be logically expressed in a negative
|
|
form; but, in relation to the content of our cognition, the peculiar
|
|
province of negative judgements is solely to prevent error. For this
|
|
reason, too, negative propositions, which are framed for the purpose
|
|
of correcting false cognitions where error is absolutely impossible,
|
|
are undoubtedly true, but inane and senseless; that is, they are in
|
|
reality purposeless and, for this reason, often very ridiculous.
|
|
Such is the proposition of the schoolman that Alexander could not have
|
|
subdued any countries without an army.
|
|
|
|
But where the limits of our possible cognition are very much
|
|
contracted, the attraction to new fields of knowledge great, the
|
|
illusions to which the mind is subject of the most deceptive
|
|
character, and the evil consequences of error of no inconsiderable
|
|
magnitude- the negative element in knowledge, which is useful only
|
|
to guard us against error, is of far more importance than much of that
|
|
positive instruction which makes additions to the sum of our
|
|
knowledge. The restraint which is employed to repress, and finally
|
|
to extirpate the constant inclination to depart from certain rules, is
|
|
termed discipline. It is distinguished from culture, which aims at the
|
|
formation of a certain degree of skill, without attempting to
|
|
repress or to destroy any other mental power, already existing. In the
|
|
cultivation of a talent, which has given evidence of an impulse
|
|
towards self-development, discipline takes a negative,* culture and
|
|
doctrine a positive, part.
|
|
|
|
*I am well aware that, in the language of the schools, the term
|
|
discipline is usually employed as synonymous with instruction. But
|
|
there are so many cases in which it is necessary to distinguish the
|
|
notion of the former, as a course of corrective training, from that of
|
|
the latter, as the communication of knowledge, and the nature of
|
|
things itself demands the appropriation of the most suitable
|
|
expressions for this distinction, that it is my desire that the former
|
|
terms should never be employed in any other than a negative
|
|
signification.
|
|
|
|
That natural dispositions and talents (such as imagination and with,
|
|
which ask a free and unlimited development, require in many respects
|
|
the corrective influence of discipline, every one will readily
|
|
grant. But it may well appear strange that reason, whose proper duty
|
|
it is to prescribe rules of discipline to all the other powers of
|
|
the mind, should itself require this corrective. It has, in fact,
|
|
hitherto escaped this humiliation, only because, in presence of its
|
|
magnificent pretensions and high position, no one could readily
|
|
suspect it to be capable of substituting fancies for conceptions,
|
|
and words for things.
|
|
|
|
Reason, when employed in the field of experience, does not stand
|
|
in need of criticism, because its principles are subjected to the
|
|
continual test of empirical observations. Nor is criticism requisite
|
|
in the sphere of mathematics, where the conceptions of reason must
|
|
always be presented in concreto in pure intuition, and baseless or
|
|
arbitrary assertions are discovered without difficulty. But where
|
|
reason is not held in a plain track by the influence of empirical or
|
|
of pure intuition, that is, when it is employed in the
|
|
transcendental sphere of pure conceptions, it stands in great need
|
|
of discipline, to restrain its propensity to overstep the limits of
|
|
possible experience and to keep it from wandering into error. In fact,
|
|
the utility of the philosophy of pure reason is entirely of this
|
|
negative character. Particular errors may be corrected by particular
|
|
animadversions, and the causes of these errors may be eradicated by
|
|
criticism. But where we find, as in the case of pure reason, a
|
|
complete system of illusions and fallacies, closely connected with
|
|
each other and depending upon grand general principles, there seems to
|
|
be required a peculiar and negative code of mental legislation, which,
|
|
under the denomination of a discipline, and founded upon the nature of
|
|
reason and the objects of its exercise, shall constitute a system of
|
|
thorough examination and testing, which no fallacy will be able to
|
|
withstand or escape from, under whatever disguise or concealment it
|
|
may lurk.
|
|
|
|
But the reader must remark that, in this the second division of
|
|
our transcendental Critique the discipline of pure reason is not
|
|
directed to the content, but to the method of the cognition of pure
|
|
reason. The former task has been completed in the doctrine of
|
|
elements. But there is so much similarity in the mode of employing the
|
|
faculty of reason, whatever be the object to which it is applied,
|
|
while, at the same time, its employment in the transcendental sphere
|
|
is so essentially different in kind from every other, that, without
|
|
the warning negative influence of a discipline specially directed to
|
|
that end, the errors are unavoidable which spring from the
|
|
unskillful employment of the methods which are originated by reason
|
|
but which are out of place in this sphere.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I. The Discipline of Pure Reason in the Sphere
|
|
|
|
of Dogmatism.
|
|
|
|
The science of mathematics presents the most brilliant example of
|
|
the extension of the sphere of pure reason without the aid of
|
|
experience. Examples are always contagious; and they exert an especial
|
|
influence on the same faculty, which naturally flatters itself that it
|
|
will have the same good fortune in other case as fell to its lot in
|
|
one fortunate instance. Hence pure reason hopes to be able to extend
|
|
its empire in the transcendental sphere with equal success and
|
|
security, especially when it applies the same method which was
|
|
attended with such brilliant results in the science of mathematics. It
|
|
is, therefore, of the highest importance for us to know whether the
|
|
method of arriving at demonstrative certainty, which is termed
|
|
mathematical, be identical with that by which we endeavour to attain
|
|
the same degree of certainty in philosophy, and which is termed in
|
|
that science dogmatical.
|
|
|
|
Philosophical cognition is the cognition of reason by means of
|
|
conceptions; mathematical cognition is cognition by means of the
|
|
construction of conceptions. The construction of a conception is the
|
|
presentation a priori of the intuition which corresponds to the
|
|
conception. For this purpose a non-empirical intuition is requisite,
|
|
which, as an intuition, is an individual object; while, as the
|
|
construction of a conception (a general representation), it must be
|
|
seen to be universally valid for all the possible intuitions which
|
|
rank under that conception. Thus I construct a triangle, by the
|
|
presentation of the object which corresponds to this conception,
|
|
either by mere imagination, in pure intuition, or upon paper, in
|
|
empirical intuition, in both cases completely a priori, without
|
|
borrowing the type of that figure from any experience. The
|
|
individual figure drawn upon paper is empirical; but it serves,
|
|
notwithstanding, to indicate the conception, even in its universality,
|
|
because in this empirical intuition we keep our eye merely on the
|
|
act of the construction of the conception, and pay no attention to the
|
|
various modes of determining it, for example, its size, the length
|
|
of its sides, the size of its angles, these not in the least affecting
|
|
the essential character of the conception.
|
|
|
|
Philosophical cognition, accordingly, regards the particular only in
|
|
the general; mathematical the general in the particular, nay, in the
|
|
individual. This is done, however, entirely a priori and by means of
|
|
pure reason, so that, as this individual figure is determined under
|
|
certain universal conditions of construction, the object of the
|
|
conception, to which this individual figure corresponds as its schema,
|
|
must be cogitated as universally determined.
|
|
|
|
The essential difference of these two modes of cognition consists,
|
|
therefore, in this formal quality; it does not regard the difference
|
|
of the matter or objects of both. Those thinkers who aim at
|
|
distinguishing philosophy from mathematics by asserting that the
|
|
former has to do with quality merely, and the latter with quantity,
|
|
have mistaken the effect for the cause. The reason why mathematical
|
|
cognition can relate only to quantity is to be found in its form
|
|
alone. For it is the conception of quantities only that is capable
|
|
of being constructed, that is, presented a priori in intuition;
|
|
while qualities cannot be given in any other than an empirical
|
|
intuition. Hence the cognition of qualities by reason is possible only
|
|
through conceptions. No one can find an intuition which shall
|
|
correspond to the conception of reality, except in experience; it
|
|
cannot be presented to the mind a priori and antecedently to the
|
|
empirical consciousness of a reality. We can form an intuition, by
|
|
means of the mere conception of it, of a cone, without the aid of
|
|
experience; but the colour of the cone we cannot know except from
|
|
experience. I cannot present an intuition of a cause, except in an
|
|
example which experience offers to me. Besides, philosophy, as well as
|
|
mathematics, treats of quantities; as, for example, of totality,
|
|
infinity, and so on. Mathematics, too, treats of the difference of
|
|
lines and surfaces- as spaces of different quality, of the
|
|
continuity of extension- as a quality thereof. But, although in such
|
|
cases they have a common object, the mode in which reason considers
|
|
that object is very different in philosophy from what it is in
|
|
mathematics. The former confines itself to the general conceptions;
|
|
the latter can do nothing with a mere conception, it hastens to
|
|
intuition. In this intuition it regards the conception in concreto,
|
|
not empirically, but in an a priori intuition, which it has
|
|
constructed; and in which, all the results which follow from the
|
|
general conditions of the construction of the conception are in all
|
|
cases valid for the object of the constructed conception.
|
|
|
|
Suppose that the conception of a triangle is given to a
|
|
philosopher and that he is required to discover, by the
|
|
philosophical method, what relation the sum of its angles bears to a
|
|
right angle. He has nothing before him but the conception of a
|
|
figure enclosed within three right lines, and, consequently, with
|
|
the same number of angles. He may analyse the conception of a right
|
|
line, of an angle, or of the number three as long as he pleases, but
|
|
he will not discover any properties not contained in these
|
|
conceptions. But, if this question is proposed to a geometrician, he
|
|
at once begins by constructing a triangle. He knows that two right
|
|
angles are equal to the sum of all the contiguous angles which proceed
|
|
from one point in a straight line; and he goes on to produce one
|
|
side of his triangle, thus forming two adjacent angles which are
|
|
together equal to two right angles. He then divides the exterior of
|
|
these angles, by drawing a line parallel with the opposite side of the
|
|
triangle, and immediately perceives that be has thus got an exterior
|
|
adjacent angle which is equal to the interior. Proceeding in this way,
|
|
through a chain of inferences, and always on the ground of
|
|
intuition, he arrives at a clear and universally valid solution of the
|
|
question.
|
|
|
|
But mathematics does not confine itself to the construction of
|
|
quantities (quanta), as in the case of geometry; it occupies itself
|
|
with pure quantity also (quantitas), as in the case of algebra,
|
|
where complete abstraction is made of the properties of the object
|
|
indicated by the conception of quantity. In algebra, a certain
|
|
method of notation by signs is adopted, and these indicate the
|
|
different possible constructions of quantities, the extraction of
|
|
roots, and so on. After having thus denoted the general conception
|
|
of quantities, according to their different relations, the different
|
|
operations by which quantity or number is increased or diminished
|
|
are presented in intuition in accordance with general rules. Thus,
|
|
when one quantity is to be divided by another, the signs which
|
|
denote both are placed in the form peculiar to the operation of
|
|
division; and thus algebra, by means of a symbolical construction of
|
|
quantity, just as geometry, with its ostensive or geometrical
|
|
construction (a construction of the objects themselves), arrives at
|
|
results which discursive cognition cannot hope to reach by the aid
|
|
of mere conceptions.
|
|
|
|
Now, what is the cause of this difference in the fortune of the
|
|
philosopher and the mathematician, the former of whom follows the path
|
|
of conceptions, while the latter pursues that of intuitions, which
|
|
he represents, a priori, in correspondence with his conceptions? The
|
|
cause is evident from what has been already demonstrated in the
|
|
introduction to this Critique. We do not, in the present case, want to
|
|
discover analytical propositions, which may be produced merely by
|
|
analysing our conceptions- for in this the philosopher would have
|
|
the advantage over his rival; we aim at the discovery of synthetical
|
|
propositions- such synthetical propositions, moreover, as can be
|
|
cognized a priori. I must not confine myself to that which I
|
|
actually cogitate in my conception of a triangle, for this is
|
|
nothing more than the mere definition; I must try to go beyond that,
|
|
and to arrive at properties which are not contained in, although
|
|
they belong to, the conception. Now, this is impossible, unless I
|
|
determine the object present to my mind according to the conditions,
|
|
either of empirical, or of pure, intuition. In the former case, I
|
|
should have an empirical proposition (arrived at by actual measurement
|
|
of the angles of the triangle), which would possess neither
|
|
universality nor necessity; but that would be of no value. In the
|
|
latter, I proceed by geometrical construction, by means of which I
|
|
collect, in a pure intuition, just as I would in an empirical
|
|
intuition, all the various properties which belong to the schema of
|
|
a triangle in general, and consequently to its conception, and thus
|
|
construct synthetical propositions which possess the attribute of
|
|
universality.
|
|
|
|
It would be vain to philosophize upon the triangle, that is, to
|
|
reflect on it discursively; I should get no further than the
|
|
definition with which I had been obliged to set out. There are
|
|
certainly transcendental synthetical propositions which are framed
|
|
by means of pure conceptions, and which form the peculiar
|
|
distinction of philosophy; but these do not relate to any particular
|
|
thing, but to a thing in general, and enounce the conditions under
|
|
which the perception of it may become a part of possible experience.
|
|
But the science of mathematics has nothing to do with such
|
|
questions, nor with the question of existence in any fashion; it is
|
|
concerned merely with the properties of objects in themselves, only in
|
|
so far as these are connected with the conception of the objects.
|
|
|
|
In the above example, we merely attempted to show the great
|
|
difference which exists between the discursive employment of reason in
|
|
the sphere of conceptions, and its intuitive exercise by means of
|
|
the construction of conceptions. The question naturally arises: What
|
|
is the cause which necessitates this twofold exercise of reason, and
|
|
how are we to discover whether it is the philosophical or the
|
|
mathematical method which reason is pursuing in an argument?
|
|
|
|
All our knowledge relates, finally, to possible intuitions, for it
|
|
is these alone that present objects to the mind. An a priori or
|
|
non-empirical conception contains either a pure intuition- and in this
|
|
case it can be constructed; or it contains nothing but the synthesis
|
|
of possible intuitions, which are not given a priori. In this latter
|
|
case, it may help us to form synthetical a priori judgements, but only
|
|
in the discursive method, by conceptions, not in the intuitive, by
|
|
means of the construction of conceptions.
|
|
|
|
The only a priori intuition is that of the pure form of phenomena-
|
|
space and time. A conception of space and time as quanta may be
|
|
presented a priori in intuition, that is, constructed, either alone
|
|
with their quality (figure), or as pure quantity (the mere synthesis
|
|
of the homogeneous), by means of number. But the matter of
|
|
phenomena, by which things are given in space and time, can be
|
|
presented only in perception, a posteriori. The only conception
|
|
which represents a priori this empirical content of phenomena is the
|
|
conception of a thing in general; and the a priori synthetical
|
|
cognition of this conception can give us nothing more than the rule
|
|
for the synthesis of that which may be contained in the
|
|
corresponding a posteriori perception; it is utterly inadequate to
|
|
present an a priori intuition of the real object, which must
|
|
necessarily be empirical.
|
|
|
|
Synthetical propositions, which relate to things in general, an a
|
|
priori intuition of which is impossible, are transcendental. For
|
|
this reason transcendental propositions cannot be framed by means of
|
|
the construction of conceptions; they are a priori, and based entirely
|
|
on conceptions themselves. They contain merely the rule, by which we
|
|
are to seek in the world of perception or experience the synthetical
|
|
unity of that which cannot be intuited a priori. But they are
|
|
incompetent to present any of the conceptions which appear in them
|
|
in an a priori intuition; these can be given only a posteriori, in
|
|
experience, which, however, is itself possible only through these
|
|
synthetical principles.
|
|
|
|
If we are to form a synthetical judgement regarding a conception, we
|
|
must go beyond it, to the intuition in which it is given. If we keep
|
|
to what is contained in the conception, the judgement is merely
|
|
analytical- it is merely an explanation of what we have cogitated in
|
|
the conception. But I can pass from the conception to the pure or
|
|
empirical intuition which corresponds to it. I can proceed to
|
|
examine my conception in concreto, and to cognize, either a priori
|
|
or a posterio, what I find in the object of the conception. The
|
|
former- a priori cognition- is rational-mathematical cognition by
|
|
means of the construction of the conception; the latter- a
|
|
posteriori cognition- is purely empirical cognition, which does not
|
|
possess the attributes of necessity and universality. Thus I may
|
|
analyse the conception I have of gold; but I gain no new information
|
|
from this analysis, I merely enumerate the different properties
|
|
which I had connected with the notion indicated by the word. My
|
|
knowledge has gained in logical clearness and arrangement, but no
|
|
addition has been made to it. But if I take the matter which is
|
|
indicated by this name, and submit it to the examination of my senses,
|
|
I am enabled to form several synthetical- although still empirical-
|
|
propositions. The mathematical conception of a triangle I should
|
|
construct, that is, present a priori in intuition, and in this way
|
|
attain to rational-synthetical cognition. But when the
|
|
transcendental conception of reality, or substance, or power is
|
|
presented to my mind, I find that it does not relate to or indicate
|
|
either an empirical or pure intuition, but that it indicates merely
|
|
the synthesis of empirical intuitions, which cannot of course be given
|
|
a priori. The synthesis in such a conception cannot proceed a
|
|
priori- without the aid of experience- to the intuition which
|
|
corresponds to the conception; and, for this reason, none of these
|
|
conceptions can produce a determinative synthetical proposition,
|
|
they can never present more than a principle of the synthesis* of
|
|
possible empirical intuitions. A transcendental proposition is,
|
|
therefore, a synthetical cognition of reason by means of pure
|
|
conceptions and the discursive method, and it renders possible all
|
|
synthetical unity in empirical cognition, though it cannot present
|
|
us with any intuition a priori.
|
|
|
|
*In the case of the conception of cause, I do really go beyond the
|
|
empirical conception of an event- but not to the intuition which
|
|
presents this conception in concreto, but only to the time-conditions,
|
|
which may be found in experience to correspond to the conception. My
|
|
procedure is, therefore, strictly according to conceptions; I cannot
|
|
in a case of this kind employ the construction of conceptions, because
|
|
the conception is merely a rule for the synthesis of perceptions,
|
|
which are not pure intuitions, and which, therefore, cannot be given a
|
|
priori.
|
|
|
|
There is thus a twofold exercise of reason. Both modes have the
|
|
properties of universality and an a priori origin in common, but
|
|
are, in their procedure, of widely different character. The reason
|
|
of this is that in the world of phenomena, in which alone objects
|
|
are presented to our minds, there are two main elements- the form of
|
|
intuition (space and time), which can be cognized and determined
|
|
completely a priori, and the matter or content- that which is
|
|
presented in space and time, and which, consequently, contains a
|
|
something- an existence corresponding to our powers of sensation. As
|
|
regards the latter, which can never be given in a determinate mode
|
|
except by experience, there are no a priori notions which relate to
|
|
it, except the undetermined conceptions of the synthesis of possible
|
|
sensations, in so far as these belong (in a possible experience) to
|
|
the unity of consciousness. As regards the former, we can determine
|
|
our conceptions a priori in intuition, inasmuch as we are ourselves
|
|
the creators of the objects of the conceptions in space and time-
|
|
these objects being regarded simply as quanta. In the one case, reason
|
|
proceeds according to conceptions and can do nothing more than subject
|
|
phenomena to these- which can only be determined empirically, that is,
|
|
a posteriori- in conformity, however, with those conceptions as the
|
|
rules of all empirical synthesis. In the other case, reason proceeds
|
|
by the construction of conceptions; and, as these conceptions relate
|
|
to an a priori intuition, they may be given and determined in pure
|
|
intuition a priori, and without the aid of empirical data. The
|
|
examination and consideration of everything that exists in space or
|
|
time- whether it is a quantum or not, in how far the particular
|
|
something (which fills space or time) is a primary substratum, or a
|
|
mere determination of some other existence, whether it relates to
|
|
anything else- either as cause or effect, whether its existence is
|
|
isolated or in reciprocal connection with and dependence upon
|
|
others, the possibility of this existence, its reality and necessity
|
|
or opposites- all these form part of the cognition of reason on the
|
|
ground of conceptions, and this cognition is termed philosophical. But
|
|
to determine a priori an intuition in space (its figure), to divide
|
|
time into periods, or merely to cognize the quantity of an intuition
|
|
in space and time, and to determine it by number- all this is an
|
|
operation of reason by means of the construction of conceptions, and
|
|
is called mathematical.
|
|
|
|
The success which attends the efforts of reason in the sphere of
|
|
mathematics naturally fosters the expectation that the same good
|
|
fortune will be its lot, if it applies the mathematical method in
|
|
other regions of mental endeavour besides that of quantities. Its
|
|
success is thus great, because it can support all its conceptions by a
|
|
priori intuitions and, in this way, make itself a master, as it
|
|
were, over nature; while pure philosophy, with its a priori discursive
|
|
conceptions, bungles about in the world of nature, and cannot accredit
|
|
or show any a priori evidence of the reality of these conceptions.
|
|
Masters in the science of mathematics are confident of the success
|
|
of this method; indeed, it is a common persuasion that it is capable
|
|
of being applied to any subject of human thought. They have hardly
|
|
ever reflected or philosophized on their favourite science- a task
|
|
of great difficulty; and the specific difference between the two modes
|
|
of employing the faculty of reason has never entered their thoughts.
|
|
Rules current in the field of common experience, and which common
|
|
sense stamps everywhere with its approval, are regarded by them as
|
|
axiomatic. From what source the conceptions of space and time, with
|
|
which (as the only primitive quanta) they have to deal, enter their
|
|
minds, is a question which they do not trouble themselves to answer;
|
|
and they think it just as unnecessary to examine into the origin of
|
|
the pure conceptions of the understanding and the extent of their
|
|
validity. All they have to do with them is to employ them. In all this
|
|
they are perfectly right, if they do not overstep the limits of the
|
|
sphere of nature. But they pass, unconsciously, from the world of
|
|
sense to the insecure ground of pure transcendental conceptions
|
|
(instabilis tellus, innabilis unda), where they can neither stand
|
|
nor swim, and where the tracks of their footsteps are obliterated by
|
|
time; while the march of mathematics is pursued on a broad and
|
|
magnificent highway, which the latest posterity shall frequent without
|
|
fear of danger or impediment.
|
|
|
|
As we have taken upon us the task of determining, clearly and
|
|
certainly, the limits of pure reason in the sphere of
|
|
transcendentalism, and as the efforts of reason in this direction
|
|
are persisted in, even after the plainest and most expressive
|
|
warnings, hope still beckoning us past the limits of experience into
|
|
the splendours of the intellectual world- it becomes necessary to
|
|
cut away the last anchor of this fallacious and fantastic hope. We
|
|
shall, accordingly, show that the mathematical method is unattended in
|
|
the sphere of philosophy by the least advantage- except, perhaps, that
|
|
it more plainly exhibits its own inadequacy- that geometry and
|
|
philosophy are two quite different things, although they go band in
|
|
hand in hand in the field of natural science, and, consequently,
|
|
that the procedure of the one can never be imitated by the other.
|
|
|
|
The evidence of mathematics rests upon definitions, axioms, and
|
|
demonstrations. I shall be satisfied with showing that none of these
|
|
forms can be employed or imitated in philosophy in the sense in
|
|
which they are understood by mathematicians; and that the
|
|
geometrician, if he employs his method in philosophy, will succeed
|
|
only in building card-castles, while the employment of the
|
|
philosophical method in mathematics can result in nothing but mere
|
|
verbiage. The essential business of philosophy, indeed, is to mark out
|
|
the limits of the science; and even the mathematician, unless his
|
|
talent is naturally circumscribed and limited to this particular
|
|
department of knowledge, cannot turn a deaf ear to the warnings of
|
|
philosophy, or set himself above its direction.
|
|
|
|
I. Of Definitions. A definition is, as the term itself indicates,
|
|
the representation, upon primary grounds, of the complete conception
|
|
of a thing within its own limits.* Accordingly, an empirical
|
|
conception cannot be defined, it can only be explained. For, as
|
|
there are in such a conception only a certain number of marks or
|
|
signs, which denote a certain class of sensuous objects, we can
|
|
never be sure that we do not cogitate under the word which indicates
|
|
the same object, at one time a greater, at another a smaller number of
|
|
signs. Thus, one person may cogitate in his conception of gold, in
|
|
addition to its properties of weight, colour, malleability, that of
|
|
resisting rust, while another person may be ignorant of this
|
|
quality. We employ certain signs only so long as we require them for
|
|
the sake of distinction; new observations abstract some and add new
|
|
ones, so that an empirical conception never remains within permanent
|
|
limits. It is, in fact, useless to define a conception of this kind.
|
|
If, for example, we are speaking of water and its properties, we do
|
|
not stop at what we actually think by the word water, but proceed to
|
|
observation and experiment; and the word, with the few signs
|
|
attached to it, is more properly a designation than a conception of
|
|
the thing. A definition in this case would evidently be nothing more
|
|
than a determination of the word. In the second place, no a priori
|
|
conception, such as those of substance, cause, right, fitness, and
|
|
so on, can be defined. For I can never be sure, that the clear
|
|
representation of a given conception (which is given in a confused
|
|
state) has been fully developed, until I know that the
|
|
representation is adequate with its object. But, inasmuch as the
|
|
conception, as it is presented to the mind, may contain a number of
|
|
obscure representations, which we do not observe in our analysis,
|
|
although we employ them in our application of the conception, I can
|
|
never be sure that my analysis is complete, while examples may make
|
|
this probable, although they can never demonstrate the fact. instead
|
|
of the word definition, I should rather employ the term exposition-
|
|
a more modest expression, which the critic may accept without
|
|
surrendering his doubts as to the completeness of the analysis of
|
|
any such conception. As, therefore, neither empirical nor a priori
|
|
conceptions are capable of definition, we have to see whether the only
|
|
other kind of conceptions- arbitrary conceptions- can be subjected
|
|
to this mental operation. Such a conception can always be defined; for
|
|
I must know thoroughly what I wished to cogitate in it, as it was I
|
|
who created it, and it was not given to my mind either by the nature
|
|
of my understanding or by experience. At the same time, I cannot say
|
|
that, by such a definition, I have defined a real object. If the
|
|
conception is based upon empirical conditions, if, for example, I have
|
|
a conception of a clock for a ship, this arbitrary conception does not
|
|
assure me of the existence or even of the possibility of the object.
|
|
My definition of such a conception would with more propriety be termed
|
|
a declaration of a project than a definition of an object. There
|
|
are no other conceptions which can bear definition, except those which
|
|
contain an arbitrary synthesis, which can be constructed a priori.
|
|
Consequently, the science of mathematics alone possesses
|
|
definitions. For the object here thought is presented a priori in
|
|
intuition; and thus it can never contain more or less than the
|
|
conception, because the conception of the object has been given by the
|
|
definition- and primarily, that is, without deriving the definition
|
|
from any other source. Philosophical definitions are, therefore,
|
|
merely expositions of given conceptions, while mathematical
|
|
definitions are constructions of conceptions originally formed by
|
|
the mind itself; the former are produced by analysis, the completeness
|
|
of which is never demonstratively certain, the latter by a
|
|
synthesis. In a mathematical definition the conception is formed, in a
|
|
philosophical definition it is only explained. From this it follows:
|
|
|
|
*The definition must describe the conception completely that is,
|
|
omit none of the marks or signs of which it composed; within its own
|
|
limits, that is, it must be precise, and enumerate no more signs
|
|
than belong to the conception; and on primary grounds, that is to say,
|
|
the limitations of the bounds of the conception must not be deduced
|
|
from other conceptions, as in this case a proof would be necessary,
|
|
and the so-called definition would be incapable of taking its place at
|
|
the bead of all the judgements we have to form regarding an object.
|
|
|
|
(a) That we must not imitate, in philosophy, the mathematical
|
|
usage of commencing with definitions- except by way of hypothesis or
|
|
experiment. For, as all so-called philosophical definitions are merely
|
|
analyses of given conceptions, these conceptions, although only in a
|
|
confused form, must precede the analysis; and the incomplete
|
|
exposition must precede the complete, so that we may be able to draw
|
|
certain inferences from the characteristics which an incomplete
|
|
analysis has enabled us to discover, before we attain to the
|
|
complete exposition or definition of the conception. In one word, a
|
|
full and clear definition ought, in philosophy, rather to form the
|
|
conclusion than the commencement of our labours.* In mathematics, on
|
|
the contrary, we cannot have a conception prior to the definition;
|
|
it is the definition which gives us the conception, and it must for
|
|
this reason form the commencement of every chain of mathematical
|
|
reasoning.
|
|
|
|
*Philosophy abounds in faulty definitions, especially such as
|
|
contain some of the elements requisite to form a complete
|
|
definition. If a conception could not be employed in reasoning
|
|
before it had been defined, it would fare ill with all philosophical
|
|
thought. But, as incompletely defined conceptions may always be
|
|
employed without detriment to truth, so far as our analysis of the
|
|
elements contained in them proceeds, imperfect definitions, that is,
|
|
propositions which are properly not definitions, but merely
|
|
approximations thereto, may be used with great advantage. In
|
|
mathematics, definition belongs ad esse, in philosophy ad melius esse.
|
|
It is a difficult task to construct a proper definition. Jurists are
|
|
still without a complete definition of the idea of right.
|
|
|
|
(b) Mathematical definitions cannot be erroneous. For the conception
|
|
is given only in and through the definition, and thus it contains only
|
|
what has been cogitated in the definition. But although a definition
|
|
cannot be incorrect, as regards its content, an error may sometimes,
|
|
although seldom, creep into the form. This error consists in a want of
|
|
precision. Thus the common definition of a circle- that it is a curved
|
|
line, every point in which is equally distant from another point
|
|
called the centre- is faulty, from the fact that the determination
|
|
indicated by the word curved is superfluous. For there ought to be a
|
|
particular theorem, which may be easily proved from the definition, to
|
|
the effect that every line, which has all its points at equal
|
|
distances from another point, must be a curved line- that is, that not
|
|
even the smallest part of it can be straight. Analytical
|
|
definitions, on the other hand, may be erroneous in many respects,
|
|
either by the introduction of signs which do not actually exist in the
|
|
conception, or by wanting in that completeness which forms the
|
|
essential of a definition. In the latter case, the definition is
|
|
necessarily defective, because we can never be fully certain of the
|
|
completeness of our analysis. For these reasons, the method of
|
|
definition employed in mathematics cannot be imitated in philosophy.
|
|
|
|
2. Of Axioms. These, in so far as they are immediately certain,
|
|
are a priori synthetical principles. Now, one conception cannot be
|
|
connected synthetically and yet immediately with another; because,
|
|
if we wish to proceed out of and beyond a conception, a third
|
|
mediating cognition is necessary. And, as philosophy is a cognition of
|
|
reason by the aid of conceptions alone, there is to be found in it
|
|
no principle which deserves to be called an axiom. Mathematics, on the
|
|
other hand, may possess axioms, because it can always connect the
|
|
predicates of an object a priori, and without any mediating term, by
|
|
means of the construction of conceptions in intuition. Such is the
|
|
case with the proposition: Three points can always lie in a plane.
|
|
On the other hand, no synthetical principle which is based upon
|
|
conceptions, can ever be immediately certain (for example, the
|
|
proposition: Everything that happens has a cause), because I require a
|
|
mediating term to connect the two conceptions of event and cause-
|
|
namely, the condition of time-determination in an experience, and I
|
|
cannot cognize any such principle immediately and from conceptions
|
|
alone. Discursive principles are, accordingly, very different from
|
|
intuitive principles or axioms. The former always require deduction,
|
|
which in the case of the latter may be altogether dispensed with.
|
|
Axioms are, for this reason, always self-evident, while
|
|
philosophical principles, whatever may be the degree of certainty they
|
|
possess, cannot lay any claim to such a distinction. No synthetical
|
|
proposition of pure transcendental reason can be so evident, as is
|
|
often rashly enough declared, as the statement, twice two are four. It
|
|
is true that in the Analytic I introduced into the list of
|
|
principles of the pure understanding, certain axioms of intuition; but
|
|
the principle there discussed was not itself an axiom, but served
|
|
merely to present the principle of the possibility of axioms in
|
|
general, while it was really nothing more than a principle based
|
|
upon conceptions. For it is one part of the duty of transcendental
|
|
philosophy to establish the possibility of mathematics itself.
|
|
Philosophy possesses, then, no axioms, and has no right to impose
|
|
its a priori principles upon thought, until it has established their
|
|
authority and validity by a thoroughgoing deduction.
|
|
|
|
3. Of Demonstrations. Only an apodeictic proof, based upon
|
|
intuition, can be termed a demonstration. Experience teaches us what
|
|
is, but it cannot convince us that it might not have been otherwise.
|
|
Hence a proof upon empirical grounds cannot be apodeictic. A priori
|
|
conceptions, in discursive cognition, can never produce intuitive
|
|
certainty or evidence, however certain the judgement they present
|
|
may be. Mathematics alone, therefore, contains demonstrations, because
|
|
it does not deduce its cognition from conceptions, but from the
|
|
construction of conceptions, that is, from intuition, which can be
|
|
given a priori in accordance with conceptions. The method of
|
|
algebra, in equations, from which the correct answer is deduced by
|
|
reduction, is a kind of construction- not geometrical, but by symbols-
|
|
in which all conceptions, especially those of the relations of
|
|
quantities, are represented in intuition by signs; and thus the
|
|
conclusions in that science are secured from errors by the fact that
|
|
every proof is submitted to ocular evidence. Philosophical cognition
|
|
does not possess this advantage, it being required to consider the
|
|
general always in abstracto (by means of conceptions), while
|
|
mathematics can always consider it in concreto (in an individual
|
|
intuition), and at the same time by means of a priori
|
|
representation, whereby all errors are rendered manifest to the
|
|
senses. The former- discursive proofs- ought to be termed acroamatic
|
|
proofs, rather than demonstrations, as only words are employed in
|
|
them, while demonstrations proper, as the term itself indicates,
|
|
always require a reference to the intuition of the object.
|
|
|
|
It follows from all these considerations that it is not consonant
|
|
with the nature of philosophy, especially in the sphere of pure
|
|
reason, to employ the dogmatical method, and to adorn itself with
|
|
the titles and insignia of mathematical science. It does not belong to
|
|
that order, and can only hope for a fraternal union with that science.
|
|
Its attempts at mathematical evidence are vain pretensions, which
|
|
can only keep it back from its true aim, which is to detect the
|
|
illusory procedure of reason when transgressing its proper limits, and
|
|
by fully explaining and analysing our conceptions, to conduct us
|
|
from the dim regions of speculation to the clear region of modest
|
|
self-knowledge. Reason must not, therefore, in its transcendental
|
|
endeavours, look forward with such confidence, as if the path it is
|
|
pursuing led straight to its aim, nor reckon with such security upon
|
|
its premisses, as to consider it unnecessary to take a step back, or
|
|
to keep a strict watch for errors, which, overlooked in the
|
|
principles, may be detected in the arguments themselves- in which case
|
|
it may be requisite either to determine these principles with
|
|
greater strictness, or to change them entirely.
|
|
|
|
I divide all apodeictic propositions, whether demonstrable or
|
|
immediately certain, into dogmata and mathemata. A direct
|
|
synthetical proposition, based on conceptions, is a dogma; a
|
|
proposition of the same kind, based on the construction of
|
|
conceptions, is a mathema. Analytical judgements do not teach us any
|
|
more about an object than what was contained in the conception we
|
|
had of it; because they do not extend our cognition beyond our
|
|
conception of an object, they merely elucidate the conception. They
|
|
cannot therefore be with propriety termed dogmas. Of the two kinds
|
|
of a priori synthetical propositions above mentioned, only those which
|
|
are employed in philosophy can, according to the general mode of
|
|
speech, bear this name; those of arithmetic or geometry would not be
|
|
rightly so denominated. Thus the customary mode of speaking confirms
|
|
the explanation given above, and the conclusion arrived at, that
|
|
only those judgements which are based upon conceptions, not on the
|
|
construction of conceptions, can be termed dogmatical.
|
|
|
|
Thus, pure reason, in the sphere of speculation, does not contain
|
|
a single direct synthetical judgement based upon conceptions. By means
|
|
of ideas, it is, as we have shown, incapable of producing
|
|
synthetical judgements, which are objectively valid; by means of the
|
|
conceptions of the understanding, it establishes certain indubitable
|
|
principles, not, however, directly on the basis of conceptions, but
|
|
only indirectly by means of the relation of these conceptions to
|
|
something of a purely contingent nature, namely, possible
|
|
experience. When experience is presupposed, these principles are
|
|
apodeictically certain, but in themselves, and directly, they cannot
|
|
even be cognized a priori. Thus the given conceptions of cause and
|
|
event will not be sufficient for the demonstration of the proposition:
|
|
Every event has a cause. For this reason, it is not a dogma;
|
|
although from another point of view, that of experience, it is capable
|
|
of being proved to demonstration. The proper term for such a
|
|
proposition is principle, and not theorem (although it does require to
|
|
be proved), because it possesses the remarkable peculiarity of being
|
|
the condition of the possibility of its own ground of proof, that
|
|
is, experience, and of forming a necessary presupposition in all
|
|
empirical observation.
|
|
|
|
If then, in the speculative sphere of pure reason, no dogmata are to
|
|
be found; all dogmatical methods, whether borrowed from mathematics,
|
|
or invented by philosophical thinkers, are alike inappropriate and
|
|
inefficient. They only serve to conceal errors and fallacies, and to
|
|
deceive philosophy, whose duty it is to see that reason pursues a safe
|
|
and straight path. A philosophical method may, however, be
|
|
systematical. For our reason is, subjectively considered, itself a
|
|
system, and, in the sphere of mere conceptions, a system of
|
|
investigation according to principles of unity, the material being
|
|
supplied by experience alone. But this is not the proper place for
|
|
discussing the peculiar method of transcendental philosophy, as our
|
|
present task is simply to examine whether our faculties are capable of
|
|
erecting an edifice on the basis of pure reason, and how far they
|
|
may proceed with the materials at their command.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. The Discipline of Pure Reason in Polemics.
|
|
|
|
Reason must be subject, in all its operations, to criticism, which
|
|
must always be permitted to exercise its functions without
|
|
restraint; otherwise its interests are imperilled and its influence
|
|
obnoxious to suspicion. There is nothing, however useful, however
|
|
sacred it may be, that can claim exemption from the searching
|
|
examination of this supreme tribunal, which has no respect of persons.
|
|
The very existence of reason depends upon this freedom; for the
|
|
voice of reason is not that of a dictatorial and despotic power, it is
|
|
rather like the vote of the citizens of a free state, every member
|
|
of which must have the privilege of giving free expression to his
|
|
doubts, and possess even the right of veto.
|
|
|
|
But while reason can never decline to submit itself to the
|
|
tribunal of criticism, it has not always cause to dread the
|
|
judgement of this court. Pure reason, however, when engaged in the
|
|
sphere of dogmatism, is not so thoroughly conscious of a strict
|
|
observance of its highest laws, as to appear before a higher
|
|
judicial reason with perfect confidence. On the contrary, it must
|
|
renounce its magnificent dogmatical pretensions in philosophy.
|
|
|
|
Very different is the case when it has to defend itself, not
|
|
before a judge, but against an equal. If dogmatical assertions are
|
|
advanced on the negative side, in opposition to those made by reason
|
|
on the positive side, its justification kat authrhopon is complete,
|
|
although the proof of its propositions is kat aletheian
|
|
unsatisfactory.
|
|
|
|
By the polemic of pure reason I mean the defence of its propositions
|
|
made by reason, in opposition to the dogmatical counter-propositions
|
|
advanced by other parties. The question here is not whether its own
|
|
statements may not also be false; it merely regards the fact that
|
|
reason proves that the opposite cannot be established with
|
|
demonstrative certainty, nor even asserted with a higher degree of
|
|
probability. Reason does not hold her possessions upon sufferance;
|
|
for, although she cannot show a perfectly satisfactory title to
|
|
them, no one can prove that she is not the rightful possessor.
|
|
|
|
It is a melancholy reflection that reason, in its highest
|
|
exercise, falls into an antithetic; and that the supreme tribunal
|
|
for the settlement of differences should not be at union with
|
|
itself. It is true that we had to discuss the question of an
|
|
apparent antithetic, but we found that it was based upon a
|
|
misconception. In conformity with the common prejudice, phenomena were
|
|
regarded as things in themselves, and thus an absolute completeness in
|
|
their synthesis was required in the one mode or in the other (it was
|
|
shown to be impossible in both); a demand entirely out of place in
|
|
regard to phenomena. There was, then, no real self-contradiction of
|
|
reason in the propositions: The series of phenomena given in
|
|
themselves has an absolutely first beginning; and: This series is
|
|
absolutely and in itself without beginning. The two propositions are
|
|
perfectly consistent with each other, because phenomena as phenomena
|
|
are in themselves nothing, and consequently the hypothesis that they
|
|
are things in themselves must lead to self-contradictory inferences.
|
|
|
|
But there are cases in which a similar misunderstanding cannot be
|
|
provided against, and the dispute must remain unsettled. Take, for
|
|
example, the theistic proposition: There is a Supreme Being; and on
|
|
the other hand, the atheistic counter-statement: There exists no
|
|
Supreme Being; or, in psychology: Everything that thinks possesses the
|
|
attribute of absolute and permanent unity, which is utterly
|
|
different from the transitory unity of material phenomena; and the
|
|
counter-proposition: The soul is not an immaterial unity, and its
|
|
nature is transitory, like that of phenomena. The objects of these
|
|
questions contain no heterogeneous or contradictory elements, for they
|
|
relate to things in themselves, and not to phenomena. There would
|
|
arise, indeed, a real contradiction, if reason came forward with a
|
|
statement on the negative side of these questions alone. As regards
|
|
the criticism to which the grounds of proof on the affirmative side
|
|
must be subjected, it may be freely admitted, without necessitating
|
|
the surrender of the affirmative propositions, which have, at least,
|
|
the interest of reason in their favour- an advantage which the
|
|
opposite party cannot lay claim to.
|
|
|
|
I cannot agree with the opinion of several admirable thinkers-
|
|
Sulzer among the rest- that, in spite of the weakness of the arguments
|
|
hitherto in use, we may hope, one day, to see sufficient
|
|
demonstrations of the two cardinal propositions of pure reason- the
|
|
existence of a Supreme Being, and the immortality of the soul. I am
|
|
certain, on the contrary, that this will never be the case. For on
|
|
what ground can reason base such synthetical propositions, which do
|
|
not relate to the objects of experience and their internal
|
|
possibility? But it is also demonstratively certain that no one will
|
|
ever be able to maintain the contrary with the least show of
|
|
probability. For, as he can attempt such a proof solely upon the basis
|
|
of pure reason, he is bound to prove that a Supreme Being, and a
|
|
thinking subject in the character of a pure intelligence, are
|
|
impossible. But where will he find the knowledge which can enable
|
|
him to enounce synthetical judgements in regard to things which
|
|
transcend the region of experience? We may, therefore, rest assured
|
|
that the opposite never will be demonstrated. We need not, then,
|
|
have recourse to scholastic arguments; we may always admit the truth
|
|
of those propositions which are consistent with the speculative
|
|
interests of reason in the sphere of experience, and form, moreover,
|
|
the only means of uniting the speculative with the practical interest.
|
|
Our opponent, who must not be considered here as a critic solely, we
|
|
can be ready to meet with a non liquet which cannot fail to disconcert
|
|
him; while we cannot deny his right to a similar retort, as we have on
|
|
our side the advantage of the support of the subjective maxim of
|
|
reason, and can therefore look upon all his sophistical arguments with
|
|
calm indifference.
|
|
|
|
From this point of view, there is properly no antithetic of pure
|
|
reason. For the only arena for such a struggle would be upon the field
|
|
of pure theology and psychology; but on this ground there can appear
|
|
no combatant whom we need to fear. Ridicule and boasting can be his
|
|
only weapons; and these may be laughed at, as mere child's play.
|
|
This consideration restores to Reason her courage; for what source
|
|
of confidence could be found, if she, whose vocation it is to
|
|
destroy error, were at variance with herself and without any
|
|
reasonable hope of ever reaching a state of permanent repose?
|
|
|
|
Everything in nature is good for some purpose. Even poisons are
|
|
serviceable; they destroy the evil effects of other poisons
|
|
generated in our system, and must always find a place in every
|
|
complete pharmacopoeia. The objections raised against the fallacies
|
|
and sophistries of speculative reason, are objections given by the
|
|
nature of this reason itself, and must therefore have a destination
|
|
and purpose which can only be for the good of humanity. For what
|
|
purpose has Providence raised many objects, in which we have the
|
|
deepest interest, so far above us, that we vainly try to cognize
|
|
them with certainty, and our powers of mental vision are rather
|
|
excited than satisfied by the glimpses we may chance to seize? It is
|
|
very doubtful whether it is for our benefit to advance bold
|
|
affirmations regarding subjects involved in such obscurity; perhaps it
|
|
would even be detrimental to our best interests. But it is undoubtedly
|
|
always beneficial to leave the investigating, as well as the
|
|
critical reason, in perfect freedom, and permit it to take charge of
|
|
its own interests, which are advanced as much by its limitation, as by
|
|
its extension of its views, and which always suffer by the
|
|
interference of foreign powers forcing it, against its natural
|
|
tendencies, to bend to certain preconceived designs.
|
|
|
|
Allow your opponent to say what he thinks reasonable, and combat him
|
|
only with the weapons of reason. Have no anxiety for the practical
|
|
interests of humanity- these are never imperilled in a purely
|
|
speculative dispute. Such a dispute serves merely to disclose the
|
|
antinomy of reason, which, as it has its source in the nature of
|
|
reason, ought to be thoroughly investigated. Reason is benefited by
|
|
the examination of a subject on both sides, and its judgements are
|
|
corrected by being limited. It is not the matter that may give
|
|
occasion to dispute, but the manner. For it is perfectly permissible
|
|
to employ, in the presence of reason, the language of a firmly
|
|
rooted faith, even after we have been obliged to renounce all
|
|
pretensions to knowledge.
|
|
|
|
If we were to ask the dispassionate David Hume- a philosopher
|
|
endowed, in a degree that few are, with a well-balanced judgement:
|
|
What motive induced you to spend so much labour and thought in
|
|
undermining the consoling and beneficial persuasion that reason is
|
|
capable of assuring us of the existence, and presenting us with a
|
|
determinate conception of a Supreme Being?- his answer would be:
|
|
Nothing but the desire of teaching reason to know its own powers
|
|
better, and, at the same time, a dislike of the procedure by which
|
|
that faculty was compelled to support foregone conclusions, and
|
|
prevented from confessing the internal weaknesses which it cannot
|
|
but feel when it enters upon a rigid self-examination. If, on the
|
|
other hand, we were to ask Priestley- a philosopher who had no taste
|
|
for transcendental speculation, but was entirely devoted to the
|
|
principles of empiricism- what his motives were for overturning
|
|
those two main pillars of religion- the doctrines of the freedom of
|
|
the will and the immortality of the soul (in his view the hope of a
|
|
future life is but the expectation of the miracle of resurrection)-
|
|
this philosopher, himself a zealous and pious teacher of religion,
|
|
could give no other answer than this: I acted in the interest of
|
|
reason, which always suffers, when certain objects are explained and
|
|
judged by a reference to other supposed laws than those of material
|
|
nature- the only laws which we know in a determinate manner. It
|
|
would be unfair to decry the latter philosopher, who endeavoured to
|
|
harmonize his paradoxical opinions with the interests of religion, and
|
|
to undervalue an honest and reflecting man, because he finds himself
|
|
at a loss the moment he has left the field of natural science. The
|
|
same grace must be accorded to Hume, a man not less well-disposed, and
|
|
quite as blameless in his moral character, and who pushed his abstract
|
|
speculations to an extreme length, because, as he rightly believed,
|
|
the object of them lies entirely beyond the bounds of natural science,
|
|
and within the sphere of pure ideas.
|
|
|
|
What is to be done to provide against the danger which seems in
|
|
the present case to menace the best interests of humanity? The
|
|
course to be pursued in reference to this subject is a perfectly plain
|
|
and natural one. Let each thinker pursue his own path; if he shows
|
|
talent, if be gives evidence of profound thought, in one word, if he
|
|
shows that he possesses the power of reasoning- reason is always the
|
|
gainer. If you have recourse to other means, if you attempt to
|
|
coerce reason, if you raise the cry of treason to humanity, if you
|
|
excite the feelings of the crowd, which can neither understand nor
|
|
sympathize with such subtle speculations- you will only make
|
|
yourselves ridiculous. For the question does not concern the advantage
|
|
or disadvantage which we are expected to reap from such inquiries; the
|
|
question is merely how far reason can advance in the field of
|
|
speculation, apart from all kinds of interest, and whether we may
|
|
depend upon the exertions of speculative reason, or must renounce
|
|
all reliance on it. Instead of joining the combatants, it is your part
|
|
to be a tranquil spectator of the struggle- a laborious struggle for
|
|
the parties engaged, but attended, in its progress as well as in its
|
|
result, with the most advantageous consequences for the interests of
|
|
thought and knowledge. It is absurd to expect to be enlightened by
|
|
Reason, and at the same time to prescribe to her what side of the
|
|
question she must adopt. Moreover, reason is sufficiently held in
|
|
check by its own power, the limits imposed on it by its own nature are
|
|
sufficient; it is unnecessary for you to place over it additional
|
|
guards, as if its power were dangerous to the constitution of the
|
|
intellectual state. In the dialectic of reason there is no victory
|
|
gained which need in the least disturb your tranquility.
|
|
|
|
The strife of dialectic is a necessity of reason, and we cannot
|
|
but wish that it had been conducted long ere this with that perfect
|
|
freedom which ought to be its essential condition. In this case, we
|
|
should have had at an earlier period a matured and profound criticism,
|
|
which must have put an end to all dialectical disputes, by exposing
|
|
the illusions and prejudices in which they originated.
|
|
|
|
There is in human nature an unworthy propensity- a propensity which,
|
|
like everything that springs from nature, must in its final purpose be
|
|
conducive to the good of humanity- to conceal our real sentiments, and
|
|
to give expression only to certain received opinions, which are
|
|
regarded as at once safe and promotive of the common good. It is true,
|
|
this tendency, not only to conceal our real sentiments, but to profess
|
|
those which may gain us favour in the eyes of society, has not only
|
|
civilized, but, in a certain measure, moralized us; as no one can
|
|
break through the outward covering of respectability, honour, and
|
|
morality, and thus the seemingly-good examples which we which we see
|
|
around us form an excellent school for moral improvement, so long as
|
|
our belief in their genuineness remains unshaken. But this disposition
|
|
to represent ourselves as better than we are, and to utter opinions
|
|
which are not our own, can be nothing more than a kind of provisionary
|
|
arrangement of nature to lead us from the rudeness of an uncivilized
|
|
state, and to teach us how to assume at least the appearance and
|
|
manner of the good we see. But when true principles have been
|
|
developed, and have obtained a sure foundation in our habit of
|
|
thought, this conventionalism must be attacked with earnest vigour,
|
|
otherwise it corrupts the heart, and checks the growth of good
|
|
dispositions with the mischievous weed of air appearances.
|
|
|
|
I am sorry to remark the same tendency to misrepresentation and
|
|
hypocrisy in the sphere of speculative discussion, where there is less
|
|
temptation to restrain the free expression of thought. For what can be
|
|
more prejudicial to the interests of intelligence than to falsify
|
|
our real sentiments, to conceal the doubts which we feel in regard
|
|
to our statements, or to maintain the validity of grounds of proof
|
|
which we well know to be insufficient? So long as mere personal vanity
|
|
is the source of these unworthy artifices- and this is generally the
|
|
case in speculative discussions, which are mostly destitute of
|
|
practical interest, and are incapable of complete demonstration- the
|
|
vanity of the opposite party exaggerates as much on the other side;
|
|
and thus the result is the same, although it is not brought about so
|
|
soon as if the dispute had been conducted in a sincere and upright
|
|
spirit. But where the mass entertains the notion that the aim of
|
|
certain subtle speculators is nothing less than to shake the very
|
|
foundations of public welfare and morality- it seems not only prudent,
|
|
but even praise worthy, to maintain the good cause by illusory
|
|
arguments, rather than to give to our supposed opponents the advantage
|
|
of lowering our declarations to the moderate tone of a merely
|
|
practical conviction, and of compelling us to confess our inability to
|
|
attain to apodeictic certainty in speculative subjects. But we ought
|
|
to reflect that there is nothing, in the world more fatal to the
|
|
maintenance of a good cause than deceit, misrepresentation, and
|
|
falsehood. That the strictest laws of honesty should be observed in
|
|
the discussion of a purely speculative subject is the least
|
|
requirement that can be made. If we could reckon with security even
|
|
upon so little, the conflict of speculative reason regarding the
|
|
important questions of God, immortality, and freedom, would have
|
|
been either decided long ago, or would very soon be brought to a
|
|
conclusion. But, in general, the uprightness of the defence stands
|
|
in an inverse ratio to the goodness of the cause; and perhaps more
|
|
honesty and fairness are shown by those who deny than by those who
|
|
uphold these doctrines.
|
|
|
|
I shall persuade myself, then, that I have readers who do not wish
|
|
to see a righteous cause defended by unfair arguments. Such will now
|
|
recognize the fact that, according to the principles of this Critique,
|
|
if we consider not what is, but what ought to be the case, there can
|
|
be really no polemic of pure reason. For how can two persons dispute
|
|
about a thing, the reality of which neither can present in actual or
|
|
even in possible experience? Each adopts the plan of meditating on his
|
|
idea for the purpose of drawing from the idea, if he can, what is more
|
|
than the idea, that is, the reality of the object which it
|
|
indicates. How shall they settle the dispute, since neither is able to
|
|
make his assertions directly comprehensible and certain, but must
|
|
restrict himself to attacking and confuting those of his opponent? All
|
|
statements enounced by pure reason transcend the conditions of
|
|
possible experience, beyond the sphere of which we can discover no
|
|
criterion of truth, while they are at the same time framed in
|
|
accordance with the laws of the understanding, which are applicable
|
|
only to experience; and thus it is the fate of all such speculative
|
|
discussions that while the one party attacks the weaker side of his
|
|
opponent, he infallibly lays open his own weaknesses.
|
|
|
|
The critique of pure reason may be regarded as the highest
|
|
tribunal for all speculative disputes; for it is not involved in these
|
|
disputes, which have an immediate relation to certain objects and
|
|
not to the laws of the mind, but is instituted for the purpose of
|
|
determining the rights and limits of reason.
|
|
|
|
Without the control of criticism, reason is, as it were, in a
|
|
state of nature, and can only establish its claims and assertions by
|
|
war. Criticism, on the contrary, deciding all questions according to
|
|
the fundamental laws of its own institution, secures to us the peace
|
|
of law and order, and enables us to discuss all differences in the
|
|
more tranquil manner of a legal process. In the former case,
|
|
disputes are ended by victory, which both sides may claim and which is
|
|
followed by a hollow armistice; in the latter, by a sentence, which,
|
|
as it strikes at the root of all speculative differences, ensures to
|
|
all concerned a lasting peace. The endless disputes of a dogmatizing
|
|
reason compel us to look for some mode of arriving at a settled
|
|
decision by a critical investigation of reason itself; just as
|
|
Hobbes maintains that the state of nature is a state of injustice
|
|
and violence, and that we must leave it and submit ourselves to the
|
|
constraint of law, which indeed limits individual freedom, but only
|
|
that it may consist with the freedom of others and with the common
|
|
good of all.
|
|
|
|
This freedom will, among other things, permit of our openly
|
|
stating the difficulties and doubts which we are ourselves unable to
|
|
solve, without being decried on that account as turbulent and
|
|
dangerous citizens. This privilege forms part of the native rights
|
|
of human reason, which recognizes no other judge than the universal
|
|
reason of humanity; and as this reason is the source of all progress
|
|
and improvement, such a privilege is to be held sacred and inviolable.
|
|
It is unwise, moreover, to denounce as dangerous any bold assertions
|
|
against, or rash attacks upon, an opinion which is held by the largest
|
|
and most moral class of the community; for that would be giving them
|
|
an importance which they do not deserve. When I hear that the
|
|
freedom of the will, the hope of a future life, and the existence of
|
|
God have been overthrown by the arguments of some able writer, I
|
|
feel a strong desire to read his book; for I expect that he will add
|
|
to my knowledge and impart greater clearness and distinctness to my
|
|
views by the argumentative power shown in his writings. But I am
|
|
perfectly certain, even before I have opened the book, that he has not
|
|
succeeded in a single point, not because I believe I am in
|
|
possession of irrefutable demonstrations of these important
|
|
propositions, but because this transcendental critique, which has
|
|
disclosed to me the power and the limits of pure reason, has fully
|
|
convinced me that, as it is insufficient to establish the affirmative,
|
|
it is as powerless, and even more so, to assure us of the truth of the
|
|
negative answer to these questions. From what source does this
|
|
free-thinker derive his knowledge that there is, for example, no
|
|
Supreme Being? This proposition lies out of the field of possible
|
|
experience, and, therefore, beyond the limits of human cognition.
|
|
But I would not read at, all the answer which the dogmatical
|
|
maintainer of the good cause makes to his opponent, because I know
|
|
well beforehand, that he will merely attack the fallacious grounds
|
|
of his adversary, without being able to establish his own
|
|
assertions. Besides, a new illusory argument, in the construction of
|
|
which talent and acuteness are shown, is suggestive of new ideas and
|
|
new trains of reasoning, and in this respect the old and everyday
|
|
sophistries are quite useless. Again, the dogmatical opponent of
|
|
religion gives employment to criticism, and enables us to test and
|
|
correct its principles, while there is no occasion for anxiety in
|
|
regard to the influence and results of his reasoning.
|
|
|
|
But, it will be said, must we not warn the youth entrusted to
|
|
academical care against such writings, must we not preserve them
|
|
from the knowledge of these dangerous assertions, until their
|
|
judgement is ripened, or rather until the doctrines which we wish to
|
|
inculcate are so firmly rooted in their minds as to withstand all
|
|
attempts at instilling the contrary dogmas, from whatever quarter they
|
|
may come?
|
|
|
|
If we are to confine ourselves to the dogmatical procedure in the
|
|
sphere of pure reason, and find ourselves unable to settle such
|
|
disputes otherwise than by becoming a party in them, and setting
|
|
counter-assertions against the statements advanced by our opponents,
|
|
there is certainly no plan more advisable for the moment, but, at
|
|
the same time, none more absurd and inefficient for the future, than
|
|
this retaining of the youthful mind under guardianship for a time, and
|
|
thus preserving it- for so long at least- from seduction into error.
|
|
But when, at a later period, either curiosity, or the prevalent
|
|
fashion of thought places such writings in their hands, will the
|
|
so-called convictions of their youth stand firm? The young thinker,
|
|
who has in his armoury none but dogmatical weapons with which to
|
|
resist the attacks of his opponent, and who cannot detect the latent
|
|
dialectic which lies in his own opinions as well as in those of the
|
|
opposite party, sees the advance of illusory arguments and grounds
|
|
of proof which have the advantage of novelty, against as illusory
|
|
grounds of proof destitute of this advantage, and which, perhaps,
|
|
excite the suspicion that the natural credulity of his youth has
|
|
been abused by his instructors. He thinks he can find no better
|
|
means of showing that he has out grown the discipline of his
|
|
minority than by despising those well-meant warnings, and, knowing
|
|
no system of thought but that of dogmatism, he drinks deep draughts of
|
|
the poison that is to sap the principles in which his early years were
|
|
trained.
|
|
|
|
Exactly the opposite of the system here recommended ought to be
|
|
pursued in academical instruction. This can only be effected, however,
|
|
by a thorough training in the critical investigation of pure reason.
|
|
For, in order to bring the principles of this critique into exercise
|
|
as soon as possible, and to demonstrate their perfect even in the
|
|
presence of the highest degree of dialectical illusion, the student
|
|
ought to examine the assertions made on both sides of speculative
|
|
questions step by step, and to test them by these principles. It
|
|
cannot be a difficult task for him to show the fallacies inherent in
|
|
these propositions, and thus he begins early to feel his own power
|
|
of securing himself against the influence of such sophistical
|
|
arguments, which must finally lose, for him, all their illusory power.
|
|
And, although the same blows which overturn the edifice of his
|
|
opponent are as fatal to his own speculative structures, if such he
|
|
has wished to rear; he need not feel any sorrow in regard to this
|
|
seeming misfortune, as he has now before him a fair prospect into
|
|
the practical region in which he may reasonably hope to find a more
|
|
secure foundation for a rational system.
|
|
|
|
There is, accordingly, no proper polemic in the sphere of pure
|
|
reason. Both parties beat the air and fight with their own shadows, as
|
|
they pass beyond the limits of nature, and can find no tangible
|
|
point of attack- no firm footing for their dogmatical conflict.
|
|
Fight as vigorously as they may, the shadows which they hew down,
|
|
immediately start up again, like the heroes in Walhalla, and renew the
|
|
bloodless and unceasing contest.
|
|
|
|
But neither can we admit that there is any proper sceptical
|
|
employment of pure reason, such as might be based upon the principle
|
|
of neutrality in all speculative disputes. To excite reason against
|
|
itself, to place weapons in the hands of the party on the one side
|
|
as well as in those of the other, and to remain an undisturbed and
|
|
sarcastic spectator of the fierce struggle that ensues, seems, from
|
|
the dogmatical point of view, to be a part fitting only a malevolent
|
|
disposition. But, when the sophist evidences an invincible obstinacy
|
|
and blindness, and a pride which no criticism can moderate, there is
|
|
no other practicable course than to oppose to this pride and obstinacy
|
|
similar feelings and pretensions on the other side, equally well or
|
|
ill founded, so that reason, staggered by the reflections thus
|
|
forced upon it, finds it necessary to moderate its confidence in
|
|
such pretensions and to listen to the advice of criticism. But we
|
|
cannot stop at these doubts, much less regard the conviction of our
|
|
ignorance, not only as a cure for the conceit natural to dogmatism,
|
|
but as the settlement of the disputes in which reason is involved with
|
|
itself. On the contrary, scepticism is merely a means of awakening
|
|
reason from its dogmatic dreams and exciting it to a more careful
|
|
investigation into its own powers and pretensions. But, as
|
|
scepticism appears to be the shortest road to a permanent peace in the
|
|
domain of philosophy, and as it is the track pursued by the many who
|
|
aim at giving a philosophical colouring to their contemptuous
|
|
dislike of all inquiries of this kind, I think it necessary to present
|
|
to my readers this mode of thought in its true light.
|
|
|
|
Scepticism not a Permanent State for Human Reason.
|
|
|
|
The consciousness of ignorance- unless this ignorance is
|
|
recognized to be absolutely necessary ought, instead of forming the
|
|
conclusion of my inquiries, to be the strongest motive to the
|
|
pursuit of them. All ignorance is either ignorance of things or of the
|
|
limits of knowledge. If my ignorance is accidental and not
|
|
necessary, it must incite me, in the first case, to a dogmatical
|
|
inquiry regarding the objects of which I am ignorant; in the second,
|
|
to a critical investigation into the bounds of all possible knowledge.
|
|
But that my ignorance is absolutely necessary and unavoidable, and
|
|
that it consequently absolves from the duty of all further
|
|
investigation, is a fact which cannot be made out upon empirical
|
|
grounds- from observation- but upon critical grounds alone, that is,
|
|
by a thoroughgoing investigation into the primary sources of
|
|
cognition. It follows that the determination of the bounds of reason
|
|
can be made only on a priori grounds; while the empirical limitation
|
|
of reason, which is merely an indeterminate cognition of an
|
|
ignorance that can never be completely removed, can take place only
|
|
a posteriori. In other words, our empirical knowledge is limited by
|
|
that which yet remains for us to know. The former cognition of our
|
|
ignorance, which is possible only on a rational basis, is a science;
|
|
the latter is merely a perception, and we cannot say how far the
|
|
inferences drawn from it may extend. If I regard the earth, as it
|
|
really appears to my senses, as a flat surface, I am ignorant how
|
|
far this surface extends. But experience teaches me that, how far
|
|
soever I go, I always see before me a space in which I can proceed
|
|
farther; and thus I know the limits- merely visual- of my actual
|
|
knowledge of the earth, although I am ignorant of the limits of the
|
|
earth itself. But if I have got so far as to know that the earth is
|
|
a sphere, and that its surface is spherical, I can cognize a priori
|
|
and determine upon principles, from my knowledge of a small part of
|
|
this surface- say to the extent of a degree- the diameter and
|
|
circumference of the earth; and although I am ignorant of the
|
|
objects which this surface contains, I have a perfect knowledge of its
|
|
limits and extent.
|
|
|
|
The sum of all the possible objects of our cognition seems to us
|
|
to be a level surface, with an apparent horizon- that which forms
|
|
the limit of its extent, and which has been termed by us the idea of
|
|
unconditioned totality. To reach this limit by empirical means is
|
|
impossible, and all attempts to determine it a priori according to a
|
|
principle, are alike in vain. But all the questions raised by pure
|
|
reason relate to that which lies beyond this horizon, or, at least, in
|
|
its boundary line.
|
|
|
|
The celebrated David Hume was one of those geographers of human
|
|
reason who believe that they have given a sufficient answer to all
|
|
such questions by declaring them to lie beyond the horizon of our
|
|
knowledge- a horizon which, however, Hume was unable to determine. His
|
|
attention especially was directed to the principle of causality; and
|
|
he remarked with perfect justice that the truth of this principle, and
|
|
even the objective validity of the conception of a cause, was not
|
|
commonly based upon clear insight, that is, upon a priori cognition.
|
|
Hence he concluded that this law does not derive its authority from
|
|
its universality and necessity, but merely from its general
|
|
applicability in the course of experience, and a kind of subjective
|
|
necessity thence arising, which he termed habit. From the inability of
|
|
reason to establish this principle as a necessary law for the
|
|
acquisition of all experience, he inferred the nullity of all the
|
|
attempts of reason to pass the region of the empirical.
|
|
|
|
This procedure of subjecting the facta of reason to examination,
|
|
and, if necessary, to disapproval, may be termed the censura of
|
|
reason. This censura must inevitably lead us to doubts regarding all
|
|
transcendent employment of principles. But this is only the second
|
|
step in our inquiry. The first step in regard to the subjects of
|
|
pure reason, and which marks the infancy of that faculty, is that of
|
|
dogmatism. The second, which we have just mentioned, is that of
|
|
scepticism, and it gives evidence that our judgement has been improved
|
|
by experience. But a third step is necessary- indicative of the
|
|
maturity and manhood of the judgement, which now lays a firm
|
|
foundation upon universal and necessary principles. This is the period
|
|
of criticism, in which we do not examine the facta of reason, but
|
|
reason itself, in the whole extent of its powers, and in regard to its
|
|
capability of a priori cognition; and thus we determine not merely the
|
|
empirical and ever-shifting bounds of our knowledge, but its necessary
|
|
and eternal limits. We demonstrate from indubitable principles, not
|
|
merely our ignorance in respect to this or that subject, but in regard
|
|
to all possible questions of a certain class. Thus scepticism is a
|
|
resting place for reason, in which it may reflect on its dogmatical
|
|
wanderings and gain some knowledge of the region in which it happens
|
|
to be, that it may pursue its way with greater certainty; but it
|
|
cannot be its permanent dwelling-place. It must take up its abode only
|
|
in the region of complete certitude, whether this relates to the
|
|
cognition of objects themselves, or to the limits which bound all
|
|
our cognition.
|
|
|
|
Reason is not to be considered as an indefinitely extended plane, of
|
|
the bounds of which we have only a general knowledge; it ought
|
|
rather to be compared to a sphere, the radius of which may be found
|
|
from the curvature of its surface- that is, the nature of a priori
|
|
synthetical propositions- and, consequently, its circumference and
|
|
extent. Beyond the sphere of experience there are no objects which
|
|
it can cognize; nay, even questions regarding such supposititious
|
|
objects relate only to the subjective principles of a complete
|
|
determination of the relations which exist between the
|
|
understanding-conceptions which lie within this sphere.
|
|
|
|
We are actually in possession of a priori synthetical cognitions, as
|
|
is proved by the existence of the principles of the understanding,
|
|
which anticipate experience. If any one cannot comprehend the
|
|
possibility of these principles, he may have some reason to doubt
|
|
whether they are really a priori; but he cannot on this account
|
|
declare them to be impossible, and affirm the nullity of the steps
|
|
which reason may have taken under their guidance. He can only say:
|
|
If we perceived their origin and their authenticity, we should be able
|
|
to determine the extent and limits of reason; but, till we can do
|
|
this, all propositions regarding the latter are mere random
|
|
assertions. In this view, the doubt respecting all dogmatical
|
|
philosophy, which proceeds without the guidance of criticism, is
|
|
well grounded; but we cannot therefore deny to reason the ability to
|
|
construct a sound philosophy, when the way has been prepared by a
|
|
thorough critical investigation. All the conceptions produced, and all
|
|
the questions raised, by pure reason, do not lie in the sphere of
|
|
experience, but in that of reason itself, and hence they must be
|
|
solved, and shown to be either valid or inadmissible, by that faculty.
|
|
We have no right to decline the solution of such problems, on the
|
|
ground that the solution can be discovered only from the nature of
|
|
things, and under pretence of the limitation of human faculties, for
|
|
reason is the sole creator of all these ideas, and is therefore
|
|
bound either to establish their validity or to expose their illusory
|
|
nature.
|
|
|
|
The polemic of scepticism is properly directed against the
|
|
dogmatist, who erects a system of philosophy without having examined
|
|
the fundamental objective principles on which it is based, for the
|
|
purpose of evidencing the futility of his designs, and thus bringing
|
|
him to a knowledge of his own powers. But, in itself, scepticism
|
|
does not give us any certain information in regard to the bounds of
|
|
our knowledge. All unsuccessful dogmatical attempts of reason are
|
|
facia, which it is always useful to submit to the censure of the
|
|
sceptic. But this cannot help us to any decision regarding the
|
|
expectations which reason cherishes of better success in future
|
|
endeavours; the investigations of scepticism cannot, therefore, settle
|
|
the dispute regarding the rights and powers of human reason.
|
|
|
|
Hume is perhaps the ablest and most ingenious of all sceptical
|
|
philosophers, and his writings have, undoubtedly, exerted the most
|
|
powerful influence in awakening reason to a thorough investigation
|
|
into its own powers. It will, therefore, well repay our labours to
|
|
consider for a little the course of reasoning which he followed and
|
|
the errors into which he strayed, although setting out on the path
|
|
of truth and certitude.
|
|
|
|
Hume was probably aware, although he never clearly developed the
|
|
notion, that we proceed in judgements of a certain class beyond our
|
|
conception if the object. I have termed this kind of judgement
|
|
synthetical. As regard the manner in which I pass beyond my conception
|
|
by the aid of experience, no doubts can be entertained. Experience
|
|
is itself a synthesis of perceptions; and it employs perceptions to
|
|
increment the conception, which I obtain by means of another
|
|
perception. But we feel persuaded that we are able to proceed beyond a
|
|
conception, and to extend our cognition a priori. We attempt this in
|
|
two ways- either, through the pure understanding, in relation to
|
|
that which may become an object of experience, or, through pure
|
|
reason, in relation to such properties of things, or of the
|
|
existence of things, as can never be presented in any experience. This
|
|
sceptical philosopher did not distinguish these two kinds of
|
|
judgements, as he ought to have done, but regarded this augmentation
|
|
of conceptions, and, if we may so express ourselves, the spontaneous
|
|
generation of understanding and reason, independently of the
|
|
impregnation of experience, as altogether impossible. The so-called
|
|
a priori principles of these faculties he consequently held to be
|
|
invalid and imaginary, and regarded them as nothing but subjective
|
|
habits of thought originating in experience, and therefore purely
|
|
empirical and contingent rules, to which we attribute a spurious
|
|
necessity and universality. In support of this strange assertion, he
|
|
referred us to the generally acknowledged principle of the relation
|
|
between cause and effect. No faculty of the mind can conduct us from
|
|
the conception of a thing to the existence of something else; and
|
|
hence he believed he could infer that, without experience, we
|
|
possess no source from which we can augment a conception, and no
|
|
ground sufficient to justify us in framing a judgement that is to
|
|
extend our cognition a priori. That the light of the sun, which shines
|
|
upon a piece of wax, at the same time melts it, while it hardens clay,
|
|
no power of the understanding could infer from the conceptions which
|
|
we previously possessed of these substances; much less is there any
|
|
a priori law that could conduct us to such a conclusion, which
|
|
experience alone can certify. On the other hand, we have seen in our
|
|
discussion of transcendental logic, that, although we can never
|
|
proceed immediately beyond the content of the conception which is
|
|
given us, we can always cognize completely a priori- in relation,
|
|
however, to a third term, namely, possible experience- the law of
|
|
its connection with other things. For example, if I observe that a
|
|
piece of wax melts, I can cognize a priori that there must have been
|
|
something (the sun's heat) preceding, which this law; although,
|
|
without the aid of experience, I could not cognize a priori and in a
|
|
determinate manner either the cause from the effect, or the effect
|
|
from the cause. Hume was, therefore, wrong in inferring, from the
|
|
contingency of the determination according to law, the contingency
|
|
of the law itself; and the passing beyond the conception of a thing to
|
|
possible experience (which is an a priori proceeding, constituting the
|
|
objective reality of the conception), he confounded with our synthesis
|
|
of objects in actual experience, which is always, of course,
|
|
empirical. Thus, too, he regarded the principle of affinity, which has
|
|
its seat in the understanding and indicates a necessary connection, as
|
|
a mere rule of association, lying in the imitative faculty of
|
|
imagination, which can present only contingent, and not objective
|
|
connections.
|
|
|
|
The sceptical errors of this remarkably acute thinker arose
|
|
principally from a defect, which was common to him with the
|
|
dogmatists, namely, that he had never made a systematic review of
|
|
all the different kinds of a priori synthesis performed by the
|
|
understanding. Had he done so, he would have found, to take one
|
|
example among many, that the principle of permanence was of this
|
|
character, and that it, as well as the principle of causality,
|
|
anticipates experience. In this way he might have been able to
|
|
describe the determinate limits of the a priori operations of
|
|
understanding and reason. But he merely declared the understanding
|
|
to be limited, instead of showing what its limits were; he created a
|
|
general mistrust in the power of our faculties, without giving us
|
|
any determinate knowledge of the bounds of our necessary and
|
|
unavoidable ignorance; he examined and condemned some of the
|
|
principles of the understanding, without investigating all its
|
|
powers with the completeness necessary to criticism. He denies, with
|
|
truth, certain powers to the understanding, but he goes further, and
|
|
declares it to be utterly inadequate to the a priori extension of
|
|
knowledge, although he has not fully examined all the powers which
|
|
reside in the faculty; and thus the fate which always overtakes
|
|
scepticism meets him too. That is to say, his own declarations are
|
|
doubted, for his objections were based upon facta, which are
|
|
contingent, and not upon principles, which can alone demonstrate the
|
|
necessary invalidity of all dogmatical assertions.
|
|
|
|
As Hume makes no distinction between the well-grounded claims of the
|
|
understanding and the dialectical pretensions of reason, against
|
|
which, however, his attacks are mainly directed, reason does not
|
|
feel itself shut out from all attempts at the extension of a priori
|
|
cognition, and hence it refuses, in spite of a few checks in this or
|
|
that quarter, to relinquish such efforts. For one naturally arms
|
|
oneself to resist an attack, and becomes more obstinate in the resolve
|
|
to establish the claims he has advanced. But a complete review of
|
|
the powers of reason, and the conviction thence arising that we are in
|
|
possession of a limited field of action, while we must admit the
|
|
vanity of higher claims, puts an end to all doubt and dispute, and
|
|
induces reason to rest satisfied with the undisturbed possession of
|
|
its limited domain.
|
|
|
|
To the uncritical dogmatist, who has not surveyed the sphere of
|
|
his understanding, nor determined, in accordance with principles,
|
|
the limits of possible cognition, who, consequently, is ignorant of
|
|
his own powers, and believes he will discover them by the attempts
|
|
he makes in the field of cognition, these attacks of scepticism are
|
|
not only dangerous, but destructive. For if there is one proposition
|
|
in his chain of reasoning which be he cannot prove, or the fallacy
|
|
in which be cannot evolve in accordance with a principle, suspicion
|
|
falls on all his statements, however plausible they may appear.
|
|
|
|
And thus scepticism, the bane of dogmatical philosophy, conducts
|
|
us to a sound investigation into the understanding and the reason.
|
|
When we are thus far advanced, we need fear no further
|
|
attacks; for the limits of our domain are clearly marked out, and we
|
|
can make no claims nor become involved in any disputes regarding the
|
|
region that lies beyond these limits. Thus the sceptical procedure
|
|
in philosophy does not present any solution of the problems of reason,
|
|
but it forms an excellent exercise for its powers, awakening its
|
|
circumspection, and indicating the means whereby it may most fully
|
|
establish its claims to its legitimate possessions.
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. The Discipline of Pure Reason in Hypothesis.
|
|
|
|
This critique of reason has now taught us that all its efforts to
|
|
extend the bounds of knowledge, by means of pure speculation, are
|
|
utterly fruitless. So much the wider field, it may appear, lies open
|
|
to hypothesis; as, where we cannot know with certainty, we are at
|
|
liberty to make guesses and to form suppositions.
|
|
|
|
Imagination may be allowed, under the strict surveillance of reason,
|
|
to invent suppositions; but, these must be based on something that
|
|
is perfectly certain- and that is the possibility of the object. If we
|
|
are well assured upon this point, it is allowable to have recourse
|
|
to supposition in regard to the reality of the object; but this
|
|
supposition must, unless it is utterly groundless, be connected, as
|
|
its ground of explanation, with that which is really given and
|
|
absolutely certain. Such a supposition is termed a hypothesis.
|
|
|
|
It is beyond our power to form the least conception a priori of
|
|
the possibility of dynamical connection in phenomena; and the category
|
|
of the pure understanding will not enable us to ex. cogitate any
|
|
such connection, but merely helps us to understand it, when we meet
|
|
with it in experience. For this reason we cannot, in accordance with
|
|
the categories, imagine or invent any object or any property of an
|
|
object not given, or that may not be given in experience, and employ
|
|
it in a hypothesis; otherwise, we should be basing our chain of
|
|
reasoning upon mere chimerical fancies, and not upon conceptions of
|
|
things. Thus, we have no right to assume the existence of new
|
|
powers, not existing in nature- for example, an understanding with a
|
|
non-sensuous intuition, a force of attraction without contact, or some
|
|
new kind of substances occupying space, and yet without the property
|
|
of impenetrability- and, consequently, we cannot assume that there
|
|
is any other kind of community among substances than that observable
|
|
in experience, any kind of presence than that in space, or any kind of
|
|
duration than that in time. In one word, the conditions of possible
|
|
experience are for reason the only conditions of the possibility of
|
|
things; reason cannot venture to form, independently of these
|
|
conditions, any conceptions of things, because such conceptions,
|
|
although not self-contradictory, are without object and without
|
|
application.
|
|
|
|
The conceptions of reason are, as we have already shown, mere ideas,
|
|
and do not relate to any object in any kind of experience. At the same
|
|
time, they do not indicate imaginary or possible objects. They are
|
|
purely problematical in their nature and, as aids to the heuristic
|
|
exercise of the faculties, form the basis of the regulative principles
|
|
for the systematic employment of the understanding in the field of
|
|
experience. If we leave this ground of experience, they become mere
|
|
fictions of thought, the possibility of which is quite indemonstrable;
|
|
and they cannot, consequently, be employed as hypotheses in the
|
|
explanation of real phenomena. It is quite admissible to cogitate
|
|
the soul as simple, for the purpose of enabling ourselves to employ
|
|
the idea of a perfect and necessary unity of all the faculties of
|
|
the mind as the principle of all our inquiries into its internal
|
|
phenomena, although we cannot cognize this unity in concreto. But to
|
|
assume that the soul is a simple substance (a transcendental
|
|
conception) would be enouncing a proposition which is not only
|
|
indemonstrable- as many physical hypotheses are- but a proposition
|
|
which is purely arbitrary, and in the highest degree rash. The
|
|
simple is never presented in experience; and, if by substance is
|
|
here meant the permanent object of sensuous intuition, the possibility
|
|
of a simple phenomenon is perfectly inconceivable. Reason affords no
|
|
good grounds for admitting the existence of intelligible beings, or of
|
|
intelligible properties of sensuous things, although- as we have no
|
|
conception either of their possibility or of their impossibility- it
|
|
will always be out of our power to affirm dogmatically that they do
|
|
not exist. In the explanation of given phenomena, no other things
|
|
and no other grounds of explanation can be employed than those which
|
|
stand in connection with the given phenomena according to the known
|
|
laws of experience. A transcendental hypothesis, in which a mere
|
|
idea of reason is employed to explain the phenomena of nature, would
|
|
not give us any better insight into a phenomenon, as we should be
|
|
trying to explain what we do not sufficiently understand from known
|
|
empirical principles, by what we do not understand at all. The
|
|
principles of such a hypothesis might conduce to the satisfaction of
|
|
reason, but it would not assist the understanding in its application
|
|
to objects. Order and conformity to aims in the sphere of nature
|
|
must be themselves explained upon natural grounds and according to
|
|
natural laws; and the wildest hypotheses, if they are only physical,
|
|
are here more admissible than a hyperphysical hypothesis, such as that
|
|
of a divine author. For such a hypothesis would introduce the
|
|
principle of ignava ratio, which requires us to give up the search for
|
|
causes that might be discovered in the course of experience and to
|
|
rest satisfied with a mere idea. As regards the absolute totality of
|
|
the grounds of explanation in the series of these causes, this can
|
|
be no hindrance to the understanding in the case of phenomena;
|
|
because, as they are to us nothing more than phenomena, we have no
|
|
right to look for anything like completeness in the synthesis of the
|
|
series of their conditions.
|
|
|
|
Transcendental hypotheses are therefore inadmissible; and we
|
|
cannot use the liberty of employing, in the absence of physical,
|
|
hyperphysical grounds of explanation. And this for two reasons; first,
|
|
because such hypothesis do not advance reason, but rather stop it in
|
|
its progress; secondly, because this licence would render fruitless
|
|
all its exertions in its own proper sphere, which is that of
|
|
experience. For, when the explanation of natural phenomena happens
|
|
to be difficult, we have constantly at hand a transcendental ground of
|
|
explanation, which lifts us above the necessity of investigating
|
|
nature; and our inquiries are brought to a close, not because we
|
|
have obtained all the requisite knowledge, but because we abut upon
|
|
a principle which is incomprehensible and which, indeed, is so far
|
|
back in the track of thought as to contain the conception of the
|
|
absolutely primal being.
|
|
|
|
The next requisite for the admissibility of a hypothesis is its
|
|
sufficiency. That is, it must determine a priori the consequences
|
|
which are given in experience and which are supposed to follow from
|
|
the hypothesis itself. If we require to employ auxiliary hypotheses,
|
|
the suspicion naturally arises that they are mere fictions; because
|
|
the necessity for each of them requires the same justification as in
|
|
the case of the original hypothesis, and thus their testimony is
|
|
invalid. If we suppose the existence of an infinitely perfect cause,
|
|
we possess sufficient grounds for the explanation of the conformity to
|
|
aims, the order and the greatness which we observe in the universe;
|
|
but we find ourselves obliged, when we observe the evil in the world
|
|
and the exceptions to these laws, to employ new hypothesis in
|
|
support of the original one. We employ the idea of the simple nature
|
|
of the human soul as the foundation of all the theories we may form of
|
|
its phenomena; but when we meet with difficulties in our way, when
|
|
we observe in the soul phenomena similar to the changes which take
|
|
place in matter, we require to call in new auxiliary hypotheses. These
|
|
may, indeed, not be false, but we do not know them to be true, because
|
|
the only witness to their certitude is the hypothesis which they
|
|
themselves have been called in to explain.
|
|
|
|
We are not discussing the above-mentioned assertions regarding the
|
|
immaterial unity of the soul and the existence of a Supreme Being as
|
|
dogmata, which certain philosophers profess to demonstrate a priori,
|
|
but purely as hypotheses. In the former case, the dogmatist must
|
|
take care that his arguments possess the apodeictic certainty of a
|
|
demonstration. For the assertion that the reality of such ideas is
|
|
probable is as absurd as a proof of the probability of a proposition
|
|
in geometry. Pure abstract reason, apart from all experience, can
|
|
either cognize nothing at all; and hence the judgements it enounces
|
|
are never mere opinions, they are either apodeictic certainties, or
|
|
declarations that nothing can be known on the subject. Opinions and
|
|
probable judgements on the nature of things can only be employed to
|
|
explain given phenomena, or they may relate to the effect, in
|
|
accordance with empirical laws, of an actually existing cause. In
|
|
other words, we must restrict the sphere of opinion to the world of
|
|
experience and nature. Beyond this region opinion is mere invention;
|
|
unless we are groping about for the truth on a path not yet fully
|
|
known, and have some hopes of stumbling upon it by chance.
|
|
|
|
But, although hypotheses are inadmissible in answers to the
|
|
questions of pure speculative reason, they may be employed in the
|
|
defence of these answers. That is to say, hypotheses are admissible in
|
|
polemic, but not in the sphere of dogmatism. By the defence of
|
|
statements of this character, I do not mean an attempt at
|
|
discovering new grounds for their support, but merely the refutation
|
|
of the arguments of opponents. All a priori synthetical propositions
|
|
possess the peculiarity that, although the philosopher who maintains
|
|
the reality of the ideas contained in the proposition is not in
|
|
possession of sufficient knowledge to establish the certainty of his
|
|
statements, his opponent is as little able to prove the truth of the
|
|
opposite. This equality of fortune does not allow the one party to
|
|
be superior to the other in the sphere of speculative cognition; and
|
|
it is this sphere, accordingly, that is the proper arena of these
|
|
endless speculative conflicts. But we shall afterwards show that, in
|
|
relation to its practical exercise, Reason has the right of
|
|
admitting what, in the field of pure speculation, she would not be
|
|
justified in supposing, except upon perfectly sufficient grounds;
|
|
because all such suppositions destroy the necessary completeness of
|
|
speculation- a condition which the practical reason, however, does not
|
|
consider to be requisite. In this sphere, therefore, Reason is
|
|
mistress of a possession, her title to which she does not require to
|
|
prove- which, in fact, she could not do. The burden of proof
|
|
accordingly rests upon the opponent. But as he has just as little
|
|
knowledge regarding the subject discussed, and is as little able to
|
|
prove the non-existence of the object of an idea, as the philosopher
|
|
on the other side is to demonstrate its reality, it is evident that
|
|
there is an advantage on the side of the philosopher who maintains his
|
|
proposition as a practically necessary supposition (melior est
|
|
conditio possidentis). For he is at liberty to employ, in
|
|
self-defence, the same weapons as his opponent makes use of in
|
|
attacking him; that is, he has a right to use hypotheses not for the
|
|
purpose of supporting the arguments in favour of his own propositions,
|
|
but to show that his opponent knows no more than himself regarding the
|
|
subject under 'discussion and cannot boast of any speculative
|
|
advantage.
|
|
|
|
Hypotheses are, therefore, admissible in the sphere of pure reason
|
|
only as weapons for self-defence, and not as supports to dogmatical
|
|
assertions. But the opposing party we must always seek for in
|
|
ourselves. For speculative reason is, in the sphere of
|
|
transcendentalism, dialectical in its own nature. The difficulties and
|
|
objections we have to fear lie in ourselves. They are like old but
|
|
never superannuated claims; and we must seek them out, and settle them
|
|
once and for ever, if we are to expect a permanent peace. External
|
|
tranquility is hollow and unreal. The root of these contradictions,
|
|
which lies in the nature of human reason, must be destroyed; and
|
|
this can only be done by giving it, in the first instance, freedom
|
|
to grow, nay, by nourishing it, that it may send out shoots, and
|
|
thus betray its own existence. It is our duty, therefore, to try to
|
|
discover new objections, to put weapons in the bands of our
|
|
opponent, and to grant him the most favourable position in the arena
|
|
that he can wish. We have nothing to fear from these concessions; on
|
|
the contrary, we may rather hope that we shall thus make ourselves
|
|
master of a possession which no one will ever venture to dispute.
|
|
|
|
The thinker requires, to be fully equipped, the hypotheses of pure
|
|
reason, which, although but leaden weapons (for they have not been
|
|
steeled in the armoury of experience), are as useful as any that can
|
|
be employed by his opponents. If, accordingly, we have assumed, from a
|
|
non-speculative point of view, the immaterial nature of the soul,
|
|
and are met by the objection that experience seems to prove that the
|
|
growth and decay of our mental faculties are mere modifications of the
|
|
sensuous organism- we can weaken the force of this objection by the
|
|
assumption that the body is nothing but the fundamental phenomenon, to
|
|
which, as a necessary condition, all sensibility, and consequently all
|
|
thought, relates in the present state of our existence; and that the
|
|
separation of soul and body forms the conclusion of the sensuous
|
|
exercise of our power of cognition and the beginning of the
|
|
intellectual. The body would, in this view of the question, be
|
|
regarded, not as the cause of thought, but merely as its restrictive
|
|
condition, as promotive of the sensuous and animal, but as a hindrance
|
|
to the pure and spiritual life; and the dependence of the animal
|
|
life on the constitution of the body, would not prove that the whole
|
|
life of man was also dependent on the state of the organism. We
|
|
might go still farther, and discover new objections, or carry out to
|
|
their extreme consequences those which have already been adduced.
|
|
|
|
Generation, in the human race as well as among the irrational
|
|
animals, depends on so many accidents- of occasion, of proper
|
|
sustenance, of the laws enacted by the government of a country of vice
|
|
even, that it is difficult to believe in the eternal existence of a
|
|
being whose life has begun under circumstances so mean and trivial,
|
|
and so entirely dependent upon our own control. As regards the
|
|
continuance of the existence of the whole race, we need have no
|
|
difficulties, for accident in single cases is subject to general laws;
|
|
but, in the case of each individual, it would seem as if we could
|
|
hardly expect so wonderful an effect from causes so insignificant.
|
|
But, in answer to these objections, we may adduce the transcendental
|
|
hypothesis that all life is properly intelligible, and not subject
|
|
to changes of time, and that it neither began in birth, nor will end
|
|
in death. We may assume that this life is nothing more than a sensuous
|
|
representation of pure spiritual life; that the whole world of sense
|
|
is but an image, hovering before the faculty of cognition which we
|
|
exercise in this sphere, and with no more objective reality than a
|
|
dream; and that if we could intuite ourselves and other things as they
|
|
really are, we should see ourselves in a world of spiritual natures,
|
|
our connection with which did not begin at our birth and will not
|
|
cease with the destruction of the body. And so on.
|
|
|
|
We cannot be said to know what has been above asserted, nor do we
|
|
seriously maintain the truth of these assertions; and the notions
|
|
therein indicated are not even ideas of reason, they are purely
|
|
fictitious conceptions. But this hypothetical procedure is in
|
|
perfect conformity with the laws of reason. Our opponent mistakes
|
|
the absence of empirical conditions for a proof of the complete
|
|
impossibility of all that we have asserted; and we have to show him
|
|
that be has not exhausted the whole sphere of possibility and that
|
|
he can as little compass that sphere by the laws of experience and
|
|
nature, as we can lay a secure foundation for the operations of reason
|
|
beyond the region of experience. Such hypothetical defences against
|
|
the pretensions of an opponent must not be regarded as declarations of
|
|
opinion. The philosopher abandons them, so soon as the opposite
|
|
party renounces its dogmatical conceit. To maintain a simply
|
|
negative position in relation to propositions which rest on an
|
|
insecure foundation, well befits the moderation of a true philosopher;
|
|
but to uphold the objections urged against an opponent as proofs of
|
|
the opposite statement is a proceeding just as unwarrantable and
|
|
arrogant as it is to attack the position of a philosopher who advances
|
|
affirmative propositions regarding such a subject.
|
|
|
|
It is evident, therefore, that hypotheses, in the speculative
|
|
sphere, are valid, not as independent propositions, but only
|
|
relatively to opposite transcendent assumptions. For, to make the
|
|
principles of possible experience conditions of the possibility of
|
|
things in general is just as transcendent a procedure as to maintain
|
|
the objective reality of ideas which can be applied to no objects
|
|
except such as lie without the limits of possible experience. The
|
|
judgements enounced by pure reason must be necessary, or they must not
|
|
be enounced at all. Reason cannot trouble herself with opinions. But
|
|
the hypotheses we have been discussing are merely problematical
|
|
judgements, which can neither be confuted nor proved; while,
|
|
therefore, they are not personal opinions, they are indispensable as
|
|
answers to objections which are liable to be raised. But we must
|
|
take care to confine them to this function, and guard against any
|
|
assumption on their part of absolute validity, a proceeding which
|
|
would involve reason in inextricable difficulties and contradictions.
|
|
|
|
SECTION IV. The Discipline of Pure Reason in Relation
|
|
|
|
to Proofs.
|
|
|
|
It is a peculiarity, which distinguishes the proofs of
|
|
transcendental synthetical propositions from those of all other a
|
|
priori synthetical cognitions, that reason, in the case of the former,
|
|
does not apply its conceptions directly to an object, but is first
|
|
obliged to prove, a priori, the objective validity of these
|
|
conceptions and the possibility of their syntheses. This is not merely
|
|
a prudential rule, it is essential to the very possibility of the
|
|
proof of a transcendental proposition. If I am required to pass, a
|
|
priori, beyond the conception of an object, I find that it is
|
|
utterly impossible without the guidance of something which is not
|
|
contained in the conception. In mathematics, it is a priori
|
|
intuition that guides my synthesis; and, in this case, all our
|
|
conclusions may be drawn immediately from pure intuition. In
|
|
transcendental cognition, so long as we are dealing only with
|
|
conceptions of the understanding, we are guided by possible
|
|
experience. That is to say, a proof in the sphere of transcendental
|
|
cognition does not show that the given conception (that of an event,
|
|
for example) leads directly to another conception (that of a cause)-
|
|
for this would be a saltus which nothing can justify; but it shows
|
|
that experience itself, and consequently the object of experience,
|
|
is impossible without the connection indicated by these conceptions.
|
|
It follows that such a proof must demonstrate the possibility of
|
|
arriving, synthetically and a priori, at a certain knowledge of
|
|
things, which was not contained in our conceptions of these things.
|
|
Unless we pay particular attention to this requirement, our proofs,
|
|
instead of pursuing the straight path indicated by reason, follow
|
|
the tortuous road of mere subjective association. The illusory
|
|
conviction, which rests upon subjective causes of association, and
|
|
which is considered as resulting from the perception of a real and
|
|
objective natural affinity, is always open to doubt and suspicion. For
|
|
this reason, all the attempts which have been made to prove the
|
|
principle of sufficient reason, have, according to the universal
|
|
admission of philosophers, been quite unsuccessful; and, before the
|
|
appearance of transcendental criticism, it was considered better, as
|
|
this principle could not be abandoned, to appeal boldly to the
|
|
common sense of mankind (a proceeding which always proves that the
|
|
problem, which reason ought to solve, is one in which philosophers
|
|
find great difficulties), rather than attempt to discover new
|
|
dogmatical proofs.
|
|
|
|
But, if the proposition to be proved is a proposition of pure
|
|
reason, and if I aim at passing beyond my empirical conceptions by the
|
|
aid of mere ideas, it is necessary that the proof should first show
|
|
that such a step in synthesis is possible (which it is not), before it
|
|
proceeds to prove the truth of the proposition itself. The so-called
|
|
proof of the simple nature of the soul from the unity of apperception,
|
|
is a very plausible one. But it contains no answer to the objection,
|
|
that, as the notion of absolute simplicity is not a conception which
|
|
is directly applicable to a perception, but is an idea which must be
|
|
inferred- if at all- from observation, it is by no means evident how
|
|
the mere fact of consciousness, which is contained in all thought,
|
|
although in so far a simple representation, can conduct me to the
|
|
consciousness and cognition of a thing which is purely a thinking
|
|
substance. When I represent to my mind the power of my body as in
|
|
motion, my body in this thought is so far absolute unity, and my
|
|
representation of it is a simple one; and hence I can indicate this
|
|
representation by the motion of a point, because I have made
|
|
abstraction of the size or volume of the body. But I cannot hence
|
|
infer that, given merely the moving power of a body, the body may be
|
|
cogitated as simple substance, merely because the representation in my
|
|
mind takes no account of its content in space, and is consequently
|
|
simple. The simple, in abstraction, is very different from the
|
|
objectively simple; and hence the Ego, which is simple in the first
|
|
sense, may, in the second sense, as indicating the soul itself, be a
|
|
very complex conception, with a very various content. Thus it is
|
|
evident that in all such arguments there lurks a paralogism. We
|
|
guess (for without some such surmise our suspicion would not be
|
|
excited in reference to a proof of this character) at the presence
|
|
of the paralogism, by keeping ever before us a criterion of the
|
|
possibility of those synthetical propositions which aim at proving
|
|
more than experience can teach us. This criterion is obtained from the
|
|
observation that such proofs do not lead us directly from the
|
|
subject of the proposition to be proved to the required predicate, but
|
|
find it necessary to presuppose the possibility of extending our
|
|
cognition a priori by means of ideas. We must, accordingly, always use
|
|
the greatest caution; we require, before attempting any proof, to
|
|
consider how it is possible to extend the sphere of cognition by the
|
|
operations of pure reason, and from what source we are to derive
|
|
knowledge, which is not obtained from the analysis of conceptions, nor
|
|
relates, by anticipation, to possible experience. We shall thus
|
|
spare ourselves much severe and fruitless labour, by not expecting
|
|
from reason what is beyond its power, or rather by subjecting it to
|
|
discipline, and teaching it to moderate its vehement desires for the
|
|
extension of the sphere of cognition.
|
|
|
|
The first rule for our guidance is, therefore, not to attempt a
|
|
transcendental proof, before we have considered from what source we
|
|
are to derive the principles upon which the proof is to be based,
|
|
and what right we have to expect that our conclusions from these
|
|
principles will be veracious. If they are principles of the
|
|
understanding, it is vain to expect that we should attain by their
|
|
means to ideas of pure reason; for these principles are valid only
|
|
in regard to objects of possible experience. If they are principles of
|
|
pure reason, our labour is alike in vain. For the principles of
|
|
reason, if employed as objective, are without exception dialectical
|
|
and possess no validity or truth, except as regulative principles of
|
|
the systematic employment of reason in experience. But when such
|
|
delusive proof are presented to us, it is our duty to meet them with
|
|
the non liquet of a matured judgement; and, although we are unable
|
|
to expose the particular sophism upon which the proof is based, we
|
|
have a right to demand a deduction of the principles employed in it;
|
|
and, if these principles have their origin in pure reason alone,
|
|
such a deduction is absolutely impossible. And thus it is
|
|
unnecessary that we should trouble ourselves with the exposure and
|
|
confutation of every sophistical illusion; we may, at once, bring
|
|
all dialectic, which is inexhaustible in the production of
|
|
fallacies, before the bar of critical reason, which tests the
|
|
principles upon which all dialectical procedure is based. The second
|
|
peculiarity of transcendental proof is that a transcendental
|
|
proposition cannot rest upon more than a single proof. If I am drawing
|
|
conclusions, not from conceptions, but from intuition corresponding to
|
|
a conception, be it pure intuition, as in mathematics, or empirical,
|
|
as in natural science, the intuition which forms the basis of my
|
|
inferences presents me with materials for many synthetical
|
|
propositions, which I can connect in various modes, while, as it is
|
|
allowable to proceed from different points in the intention, I can
|
|
arrive by different paths at the same proposition.
|
|
|
|
But every transcendental proposition sets out from a conception, and
|
|
posits the synthetical condition of the possibility of an object
|
|
according to this conception. There must, therefore, be but one ground
|
|
of proof, because it is the conception alone which determines the
|
|
object; and thus the proof cannot contain anything more than the
|
|
determination of the object according to the conception. In our
|
|
Transcendental Analytic, for example, we inferred the principle: Every
|
|
event has a cause, from the only condition of the objective
|
|
possibility of our conception of an event. This is that an event
|
|
cannot be determined in time, and consequently cannot form a part of
|
|
experience, unless it stands under this dynamical law. This is the
|
|
only possible ground of proof; for our conception of an event
|
|
possesses objective validity, that is, is a true conception, only
|
|
because the law of causality determines an object to which it can
|
|
refer. Other arguments in support of this principle have been
|
|
attempted- such as that from the contingent nature of a phenomenon;
|
|
but when this argument is considered, we can discover no criterion
|
|
of contingency, except the fact of an event- of something happening,
|
|
that is to say, the existence which is preceded by the non-existence
|
|
of an object, and thus we fall back on the very thing to be proved. If
|
|
the proposition: "Every thinking being is simple," is to be proved, we
|
|
keep to the conception of the ego, which is simple, and to which all
|
|
thought has a relation. The same is the case with the transcendental
|
|
proof of the existence of a Deity, which is based solely upon the
|
|
harmony and reciprocal fitness of the conceptions of an ens
|
|
realissimum and a necessary being, and cannot be attempted in any
|
|
other manner.
|
|
|
|
This caution serves to simplify very much the criticism of all
|
|
propositions of reason. When reason employs conceptions alone, only
|
|
one proof of its thesis is possible, if any. When, therefore, the
|
|
dogmatist advances with ten arguments in favour of a proposition, we
|
|
may be sure that not one of them is conclusive. For if he possessed
|
|
one which proved the proposition he brings forward to demonstration-
|
|
as must always be the case with the propositions of pure reason-
|
|
what need is there for any more? His intention can only be similar
|
|
to that of the advocate who had different arguments for different
|
|
judges; this availing himself of the weakness of those who examine his
|
|
arguments, who, without going into any profound investigation, adopt
|
|
the view of the case which seems most probable at first sight and
|
|
decide according to it.
|
|
|
|
The third rule for the guidance of pure reason in the conduct of a
|
|
proof is that all transcendental proofs must never be apagogic or
|
|
indirect, but always ostensive or direct. The direct or ostensive
|
|
proof not only establishes the truth of the proposition to be
|
|
proved, but exposes the grounds of its truth; the apagogic, on the
|
|
other hand, may assure us of the truth of the proposition, but it
|
|
cannot enable us to comprehend the grounds of its possibility. The
|
|
latter is, accordingly, rather an auxiliary to an argument, than a
|
|
strictly philosophical and rational mode of procedure. In one respect,
|
|
however, they have an advantage over direct proofs, from the fact that
|
|
the mode of arguing by contradiction, which they employ, renders our
|
|
understanding of the question more clear, and approximates the proof
|
|
to the certainty of an intuitional demonstration.
|
|
|
|
The true reason why indirect proofs are employed in different
|
|
sciences is this. When the grounds upon which we seek to base a
|
|
cognition are too various or too profound, we try whether or not we
|
|
may not discover the truth of our cognition from its consequences. The
|
|
modus ponens of reasoning from the truth of its inferences to the
|
|
truth of a proposition would be admissible if all the inferences
|
|
that can be drawn from it are known to be true; for in this case there
|
|
can be only one possible ground for these inferences, and that is
|
|
the true one. But this is a quite impracticable procedure, as it
|
|
surpasses all our powers to discover all the possible inferences
|
|
that can be drawn from a proposition. But this mode of reasoning is
|
|
employed, under favour, when we wish to prove the truth of an
|
|
hypothesis; in which case we admit the truth of the conclusion-
|
|
which is supported by analogy- that, if all the inferences we have
|
|
drawn and examined agree with the proposition assumed, all other
|
|
possible inferences will also agree with it. But, in this way, an
|
|
hypothesis can never be established as a demonstrated truth. The modus
|
|
tollens of reasoning from known inferences to the unknown proposition,
|
|
is not only a rigorous, but a very easy mode of proof. For, if it
|
|
can be shown that but one inference from a proposition is false,
|
|
then the proposition must itself be false. Instead, then, of
|
|
examining, in an ostensive argument, the whole series of the grounds
|
|
on which the truth of a proposition rests, we need only take the
|
|
opposite of this proposition, and if one inference from it be false,
|
|
then must the opposite be itself false; and, consequently, the
|
|
proposition which we wished to prove must be true.
|
|
|
|
The apagogic method of proof is admissible only in those sciences
|
|
where it is impossible to mistake a subjective representation for an
|
|
objective cognition. Where this is possible, it is plain that the
|
|
opposite of a given proposition may contradict merely the subjective
|
|
conditions of thought, and not the objective cognition; or it may
|
|
happen that both propositions contradict each other only under a
|
|
subjective condition, which is incorrectly considered to be objective,
|
|
and, as the condition is itself false, both propositions may be false,
|
|
and it will, consequently, be impossible to conclude the truth of
|
|
the one from the falseness of the other.
|
|
|
|
In mathematics such subreptions are impossible; and it is in this
|
|
science, accordingly, that the indirect mode of proof has its true
|
|
place. In the science of nature, where all assertion is based upon
|
|
empirical intuition, such subreptions may be guarded against by the
|
|
repeated comparison of observations; but this mode of proof is of
|
|
little value in this sphere of knowledge. But the transcendental
|
|
efforts of pure reason are all made in the sphere of the subjective,
|
|
which is the real medium of all dialectical illusion; and thus
|
|
reason endeavours, in its premisses, to impose upon us subjective
|
|
representations for objective cognitions. In the transcendental sphere
|
|
of pure reason, then, and in the case of synthetical propositions,
|
|
it is inadmissible to support a statement by disproving the
|
|
counter-statement. For only two cases are possible; either, the
|
|
counter-statement is nothing but the enouncement of the
|
|
inconsistency of the opposite opinion with the subjective conditions
|
|
of reason, which does not affect the real case (for example, we cannot
|
|
comprehend the unconditioned necessity of the existence of a being,
|
|
and hence every speculative proof of the existence of such a being
|
|
must be opposed on subjective grounds, while the possibility of this
|
|
being in itself cannot with justice be denied); or, both propositions,
|
|
being dialectical in their nature, are based upon an impossible
|
|
conception. In this latter case the rule applies: non entis nulla sunt
|
|
predicata; that is to say, what we affirm and what we deny, respecting
|
|
such an object, are equally untrue, and the apagogic mode of
|
|
arriving at the truth is in this case impossible. If, for example,
|
|
we presuppose that the world of sense is given in itself in its
|
|
totality, it is false, either that it is infinite, or that it is
|
|
finite and limited in space. Both are false, because the hypothesis is
|
|
false. For the notion of phenomena (as mere representations) which are
|
|
given in themselves (as objects) is self-contradictory; and the
|
|
infinitude of this imaginary whole would, indeed, be unconditioned,
|
|
but would be inconsistent (as everything in the phenomenal world is
|
|
conditioned) with the unconditioned determination and finitude of
|
|
quantities which is presupposed in our conception.
|
|
|
|
The apagogic mode of proof is the true source of those illusions
|
|
which have always had so strong an attraction for the admirers of
|
|
dogmatical philosophy. It may be compared to a champion who
|
|
maintains the honour and claims of the party he has adopted by
|
|
offering battle to all who doubt the validity of these claims and
|
|
the purity of that honour; while nothing can be proved in this way,
|
|
except the respective strength of the combatants, and the advantage,
|
|
in this respect, is always on the side of the attacking party.
|
|
Spectators, observing that each party is alternately conqueror and
|
|
conquered, are led to regard the subject of dispute as beyond the
|
|
power of man to decide upon. But such an opinion cannot be
|
|
justified; and it is sufficient to apply to these reasoners the
|
|
remark:
|
|
|
|
Non defensoribus istis
|
|
|
|
Tempus eget.
|
|
|
|
Each must try to establish his assertions by a transcendental
|
|
deduction of the grounds of proof employed in his argument, and thus
|
|
enable us to see in what way the claims of reason may be supported. If
|
|
an opponent bases his assertions upon subjective grounds, he may be
|
|
refuted with ease; not, however to the advantage of the dogmatist, who
|
|
likewise depends upon subjective sources of cognition and is in like
|
|
manner driven into a corner by his opponent. But, if parties employ
|
|
the direct method of procedure, they will soon discover the
|
|
difficulty, nay, the impossibility of proving their assertions, and
|
|
will be forced to appeal to prescription and precedence; or they will,
|
|
by the help of criticism, discover with ease the dogmatical
|
|
illusions by which they had been mocked, and compel reason to renounce
|
|
its exaggerated pretensions to speculative insight and to confine
|
|
itself within the limits of its proper sphere- that of practical
|
|
principles.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. The Canon of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
It is a humiliating consideration for human reason that it is
|
|
incompetent to discover truth by means of pure speculation, but, on
|
|
the contrary, stands in need of discipline to check its deviations
|
|
from the straight path and to expose the illusions which it
|
|
originates. But, on the other hand, this consideration ought to
|
|
elevate and to give it confidence, for this discipline is exercised by
|
|
itself alone, and it is subject to the censure of no other power.
|
|
The bounds, moreover, which it is forced to set to its speculative
|
|
exercise, form likewise a check upon the fallacious pretensions of
|
|
opponents; and thus what remains of its possessions, after these
|
|
exaggerated claims have been disallowed, is secure from attack or
|
|
usurpation. The greatest, and perhaps the only, use of all
|
|
philosophy of pure reason is, accordingly, of a purely negative
|
|
character. It is not an organon for the extension, but a discipline
|
|
for the determination, of the limits of its exercise; and without
|
|
laying claim to the discovery of new truth, it has the modest merit of
|
|
guarding against error.
|
|
|
|
At the same time, there must be some source of positive cognitions
|
|
which belong to the domain of pure reason and which become the
|
|
causes of error only from our mistaking their true character, while
|
|
they form the goal towards which reason continually strives. How
|
|
else can we account for the inextinguishable desire in the human
|
|
mind to find a firm footing in some region beyond the limits of the
|
|
world of experience? It hopes to attain to the possession of a
|
|
knowledge in which it has the deepest interest. It enters upon the
|
|
path of pure speculation; but in vain. We have some reason, however,
|
|
to expect that, in the only other way that lies open to it- the path
|
|
of practical reason- it may meet with better success.
|
|
|
|
I understand by a canon a list of the a priori principles of the
|
|
proper employment of certain faculties of cognition. Thus general
|
|
logic, in its analytical department, is a formal canon for the
|
|
faculties of understanding and reason. In the same way, Transcendental
|
|
Analytic was seen to be a canon of the pure understanding; for it
|
|
alone is competent to enounce true a priori synthetical cognitions.
|
|
But, when no proper employment of a faculty of cognition is
|
|
possible, no canon can exist. But the synthetical cognition of pure
|
|
speculative reason is, as has been shown, completely impossible. There
|
|
cannot, therefore, exist any canon for the speculative exercise of
|
|
this faculty- for its speculative exercise is entirely dialectical;
|
|
and, consequently, transcendental logic, in this respect, is merely
|
|
a discipline, and not a canon. If, then, there is any proper mode of
|
|
employing the faculty of pure reason- in which case there must be a
|
|
canon for this faculty- this canon will relate, not to the
|
|
speculative, but to the practical use of reason. This canon we now
|
|
proceed to investigate.
|
|
|
|
SECTION I. Of the Ultimate End of the Pure Use of Reason.
|
|
|
|
There exists in the faculty of reason a natural desire to venture
|
|
beyond the field of experience, to attempt to reach the utmost
|
|
bounds of all cognition by the help of ideas alone, and not to rest
|
|
satisfied until it has fulfilled its course and raised the sum of
|
|
its cognitions into a self-subsistent systematic whole. Is the
|
|
motive for this endeavour to be found in its speculative, or in its
|
|
practical interests alone?
|
|
|
|
Setting aside, at present, the results of the labours of pure reason
|
|
in its speculative exercise, I shall merely inquire regarding the
|
|
problems the solution of which forms its ultimate aim, whether reached
|
|
or not, and in relation to which all other aims are but partial and
|
|
intermediate. These highest aims must, from the nature of reason,
|
|
possess complete unity; otherwise the highest interest of humanity
|
|
could not be successfully promoted.
|
|
|
|
The transcendental speculation of reason relates to three things:
|
|
the freedom of the will, the immortality of the soul, and the
|
|
existence of God. The speculative interest which reason has in those
|
|
questions is very small; and, for its sake alone, we should not
|
|
undertake the labour of transcendental investigation- a labour full of
|
|
toil and ceaseless struggle. We should be loth to undertake this
|
|
labour, because the discoveries we might make would not be of the
|
|
smallest use in the sphere of concrete or physical investigation. We
|
|
may find out that the will is free, but this knowledge only relates to
|
|
the intelligible cause of our volition. As regards the phenomena or
|
|
expressions of this will, that is, our actions, we are bound, in
|
|
obedience to an inviolable maxim, without which reason cannot be
|
|
employed in the sphere of experience, to explain these in the same way
|
|
as we explain all the other phenomena of nature, that is to say,
|
|
according to its unchangeable laws. We may have discovered the
|
|
spirituality and immortality of the soul, but we cannot employ this
|
|
knowledge to explain the phenomena of this life, nor the peculiar
|
|
nature of the future, because our conception of an incorporeal
|
|
nature is purely negative and does not add anything to our
|
|
knowledge, and the only inferences to be drawn from it are purely
|
|
fictitious. If, again, we prove the existence of a supreme
|
|
intelligence, we should be able from it to make the conformity to aims
|
|
existing in the arrangement of the world comprehensible; but we should
|
|
not be justified in deducing from it any particular arrangement or
|
|
disposition, or inferring any where it is not perceived. For it is a
|
|
necessary rule of the speculative use of reason that we must not
|
|
overlook natural causes, or refuse to listen to the teaching of
|
|
experience, for the sake of deducing what we know and perceive from
|
|
something that transcends all our knowledge. In one word, these
|
|
three propositions are, for the speculative reason, always
|
|
transcendent, and cannot be employed as immanent principles in
|
|
relation to the objects of experience; they are, consequently, of no
|
|
use to us in this sphere, being but the valueless results of the
|
|
severe but unprofitable efforts of reason.
|
|
|
|
If, then, the actual cognition of these three cardinal
|
|
propositions is perfectly useless, while Reason uses her utmost
|
|
endeavours to induce us to admit them, it is plain that their real
|
|
value and importance relate to our practical, and not to our
|
|
speculative interest.
|
|
|
|
I term all that is possible through free will, practical. But if the
|
|
conditions of the exercise of free volition are empirical, reason
|
|
can have only a regulative, and not a constitutive, influence upon it,
|
|
and is serviceable merely for the introduction of unity into its
|
|
empirical laws. In the moral philosophy of prudence, for example,
|
|
the sole business of reason is to bring about a union of all the ends,
|
|
which are aimed at by our inclinations, into one ultimate end- that of
|
|
happiness- and to show the agreement which should exist among the
|
|
means of attaining that end. In this sphere, accordingly, reason
|
|
cannot present to us any other than pragmatical laws of free action,
|
|
for our guidance towards the aims set up by the senses, and is
|
|
incompetent to give us laws which are pure and determined completely a
|
|
priori. On the other hand, pure practical laws, the ends of which have
|
|
been given by reason entirely a priori, and which are not
|
|
empirically conditioned, but are, on the contrary, absolutely
|
|
imperative in their nature, would be products of pure reason. Such are
|
|
the moral laws; and these alone belong to the sphere of the
|
|
practical exercise of reason, and admit of a canon.
|
|
|
|
All the powers of reason, in the sphere of what may be termed pure
|
|
philosophy, are, in fact, directed to the three above-mentioned
|
|
problems alone. These again have a still higher end- the answer to the
|
|
question, what we ought to do, if the will is free, if there is a
|
|
God and a future world. Now, as this problem relates to our in
|
|
reference to the highest aim of humanity, it is evident that the
|
|
ultimate intention of nature, in the constitution of our reason, has
|
|
been directed to the moral alone.
|
|
|
|
We must take care, however, in turning our attention to an object
|
|
which is foreign* to the sphere of transcendental philosophy, not to
|
|
injure the unity of our system by digressions, nor, on the other hand,
|
|
to fail in clearness, by saying too little on the new subject of
|
|
discussion. I hope to avoid both extremes, by keeping as close as
|
|
possible to the transcendental, and excluding all psychological,
|
|
that is, empirical, elements.
|
|
|
|
*All practical conceptions relate to objects of pleasure and pain,
|
|
and consequently- in an indirect manner, at least- to objects of
|
|
feeling. But as feeling is not a faculty of representation, but lies
|
|
out of the sphere of our powers of cognition, the elements of our
|
|
judgements, in so far as they relate to pleasure or pain, that is, the
|
|
elements of our practical judgements, do not belong to
|
|
transcendental philosophy, which has to do with pure a priori
|
|
cognitions alone.
|
|
|
|
I have to remark, in the first place, that at present I treat of the
|
|
conception of freedom in the practical sense only, and set aside the
|
|
corresponding transcendental conception, which cannot be employed as a
|
|
ground of explanation in the phenomenal world, but is itself a problem
|
|
for pure reason. A will is purely animal (arbitrium brutum) when it is
|
|
determined by sensuous impulses or instincts only, that is, when it is
|
|
determined in a pathological manner. A will, which can be determined
|
|
independently of sensuous impulses, consequently by motives
|
|
presented by reason alone, is called a free will (arbitrium
|
|
liberum); and everything which is connected with this free will,
|
|
either as principle or consequence, is termed practical. The existence
|
|
of practical freedom can be proved from experience alone. For the
|
|
human will is not determined by that alone which immediately affects
|
|
the senses; on the contrary, we have the power, by calling up the
|
|
notion of what is useful or hurtful in a more distant relation, of
|
|
overcoming the immediate impressions on our sensuous faculty of
|
|
desire. But these considerations of what is desirable in relation to
|
|
our whole state, that is, is in the end good and useful, are based
|
|
entirely upon reason. This faculty, accordingly, enounces laws,
|
|
which are imperative or objective laws of freedom and which tell us
|
|
what ought to take place, thus distinguishing themselves from the laws
|
|
of nature, which relate to that which does take place. The laws of
|
|
freedom or of free will are hence termed practical laws.
|
|
|
|
Whether reason is not itself, in the actual delivery of these
|
|
laws, determined in its turn by other influences, and whether the
|
|
action which, in relation to sensuous impulses, we call free, may not,
|
|
in relation to higher and more remote operative causes, really form
|
|
a part of nature- these are questions which do not here concern us.
|
|
They are purely speculative questions; and all we have to do, in the
|
|
practical sphere, is to inquire into the rule of conduct which
|
|
reason has to present. Experience demonstrates to us the existence
|
|
of practical freedom as one of the causes which exist in nature,
|
|
that is, it shows the causal power of reason in the determination of
|
|
the will. The idea of transcendental freedom, on the contrary,
|
|
requires that reason- in relation to its causal power of commencing
|
|
a series of phenomena- should be independent of all sensuous
|
|
determining causes; and thus it seems to be in opposition to the law
|
|
of nature and to all possible experience. It therefore remains a
|
|
problem for the human mind. But this problem does not concern reason
|
|
in its practical use; and we have, therefore, in a canon of pure
|
|
reason, to do with only two questions, which relate to the practical
|
|
interest of pure reason: Is there a God? and, Is there a future
|
|
life? The question of transcendental freedom is purely speculative,
|
|
and we may therefore set it entirely aside when we come to treat of
|
|
practical reason. Besides, we have already discussed this subject in
|
|
the antinomy of pure reason.
|
|
|
|
SECTION II. Of the Ideal of the Summum Bonum as a Determining
|
|
|
|
Ground of the Ultimate End of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
Reason conducted us, in its speculative use, through the field of
|
|
experience and, as it can never find complete satisfaction in that
|
|
sphere, from thence to speculative ideas- which, however, in the end
|
|
brought us back again to experience, and thus fulfilled the purpose of
|
|
reason, in a manner which, though useful, was not at all in accordance
|
|
with our expectations. It now remains for us to consider whether
|
|
pure reason can be employed in a practical sphere, and whether it will
|
|
here conduct us to those ideas which attain the highest ends of pure
|
|
reason, as we have just stated them. We shall thus ascertain
|
|
whether, from the point of view of its practical interest, reason
|
|
may not be able to supply us with that which, on the speculative side,
|
|
it wholly denies us.
|
|
|
|
The whole interest of reason, speculative as well as practical, is
|
|
centred in the three following questions:
|
|
|
|
1. WHAT CAN I KNOW?
|
|
|
|
2. WHAT OUGHT I TO DO?
|
|
|
|
3. WHAT MAY I HOPE?
|
|
|
|
The first question is purely speculative. We have, as I flatter
|
|
myself, exhausted all the replies of which it is susceptible, and have
|
|
at last found the reply with which reason must content itself, and
|
|
with which it ought to be content, so long as it pays no regard to the
|
|
practical. But from the two great ends to the attainment of which
|
|
all these efforts of pure reason were in fact directed, we remain just
|
|
as far removed as if we had consulted our ease and declined the task
|
|
at the outset. So far, then, as knowledge is concerned, thus much,
|
|
at least, is established, that, in regard to those two problems, it
|
|
lies beyond our reach.
|
|
|
|
The second question is purely practical. As such it may indeed
|
|
fall within the province of pure reason, but still it is not
|
|
transcendental, but moral, and consequently cannot in itself form
|
|
the subject of our criticism.
|
|
|
|
The third question: If I act as I ought to do, what may I then
|
|
hope?- is at once practical and theoretical. The practical forms a
|
|
clue to the answer of the theoretical, and- in its highest form-
|
|
speculative question. For all hoping has happiness for its object
|
|
and stands in precisely the same relation to the practical and the law
|
|
of morality as knowing to the theoretical cognition of things and
|
|
the law of nature. The former arrives finally at the conclusion that
|
|
something is (which determines the ultimate end), because something
|
|
ought to take place; the latter, that something is (which operates
|
|
as the highest cause), because something does take place.
|
|
|
|
Happiness is the satisfaction of all our desires; extensive, in
|
|
regard to their multiplicity; intensive, in regard to their degree;
|
|
and protensive, in regard to their duration. The practical law based
|
|
on the motive of happiness I term a pragmatical law (or prudential
|
|
rule); but that law, assuming such to exist, which has no other motive
|
|
than the worthiness of being happy, I term a moral or ethical law. The
|
|
first tells us what we have to do, if we wish to become possessed of
|
|
happiness; the second dictates how we ought to act, in order to
|
|
deserve happiness. The first is based upon empirical principles; for
|
|
it is only by experience that I can learn either what inclinations
|
|
exist which desire satisfaction, or what are the natural means of
|
|
satisfying them. The second takes no account of our desires or the
|
|
means of satisfying them, and regards only the freedom of a rational
|
|
being, and the necessary conditions under which alone this freedom can
|
|
harmonize with the distribution of happiness according to
|
|
principles. This second law may therefore rest upon mere ideas of pure
|
|
reason, and may be cognized a priori.
|
|
|
|
I assume that there are pure moral laws which determine, entirely
|
|
a priori (without regard to empirical motives, that is, to happiness),
|
|
the conduct of a rational being, or in other words, to use which it
|
|
makes of its freedom, and that these laws are absolutely imperative
|
|
(not merely hypothetically, on the supposition of other empirical
|
|
ends), and therefore in all respects necessary. I am warranted in
|
|
assuming this, not only by the arguments of the most enlightened
|
|
moralists, but by the moral judgement of every man who will make the
|
|
attempt to form a distinct conception of such a law.
|
|
|
|
Pure reason, then, contains, not indeed in its speculative, but in
|
|
its practical, or, more strictly, its moral use, principles of the
|
|
possibility of experience, of such actions, namely, as, in
|
|
accordance with ethical precepts, might be met with in the history
|
|
of man. For since reason commands that such actions should take place,
|
|
it must be possible for them to take place; and hence a particular
|
|
kind of systematic unity- the moral- must be possible. We have
|
|
found, it is true, that the systematic unity of nature could not be
|
|
established according to speculative principles of reason, because,
|
|
while reason possesses a causal power in relation to freedom, it has
|
|
none in relation to the whole sphere of nature; and, while moral
|
|
principles of reason can produce free actions, they cannot produce
|
|
natural laws. It is, then, in its practical, but especially in its
|
|
moral use, that the principles of pure reason possess objective
|
|
reality.
|
|
|
|
I call the world a moral world, in so far as it may be in accordance
|
|
with all the ethical laws- which, by virtue of the freedom of
|
|
reasonable beings, it can be, and according to the necessary laws of
|
|
morality it ought to be. But this world must be conceived only as an
|
|
intelligible world, inasmuch as abstraction is therein made of all
|
|
conditions (ends), and even of all impediments to morality (the
|
|
weakness or pravity of human nature). So far, then, it is a mere idea-
|
|
though still a practical idea- which may have, and ought to have, an
|
|
influence on the world of sense, so as to bring it as far as
|
|
possible into conformity with itself. The idea of a moral world has,
|
|
therefore, objective reality, not as referring to an object of
|
|
intelligible intuition- for of such an object we can form no
|
|
conception whatever- but to the world of sense- conceived, however, as
|
|
an object of pure reason in its practical use- and to a corpus
|
|
mysticum of rational beings in it, in so far as the liberum
|
|
arbitrium of the individual is placed, under and by virtue of moral
|
|
laws, in complete systematic unity both with itself and with the
|
|
freedom of all others.
|
|
|
|
That is the answer to the first of the two questions of pure
|
|
reason which relate to its practical interest: Do that which will
|
|
render thee worthy of happiness. The second question is this: If I
|
|
conduct myself so as not to be unworthy of happiness, may I hope
|
|
thereby to obtain happiness? In order to arrive at the solution of
|
|
this question, we must inquire whether the principles of pure
|
|
reason, which prescribe a priori the law, necessarily also connect
|
|
this hope with it.
|
|
|
|
I say, then, that just as the moral principles are necessary
|
|
according to reason in its practical use, so it is equally necessary
|
|
according to reason in its theoretical use to assume that every one
|
|
has ground to hope for happiness in the measure in which he has made
|
|
himself worthy of it in his conduct, and that therefore the system
|
|
of morality is inseparably (though only in the idea of pure reason)
|
|
connected with that of happiness.
|
|
|
|
Now in an intelligible, that is, in the moral world, in the
|
|
conception of which we make abstraction of all the impediments to
|
|
morality (sensuous desires), such a system of happiness, connected
|
|
with and proportioned to morality, may be conceived as necessary,
|
|
because freedom of volition- partly incited, and partly restrained
|
|
by moral laws- would be itself the cause of general happiness; and
|
|
thus rational beings, under the guidance of such principles, would
|
|
be themselves the authors both of their own enduring welfare and
|
|
that of others. But such a system of self-rewarding morality is only
|
|
an idea, the carrying out of which depends upon the condition that
|
|
every one acts as he ought; in other words, that all actions of
|
|
reasonable beings be such as they would be if they sprung from a
|
|
Supreme Will, comprehending in, or under, itself all particular wills.
|
|
But since the moral law is binding on each individual in the use of
|
|
his freedom of volition, even if others should not act in conformity
|
|
with this law, neither the nature of things, nor the causality of
|
|
actions and their relation to morality, determine how the consequences
|
|
of these actions will be related to happiness; and the necessary
|
|
connection of the hope of happiness with the unceasing endeavour to
|
|
become worthy of happiness, cannot be cognized by reason, if we take
|
|
nature alone for our guide. This connection can be hoped for only on
|
|
the assumption that the cause of nature is a supreme reason, which
|
|
governs according to moral laws.
|
|
|
|
I term the idea of an intelligence in which the morally most perfect
|
|
will, united with supreme blessedness, is the cause of all happiness
|
|
in the world, so far as happiness stands in strict } relation to
|
|
morality (as the worthiness of being happy), the ideal of the
|
|
supreme Good. supreme original good, that pure reason can find the
|
|
ground of the practically necessary connection of both elements of the
|
|
highest derivative good, and accordingly of an intelligible, that
|
|
is, moral world. Now since we are necessitated by reason to conceive
|
|
ourselves as belonging to such a world, while the senses present to us
|
|
nothing but a world of phenomena, we must assume the former as a
|
|
consequence of our conduct in the world of sense (since the world of
|
|
sense gives us no hint of it), and therefore as future in relation
|
|
to us. Thus God and a future life are two hypotheses which,
|
|
according to the principles of pure reason, are inseparable from the
|
|
obligation which this reason imposes upon us.
|
|
|
|
Morality per se constitutes a system. But we can form no system of
|
|
happiness, except in so far as it is dispensed in strict proportion to
|
|
morality. But this is only possible in the intelligible world, under a
|
|
wise author and ruler. Such a ruler, together with life in such a
|
|
world, which we must look upon as future, reason finds itself
|
|
compelled to assume; or it must regard the moral laws as idle
|
|
dreams, since the necessary consequence which this same reason
|
|
connects with them must, without this hypothesis, fall to the
|
|
ground. Hence also the moral laws are universally regarded as
|
|
commands, which they could not be did they not connect a priori
|
|
adequate consequences with their dictates, and thus carry with them
|
|
promises and threats. But this, again, they could not do, did they not
|
|
reside in a necessary being, as the Supreme Good, which alone can
|
|
render such a teleological unity possible.
|
|
|
|
Leibnitz termed the world, when viewed in relation to the rational
|
|
beings which it contains, and the moral relations in which they
|
|
stand to each other, under the government of the Supreme Good, the
|
|
kingdom of Grace, and distinguished it from the kingdom of Nature,
|
|
in which these rational beings live, under moral laws, indeed, but
|
|
expect no other consequences from their actions than such as follow
|
|
according to the course of nature in the world of sense. To view
|
|
ourselves, therefore, as in the kingdom of grace, in which all
|
|
happiness awaits us, except in so far as we ourselves limit our
|
|
participation in it by actions which render us unworthy of
|
|
happiness, is a practically necessary idea of reason.
|
|
|
|
Practical laws, in so far as they are subjective grounds of actions,
|
|
that is, subjective principles, are termed maxims. The judgements of
|
|
moral according to in its purity and ultimate results are framed
|
|
according ideas; the observance of its laws, according to according to
|
|
maxims.
|
|
|
|
The whole course of our life must be subject to moral maxims; but
|
|
this is impossible, unless with the moral law, which is a mere idea,
|
|
reason connects an efficient cause which ordains to all conduct
|
|
which is in conformity with the moral law an issue either in this or
|
|
in another life, which is in exact conformity with our highest aims.
|
|
Thus, without a God and without a world, invisible to us now, but
|
|
hoped for, the glorious ideas of morality are, indeed, objects of
|
|
approbation and of admiration, but cannot be the springs of purpose
|
|
and action. For they do not satisfy all the aims which are natural
|
|
to every rational being, and which are determined a priori by pure
|
|
reason itself, and necessary.
|
|
|
|
Happiness alone is, in the view of reason, far from being the
|
|
complete good. Reason does not approve of it (however much inclination
|
|
may desire it), except as united with desert. On the other hand,
|
|
morality alone, and with it, mere desert, is likewise far from being
|
|
the complete good. To make it complete, he who conducts himself in a
|
|
manner not unworthy of happiness, must be able to hope for the
|
|
possession of happiness. Even reason, unbiased by private ends, or
|
|
interested considerations, cannot judge otherwise, if it puts itself
|
|
in the place of a being whose business it is to dispense all happiness
|
|
to others. For in the practical idea both points are essentially
|
|
combined, though in such a way that participation in happiness is
|
|
rendered possible by the moral disposition, as its condition, and
|
|
not conversely, the moral disposition by the prospect of happiness.
|
|
For a disposition which should require the prospect of happiness as
|
|
its necessary condition would not be moral, and hence also would not
|
|
be worthy of complete happiness- a happiness which, in the view of
|
|
reason, recognizes no limitation but such as arises from our own
|
|
immoral conduct.
|
|
|
|
Happiness, therefore, in exact proportion with the morality of
|
|
rational beings (whereby they are made worthy of happiness),
|
|
constitutes alone the supreme good of a world into which we absolutely
|
|
must transport ourselves according to the commands of pure but
|
|
practical reason. This world is, it is true, only an intelligible
|
|
world; for of such a systematic unity of ends as it requires, the
|
|
world of sense gives us no hint. Its reality can be based on nothing
|
|
else but the hypothesis of a supreme original good. In it
|
|
independent reason, equipped with all the sufficiency of a supreme
|
|
cause, founds, maintains, and fulfils the universal order of things,
|
|
with the most perfect teleological harmony, however much this order
|
|
may be hidden from us in the world of sense.
|
|
|
|
This moral theology has the peculiar advantage, in contrast with
|
|
speculative theology, of leading inevitably to the conception of a
|
|
sole, perfect, and rational First Cause, whereof speculative
|
|
theology does not give us any indication on objective grounds, far
|
|
less any convincing evidence. For we find neither in transcendental
|
|
nor in natural theology, however far reason may lead us in these,
|
|
any ground to warrant us in assuming the existence of one only
|
|
Being, which stands at the head of all natural causes, and on which
|
|
these are entirely dependent. On the other band, if we take our
|
|
stand on moral unity as a necessary law of the universe, and from this
|
|
point of view consider what is necessary to give this law adequate
|
|
efficiency and, for us, obligatory force, we must come to the
|
|
conclusion that there is one only supreme will, which comprehends
|
|
all these laws in itself. For how, under different wills, should we
|
|
find complete unity of ends? This will must be omnipotent, that all
|
|
nature and its relation to morality in the world may be subject to it;
|
|
omniscient, that it may have knowledge of the most secret feelings and
|
|
their moral worth; omnipresent, that it may be at hand to supply every
|
|
necessity to which the highest weal of the world may give rise;
|
|
eternal, that this harmony of nature and liberty may never fail; and
|
|
so on.
|
|
|
|
But this systematic unity of ends in this world of intelligences-
|
|
which, as mere nature, is only a world of sense, but, as a system of
|
|
freedom of volition, may be termed an intelligible, that is, moral
|
|
world (regnum gratiae)- leads inevitably also to the teleological
|
|
unity of all things which constitute this great whole, according to
|
|
universal natural laws- just as the unity of the former is according
|
|
to universal and necessary moral laws- and unites the practical with
|
|
the speculative reason. The world must be represented as having
|
|
originated from an idea, if it is to harmonize with that use of reason
|
|
without which we cannot even consider ourselves as worthy of reason-
|
|
namely, the moral use, which rests entirely on the idea of the supreme
|
|
good. Hence the investigation of nature receives a teleological
|
|
direction, and becomes, in its widest extension, physico-theology. But
|
|
this, taking its rise in moral order as a unity founded on the essence
|
|
of freedom, and not accidentally instituted by external commands,
|
|
establishes the teleological view of nature on grounds which must be
|
|
inseparably connected with the internal possibility of things. This
|
|
gives rise to a transcendental theology, which takes the ideal of
|
|
the highest ontological perfection as a principle of systematic unity;
|
|
and this principle connects all things according to universal and
|
|
necessary natural laws, because all things have their origin in the
|
|
absolute necessity of the one only Primal Being.
|
|
|
|
What use can we make of our understanding, even in respect of
|
|
experience, if we do not propose ends to ourselves? But the highest
|
|
ends are those of morality, and it is only pure reason that can give
|
|
us the knowledge of these. Though supplied with these, and putting
|
|
ourselves under their guidance, we can make no teleological use of the
|
|
knowledge of nature, as regards cognition, unless nature itself has
|
|
established teleological unity. For without this unity we should not
|
|
even possess reason, because we should have no school for reason,
|
|
and no cultivation through objects which afford the materials for
|
|
its conceptions. But teleological unity is a necessary unity, and
|
|
founded on the essence of the individual will itself. Hence this will,
|
|
which is the condition of the application of this unity in concreto,
|
|
must be so likewise. In this way the transcendental enlargement of our
|
|
rational cognition would be, not the cause, but merely the effect of
|
|
the practical teleology which pure reason imposes upon us.
|
|
|
|
Hence, also, we find in the history of human reason that, before the
|
|
moral conceptions were sufficiently purified and determined, and
|
|
before men had attained to a perception of the systematic unity of
|
|
ends according to these conceptions and from necessary principles, the
|
|
knowledge of nature, and even a considerable amount of intellectual
|
|
culture in many other sciences, could produce only rude and vague
|
|
conceptions of the Deity, sometimes even admitting of an astonishing
|
|
indifference with regard to this question altogether. But the more
|
|
enlarged treatment of moral ideas, which was rendered necessary by the
|
|
extreme pure moral law of our religion, awakened the interest, and
|
|
thereby quickened the perceptions of reason in relation to this
|
|
object. In this way, and without the help either of an extended
|
|
acquaintance with nature, or of a reliable transcendental insight (for
|
|
these have been wanting in all ages), a conception of the Divine Being
|
|
was arrived at, which we now bold to be the correct one, not because
|
|
speculative reason convinces us of its correctness, but because it
|
|
accords with the moral principles of reason. Thus it is to pure
|
|
reason, but only in its practical use, that we must ascribe the
|
|
merit of having connected with our highest interest a cognition, of
|
|
which mere speculation was able only to form a conjecture, but the
|
|
validity of which it was unable to establish- and of having thereby
|
|
rendered it, not indeed a demonstrated dogma, but a hypothesis
|
|
absolutely necessary to the essential ends of reason.
|
|
|
|
But if practical reason has reached this elevation, and has attained
|
|
to the conception of a sole Primal Being as the supreme good, it
|
|
must not, therefore, imagine that it has transcended the empirical
|
|
conditions of its application, and risen to the immediate cognition of
|
|
new objects; it must not presume to start from the conception which it
|
|
has gained, and to deduce from it the moral laws themselves. For it
|
|
was these very laws, the internal practical necessity of which led
|
|
us to the hypothesis of an independent cause, or of a wise ruler of
|
|
the universe, who should give them effect. Hence we are not entitled
|
|
to regard them as accidental and derived from the mere will of the
|
|
ruler, especially as we have no conception of such a will, except as
|
|
formed in accordance with these laws. So far, then, as practical
|
|
reason has the right to conduct us, we shall not look upon actions
|
|
as binding on us, because they are the commands of God, but we shall
|
|
regard them as divine commands, because we are internally bound by
|
|
them. We shall study freedom under the teleological unity which
|
|
accords with principles of reason; we shall look upon ourselves as
|
|
acting in conformity with the divine will only in so far as we hold
|
|
sacred the moral law which reason teaches us from the nature of
|
|
actions themselves, and we shall believe that we can obey that will
|
|
only by promoting the weal of the universe in ourselves and in others.
|
|
Moral theology is, therefore, only of immanent use. It teaches us to
|
|
fulfil our destiny here in the world, by placing ourselves in
|
|
harmony with the general system of ends, and warns us against the
|
|
fanaticism, nay, the crime of depriving reason of its legislative
|
|
authority in the moral conduct of life, for the purpose of directly
|
|
connecting this authority with the idea of the Supreme Being. For this
|
|
would be, not an immanent, but a transcendent use of moral theology,
|
|
and, like the transcendent use of mere speculation, would inevitably
|
|
pervert and frustrate the ultimate ends of reason.
|
|
|
|
SECTION III. Of Opinion, Knowledge, and Belief.
|
|
|
|
The holding of a thing to be true is a phenomenon in our
|
|
understanding which may rest on objective grounds, but requires, also,
|
|
subjective causes in the mind of the person judging. If a judgement is
|
|
valid for every rational being, then its ground is objectively
|
|
sufficient, and it is termed a conviction. If, on the other hand, it
|
|
has its ground in the particular character of the subject, it is
|
|
termed a persuasion.
|
|
|
|
Persuasion is a mere illusion, the ground of the judgement, which
|
|
lies solely in the subject, being regarded as objective. Hence a
|
|
judgement of this kind has only private validity- is only valid for
|
|
the individual who judges, and the holding of a thing to be true in
|
|
this way cannot be communicated. But truth depends upon agreement with
|
|
the object, and consequently the judgements of all understandings,
|
|
if true, must be in agreement with each other (consentientia uni
|
|
tertio consentiunt inter se). Conviction may, therefore, be
|
|
distinguished, from an external point of view, from persuasion, by the
|
|
possibility of communicating it and by showing its validity for the
|
|
reason of every man; for in this case the presumption, at least,
|
|
arises that the agreement of all judgements with each other, in
|
|
spite of the different characters of individuals, rests upon the
|
|
common ground of the agreement of each with the object, and thus the
|
|
correctness of the judgement is established.
|
|
|
|
Persuasion, accordingly, cannot be subjectively distinguished from
|
|
conviction, that is, so long as the subject views its judgement simply
|
|
as a phenomenon of its own mind. But if we inquire whether the grounds
|
|
of our judgement, which are valid for us, produce the same effect on
|
|
the reason of others as on our own, we have then the means, though
|
|
only subjective means, not, indeed, of producing conviction, but of
|
|
detecting the merely private validity of the judgement; in other
|
|
words, of discovering that there is in it the element of mere
|
|
persuasion.
|
|
|
|
If we can, in addition to this, develop the subjective causes of the
|
|
judgement, which we have taken for its objective grounds, and thus
|
|
explain the deceptive judgement as a phenomenon in our mind, apart
|
|
altogether from the objective character of the object, we can then
|
|
expose the illusion and need be no longer deceived by it, although, if
|
|
its subjective cause lies in our nature, we cannot hope altogether
|
|
to escape its influence.
|
|
|
|
I can only maintain, that is, affirm as necessarily valid for
|
|
every one, that which produces conviction. Persuasion I may keep for
|
|
myself, if it is agreeable to me; but I cannot, and ought not, to
|
|
attempt to impose it as binding upon others.
|
|
|
|
Holding for true, or the subjective validity of a judgement in
|
|
relation to conviction (which is, at the same time, objectively
|
|
valid), has the three following degrees: opinion, belief, and
|
|
knowledge. Opinion is a consciously insufficient judgement,
|
|
subjectively as well as objectively. Belief is subjectively
|
|
sufficient, but is recognized as being objectively insufficient.
|
|
Knowledge is both subjectively and objectively sufficient.
|
|
Subjective sufficiency is termed conviction (for myself); objective
|
|
sufficiency is termed certainty (for all). I need not dwell longer
|
|
on the explanation of such simple conceptions.
|
|
|
|
I must never venture to be of opinion, without knowing something, at
|
|
least, by which my judgement, in itself merely problematical, is
|
|
brought into connection with the truth- which connection, although not
|
|
perfect, is still something more than an arbitrary fiction.
|
|
Moreover, the law of such a connection must be certain. For if, in
|
|
relation to this law, I have nothing more than opinion, my judgement
|
|
is but a play of the imagination, without the least relation to truth.
|
|
In the judgements of pure reason, opinion has no place. For, as they
|
|
do not rest on empirical grounds and as the sphere of pure reason is
|
|
that of necessary truth and a priori cognition, the principle of
|
|
connection in it requires universality and necessity, and consequently
|
|
perfect certainty- otherwise we should have no guide to the truth at
|
|
all. Hence it is absurd to have an opinion in pure mathematics; we
|
|
must know, or abstain from forming a judgement altogether. The case is
|
|
the same with the maxims of morality. For we must not hazard an action
|
|
on the mere opinion that it is allowed, but we must know it to be so.
|
|
|
|
In the transcendental sphere of reason, on the other hand, the
|
|
term opinion is too weak, while the word knowledge is too strong. From
|
|
the merely speculative point of view, therefore, we cannot form a
|
|
judgement at all. For the subjective grounds of a judgement, such as
|
|
produce belief, cannot be admitted in speculative inquiries,
|
|
inasmuch as they cannot stand without empirical support and are
|
|
incapable of being communicated to others in equal measure.
|
|
|
|
But it is only from the practical point of view that a theoretically
|
|
insufficient judgement can be termed belief. Now the practical
|
|
reference is either to skill or to morality; to the former, when the
|
|
end proposed is arbitrary and accidental, to the latter, when it is
|
|
absolutely necessary.
|
|
|
|
If we propose to ourselves any end whatever, the conditions of its
|
|
attainment are hypothetically necessary. The necessity is
|
|
subjectively, but still only comparatively, sufficient, if I am
|
|
acquainted with no other conditions under which the end can be
|
|
attained. On the other hand, it is sufficient, absolutely and for
|
|
every one, if I know for certain that no one can be acquainted with
|
|
any other conditions under which the attainment of the proposed end
|
|
would be possible. In the former case my supposition- my judgement
|
|
with regard to certain conditions- is a merely accidental belief; in
|
|
the latter it is a necessary belief. The physician must pursue some
|
|
course in the case of a patient who is in danger, but is ignorant of
|
|
the nature of the disease. He observes the symptoms, and concludes,
|
|
according to the best of his judgement, that it is a case of phthisis.
|
|
His belief is, even in his own judgement, only contingent: another man
|
|
might, perhaps come nearer the truth. Such a belief, contingent
|
|
indeed, but still forming the ground of the actual use of means for
|
|
the attainment of certain ends, I term Pragmatical belief.
|
|
|
|
The usual test, whether that which any one maintains is merely his
|
|
persuasion, or his subjective conviction at least, that is, his firm
|
|
belief, is a bet. It frequently happens that a man delivers his
|
|
opinions with so much boldness and assurance, that he appears to be
|
|
under no apprehension as to the possibility of his being in error. The
|
|
offer of a bet startles him, and makes him pause. Sometimes it turns
|
|
out that his persuasion may be valued at a ducat, but not at ten.
|
|
For he does not hesitate, perhaps, to venture a ducat, but if it is
|
|
proposed to stake ten, he immediately becomes aware of the possibility
|
|
of his being mistaken- a possibility which has hitherto escaped his
|
|
observation. If we imagine to ourselves that we have to stake the
|
|
happiness of our whole life on the truth of any proposition, our
|
|
judgement drops its air of triumph, we take the alarm, and discover
|
|
the actual strength of our belief. Thus pragmatical belief has
|
|
degrees, varying in proportion to the interests at stake.
|
|
|
|
Now, in cases where we cannot enter upon any course of action in
|
|
reference to some object, and where, accordingly, our judgement is
|
|
purely theoretical, we can still represent to ourselves, in thought,
|
|
the possibility of a course of action, for which we suppose that we
|
|
have sufficient grounds, if any means existed of ascertaining the
|
|
truth of the matter. Thus we find in purely theoretical judgements
|
|
an analogon of practical judgements, to which the word belief may
|
|
properly be applied, and which we may term doctrinal belief. I
|
|
should not hesitate to stake my all on the truth of the proposition-
|
|
if there were any possibility of bringing it to the test of
|
|
experience- that, at least, some one of the planets, which we see,
|
|
is inhabited. Hence I say that I have not merely the opinion, but
|
|
the strong belief, on the correctness of which I would stake even many
|
|
of the advantages of life, that there are inhabitants in other worlds.
|
|
|
|
Now we must admit that the doctrine of the existence of God
|
|
belongs to doctrinal belief. For, although in respect to the
|
|
theoretical cognition of the universe I do not require to form any
|
|
theory which necessarily involves this idea, as the condition of my
|
|
explanation of the phenomena which the universe presents, but, on
|
|
the contrary, am rather bound so to use my reason as if everything
|
|
were mere nature, still teleological unity is so important a condition
|
|
of the application of my reason to nature, that it is impossible for
|
|
me to ignore it- especially since, in addition to these
|
|
considerations, abundant examples of it are supplied by experience.
|
|
But the sole condition, so far as my knowledge extends, under which
|
|
this unity can be my guide in the investigation of nature, is the
|
|
assumption that a supreme intelligence has ordered all things
|
|
according to the wisest ends. Consequently, the hypothesis of a wise
|
|
author of the universe is necessary for my guidance in the
|
|
investigation of nature- is the condition under which alone I can
|
|
fulfil an end which is contingent indeed, but by no means unimportant.
|
|
Moreover, since the result of my attempts so frequently confirms the
|
|
utility of this assumption, and since nothing decisive can be
|
|
adduced against it, it follows that it would be saying far too
|
|
little to term my judgement, in this case, a mere opinion, and that,
|
|
even in this theoretical connection, I may assert that I firmly
|
|
believe in God. Still, if we use words strictly, this must not be
|
|
called a practical, but a doctrinal belief, which the theology of
|
|
nature (physico-theology) must also produce in my mind. In the
|
|
wisdom of a Supreme Being, and in the shortness of life, so inadequate
|
|
to the development of the glorious powers of human nature, we may find
|
|
equally sufficient grounds for a doctrinal belief in the future life
|
|
of the human soul.
|
|
|
|
The expression of belief is, in such cases, an expression of modesty
|
|
from the objective point of view, but, at the same time, of firm
|
|
confidence, from the subjective. If I should venture to term this
|
|
merely theoretical judgement even so much as a hypothesis which I am
|
|
entitled to assume; a more complete conception, with regard to another
|
|
world and to the cause of the world, might then be justly required
|
|
of me than I am, in reality, able to give. For, if I assume
|
|
anything, even as a mere hypothesis, I must, at least, know so much of
|
|
the properties of such a being as will enable me, not to form the
|
|
conception, but to imagine the existence of it. But the word belief
|
|
refers only to the guidance which an idea gives me, and to its
|
|
subjective influence on the conduct of my reason, which forces me to
|
|
hold it fast, though I may not be in a position to give a
|
|
speculative account of it.
|
|
|
|
But mere doctrinal belief is, to some extent, wanting in
|
|
stability. We often quit our hold of it, in consequence of the
|
|
difficulties which occur in speculation, though in the end we
|
|
inevitably return to it again.
|
|
|
|
It is quite otherwise with moral belief. For in this sphere action
|
|
is absolutely necessary, that is, I must act in obedience to the moral
|
|
law in all points. The end is here incontrovertibly established, and
|
|
there is only one condition possible, according to the best of my
|
|
perception, under which this end can harmonize with all other ends,
|
|
and so have practical validity- namely, the existence of a God and
|
|
of a future world. I know also, to a certainty, that no one can be
|
|
acquainted with any other conditions which conduct to the same unity
|
|
of ends under the moral law. But since the moral precept is, at the
|
|
same time, my maxim (as reason requires that it should be), I am
|
|
irresistibly constrained to believe in the existence of God and in a
|
|
future life; and I am sure that nothing can make me waver in this
|
|
belief, since I should thereby overthrow my moral maxims, the
|
|
renunciation of which would render me hateful in my own eyes.
|
|
|
|
Thus, while all the ambitious attempts of reason to penetrate beyond
|
|
the limits of experience end in disappointment, there is still
|
|
enough left to satisfy us in a practical point of view. No one, it
|
|
is true, will be able to boast that he knows that there is a God and a
|
|
future life; for, if he knows this, be is just the man whom I have
|
|
long wished to find. All knowledge, regarding an object of mere
|
|
reason, can be communicated; and I should thus be enabled to hope that
|
|
my own knowledge would receive this wonderful extension, through the
|
|
instrumentality of his instruction. No, my conviction is not
|
|
logical, but moral certainty; and since it rests on subjective grounds
|
|
(of the moral sentiment), I must not even say: It is morally certain
|
|
that there is a God, etc., but: I am morally certain, that is, my
|
|
belief in God and in another world is so interwoven with my moral
|
|
nature that I am under as little apprehension of having the former
|
|
torn from me as of losing the latter.
|
|
|
|
The only point in this argument that may appear open to suspicion is
|
|
that this rational belief presupposes the existence of moral
|
|
sentiments. If we give up this assumption, and take a man who is
|
|
entirely indifferent with regard to moral laws, the question which
|
|
reason proposes, becomes then merely a problem for speculation and
|
|
may, indeed, be supported by strong grounds from analogy, but not by
|
|
such as will compel the most obstinate scepticism to give way.* But in
|
|
these questions no man is free from all interest. For though the
|
|
want of good sentiments may place him beyond the influence of moral
|
|
interests, still even in this case enough may be left to make him fear
|
|
the existence of God and a future life. For he cannot pretend to any
|
|
certainty of the non-existence of God and of a future life, unless-
|
|
since it could only be proved by mere reason, and therefore
|
|
apodeictically- he is prepared to establish the impossibility of both,
|
|
which certainly no reasonable man would undertake to do. This would be
|
|
a negative belief, which could not, indeed, produce morality and
|
|
good sentiments, but still could produce an analogon of these, by
|
|
operating as a powerful restraint on the outbreak of evil
|
|
dispositions.
|
|
|
|
*The human mind (as, I believe, every rational being must of
|
|
necessity do) takes a natural interest in morality, although this
|
|
interest is not undivided, and may not be practically in
|
|
preponderance. If you strengthen and increase it, you will find the
|
|
reason become docile, more enlightened, and more capable of uniting
|
|
the speculative interest with the practical. But if you do not take
|
|
care at the outset, or at least midway, to make men good, you will
|
|
never force them into an honest belief.
|
|
|
|
But, it will be said, is this all that pure reason can effect, in
|
|
opening up prospects beyond the limits of experience? Nothing more
|
|
than two articles of belief? Common sense could have done as much as
|
|
this, without taking the philosophers to counsel in the matter!
|
|
|
|
I shall not here eulogize philosophy for the benefits which the
|
|
laborious efforts of its criticism have conferred on human reason-
|
|
even granting that its merit should turn out in the end to be only
|
|
negative- for on this point something more will be said in the next
|
|
section. But, I ask, do you require that that knowledge which concerns
|
|
all men, should transcend the common understanding, and should only be
|
|
revealed to you by philosophers? The very circumstance which has
|
|
called forth your censure, is the best confirmation of the correctness
|
|
of our previous assertions, since it discloses, what could not have
|
|
been foreseen, that Nature is not chargeable with any partial
|
|
distribution of her gifts in those matters which concern all men
|
|
without distinction and that, in respect to the essential ends of
|
|
human nature, we cannot advance further with the help of the highest
|
|
philosophy, than under the guidance which nature has vouchsafed to the
|
|
meanest understanding.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. The Architectonic of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
By the term architectonic I mean the art of constructing a system.
|
|
Without systematic unity, our knowledge cannot become science; it will
|
|
be an aggregate, and not a system. Thus architectonic is the
|
|
doctrine of the scientific in cognition, and therefore necessarily
|
|
forms part of our methodology.
|
|
|
|
Reason cannot permit our knowledge to remain in an unconnected and
|
|
rhapsodistic state, but requires that the sum of our cognitions should
|
|
constitute a system. It is thus alone that they can advance the ends
|
|
of reason. By a system I mean the unity of various cognitions under
|
|
one idea. This idea is the conception- given by reason- of the form of
|
|
a whole, in so far as the conception determines a priori not only
|
|
the limits of its content, but the place which each of its parts is to
|
|
occupy. The scientific idea contains, therefore, the end and the
|
|
form of the whole which is in accordance with that end. The unity of
|
|
the end, to which all the parts of the system relate, and through
|
|
which all have a relation to each other, communicates unity to the
|
|
whole system, so that the absence of any part can be immediately
|
|
detected from our knowledge of the rest; and it determines a priori
|
|
the limits of the system, thus excluding all contingent or arbitrary
|
|
additions. The whole is thus an organism (articulatio), and not an
|
|
aggregate (coacervatio); it may grow from within (per
|
|
intussusceptionem), but it cannot increase by external additions
|
|
(per appositionem). It is, thus, like an animal body, the growth of
|
|
which does not add any limb, but, without changing their
|
|
proportions, makes each in its sphere stronger and more active.
|
|
|
|
We require, for the execution of the idea of a system, a schema,
|
|
that is, a content and an arrangement of parts determined a priori
|
|
by the principle which the aim of the system prescribes. A schema
|
|
which is not projected in accordance with an idea, that is, from the
|
|
standpoint of the highest aim of reason, but merely empirically, in
|
|
accordance with accidental aims and purposes (the number of which
|
|
cannot be predetermined), can give us nothing more than technical
|
|
unity. But the schema which is originated from an idea (in which
|
|
case reason presents us with aims a priori, and does not look for them
|
|
to experience), forms the basis of architectonical unity. A science,
|
|
in the proper acceptation of that term. cannot be formed
|
|
technically, that is, from observation of the similarity existing
|
|
between different objects, and the purely contingent use we make of
|
|
our knowledge in concreto with reference to all kinds of arbitrary
|
|
external aims; its constitution must be framed on architectonical
|
|
principles, that is, its parts must be shown to possess an essential
|
|
affinity, and be capable of being deduced from one supreme and
|
|
internal aim or end, which forms the condition of the possibility of
|
|
the scientific whole. The schema of a science must give a priori the
|
|
plan of it (monogramma), and the division of the whole into parts,
|
|
in conformity with the idea of the science; and it must also
|
|
distinguish this whole from all others, according to certain
|
|
understood principles.
|
|
|
|
No one will attempt to construct a science, unless he have some idea
|
|
to rest on as a proper basis. But, in the elaboration of the
|
|
science, he finds that the schema, nay, even the definition which he
|
|
at first gave of the science, rarely corresponds with his idea; for
|
|
this idea lies, like a germ, in our reason, its parts undeveloped
|
|
and hid even from microscopical observation. For this reason, we ought
|
|
to explain and define sciences, not according to the description which
|
|
the originator gives of them, but according to the idea which we
|
|
find based in reason itself, and which is suggested by the natural
|
|
unity of the parts of the science already accumulated. For it will
|
|
of ten be found that the originator of a science and even his latest
|
|
successors remain attached to an erroneous idea, which they cannot
|
|
render clear to themselves, and that they thus fail in determining the
|
|
true content, the articulation or systematic unity, and the limits
|
|
of their science.
|
|
|
|
It is unfortunate that, only after having occupied ourselves for a
|
|
long time in the collection of materials, under the guidance of an
|
|
idea which lies undeveloped in the mind, but not according to any
|
|
definite plan of arrangement- nay, only after we have spent much
|
|
time and labour in the technical disposition of our materials, does it
|
|
become possible to view the idea of a science in a clear light, and to
|
|
project, according to architectonical principles, a plan of the whole,
|
|
in accordance with the aims of reason. Systems seem, like certain
|
|
worms, to be formed by a kind of generatio aequivoca- by the mere
|
|
confluence of conceptions, and to gain completeness only with the
|
|
progress of time. But the schema or germ of all lies in reason; and
|
|
thus is not only every system organized according to its own idea, but
|
|
all are united into one grand system of human knowledge, of which they
|
|
form members. For this reason, it is possible to frame an
|
|
architectonic of all human cognition, the formation of which, at the
|
|
present time, considering the immense materials collected or to be
|
|
found in the ruins of old systems, would not indeed be very difficult.
|
|
Our purpose at present is merely to sketch the plan of the
|
|
architectonic of all cognition given by pure reason; and we begin from
|
|
the point where the main root of human knowledge divides into two, one
|
|
of which is reason. By reason I understand here the whole higher
|
|
faculty of cognition, the rational being placed in contradistinction
|
|
to the empirical.
|
|
|
|
If I make complete abstraction of the content of cognition,
|
|
objectively considered, all cognition is, from a subjective point of
|
|
view, either historical or rational. Historical cognition is
|
|
cognitio ex datis, rational, cognitio ex principiis. Whatever may be
|
|
the original source of a cognition, it is, in relation to the person
|
|
who possesses it, merely historical, if he knows only what has been
|
|
given him from another quarter, whether that knowledge was
|
|
communicated by direct experience or by instruction. Thus the Person
|
|
who has learned a system of philosophy- say the Wolfian- although he
|
|
has a perfect knowledge of all the principles, definitions, and
|
|
arguments in that philosophy, as well as of the divisions that have
|
|
been made of the system, possesses really no more than an historical
|
|
knowledge of the Wolfian system; he knows only what has been told him,
|
|
his judgements are only those which he has received from his teachers.
|
|
Dispute the validity of a definition, and he is completely at a loss
|
|
to find another. He has formed his mind on another's; but the
|
|
imitative faculty is not the productive. His knowledge has not been
|
|
drawn from reason; and although, objectively considered, it is
|
|
rational knowledge, subjectively, it is merely historical. He has
|
|
learned this or that philosophy and is merely a plaster cast of a
|
|
living man. Rational cognitions which are objective, that is, which
|
|
have their source in reason, can be so termed from a subjective
|
|
point of view, only when they have been drawn by the individual
|
|
himself from the sources of reason, that is, from principles; and it
|
|
is in this way alone that criticism, or even the rejection of what has
|
|
been already learned, can spring up in the mind.
|
|
|
|
All rational cognition is, again, based either on conceptions, or on
|
|
the construction of conceptions. The former is termed philosophical,
|
|
the latter mathematical. I have already shown the essential difference
|
|
of these two methods of cognition in the first chapter. A cognition
|
|
may be objectively philosophical and subjectively historical- as is
|
|
the case with the majority of scholars and those who cannot look
|
|
beyond the limits of their system, and who remain in a state of
|
|
pupilage all their lives. But it is remarkable that mathematical
|
|
knowledge, when committed to memory, is valid, from the subjective
|
|
point of view, as rational knowledge also, and that the same
|
|
distinction cannot be drawn here as in the case of philosophical
|
|
cognition. The reason is that the only way of arriving at this
|
|
knowledge is through the essential principles of reason, and thus it
|
|
is always certain and indisputable; because reason is employed in
|
|
concreto- but at the same time a priori- that is, in pure and,
|
|
therefore, infallible intuition; and thus all causes of illusion and
|
|
error are excluded. Of all the a priori sciences of reason, therefore,
|
|
mathematics alone can be learned. Philosophy- unless it be in an
|
|
historical manner- cannot be learned; we can at most learn to
|
|
philosophize.
|
|
|
|
Philosophy is the system of all philosophical cognition. We must use
|
|
this term in an objective sense, if we understand by it the
|
|
archetype of all attempts at philosophizing, and the standard by which
|
|
all subjective philosophies are to be judged. In this sense,
|
|
philosophy is merely the idea of a possible science, which does not
|
|
exist in concreto, but to which we endeavour in various ways to
|
|
approximate, until we have discovered the right path to pursue- a path
|
|
overgrown by the errors and illusions of sense- and the image we
|
|
have hitherto tried in vain to shape has become a perfect copy of
|
|
the great prototype. Until that time, we cannot learn philosophy- it
|
|
does not exist; if it does, where is it, who possesses it, and how
|
|
shall we know it? We can only learn to philosophize; in other words,
|
|
we can only exercise our powers of reasoning in accordance with
|
|
general principles, retaining at the same time, the right of
|
|
investigating the sources of these principles, of testing, and even of
|
|
rejecting them.
|
|
|
|
Until then, our conception of philosophy is only a scholastic
|
|
conception- a conception, that is, of a system of cognition which we
|
|
are trying to elaborate into a science; all that we at present know
|
|
being the systematic unity of this cognition, and consequently the
|
|
logical completeness of the cognition for the desired end. But there
|
|
is also a cosmical conception (conceptus cosmicus) of philosophy,
|
|
which has always formed the true basis of this term, especially when
|
|
philosophy was personified and presented to us in the ideal of a
|
|
philosopher. In this view philosophy is the science of the relation of
|
|
all cognition to the ultimate and essential aims of human reason
|
|
(teleologia rationis humanae), and the philosopher is not merely an
|
|
artist- who occupies himself with conceptions- but a lawgiver,
|
|
legislating for human reason. In this sense of the word, it would be
|
|
in the highest degree arrogant to assume the title of philosopher, and
|
|
to pretend that we had reached the perfection of the prototype which
|
|
lies in the idea alone.
|
|
|
|
The mathematician, the natural philosopher, and the logician- how
|
|
far soever the first may have advanced in rational, and the two latter
|
|
in philosophical knowledge- are merely artists, engaged in the
|
|
arrangement and formation of conceptions; they cannot be termed
|
|
philosophers. Above them all, there is the ideal teacher, who
|
|
employs them as instruments for the advancement of the essential
|
|
aims of human reason. Him alone can we call philosopher; but he
|
|
nowhere exists. But the idea of his legislative power resides in the
|
|
mind of every man, and it alone teaches us what kind of systematic
|
|
unity philosophy demands in view of the ultimate aims of reason.
|
|
This idea is, therefore, a cosmical conception.*
|
|
|
|
*By a cosmical conception, I mean one in which all men necessarily
|
|
take an interest; the aim of a science must accordingly be
|
|
determined according to scholastic conceptions, if it is regarded
|
|
merely as a means to certain arbitrarily proposed ends.
|
|
|
|
In view of the complete systematic unity of reason, there can only
|
|
be one ultimate end of all the operations of the mind. To this all
|
|
other aims are subordinate, and nothing more than means for its
|
|
attainment. This ultimate end is the destination of man, and the
|
|
philosophy which relates to it is termed moral philosophy. The
|
|
superior position occupied by moral philosophy, above all other
|
|
spheres for the operations of reason, sufficiently indicates the
|
|
reason why the ancients always included the idea- and in an especial
|
|
manner- of moralist in that of philosopher. Even at the present day,
|
|
we call a man who appears to have the power of self-government, even
|
|
although his knowledge may be very limited, by the name of
|
|
philosopher.
|
|
|
|
The legislation of human reason, or philosophy, has two objects-
|
|
nature and freedom- and thus contains not only the laws of nature, but
|
|
also those of ethics, at first in two separate systems, which,
|
|
finally, merge into one grand philosophical system of cognition. The
|
|
philosophy of nature relates to that which is, that of ethics to
|
|
that which ought to be.
|
|
|
|
But all philosophy is either cognition on the basis of pure
|
|
reason, or the cognition of reason on the basis of empirical
|
|
principles. The former is termed pure, the latter empirical
|
|
philosophy.
|
|
|
|
The philosophy of pure reason is either propaedeutic, that is, an
|
|
inquiry into the powers of reason in regard to pure a priori
|
|
cognition, and is termed critical philosophy; or it is, secondly,
|
|
the system of pure reason- a science containing the systematic
|
|
presentation of the whole body of philosophical knowledge, true as
|
|
well as illusory, given by pure reason- and is called metaphysic. This
|
|
name may, however, be also given to the whole system of pure
|
|
philosophy, critical philosophy included, and may designate the
|
|
investigation into the sources or possibility of a priori cognition,
|
|
as well as the presentation of the a priori cognitions which form a
|
|
system of pure philosophy- excluding, at the same time, all
|
|
empirical and mathematical elements.
|
|
|
|
Metaphysic is divided into that of the speculative and that of the
|
|
practical use of pure reason, and is, accordingly, either the
|
|
metaphysic of nature, or the metaphysic of ethics. The former contains
|
|
all the pure rational principles- based upon conceptions alone (and
|
|
thus excluding mathematics)- of all theoretical cognition; the latter,
|
|
the principles which determine and necessitate a priori all action.
|
|
Now moral philosophy alone contains a code of laws- for the regulation
|
|
of our actions- which are deduced from principles entirely a priori.
|
|
Hence the metaphysic of ethics is the only pure moral philosophy, as
|
|
it is not based upon anthropological or other empirical
|
|
considerations. The metaphysic of speculative reason is what is
|
|
commonly called metaphysic in the more limited sense. But as pure
|
|
moral philosophy properly forms a part of this system of cognition, we
|
|
must allow it to retain the name of metaphysic, although it is not
|
|
requisite that we should insist on so terming it in our present
|
|
discussion.
|
|
|
|
It is of the highest importance to separate those cognitions which
|
|
differ from others both in kind and in origin, and to take great
|
|
care that they are not confounded with those with which they are
|
|
generally found connected. What the chemist does in the analysis of
|
|
substances, what the mathematician in pure mathematics, is, in a still
|
|
higher degree, the duty of the philosopher, that the value of each
|
|
different kind of cognition, and the part it takes in the operations
|
|
of the mind, may be clearly defined. Human reason has never wanted a
|
|
metaphysic of some kind, since it attained the power of thought, or
|
|
rather of reflection; but it has never been able to keep this sphere
|
|
of thought and cognition pure from all admixture of foreign
|
|
elements. The idea of a science of this kind is as old as
|
|
speculation itself; and what mind does not speculate- either in the
|
|
scholastic or in the popular fashion? At the same time, it must be
|
|
admitted that even thinkers by profession have been unable clearly
|
|
to explain the distinction between the two elements of our
|
|
cognition- the one completely a priori, the other a posteriori; and
|
|
hence the proper definition of a peculiar kind of cognition, and
|
|
with it the just idea of a science which has so long and so deeply
|
|
engaged the attention of the human mind, has never been established.
|
|
When it was said: "Metaphysic is the science of the first principles
|
|
of human cognition," this definition did not signalize a peculiarity
|
|
in kind, but only a difference in degree; these first principles
|
|
were thus declared to be more general than others, but no criterion of
|
|
distinction from empirical principles was given. Of these some are
|
|
more general, and therefore higher, than others; and- as we cannot
|
|
distinguish what is completely a priori from that which is known to be
|
|
a posteriori- where shall we draw the line which is to separate the
|
|
higher and so-called first principles, from the lower and
|
|
subordinate principles of cognition? What would be said if we were
|
|
asked to be satisfied with a division of the epochs of the world
|
|
into the earlier centuries and those following them? "Does the
|
|
fifth, or the tenth century belong to the earlier centuries?" it would
|
|
be asked. In the same way I ask: Does the conception of extension
|
|
belong to metaphysics? You answer, "Yes." Well, that of body too?
|
|
"Yes." And that of a fluid body? You stop, you are unprepared to admit
|
|
this; for if you do, everything will belong to metaphysics. From
|
|
this it is evident that the mere degree of subordination- of the
|
|
particular to the general- cannot determine the limits of a science;
|
|
and that, in the present case, we must expect to find a difference
|
|
in the conceptions of metaphysics both in kind and in origin. The
|
|
fundamental idea of metaphysics was obscured on another side by the
|
|
fact that this kind of a priori cognition showed a certain
|
|
similarity in character with the science of mathematics. Both have the
|
|
property in common of possessing an a priori origin; but, in the
|
|
one, our knowledge is based upon conceptions, in the other, on the
|
|
construction of conceptions. Thus a decided dissimilarity between
|
|
philosophical and mathematical cognition comes out- a dissimilarity
|
|
which was always felt, but which could not be made distinct for want
|
|
of an insight into the criteria of the difference. And thus it
|
|
happened that, as philosophers themselves failed in the proper
|
|
development of the idea of their science, the elaboration of the
|
|
science could not proceed with a definite aim, or under trustworthy
|
|
guidance. Thus, too, philosophers, ignorant of the path they ought
|
|
to pursue and always disputing with each other regarding the
|
|
discoveries which each asserted he had made, brought their science
|
|
into disrepute with the rest of the world, and finally, even among
|
|
themselves.
|
|
|
|
All pure a priori cognition forms, therefore, in view of the
|
|
peculiar faculty which originates it, a peculiar and distinct unity;
|
|
and metaphysic is the term applied to the philosophy which attempts to
|
|
represent that cognition in this systematic unity. The speculative
|
|
part of metaphysic, which has especially appropriated this
|
|
appellation- that which we have called the metaphysic of nature- and
|
|
which considers everything, as it is (not as it ought to be), by means
|
|
of a priori conceptions, is divided in the following manner.
|
|
|
|
Metaphysic, in the more limited acceptation of the term, consists of
|
|
two parts- transcendental philosophy and the physiology of pure
|
|
reason. The former presents the system of all the conceptions and
|
|
principles belonging to the understanding and the reason, and which
|
|
relate to objects in general, but not to any particular given
|
|
objects (Ontologia); the latter has nature for its subject-matter,
|
|
that is, the sum of given objects- whether given to the senses, or, if
|
|
we will, to some other kind of intuition- and is accordingly
|
|
physiology, although only rationalis. But the use of the faculty of
|
|
reason in this rational mode of regarding nature is either physical or
|
|
hyperphysical, or, more properly speaking, immanent or transcendent.
|
|
The former relates to nature, in so far as our knowledge regarding
|
|
it may be applied in experience (in concreto); the latter to that
|
|
connection of the objects of experience, which transcends all
|
|
experience. Transcendent physiology has, again, an internal and an
|
|
external connection with its object, both, however, transcending
|
|
possible experience; the former is the physiology of nature as a
|
|
whole, or transcendental cognition of the world, the latter of the
|
|
connection of the whole of nature with a being above nature, or
|
|
transcendental cognition of God.
|
|
|
|
Immanent physiology, on the contrary, considers nature as the sum of
|
|
all sensuous objects, consequently, as it is presented to us- but
|
|
still according to a priori conditions, for it is under these alone
|
|
that nature can be presented to our minds at all. The objects of
|
|
immanent physiology are of two kinds: 1. Those of the external senses,
|
|
or corporeal nature; 2. The object of the internal sense, the soul,
|
|
or, in accordance with our fundamental conceptions of it, thinking
|
|
nature. The metaphysics of corporeal nature is called physics; but, as
|
|
it must contain only the principles of an a priori cognition of
|
|
nature, we must term it rational physics. The metaphysics of
|
|
thinking nature is called psychology, and for the same reason is to be
|
|
regarded as merely the rational cognition of the soul.
|
|
|
|
Thus the whole system of metaphysics consists of four principal
|
|
parts: 1. Ontology; 2. Rational Physiology; 3. Rational cosmology; and
|
|
4. Rational theology. The second part- that of the rational doctrine
|
|
of nature- may be subdivided into two, physica rationalis* and
|
|
psychologia rationalis.
|
|
|
|
*It must not be supposed that I mean by this appellation what is
|
|
generally called physica general is, and which is rather mathematics
|
|
than a philosophy of nature. For the metaphysic of nature is
|
|
completely different from mathematics, nor is it so rich in results,
|
|
although it is of great importance as a critical test of the
|
|
application of pure understanding-cognition to nature. For want of its
|
|
guidance, even mathematicians, adopting certain common notions-
|
|
which are, in fact, metaphysical- have unconsciously crowded their
|
|
theories of nature with hypotheses, the fallacy of which becomes
|
|
evident upon the application of the principles of this metaphysic,
|
|
without detriment, however, to the employment of mathematics in this
|
|
sphere of cognition.
|
|
|
|
The fundamental idea of a philosophy of pure reason of necessity
|
|
dictates this division; it is, therefore, architectonical- in
|
|
accordance with the highest aims of reason, and not merely
|
|
technical, or according to certain accidentally-observed
|
|
similarities existing between the different parts of the whole
|
|
science. For this reason, also, is the division immutable and of
|
|
legislative authority. But the reader may observe in it a few points
|
|
to which he ought to demur, and which may weaken his conviction of its
|
|
truth and legitimacy.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, how can I desire an a priori cognition or
|
|
metaphysic of objects, in so far as they are given a posteriori? and
|
|
how is it possible to cognize the nature of things according to a
|
|
priori principles, and to attain to a rational physiology? The
|
|
answer is this. We take from experience nothing more than is requisite
|
|
to present us with an object (in general) of the external or of the
|
|
internal sense; in the former case, by the mere conception of matter
|
|
(impenetrable and inanimate extension), in the latter, by the
|
|
conception of a thinking being- given in the internal empirical
|
|
representation, I think. As to the rest, we must not employ in our
|
|
metaphysic of these objects any empirical principles (which add to the
|
|
content of our conceptions by means of experience), for the purpose of
|
|
forming by their help any judgements respecting these objects.
|
|
|
|
Secondly, what place shall we assign to empirical psychology,
|
|
which has always been considered a part of metaphysics, and from which
|
|
in our time such important philosophical results have been expected,
|
|
after the hope of constructing an a priori system of knowledge had
|
|
been abandoned? I answer: It must be placed by the side of empirical
|
|
physics or physics proper; that is, must be regarded as forming a part
|
|
of applied philosophy, the a priori principles of which are
|
|
contained in pure philosophy, which is therefore connected, although
|
|
it must not be confounded, with psychology. Empirical psychology
|
|
must therefore be banished from the sphere of metaphysics, and is
|
|
indeed excluded by the very idea of that science. In conformity,
|
|
however, with scholastic usage, we must permit it to occupy a place in
|
|
metaphysics- but only as an appendix to it. We adopt this course
|
|
from motives of economy; as psychology is not as yet full enough to
|
|
occupy our attention as an independent study, while it is, at the same
|
|
time, of too great importance to be entirely excluded or placed
|
|
where it has still less affinity than it has with the subject of
|
|
metaphysics. It is a stranger who has been long a guest; and we make
|
|
it welcome to stay, until it can take up a more suitable abode in a
|
|
complete system of anthropology- the pendant to empirical physics.
|
|
|
|
The above is the general idea of metaphysics, which, as more was
|
|
expected from it than could be looked for with justice, and as these
|
|
pleasant expectations were unfortunately never realized, fell into
|
|
general disrepute. Our Critique must have fully convinced the reader
|
|
that, although metaphysics cannot form the foundation of religion,
|
|
it must always be one of its most important bulwarks, and that human
|
|
reason, which naturally pursues a dialectical course, cannot do
|
|
without this science, which checks its tendencies towards dialectic
|
|
and, by elevating reason to a scientific and clear self-knowledge,
|
|
prevents the ravages which a lawless speculative reason would
|
|
infallibly commit in the sphere of morals as well as in that of
|
|
religion. We may be sure, therefore, whatever contempt may be thrown
|
|
upon metaphysics by those who judge a science not by its own nature,
|
|
but according to the accidental effects it may have produced, that
|
|
it can never be completely abandoned, that we must always return to it
|
|
as to a beloved one who has been for a time estranged, because the
|
|
questions with which it is engaged relate to the highest aims of
|
|
humanity, and reason must always labour either to attain to settled
|
|
views in regard to these, or to destroy those which others have
|
|
already established.
|
|
|
|
Metaphysic, therefore- that of nature, as well as that of ethics,
|
|
but in an especial manner the criticism which forms the propaedeutic
|
|
to all the operations of reason- forms properly that department of
|
|
knowledge which may be termed, in the truest sense of the word,
|
|
philosophy. The path which it pursues is that of science, which,
|
|
when it has once been discovered, is never lost, and never misleads.
|
|
Mathematics, natural science, the common experience of men, have a
|
|
high value as means, for the most part, to accidental ends- but at
|
|
last also, to those which are necessary and essential to the existence
|
|
of humanity. But to guide them to this high goal, they require the aid
|
|
of rational cognition on the basis of pure conceptions, which, be it
|
|
termed as it may, is properly nothing but metaphysics.
|
|
|
|
For the same reason, metaphysics forms likewise the completion of
|
|
the culture of human reason. In this respect, it is indispensable,
|
|
setting aside altogether the influence which it exerts as a science.
|
|
For its subject-matter is the elements and highest maxims of reason,
|
|
which form the basis of the possibility of some sciences and of the
|
|
use of all. That, as a purely speculative science, it is more useful
|
|
in preventing error than in the extension of knowledge, does not
|
|
detract from its value; on the contrary, the supreme office of
|
|
censor which it occupies assures to it the highest authority and
|
|
importance. This office it administers for the purpose of securing
|
|
order, harmony, and well-being to science, and of directing its
|
|
noble and fruitful labours to the highest possible aim- the
|
|
happiness of all mankind.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV. The History of Pure Reason.
|
|
|
|
This title is placed here merely for the purpose of designating a
|
|
division of the system of pure reason of which I do not intend to
|
|
treat at present. I shall content myself with casting a cursory
|
|
glance, from a purely transcendental point of view- that of the nature
|
|
of pure reason- on the labours of philosophers up to the present time.
|
|
They have aimed at erecting an edifice of philosophy; but to my eye
|
|
this edifice appears to be in a very ruinous condition.
|
|
|
|
It is very remarkable, although naturally it could not have been
|
|
otherwise, that, in the infancy of philosophy, the study of the nature
|
|
of God and the constitution of a future world formed the commencement,
|
|
rather than the conclusion, as we should have it, of the speculative
|
|
efforts of the human mind. However rude the religious conceptions
|
|
generated by the remains of the old manners and customs of a less
|
|
cultivated time, the intelligent classes were not thereby prevented
|
|
from devoting themselves to free inquiry into the existence and nature
|
|
of God; and they easily saw that there could be no surer way of
|
|
pleasing the invisible ruler of the world, and of attaining to
|
|
happiness in another world at least, than a good and honest course
|
|
of life in this. Thus theology and morals formed the two chief
|
|
motives, or rather the points of attraction in all abstract inquiries.
|
|
But it was the former that especially occupied the attention of
|
|
speculative reason, and which afterwards became so celebrated under
|
|
the name of metaphysics.
|
|
|
|
I shall not at present indicate the periods of time at which the
|
|
greatest changes in metaphysics took place, but shall merely give a
|
|
hasty sketch of the different ideas which occasioned the most
|
|
important revolutions in this sphere of thought. There are three
|
|
different ends in relation to which these revolutions have taken
|
|
place.
|
|
|
|
1. In relation to the object of the cognition of reason,
|
|
philosophers may be divided into sensualists and intellectualists.
|
|
Epicurus may be regarded as the head of the former, Plato of the
|
|
latter. The distinction here signalized, subtle as it is, dates from
|
|
the earliest times, and was long maintained. The former asserted
|
|
that reality resides in sensuous objects alone, and that everything
|
|
else is merely imaginary; the latter, that the senses are the
|
|
parents of illusion and that truth is to be found in the understanding
|
|
alone. The former did not deny to the conceptions of the understanding
|
|
a certain kind of reality; but with them it was merely logical, with
|
|
the others it was mystical. The former admitted intellectual
|
|
conceptions, but declared that sensuous objects alone possessed real
|
|
existence. The latter maintained that all real objects were
|
|
intelligible, and believed that the pure understanding possessed a
|
|
faculty of intuition apart from sense, which, in their opinion, served
|
|
only to confuse the ideas of the understanding.
|
|
|
|
2. In relation to the origin of the pure cognitions of reason, we
|
|
find one school maintaining that they are derived entirely from
|
|
experience, and another that they have their origin in reason alone.
|
|
Aristotle may be regarded as the bead of the empiricists, and Plato of
|
|
the noologists. Locke, the follower of Aristotle in modern times,
|
|
and Leibnitz of Plato (although he cannot be said to have imitated him
|
|
in his mysticism), have not been able to bring this question to a
|
|
settled conclusion. The procedure of Epicurus in his sensual system,
|
|
in which he always restricted his conclusions to the sphere of
|
|
experience, was much more consequent than that of Aristotle and Locke.
|
|
The latter especially, after having derived all the conceptions and
|
|
principles of the mind from experience, goes so far, in the employment
|
|
of these conceptions and principles, as to maintain that we can
|
|
prove the existence of God and the existence of God and the
|
|
immortality of them objects lying beyond the soul- both of them of
|
|
possible experience- with the same force of demonstration as any
|
|
mathematical proposition.
|
|
|
|
3. In relation to method. Method is procedure according to
|
|
principles. We may divide the methods at present employed in the field
|
|
of inquiry into the naturalistic and the scientific. The naturalist of
|
|
pure reason lays it down as his principle that common reason,
|
|
without the aid of science- which he calls sound reason, or common
|
|
sense- can give a more satisfactory answer to the most important
|
|
questions of metaphysics than speculation is able to do. He must
|
|
maintain, therefore, that we can determine the content and
|
|
circumference of the moon more certainly by the naked eye, than by the
|
|
aid of mathematical reasoning. But this system is mere misology
|
|
reduced to principles; and, what is the most absurd thing in this
|
|
doctrine, the neglect of all scientific means is paraded as a peculiar
|
|
method of extending our cognition. As regards those who are
|
|
naturalists because they know no better, they are certainly not to
|
|
be blamed. They follow common sense, without parading their
|
|
ignorance as a method which is to teach us the wonderful secret, how
|
|
we are to find the truth which lies at the bottom of the well of
|
|
Democritus.
|
|
|
|
Quod sapio satis est mihi, non ego curo Esse quod
|
|
|
|
Arcesilas aerumnosique Solones. PERSIUS*
|
|
|
|
is their motto, under which they may lead a pleasant and praise worthy
|
|
life, without troubling themselves with science or troubling science
|
|
with them.
|
|
|
|
*[Satirae, iii. 78-79. "What I know is enough for I don't care to be
|
|
what Arcesilas was, and the wretched Solons."]
|
|
|
|
As regards those who wish to pursue a scientific method, they have
|
|
now the choice of following either the dogmatical or the sceptical,
|
|
while they are bound never to desert the systematic mode of procedure.
|
|
When I mention, in relation to the former, the celebrated Wolf, and as
|
|
regards the latter, David Hume, I may leave, in accordance with my
|
|
present intention, all others unnamed. The critical path alone is
|
|
still open. If my reader has been kind and patient enough to accompany
|
|
me on this hitherto untravelled route, he can now judge whether, if he
|
|
and others will contribute their exertions towards making this
|
|
narrow footpath a high road of thought, that which many centuries have
|
|
failed to accomplish may not be executed before the close of the
|
|
present- namely, to bring Reason to perfect contentment in regard to
|
|
that which has always, but without permanent results, occupied her
|
|
powers and engaged her ardent desire for knowledge.
|
|
|
|
-THE END-
|
|
.
|